summaryrefslogtreecommitdiff
diff options
context:
space:
mode:
-rw-r--r--.gitattributes4
-rw-r--r--LICENSE.txt11
-rw-r--r--README.md2
-rw-r--r--old/69714-0.txt13563
-rw-r--r--old/69714-0.zipbin259011 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69714-h.zipbin761071 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69714-h/69714-h.htm16913
-rw-r--r--old/69714-h/images/cover.jpgbin783961 -> 0 bytes
-rw-r--r--old/69714-h/images/i_title.jpgbin63388 -> 0 bytes
9 files changed, 17 insertions, 30476 deletions
diff --git a/.gitattributes b/.gitattributes
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..d7b82bc
--- /dev/null
+++ b/.gitattributes
@@ -0,0 +1,4 @@
+*.txt text eol=lf
+*.htm text eol=lf
+*.html text eol=lf
+*.md text eol=lf
diff --git a/LICENSE.txt b/LICENSE.txt
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..6312041
--- /dev/null
+++ b/LICENSE.txt
@@ -0,0 +1,11 @@
+This eBook, including all associated images, markup, improvements,
+metadata, and any other content or labor, has been confirmed to be
+in the PUBLIC DOMAIN IN THE UNITED STATES.
+
+Procedures for determining public domain status are described in
+the "Copyright How-To" at https://www.gutenberg.org.
+
+No investigation has been made concerning possible copyrights in
+jurisdictions other than the United States. Anyone seeking to utilize
+this eBook outside of the United States should confirm copyright
+status under the laws that apply to them.
diff --git a/README.md b/README.md
new file mode 100644
index 0000000..c041da4
--- /dev/null
+++ b/README.md
@@ -0,0 +1,2 @@
+Project Gutenberg (https://www.gutenberg.org) public repository for
+eBook #69714 (https://www.gutenberg.org/ebooks/69714)
diff --git a/old/69714-0.txt b/old/69714-0.txt
deleted file mode 100644
index bd8dc90..0000000
--- a/old/69714-0.txt
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,13563 +0,0 @@
-The Project Gutenberg eBook of The discarded daughter, by Emma
-Dorothy Eliza Nevitte Southworth
-
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online at
-www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the United States, you
-will have to check the laws of the country where you are located before
-using this eBook.
-
-Title: The discarded daughter
- Or the children of the isle
-
-Author: Emma Dorothy Eliza Nevitte Southworth
-
-Release Date: January 5, 2023 [eBook #69714]
-
-Language: English
-
-Produced by: Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed Proofreading
- Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from
- images generously made available by The Internet Archive)
-
-*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER ***
-
-
-
-
-
- THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER
- OR
- The Children of the Isle
-
-
- BY
-
- MRS. E. D. E. N. SOUTHWORTH
-
- Author of “Ishmael,” “The Hidden Hand,” “The Bride’s Fate,” “The Changed
- Brides,” etc.
-
-[Illustration]
-
- GROSSET & DUNLAP
- PUBLISHERS: NEW YORK
-
-
-
-
- CONTENTS.
-
-
- CHAPTER PAGE
- INTRODUCTORY—ST. CLARA’S ISLE, v
- I. MOUNT CALM, 1
- II. THE NEW SUITOR, 3
- III. THE FATHER’S TYRANNY, 7
- IV. THE SUBJECTION OF ALICE, 12
- V. THE HUSBAND’S AUTHORITY, 14
- VI. COUNTRY NEIGHBORS, 16
- VII. HUTTON OF THE ISLES, 20
- VIII. THE BRIDE OF THE ISLES, 24
- IX. HUTTON LODGE, 28
- X. THE PATIENCE OF ALICE, 33
- XI. ALICE’S VISIT TO HUTTON ISLE, 41
- XII. CHILD OF THE WRECK, 45
- XIII. THE DESOLATE HOUSE, 51
- XIV. VANISHING OF AGNES, 55
- XV. THE ELFIN GIRL, 59
- XVI. ELSIE, 66
- XVII. THE BALL—THE UNEXPECTED GUEST, 75
- XVIII. THE NEW-FOUND HEIR, 83
- XIX. THE DEVOTION OF LOVE, 86
- XX. ELSIE IN THE ATTIC, 97
- XXI. CRUELTY—A CHAMBER SCENE, 103
- XXII. MARRIAGE, 108
- XXIII. THE HEART OVERTASKED, 118
- XXIV. THE WIFE’S TRUST, 128
- XXV. LIFE’S STORM AND SOUL’S SHELTER, 133
- XXVI. DAY AFTER THE WEDDING, 143
- XXVII. DEEP DELL—COUNTRY TAVERN, 150
- XXVIII. THE VAULT, 155
- XXIX. THE CHILDREN OF THE ISLE, 168
- XXX. THE NIGHT VISIT, 172
- XXXI. NETTIE IN THE MANSION, 180
- XXXII. THE INTERVIEW, 187
- XXXIII. ELSIE IN THE LOG CABIN, 198
- XXXIV. WHAT CAME NEXT, 207
- XXXV. THE FLIGHT OF TIME, 217
- XXXVI. LIGHT ON THE ISLAND, 227
- XXXVII. THE BEEHIVE, 242
- XXXVIII. HUGH AND GARNET, 256
- XXXIX. THE STRUGGLE OF LOVE AND AMBITION, 267
- XL. ELSIE’S FORTUNES, 282
- XLI. THE SECRET REVEALED, 291
-
-
-
-
- INTRODUCTORY.
- ST. CLARA’S ISLE.
-
- The Island lies nine leagues away.
- Along its solitary shore
- Of craggy rock and sandy bay,
- No sound but ocean’s roar,
- Save where the bold, wild sea-bird makes her home,
- Her shrill cry coming through the sparkling foam.
- _—R. H. Dana._
-
-
-The scenes of our story lie along the Western shore of Maryland, near
-the mouth of the Potomac River, and among the islets of the Chesapeake
-Bay.
-
-Nothing can be more beautiful, grand, and inspiring than the scenery of
-this region.
-
-The great Potomac, a mighty and invincible monarch of rivers, even from
-her first stormy conquest, in which she rent apart the everlasting
-mountains, and forced herself a passage to the sea—widens and broadens
-her channel, extending the area of her empire continually as she goes on
-her irresistible way in a vast, calm, majestic flow of waters to the
-ocean.
-
-At the mouth of the river on the north, or Maryland side, is Point
-Lookout; on the south, or Virginia side, is Smith’s Point, with an
-expanse of water twenty miles in width between them.
-
-The shore on the Maryland side is broken by the most beautiful creeks
-and inlets, and dotted by the most beautiful islets that imagination can
-depict—creeks whose crystal-clear waters reflect every undulating hill
-and vale, every shadowy tree and bright flower lying upon their banks,
-and every soft and dark, or sun-gilded and glorious cloud floating in
-the skies above their bosoms; islets whose dewy, fresh and green
-luxuriance of vegetation, darksome trees and profound solitude, tempt
-one into poetic dreams of an ideal hermitage. The beauty and interest of
-this shore is enhanced by the occasional glimpses of rural
-homes—magnificent, or simply picturesque—seen indistinctly through the
-trees, at the head of some creek, on the summit of some distant hill, or
-in the shades of some thick grove.
-
-Nothing can surpass the pleasure of the opposite but delightfully
-blended emotions inspired by this scene.
-
-On the one hand the near shore, with its inlets and islands, its sunny
-hills and shadowy dells, its old forests, its cornfields, and its sweet,
-sequestered homes, yields that dear sense of safety and repose which the
-most adventurous never like to lose entirely.
-
-On the other hand, looking out to the sea, the broad expanse of waters,
-the free and unobstructed pathway to all parts of the world, fills and
-dilates the heart with an exultant sense of boundless freedom!
-
-I said that the islets of the Potomac were fertile, verdant, and
-luxurious in vegetation. This is because their sandy soil is mixed
-freely with clay and marl; because it is enriched with the deposits of
-the vast flocks of water-fowl that hover upon them for safe repose; and
-finally, because, unlike the worn-out lands of the peninsula, the soil
-is a virgin one, where for ages vegetation has budded, bloomed, and
-decayed, and returned to the earth to fertilize it. (And here let me be
-pardoned for saying that it is a matter of surprise to me that the
-attention of enterprising men has never been turned to these islands as
-a source of agricultural wealth; for, besides the rich fertility of the
-soil, the salubrity of the air, and the beauty and grandeur of the land
-and water scenery, these islands are rich in shoals of fish, crabs, and
-oysters, and in vast flocks of water-fowl. But we ever overlook and
-leave the near to seek the far-off goal.)
-
-Beyond the mouth of the river, however, and up the coast of the bay, the
-islands are sandy and poor—nearly unproductive, or entirely barren.
-
-Anyone who will turn to the map of Maryland will see that the Chesapeake
-Bay is interspersed with numerous islands of all sizes, from the
-largest—Kent Island—to the smallest, nameless sand bank; that the
-eastern and western shores of Maryland are beautifully diversified with
-every modification of land and water scenery; that the inlets and
-islands of the coast form the most charming features of the landscape.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Some distance above Point Lookout, at the mouth of the Potomac River, up
-the western shore of Maryland, there is a beautiful inlet, or small bay,
-making up about three miles into the land, called St. Clara’s Bay by one
-of the early Roman Catholic settlers. At the headwaters of this inlet is
-a small, very old hamlet, the site of one of the first settlements of
-the State, intended once, no doubt, for a great colonial seaport, and
-christened by the same sponsor St. Clarasville. With its fine harbor and
-great commercial facilities, whatever could have arrested its growth and
-withered it in its prime I do not know—possibly the very abundance of
-other good harbors on the coast—probably the frequent and violent
-dissensions between the pre-emption freebooters of the Bay Isles and the
-legal proprietors and settlers of the mainland. Lying two miles off the
-mouth of this inlet, and stretching across in front of it, is an oblong,
-sandy, and nearly barren island—rich, however, in fish, crabs, oysters,
-and water-fowl, and upon this account a great resort in early colonial
-times, and baptized by the same devout claimant of the bay and town St.
-Clara’s Isle, in honor of his patron saint.
-
-But there was another claimant of the island, inlet, and township; a
-freebooter, who, believing in and acknowledging no greater personage
-than himself, had named the isle, the bay, and town also, when it was
-laid out, after himself. So they were first and most frequently called
-Hutton’s Island, Bay, and Town.
-
-
-
-
- THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER I.
- MOUNT CALM.
-
- A proud, aristocratic hall it seems,
- Not courting, but discouraging approach.
- _—Moultrie._
-
-
-Let me introduce you to Mount Calm, the seat of General Aaron Garnet.
-Even from the bay you can see the mansion house, with its broad white
-front, as it crowns the highest of a distant range of hills. After
-passing through the village of Hutton, and going up and down the grassy
-hills that rise one above the other beyond it, you enter a deep hollow,
-thickly grown with woods, and passing through it, begin to ascend by a
-heavily shaded forest road, the last and highest hill of the range—Mount
-Calm. When about halfway up this hill you come to the brick walls
-inclosing the private grounds, and passing through the porter’s gate you
-enter a heavily-shaded carriage drive, that, sweeping around in an
-ascending half-circle, brings you up before the mansion house.
-
-Behind the house was a green slope and a thick grove that concealed from
-view the extensive outbuildings connected with the establishment.
-Extensive fields of corn, wheat, rye, oats, tobacco, etc., spread all
-over the undulatory land. The estate itself comprised several thousands
-of the best acres in old St. Mary’s County, and there were several
-hundred of them under the best cultivation and in the richest state of
-productiveness.
-
-This princely estate had remained in the possession of the Chesters
-since the first settlement of the county, and unlike the usual fate of
-old Maryland plantations, the property had not only been carefully
-preserved, but had steadily increased in value up to the time of the
-Revolution, when it had reached its highest importance.
-
-The estate was then in the hands of Charles Chester, Esq., Justice of
-the Peace and Associate Judge of the Provincial Court. His family
-consisted of a wife, two sons, and a daughter.
-
-At the breaking out of the Revolution Judge Chester and his two stalwart
-boys took the field among the first, and at the triumphant close of the
-war Colonel Chester set out on his return home with a pair of
-epaulettes, minus his pair of goodly sons, who were left not only dead
-upon the field of glory, but buried with all the honors of victorious
-war upon the immortal plains of Yorktown. And thus it happened that the
-heirship of the heavy estate, with all its burden of onerous
-responsibilities, fell upon the frail shoulders of young Alice Chester—a
-fair-skinned, golden-haired, blue-eyed girl of seventeen, the fairest,
-gentlest, and most fragile being that ever owed life to a stern and
-warlike sire. Alice, living at home with her simple-hearted, domestic
-mother, had been very little noticed by her father, or even by anyone
-else, until, by the death of his sons, she became the sole heiress of
-the vast estate, which was to prove the greatest misfortune of her life.
-
-The long, long bleak winters were passed in almost inviolable seclusion,
-cheered only by an occasional letter from the army, and an occasional
-ride to church, if the road happened to be passable, which was seldom
-the case.
-
-This life lasted until Alice was fifteen years of age, when an event
-occurred such as would make no stir at all in a city, but which will
-throw a quiet country neighborhood into convulsions, namely, a change of
-ministry—not national, but parochial! The old parson, compelled by
-declining health, had departed to take charge of a congregation farther
-south, and a young parson had come in his stead. The Rev. Milton
-Sinclair was handsome, graceful, and accomplished.
-
-By the invitation of Mrs. Chester the young minister became the
-temporary inmate of Mount Calm, and very much he entertained and
-instructed, cheered and sustained the secluded mother and daughter. He
-became the almoner of the lady to the poor around. He directed and
-superintended the reading of Alice; introducing gradually, as her
-opening mind could bear, all the beauties and glories of science,
-history, philosophy, and poetry.
-
-As the days fled, Alice and Milton Sinclair grew to love each other, and
-one day the minister told his great love and was made happy by Alice
-confessing that she returned his affection. Mrs. Chester, too, approved
-of the match, and she set her maids to work carding, spinning, knitting,
-weaving, and sewing, that Alice might have a full supply of every
-description of household cloth and linen. The bride’s trousseau was the
-last thing thought of, and there was time enough, she thought, for that
-when her father should arrive. She did not know when that would be, but
-it was well to have everything that took a great deal of time and labor,
-such as the house and furniture and the household stuff, ready—as for
-the wedding dresses and other minor preparations, of course they must be
-deferred until Colonel Chester’s arrival, and then they could be
-speedily got up.
-
-It was in the midst of this domestic happiness, this great tense joy and
-hope, that the thunderbolt fell!
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER II.
- THE NEW SUITOR.
-
- How! Will she none? Doth she not give us thanks?
- Is she not proud? Doth she not count her blessed,
- Unworthy as she is, that we have wrought
- So worthy a gentleman to be her bridegroom?
- _—Shakspere._
-
-
-First came the news of the glorious victory of Yorktown—the final and
-signal triumph of the American arms. There were no railroads and
-telegraphic wires in those days, and very few newspapers. The report,
-the re-echo of this splendid victory, rolled on toward their quiet
-neighborhood like a storm; in clouds of doubt, in thunder and lightning
-of astonishment, joy, and mad triumph. The most delirious rejoicing
-convulsed the whole village and neighborhood for days, before any
-newspaper arrived with an account of the battle.
-
-And the same mail that brought the newspaper, with a long account of the
-battle, headed in great capital letters line below line, brought also a
-letter sealed with black that sped like a bullet through the foreboding
-heart of Mrs. Chester, a letter from Colonel Chester, announcing the
-glorious death of his two brave sons upon the field of victory.
-
-Mrs. Chester was overwhelmed with grief by the twofold bereavement, the
-fall of both her gallant sons, of whom she was as proud as fond.
-
-She did not dream of the calamity, worse than death, that had befallen
-Alice, in the disguise of a princely inheritance, destined to darken her
-whole life with sorrow, while it mocked her in the face of the world
-with its unreal light and splendor.
-
-But there was one who was not so forgetful—Colonel Chester. He was still
-with the army, but another letter was received from him, announcing his
-speedy return home, accompanied by his friend and companion in arms,
-General Garnet, a young officer, who, though but thirty years of age,
-had risen to the highest rank in the army, and won an immortal fame.
-
-Colonel Chester came at length, accompanied by General Garnet. He met
-Alice with great empressement—for it was scarcely great
-affection—praised her growth and her beauty, introduced General Garnet,
-and, excusing himself for a few moments, passed to the sick-chamber of
-his wife.
-
-Left alone with her guest Alice examined him shyly, with the curiosity
-of a woman and the bashfulness of a country girl. General Garnet was
-what young ladies call a fine, military-looking man. He certainly had a
-fine, martial figure and bearing, or that which is our ideal of it—a
-tall and elegantly proportioned figure, a calm, majestic carriage, yet
-withal suggestive of great reposing strength and fire. His voice was
-perfect harmony itself. His manner was dignified and imposing, or
-graceful, earnest, and seductive. Yet, sometimes, one in a sudden, vague
-astonishment, would feel that he was a man who could unite the utmost
-inflexibility, and even cruelty of purpose, with the most graceful and
-gracious urbanity of manner. With all his marvelous powers of
-fascination he was a man to darken, chill, repel a bright-spirited,
-warm-souled, pure-hearted girl like Alice. Yet she did the honors of her
-father’s house to her father’s guest until that guest merged into the
-lover, and then Alice felt and betrayed the utmost soul-sickened
-repugnance to him and his suit.
-
-It was now that the object of Colonel Chester in inviting this
-distinguished visitor to Mount Calm became evident—that of bestowing the
-hand of his daughter and heiress upon him.
-
-After a conversation with General Garnet he sent for Alice, and, without
-any preface at all, bade her make up her mind to a speedy marriage with
-the husband he had chosen for her, his distinguished and dear friend,
-General Garnet.
-
-Alice passed from the room, mechanically pressing her hands to her
-temples, trying to awake as from a heart-sickening dream. And so she
-passed to her now frequent post of duty, her declining mother’s darkened
-room and sick-bed. The senses, or the intuitions, or the instincts of
-those on the confines of the unseen world are sometimes preternaturally
-acute. There was that in the falling footstep, in the very form and
-bearing, of Alice, as she glided through the shadows of that dark room,
-that revealed to the mother the existence of some heavy cloud teeming
-with sorrow, that was ready to burst upon the devoted head of her child.
-
-She called Alice to her bedside, took her hand in her gentle grasp,
-looked with wondering sadness into her eyes—her eyes set in the stare of
-blank stupor—and murmured tenderly:
-
-“What is the matter, Alice? Tell your mother?”
-
-Her mother’s loving voice and touch unsealed the spellbound founts of
-tears and speech.
-
-“Oh, mother! mother! I am ruined! ruined!” she wildly gasped, and,
-sinking down upon the floor, dropped her head upon the bed with
-hysterical sobs and gasps, and inarticulate wailings.
-
-Her mother laid her gentle hand upon her child’s burning and throbbing
-head, and raised her tender eyes in silent prayer for her, while this
-storm raged, and until it passed, and Alice, exhausted, but calm, was
-able to rise, sit by her side, and while she held her hand, tell her
-what had happened.
-
-“I will speak to him, Alice,” she then said. “I will tell him how you
-and Sinclair love each other—as you could not tell him, my child. I will
-show him how vain—oh, how vain! are wealth, and rank, and honor, and
-glory, in the hour of grief, by the bed of death, in the presence of
-God! how love, and truth, and faith are all in all! Yes! and I will make
-him feel it, too. And, though he should not realize it as I do, yet he
-will never refuse me a request now!”
-
-And the next morning, directly after breakfast, Colonel Chester received
-a message from his wife, requesting him to come to her room for a few
-minutes, if convenient, as she wished to speak with him.
-
-Colonel Chester went. What passed at that interview no one knew more
-than what might be guessed from what followed.
-
-Colonel Chester came out of the room, banging the door after him, with a
-half-uttered imprecation upon “sickly fancies,” “irritable nerves,” and
-“foolish women.” But immediately after this interview Mrs. Chester
-became much worse; her fever rose to delirium, and she was alarmingly
-ill for several days. Milton Sinclair heard of her state, and, little
-suspecting the cause, came to see her. He was met by Colonel Chester,
-who informed him that his wife was too ill to receive even her pastor,
-and requested him to walk into the library. There Colonel Chester
-informed him that circumstances had occurred which made it his painful
-duty to beg that Mr. Sinclair would temporarily suspend his visits to
-Mount Calm.
-
-“Alice!” exclaimed the young man. That name contained everything, and
-rendered a full explanation indispensable. It was given.
-
-Deadly pale, Sinclair walked up and down the floor, pressing his head
-tightly between his two palms and groaning—groaning the name, the
-prayer, that in the bitterest agony of the soul starts to every lip:
-
-“My God! oh, my God! have pity on me! God have mercy on me!”
-
-The heart-broken tone of these words touched even that hard man of the
-world, Colonel Chester.
-
-“Come, come, Sinclair; you must have been prepared for this for some
-months past. I did not violently and at once separate you from Alice
-when I first came home, although you must have known that all our plans
-were changed. I gave you time to wean yourself gradually off. In other
-circumstances, indeed, I should have felt myself most honored, most
-happy in the alliance; but we do not control our own destinies.
-Good-day, Sinclair. You will forget Alice.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER III.
- THE FATHER’S TYRANNY.
-
- An thou be mine, I’ll give thee to my friend!
- An thou be not, hang, beg, starve, die i’ the streets,
- Nor what is mine shall ever do thee good,
- Trust to it, bethink you! I’ll not be forsworn!
- _—Shakspere._
-
-Sinclair! Sinclair! Where in the world was he? Where had he been so many
-days? Why did he not come? Alice could have given the world to have seen
-him.
-
-She did not know that he had been forbidden the house. She was totally
-ignorant of everything that had passed between her father and himself.
-She walked wildly about the house and grounds, instinctively avoiding
-her feeble mother’s room, lest in her present distracted state she
-should kill her with agitation; afraid of meeting her father, and doubly
-afraid of encountering General Garnet, and wishing and praying—oh!
-praying, as if for dear life, that she might meet Sinclair.
-
-One afternoon she wrote a wild letter to him, illegible and
-unintelligible every way except in this—that he must “come to Mount Calm
-immediately.” She sent the letter off, and walked up and down her
-chamber, trying to get calm enough to go and see her mother. While thus
-employed a message reached her from her mother, desiring her to come to
-her room. Alice went immediately. As she entered the dark chamber Mrs.
-Chester called her up to the side of her bed; she saw that her mother’s
-countenance had changed fearfully since the morning, and now a new
-terror and remorse seized her heart; she was about to speak, when Mrs.
-Chester said:
-
-“Alice, you look frightfully pale and haggard, my dear child. Alice, we
-were foiled this morning. Your father has been here, and told me all
-about it—the projected marriage in a week, and all; but do not fear, my
-dear child, you shall not be sacrificed; it is not right. I have sent a
-message to Mr. Sinclair to come here this evening. He has not been here
-for some time, and when he comes I must have a talk with him.”
-
-At this moment a servant entered the chamber, to whom Mrs. Chester
-turned, saying:
-
-“Milly, mix a teaspoonful of ether with a little water, and hand it to
-Miss Alice. She is not well. You must take it, Alice, dear; you are
-really very ill, and it will compose your nerves.”
-
-“Mr. Sinclair is downstairs, madam, and wants to know if he may come
-up,” said the girl, as she handed the glass to Alice.
-
-Alice dropped the glass, untasted.
-
-“Where is General Garnet?” said Mrs. Chester.
-
-“In the library, writing, madam.”
-
-“Where is Colonel Chester?”
-
-“Gone out riding, madam.”
-
-“Thank Heaven! Yes, request Mr. Sinclair to come up, Milly.”
-
-After the departure of the girl the mother and daughter remained in
-silent expectation. At last the light, quick footstep of Sinclair was
-heard upon the stairs.
-
-“Go and meet him, Alice, my darling,” said the mother, with a smile.
-
-Alice arose, and as he opened the door and advanced into the room,
-started forward and threw herself weeping into his arms. What could he
-do but press her to his bosom? Then he led her back to her mother’s
-bedside—stooped over the sick lady, taking her hand, and inquiring
-tenderly, respectfully, after her health of body and soul. While she was
-making her gentle, patient reply, the attention of all three was
-arrested by the noise of heavy, hurried footsteps hastening up the
-stairs.
-
-“It is your father, Alice! Oh, God, save us!” exclaimed Mrs. Chester,
-just as Colonel Chester, with one violent kick of his boot, burst open
-the door, and, purple and convulsed with rage, stood among them.
-
-“Who admitted this man? Who sent for him?” he demanded, in a furious
-voice.
-
-“I did. I sent for him,” said the mother, pale with fear and feebleness,
-but wishing to shield her daughter.
-
-“I did! I wrote him a note,” murmured the daughter, in a dying voice,
-sick with terror, but wishing to save her mother.
-
-“Traitors! Shameless household traitors! so there are a pair of you! a
-desirable wife and daughter! a very suitable mother and daughter! But
-I’ll find a way to punish you both. I’ll——”
-
-Here he was interrupted by Sinclair, who, turning to him, said, in a
-composed but stern voice:
-
-“Colonel Chester, visit your anger and reproaches upon me, who knew of
-your prohibition, not upon those who possibly knew nothing about it.”
-
-“You have the insolence to tell me, sir, to remind me, that you knew of
-my prohibition to cross my threshold! while standing here in my house,
-in the very heart of my house, my wife’s bedchamber!” exclaimed Colonel
-Chester furiously.
-
-“In your wife’s sick-chamber, sir, where, as a Christian minister, it is
-my bounden duty sometimes to come.”
-
-“And, d—— you, from whence I’ll put you out!” exclaimed the infuriated
-man.
-
-“I will go. Good-evening, Mrs. Chester; good-evening, Alice. I leave you
-in the care of Heaven,” said Sinclair, wishing, by all means, to avoid
-the disgrace of a struggle.
-
-“Go! what, go quietly like an honored guest dismissed? No, d—— you, you
-came surreptitiously, and you shall depart involuntarily. No, d—— you, I
-will put you out!” vociferated the maniac, in an ungovernable fury,
-springing upon Sinclair.
-
-A violent struggle ensued. Sinclair acted entirely upon the defensive,
-saying, continually, as he could make himself heard:
-
-“Colonel Chester, let me go! I will leave quietly; I would have done so
-at first.”
-
-And now the deathly grip and struggle went on in silence, interrupted
-only by the short, curt, hissing exclamations of the enraged man through
-his now whitened lip and clenched teeth. Sinclair was half the age and
-double the weight and strength of his opponent, and could easily have
-mastered him, but did not want the odium of doing it.
-
-While wrestling desperately on the defensive, he expostulated once more:
-
-“Colonel Chester—not for my sake, but for your own—for your family’s,
-for honor’s sake, let me depart in peace!”
-
-“Ah, villain!” exclaimed the madman, finding his strength failing, and
-suddenly drawing a pistol, he pointed it at Sinclair’s temple and fired.
-Sinclair suddenly started, and the bullet went through the window,
-shattering the glass. Chester now raised the spent pistol and aimed with
-it a violent blow upon Sinclair’s head. Sinclair quickly caught his
-descending hand, when——
-
-A power more awful than the judge’s baton, the monarch’s scepter, or the
-priest’s elevated crucifix arrested the combat.
-
-Death stood in their presence! A cry of mortal anguish from Alice caused
-both to turn and look—both to drop their hold—and stand like
-conscience-stricken culprits!
-
-There lay Mrs. Chester, the gentle, patient, long-suffering woman,
-stricken down, dying in her daughter’s arms.
-
-Colonel Chester came to his senses at once, feeling all the horror and
-remorse of a murderer.
-
-And Sinclair repented from his soul that he had not permitted himself to
-be expelled from the house with every species of ignominy rather than to
-have seen this.
-
-That ashen brow—those fixed eyes—that silent tongue, and quick, gasping
-breath! that face of the dying! it would never depart from his memory.
-Oh! any personal indignity rather than this memory! if he could but save
-her! but she was beyond all help now, for—even as full of sorrow and
-remorse he gazed—with a long, deep sigh, as for the pilgrims she left
-behind on earth, her spirit passed to God.
-
-Sinclair bore Alice, fainting, from the room.
-
-Colonel Chester fell down on his knees, dropping his head upon the bed,
-and throwing his arms over his dead wife in a paroxysm of remorse and
-despair, ungovernable as his rage had been, and, alas! nearly as
-transient!
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IV.
- THE SUBJECTION OF ALICE.
-
- Oh! bid me leap, rather than marry Paris,
- From off the battlements of yonder tower.
- _—Shakspere._
-
- Now see that noble and most sovereign reason
- Like sweet bells jangled out of tune and harsh!
- That unmatched form and feature of blown youth
- Blasted with ecstasy!
- _—Ibid._
-
-
-After this terrible family storm, in which poor Mrs. Chester’s vital
-powers had suddenly failed, the peace stern death enforces reigned
-through the house. Alice, her heart and brain overturned by endurance,
-lay exhausted, almost insensible, upon her bed within her chamber.
-
-General Garnet had taken himself off to the village tavern, whence he
-had been invited to pass a week or two, at Point Yocomoco, the seat of
-Judge Wylie.
-
-Mr. Sinclair, in the disinterested kindness of his heart, remained at
-the house, superintending and directing everything, unquestioned by
-Colonel Chester, who, when he met, recognized him with a sigh or a
-groan. He remained until the funeral was over, and the house restored to
-its former order, and departed without seeing Alice, who, still
-prostrated, had not left her room. And after this, as Colonel Chester
-had not revoked his prohibition, he came to the house no more.
-
-As days glided into weeks Alice recovered a portion of her strength,
-left the chamber, and mournfully went about her customary occupations.
-
-Poor Alice! her spirit was very willing, but her nerves were very weak.
-So it was with a pang of fear that Alice heard her father at the
-breakfast table one morning announce the expected arrival of General
-Garnet that evening. Yes, Colonel Chester, thinking that now perhaps
-sufficient time had elapsed since her mother’s death—and sufficient
-strength and cheerfulness had returned to his daughter—had recalled her
-suitor. Alice was trembling violently—she dared not look up. She had
-been taught to love and venerate her father above all earthly beings,
-and next to God. She loved and venerated him still, and kept her
-thoughts reverently away from investigating his motive and judging his
-conduct. She had been taught to bow with implicit and reverential
-obedience to his will. To oppose him had not been easy in her thought—it
-was terrible in practice. It would have been terrible to her had her
-father been a man of moderate temper and self-control; but he was a man
-of violent and ungovernable passion; and Alice was in an agony of terror
-when she faltered out:
-
-“Father, if General Garnet comes here only as your guest, I will welcome
-him with every possible attention; I will try to make him feel at home,
-and endeavor to render his sojourn with us in every other way agreeable;
-but if he comes here as my suitor——” Here her voice died away.
-
-“Well!”
-
-It is impossible to convey the short, curt, galvanic strength and
-abruptness with which he jerked, as it were, this syllable out, and
-brought Alice up. It was like throwing the lasso suddenly around her
-neck, and jerking her up face to face with him. And such a face! It is
-impossible to paint the grim determination of the locked jaws, armed
-with the wiry stubble beard, bristled up with fierceness, and the
-ferocity of the darkly-gathered frown that screwed his glance upon her
-pallid face, that screwed it into her very brain. Alice turned deadly
-sick, her eyes filmed over, and she sank back in her chair. She did not
-faint or lose consciousness, for the next instant she felt her father’s
-iron hand upon her fragile shoulder, and her father’s awful voice in
-that low, deep, suppressed tone of fierce, immutable determination,
-saying:
-
-“Miss Chester, it is not as your suitor, but as your husband, that
-General Garnet will come this evening. I command you to receive him as
-such.”
-
-And he left her.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER V.
- THE HUSBAND’S AUTHORITY.
-
- Yet haply there will come a weary day,
- When overtasked at length,
- Both Love and Hope beneath the weight give way;
- Then with a statue’s smile, a statue’s strength,
- Stands the mute sister, Patience, nothing loth,
- And both supporting does the work of both.
- _—Coleridge._
-
-
-Let us hasten over the next few hideous weeks. Alice had a serious
-illness, from which she recovered slowly; her spirit utterly broken; her
-heart utterly crushed; her very brain clouded. Her whole being bowed
-down by the storm of sorrow, yet with no one to support, comfort,
-sympathize with her. Sinclair, that only living being who could have
-saved her, was absent, forbidden to approach her. She was left alone,
-almost imbecile, and so quite defenseless in the terrible power of her
-father.
-
-And what words are these to write! and what a position was hers when
-that divinely appointed parental authority—that protective and
-beneficent power—was perverted by pride, ambition, and selfishness into
-an engine of mighty torture, inflicting a fatal and life long calamity!
-
-Yet the father verily believed that he was disinterestedly serving his
-daughter’s best interests. There is no more profoundly mournful
-illustration of the ruined archangel than that of any perverted love.
-
-With the support of her feeble mother, had she lived—with the support of
-Sinclair, had his piety been less æscetic, more hopeful—Alice might have
-successfully resisted the fate impending over her; but she was alone,
-reduced by sorrow and illness to a state of imbecility of mind and body,
-and she succumbed to her destiny.
-
-So, in just three months from the death of her mother Alice Chester,
-pallid, cold, nearly lifeless, whiter than the pearls in her pale hair,
-stood in bridal array before God’s holy altar, to vow in the hearing of
-men and angels to love and honor one whom she found it difficult not to
-hate and despise.
-
-Immediately after the marriage they set out upon a bridal tour through
-the North. They were absent all summer. Early in autumn they returned to
-Mount Calm, where, at the earnest desire of Colonel Chester, they took
-up their residence. Alice would have preferred it otherwise.
-
-After their marriage, and during their long and varied bridal tour, she
-had, as it were, lost her identity, seeming to herself to be someone
-else. The varied scenes of her journey—the stage-offices, turnpike
-roads, country taverns, great cities with their masses of brick and
-mortar, public edifices, forests of shipping, gay shops, theaters,
-concerts, balls, illuminations, dancings, splendid attire, stage
-pageantry, the ranting and the after silence, land journeys, water
-journeys—all haunted by one painful presence—had passed before her like
-a phantasmagoria; like a continuation of her brain fever, with its
-nervous delirium and grotesque or hideous visions and hallucinations. So
-all had seemed to her, while she seemed to all a pale, pretty, silent
-girl.
-
-There is a point of suffering beyond which sorrow destroys itself—is not
-felt as real—just as there is a crisis at which physical agony
-superinduces insensibility. So it had been with Alice, until she
-re-entered her native State, and memory and association were at work
-again,
-
- “And the accustomed train
- Of things grew round her brain again”;
-
-then it was with the shrinking dread with which a burned child would
-approach fire that Alice drew near her home. She would have preferred to
-remain away for ever, amid the kaleidoscopic changes of her new,
-wandering, unreal life, rather than have awakened from the strange,
-painful, but very vague dream; rather than have consciousness forced
-upon her by the dear, old familiar scenes and associations of her
-home—her once peaceful, hopeful, happy home, as by
-
- “Some monstrous torture-engine’s whole
- Strength.”
-
-The day of their arrival at home a large company had been invited to
-meet them at dinner. The days that followed were filled up with dinner
-parties. At length, late in the fall, they were quietly settled, and the
-monotonous routine of daily country life commenced. One thing Alice
-dreaded and avoided—appearing at church again under her new position and
-name. But Sinclair had accepted a “call” to a church in the West, which
-opened to him a new field of labor and usefulness. His departure
-followed; and this was a great relief to Alice, who, with the “sigh of a
-great deliverance, tried to leave the past with all its gloom and
-terror,” and turn to the future with some hope.
-
-Two events of great domestic importance occurred in the second year of
-their marriage; one was the death of Colonel Chester, who died, as all
-their neighbors said, of nothing more than his diabolical temper; as
-their physician said, of congestion of the brain, brought on by
-excitement. And what do you think was the cause of this fatal
-excitement? That the child of Alice happened to be a girl instead of a
-boy, which he had set his heart upon.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VI.
- COUNTRY NEIGHBORS.
-
- Blest those abodes where want and pain repair
- And every stranger finds a ready chair;
- Blest be those feasts, with joyous plenty crowned,
- Where all the blooming family around,
- Laugh at the jests or pranks that never fail,
- Or sigh with pity at some mournful tale,
- Or press the weary traveler to his food,
- And feel the luxury of doing good.
- _—Goldsmith._
-
-
-Alice was almost in solitary confinement in the cold, stern prison of
-her home, for General Garnet discouraged association with old friends,
-who at least suggested the past, if they did not openly refer to it.
-
-But there was one family, and that family the very warmest and most
-steadfast among the few friends of Sinclair, from whom General Garnet
-had not the will to separate his young wife—the Wylies of Yocomoco, or
-Point Pleasant, as their seat was more frequently called by their
-delighted visitors. Who, indeed, had the will or the power to do aught
-to annoy the delightful host of Point Pleasant?
-
-Who in all the South has not heard of Judge Jacky Wylie, still called
-judge because he had once sat upon the bench, though not finding the
-seat comfortable, he had abandoned it, affirming that he had “not the
-heart” for the business? That was a favorite phrase of the judge, who
-was always asserting that he “hadn’t the heart,” when everyone knew that
-he had the largest heart in all old Maryland.
-
-And there was his mother, a gentlewoman of the old school, without any
-state about her, a Lady Bountiful of the neighborhood, without any
-pretensions.
-
-Who did not know and love old Mrs. Wylie?
-
-How she was adored by the large, miscellaneous family Jack had gathered
-together! To be sure, all Jacky’s unprovided nieces and nephews were her
-grandchildren, and it was partly for love of her, to please her, to let
-her gather all her second brood under her wing, that her son Jacky
-collected them. Yes, she was adored by all that household of laughing
-girls and roystering boys, the tide of whose love and fondness for her
-was so great that it sometimes overflowed the barriers of
-veneration—just as Jacky’s confidence in God sometimes swamped his
-reverence!—but most of all was she idolized by the adopted son of Judge
-Jacky, Ulysses Roebuck.
-
-Next to his grandmother Ulysses loved his smallest cousin, little
-Ambrosia, the only child of Judge Jacky, and the little goddess of the
-whole household of grown-up and growing young men and maidens. Little
-Ambrosia, named after her Uncle Ambrose, who had been the elder and only
-brother of Jacky, and the favorite of his mother, but who had died in
-youth. And it was to please his mother that Jacky, having no son, called
-his little daughter after his brother. And it was a lovely name, too, he
-thought—a lovely, tempting, caressable name! really better than one
-could have hoped; for Ambrose was old-fashioned and ugly—low be it
-spoken.
-
-I think the negroes must have conceived it to be a “tempting” name, too;
-for, with their inevitable fault of corrupting language, they called the
-little seraph, with her charming face and sunny hair, “Miss Ambush.”
-
-And “Marse Useless” and “Miss Ambush” were the prime favorites of the
-plantation, notwithstanding, or perhaps, because of, the dare-devil,
-don’t care-ishness of the former.
-
-It was with this family, then, that General and Mrs. Garnet interchanged
-frequent visits. Often the old lady, Mrs. Wylie, accompanied by little
-Ambrosia and a waiting-maid, would drive up to Mount Calm in their
-old-fashioned phaeton, to spend the day; or else two or three of the
-girls and young men would ride up to pass an evening, and return by
-starlight. And not unfrequently young Mrs. Garnet would go down with her
-little Alice and pass a day and night at Point Pleasant.
-
-There was yet another family with whom the Garnets were upon terms of
-close intimacy and friendship—their next neighbors, the Hardcastles of
-Hemlock Hollow, whose estate joined Mount Calm, lying immediately behind
-and below it, and extending further inland. The family at the Hollow
-consisted of Lionel Hardcastle, High Sheriff of the State; his only son,
-Lionel, Jr., a youth of fifteen, and his nephew, Magnus, a boy of ten
-years old.
-
-Lionel Hardcastle was the only man in the county with whom General
-Garnet could be said to be on terms of close intimacy. Their estates, as
-I said, joined; their rank in life was upon a par, and their country
-interests almost identical. They were also of the same party in
-politics, of the same denomination in religion, and of like opinion upon
-all common and local questions; so that there was very little to differ
-about, while there was a great deal to attract them to each other in
-their very opposite temperaments and characters, experiences, and mental
-acquisitions.
-
-Mrs. Garnet had always been strongly attached to the family at the
-Hollow, and though there was no lady at the head of the establishment to
-receive her, she continued to accept the invitations to dinner extended
-to General Garnet and herself, and always accompanied him thither.
-
-But Mrs. Garnet had her favorite among the Hardcastles—this was young
-Magnus Hardcastle, the nephew, a fine, handsome, spirited, and generous
-boy, devotedly fond of his beautiful neighbor, and her sweet little
-girl. Very often would Mrs. Garnet take Magnus home with her to spend
-several days or weeks at Mount Calm. And when he was not staying there,
-still every day would the boy find his way to Mount Calm, with some
-little childish love-offering to its sweet mistress. In spring it would
-be a bunch of wood violets, or wild sweet-briar roses, gathered in the
-thicket, and of which Alice was very fond; in summer, a little
-flag-basket of wild strawberries or raspberries, which Alice loved
-better than hothouse or garden fruit; in autumn, a hat full of chestnuts
-and chinkapins, gathered in the forest, and hulled by himself; even in
-winter the little fellow might be seen trudging on, knee-deep in snow,
-with a bunch of snow-birds which he had caught in his trap for pretty
-Cousin Alice, as he called Mrs. Garnet.
-
-Very bright would grow Mrs. Garnet’s pleasant chamber when Magnus, with
-his sunny smile, would break in upon the pensive lady and the little
-child, and light up all the room with his gladness. Very often the lady
-would open her arms to receive the joyous boy, and fold him to her bosom
-in a most loving clasp, grateful for the new life and joy he ever
-brought her.
-
-Mrs. Garnet loved her own beautiful and gentle child, but it was with a
-profound, earnest, almost mournful and foreboding love.
-
-But Magnus was a perpetual day-spring of gladness and delight to her.
-She could not look upon the boy without a thrill of sympathetic joy and
-hope.
-
-And so the years had passed, and Alice grew happy in their flight, until
-the second trial of her life approached.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VII.
- HUTTON OF THE ISLES.
-
- Thou art as tall, as sinewy, and as strong,
- As earth’s first kings—the Argo’s gallant sailors—
- Heroes in history, and gods in song.
- _—Halleck._
-
-
-The Huttons, proprietors by pre-emption right of St. Clara’s town, bay,
-and isle for more than two hundred years, had settled among the islets
-of the bay many years previous to the date of that patent by which James
-I. granted the province of Maryland to George Calvert.
-
-At the commencement of the American Revolution a certain Captain Hugh
-Hutton, the then representative and head of the family, fired with an
-enthusiastic passion for liberty, or—fighting! sold a great portion of
-his patrimony, and purchased, fitted out, and manned a privateer, and
-sailed against the British flag.
-
-He served gallantly and with various success during the whole period of
-the war.
-
-At the glorious close of the revolutionary struggle, ruined in fortune
-and riddled with wounds, Captain Hugh Hutton, the sailor-patriot and
-martyr, retired to the last foothold of his once kingly estate, to the
-little island of St. Clara’s, otherwise called Hutton’s Island—there to
-die in obscurity.
-
-A few days previous to his death he called his only son, Hugh, to his
-bedside, and enjoined him never to demand—never even to accept
-compensation from Congress for his services and his losses during the
-war.
-
-“My fortune, my labor, my life-blood were not sold, but given to the
-cause of liberty and of my country,” he said, and these were the last
-words of the sailor-patriot.
-
-Hugh Hutton, the son, and now the sole representative of the family, was
-at this time about eighteen years old. Having lost his mother at an
-early age he had been taken by his father as a companion in all his sea
-voyages.
-
-He had sailed with him in his first privateering expedition against the
-British ships. At first as a childish and innocent spectator, afterward
-as a youthful and enthusiastic actor, he had figured in all the
-sea-fights in which his father’s ships had been engaged during the whole
-course of the war.
-
-Thus all education, except that exclusively of the sailor and soldier,
-had been denied him. And thus Hugh Hutton, though tall, strong,
-handsome, and gallant, like all his race, was yet rude, unschooled, and
-unpolished.
-
-He was faithful to the dying injunctions of his father. With many claims
-upon his country’s remembrance and gratitude he set forth none.
-
-Loving the ocean with the passionate enthusiasm of all his father’s
-nature, he took to it as his natural element.
-
-First he engaged in the humble capacity of mate on board the _Little
-Agnes_, a small schooner plying between Hutton Town and Baltimore or
-Alexandria, as the freight or market demanded.
-
-After serving many years in this situation, an unexpected turn in the
-wheel of fortune gave him the means of purchasing a larger vessel of his
-own, and of extending the area of his trade and the length of his
-voyages. This was the death of the old ship-owner and captain with whom
-he had sailed for many years, and who, dying, left him all his moderate
-possessions on condition of his marrying his only daughter, then a mere
-child of fifteen years of age, and constituted him her guardian until
-the marriage. The heart of the brave young sailor had seldom or never
-turned on love or marriage—it was not the nature of his free, wild,
-adventurous race. But when he had buried his old captain in Baltimore,
-where he died, and taken the command of the little schooner to return
-home to Hutton Town to find his little ward and wife—then—ah! then all
-sorts of strange, sweet, solemn, and tender thoughts of beauty, and
-love, and home, and repose swarmed about his heart.
-
-It was late in the afternoon of a glorious October day that the
-schooner, with her crew, put into the harbor of Hutton’s Inlet. In
-striking contrast to the warm-hued, deep-toned, refulgent natural
-scenery was the cold, white front of a mansion house standing upon a
-distant hill against the western horizon, and girt around with its old
-ancestral trees. This was Mount Calm, the seat of General Aaron Garnet.
-
-The little schooner, with its white sail, glided swiftly and smoothly
-into the inlet, and cast anchor near the hamlet. Leaving the vessel in
-charge of the mate, Captain Hutton took a boat and went on shore. A
-crowd of villagers, as usual, thronged the beach, anxious to hear and to
-tell the news, and hearty greetings and noisy questions met him as he
-stepped upon the strand, such questions as:
-
-“How is the old captain? How is old Seabright? Why don’t he come
-ashore?—though there is evil news enough to meet him when he does come!
-Where is the jolly old dog, then? I guess he’s wanting up at home
-there?” were some of the storm of words hailed upon him.
-
-“Friends,” replied the young sailor, shaking hands right and left as he
-pushed on, “our old captain is outward bound to that distant seaport
-whence no voyager ever returns. Permit me now to go on and break the sad
-news to his child.”
-
-“Stay! Poor old man, when did he die? What ailed him?” exclaimed two or
-three of the most persevering, detaining him.
-
-“To-night, friends—to-night at the ‘Neptune and Pan,’ I will tell you
-all about it. Permit me now to pass on and take his last letter to his
-daughter,” said the skipper good-humoredly, elbowing and pushing his way
-through the crowd.
-
-“Stop! What’s to become of the young girl—pretty Agnes Seabright? How
-did he leave his bit of property?”
-
-“To-night, comrades—to-night, at the ‘Neptune and Pan,’ I will meet you.
-You shall have a supper, and drink to the memory of the outward-bound
-while I tell you all about it. I must go now!” impatiently exclaimed the
-captain, shaking off the pertinacious, and hastening away up the
-straggling street of the hamlet.
-
-Hugh Hutton, like all his fathers, was far above the usual height of
-men—indeed, all his characteristics were not only marked, but
-extravagant; thus he was very tall, broad-shouldered and deep-chested,
-very muscular and thin, with a very dark complexion, with black hair and
-eyes, and very high, commanding features. Honest, brave, and frank even
-to rashness, generous even to extravagance, unselfish to the degree that
-the worldly-wise would call fatuity; yet he had never known a mother’s
-care, a sister’s companionship, and his indifference to home joys was as
-profound as his ignorance of love and of woman. Brought up on a ship’s
-deck by a rough sailor father, he learned to love the ocean and wild
-liberty with a profound and passionate enthusiasm.
-
-But now he had a little girl left to him. He must make a home for her,
-take care of her, and make her happy if he could. This was a very novel
-duty indeed, and set him very keenly to thinking. The first natural,
-strange, sweet fancies that had been awakened by the idea of this lovely
-living legacy had fallen asleep again, and left him to his normal, free,
-glad, but hard, unloving nature. And now the thought of pretty Agnes
-Seabright fretted him like a fetter.
-
-He pursued his walk up through the village, up over the hills rising one
-beyond the other, until he came to the arm of the forest stretching
-around the base of that tallest distant hill, upon which stood the
-white-fronted mansion house of Mount Calm. He pursued his walk on
-through this arm of the forest, ascending the hill until he came to a
-small cleared space, in which was a little cot inclosed within a narrow
-garden and nearly hidden with trees. He opened the small gate and passed
-up the narrow walk between rows of marigolds, crimson, white, and yellow
-chrysanthemums, scarlet verbena and other bright fall flowers, to the
-little door at which he rapped.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER VIII.
- THE BRIDE OF THE ISLES.
-
- A beautiful and happy girl,
- With step as soft as summer air,
- And fresh young lips and brow of pearl
- Shadowed by many a careless curl
- Of unconfined and flowing hair;
- A seeming child in everything,
- Save thoughtful brow and ripening charms,
- As nature wears the smile of spring,
- When sinking into summer’s arms.
- _—Whittier._
-
-
-The door was opened by a beautiful girl between fourteen and fifteen
-years old, not tall for her age, but full-formed and exquisitely
-proportioned. Her features were regular, with the “sweet, low brow,” and
-straight nose and arched lips of the Grecian profile; her eyes were of
-dark and melting hue, and her dark, rich auburn hair, parted over a
-forehead of snowy fairness, dropped in a mass of irregular ringlets down
-cheeks of carnation dye. The idea she inspired was that of a richness
-and fullness of life.
-
-She stood within the door with a smile, awaiting the pleasure of the
-stranger, whose knock had summoned her. Captain Hugh had never seen
-Agnes Seabright before, so that he handed her the letter, saying:
-
-“I think that this is for you?”
-
-She took it, and was about in her haste to break the seal and possess
-herself of the contents, when her eyes alighted on these words, written
-on the corner: “To make my little girl acquainted with Mr. Hutton, my
-mate and good friend.” Then she raised her eyes from the letter in her
-hand to Hugh Hutton’s face. Then she offered her hand shyly but kindly,
-while she said, simply:
-
-“How do you do, Mr. Hutton? Will you walk in and sit down, and excuse me
-while I read father’s letter? I have not heard from him for so long,”
-she said, as they walked into the parlor.
-
-He sat down in a large flag-bottomed chair and began to draw figures on
-the sanded floor with a stick, while she retired to an end window to
-read her father’s farewell letter.
-
-Captain Hutton watched her growing pale and paler as she read the letter
-to its close—as she folded it and advanced trembling to his side—as she
-laid her hand heavy from faintness on his arm, and speaking in thick,
-faltering tones, said:
-
-“Tell me! I don’t—I’m afraid to understand what this means! But, my
-father—where is he gone?”
-
-Hugh took both her hands in his, while the folded letter fell to the
-ground, looked full, looked kindly and gravely into her set and anxious
-eyes, and answered slowly:
-
-“To heaven, Agnes.”
-
-He would have held her hands longer, gazed longer upon that beautiful
-but troubled countenance, as to impart his own strength and composure,
-but she withdrew her fingers, sank down upon a chair, and covered her
-face with her hands. Soon between the fingers copious tears flowed. Then
-she arose and slowly left the room.
-
-What was to be done with this young and beautiful girl? To be sure,
-there was Hugh’s own home on Hutton Island, and there was Miss Josephine
-Cotter, Hugh’s maiden aunt; but the home was so poor, and Miss Joe—so
-queer! There was no knowing how Miss Joe might receive this poor child,
-so much in need of love and sympathy and care just now. After ruminating
-a long time he could think of no better plan than to at least consult
-Miss Joe upon the subject. So, his hours for the evening being all
-pre-engaged, he determined to go home early the next morning to break
-the news to his aunt.
-
- * * * * *
-
-“You must perceive, Aunt Joe, that I’m in a serious dilemma.”
-
-“Well, then, here! take this reel and wind off this hank o’ yarn, while
-I foot my stocking. People needn’t be idle while they’re talking. More
-idle time is spent talking than any other way—as if people’s hands and
-tongues would not go at the same time.”
-
-Hugh obeyed with a good-humored laugh. At last:
-
-“Well, aunt?” he said.
-
-“Well, Hugh! Now begin, and tell me all over, all about it, for I don’t
-know as I understand it—quite!”
-
-Hugh recapitulated the history of Captain Seabright’s illness and death,
-his last will and testament, and finally the embarrassment in which he
-found Agnes Seabright and the relation in which he stood toward her,
-concluding with:
-
-“Now, what am I to do with her, aunt?”
-
-“Marry her, Hugh. There is no home open to the orphan but this—nor this,
-unless you marry her first. You promised to wed her—you mean to wed
-her—why not do it at once? Will the marriage rite hurt or inconvenience
-you? Just let the marriage ceremony, which gives you a lawful claim to
-her, and which gives her the right to live here in this house as its
-mistress, and which will shut the mouths of the gossips for ever—be
-performed. ‘An ounce of preventive is better than a pound of cure,’ even
-in matters of gossip. Then bring her here to me. I’ll be a mother to the
-child. I’ll do the best I can for her. I’ll make her feel at home, and
-make her happy, even on this lonesome island.”
-
-The next morning Hugh spent with Agnes Seabright. And after that he
-visited her every day, until the orphan’s tears were nearly dried and
-the maiden’s heart won.
-
-For the reception of the bride Miss Joe was making every preparation
-which she could make without spending, or, as she called it, “heaving
-away of” money. Hugh schemed “to draw all points to one,” so that the
-marriage should take place upon the very day on which he was to sail for
-Baltimore preparatory to a longer trip to the West Indies. So, very
-early on a glorious autumn morning, while the rising sun was shining
-splendidly into the chapel windows, the marriage ceremony was quietly
-performed in the village church by the village parson.
-
-Immediately after the ceremony was concluded Hugh tucked Agnes under one
-arm and Miss Joe under the other, and hurried down to the beach to get
-them on board the boat. He lifted Agnes into the skiff, handed Miss Joe
-after her, and, entering himself, laid his hand vigorously to the oar,
-and they sped down the stream and over the bright waters.
-
-It was a golden morning—grand, exultant, inspiring! Out before them
-rolled the boundless, the magnificent sea, with its myriads beyond
-myriads of waves, leaping, flashing, sparkling, scintillating like fluid
-emeralds in the dazzling splendor of the morning sun.
-
-As he looked upon this scene Hugh’s eyes kindled, blazed. He did not see
-how sad was the brow of his young bride. No! the sea-king had already
-risen above the lover.
-
-At last the island lay before them like a line of gold. He rowed swiftly
-for it. Soon they landed on the glittering strand. It was here they
-parted.
-
-“And—be kind to my little Agnes!” he whispered, as he took leave of the
-old lady.
-
-“Now, Agnes,” he said, as he folded her to his bosom and pressed his
-first and farewell kiss upon her lips.
-
-Then he sprang into the boat and struck out to sea in the direction of
-his vessel, riding at anchor at about a half league’s distance, and
-which was to sail with the tide.
-
-“Come, Agnes,” said Miss Joe, kindly taking her arm to draw it within
-her own.
-
-“Not yet—not just yet! And, if you please, just let me watch until the
-boat gets out of sight.”
-
-“Honey, it will put your eyes out to try to look upon this sparkling
-sea. Come; breakfast is waiting for us, I know.”
-
-“I wish he had only stayed to breakfast with us! I could have parted
-with him better then, if I had known he had eaten a good, warm
-breakfast.”
-
-“The tide wouldn’t wait, you know, child, and he will get his breakfast
-on board his vessel. Why, what’s the matter, Agnes? I do believe you
-like him already! I do believe you’re sorry he’s gone!”
-
-“He was my only friend! Since father died I was getting used to him,”
-said Agnes, bursting into tears.
-
-“Well, I declare to man, if it is not wonderful! All them Huttons had
-never seemed to value woman’s love—have every one of them always got
-more than they deserved. Come, Agnes; the boat is quite out of sight
-now; come home and take a cup of coffee, child; it will cheer you up.”
-
-“Do you think he is safe on board of his vessel yet?”
-
-“Oh, yes, of course! Come, a cup of coffee is first-rate for
-trouble—’cause, you see, I’ve tried it! Come, honey!”
-
-And Miss Joe drew Agnes’ arm within her own and walked up the isle
-toward the cottage.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER IX.
- HUTTON LODGE.
-
- A snug thatch house; before the door a green;
- Hens in the middling; ducks and geese are seen;
- On this side stands a coop; on that a pen;
- A wood-pile joins.
- _—Allan Ramsay._
-
-
-Hutton Lodge, on Hutton’s Island, had been built in the palmy days of
-the family’s prosperity.
-
-It was to this lodge that Captain Hugh Hutton of Revolutionary memory
-had retired with his sole female relative, his sister-in-law, Miss
-Josephine Cotter. And here, after his death, had the good woman
-continued to live.
-
-And here was Hugh Hutton’s home whenever his ship would be in port. And
-finally, it was to this lodge, or cottage, as he called it, that Miss
-Joe conducted her young charge, the widowed bride.
-
-The days were all occupied with work—yes, hard work. All day long the
-whir of the flying shuttle, and the dull, monotonous clap-clap of the
-warp-rammer would be heard, as Miss Joe sat at her loom; and the hum of
-the great spinning-wheel as Agnes stood and spun. Agnes had no motive
-under the sun for her industry but Hugh’s interest and Hugh’s pleasure.
-To become an efficient help-meet for Hugh—to be an industrious and
-saving little housekeeper for Hugh’s profit. And when Miss Joe praised
-her docility and perseverance, poor girl, she felt as though she were
-receiving Hugh’s approval. Sometimes she would be tempted to think a
-little hardly of his having gone to sea so instantly after their
-marriage, but when this thought took the hue of blame she banished it at
-once. But—did he love her at all, when he could leave her so soon, and
-with so little emotion? She feared not. Would he ever love her as she
-loved him—as she wished to be loved? She knew herself to be beautiful
-and attractive. She would have been an idiot not to have known it. In
-her deep and secret heart, while never acknowledging her purpose to
-herself, she sought to adapt herself to her circumstances and duties,
-and fit herself to win Hugh’s approval and love. Such were her silent
-dreams and reveries by day, while her spinning-wheel whirled under her
-hand, and the incessant clap-clap of Miss Joe’s loom sounded on her ear
-from the other corner. And so November and the greater part of December
-passed, when a letter came from Hugh announcing his speedy return home.
-
-At length the important day dawned; it was Christmas Eve. The snow was
-two feet deep on the ground, and crusted with a coat of ice thick enough
-to bear the heaviest footsteps without breaking through. The day was
-cold, crisp, but clear.
-
-It was nearly sunset when Agnes went up into her room for the fiftieth
-time that day to look at the sea for a sail. It was very cold, and there
-was no fire, so Agnes thought just to give one sweeping glance over the
-waters and then retire, when her eye alighted on a distant sail making
-toward the isle. She wrapped a large woolen shawl around herself and sat
-down to watch what might come. The vessel bore down rapidly upon the
-island. When within about a quarter of a mile and bearing away westward
-toward the mainland, she lowered a boat with two rowers, who pulled
-swiftly toward the island landing. Agnes recognized Hugh and one of his
-crew. She started and ran downstairs, exclaiming as she burst into the
-kitchen:
-
-“Hugh is coming! Hugh is almost here, aunt! I saw him in the boat!”
-
-“Is he?” said the old lady quietly. “Well, then, honey, do you take some
-water upstairs in—in—in my—no, your room for him to wash, while I put up
-the supper, so that he needn’t wait.”
-
-Agnes complied, arranging everything neatly and conveniently, and then
-returned to the kitchen to assist Miss Joe in arranging the supper on
-the table.
-
-They had scarcely completed their task before a sharp rap was instantly
-followed by the pushing open of the door, and Hugh entered alone,
-vigorously stamping the snow off his feet.
-
-Miss Joe looked at the snow and her soiled floor, and sighed heavily and
-shook her head before she even advanced to welcome her nephew.
-
-That greeting over, Hugh extended his hand to his young wife with a “How
-do you do, Agnes, my dear?” and threw himself heavily into a great
-armchair by the fire.
-
-Yes! it seemed but too true! The little love Agnes had inspired him with
-during their short acquaintance had all evaporated during the not much
-longer sea voyage!
-
-Would he go to his room and change his dress? Would he have water?
-Everything was in readiness for him upstairs.
-
-No! he would stay here in this armchair by the chimney corner until they
-should sit down to tea. He did not wish to give anybody any trouble. He
-begged that they would take none. Besides, he was so glad to see his
-good aunt and little Agnes that he did not wish to lose a single moment
-of their company for the little time that he had to stay with them.
-
-Then Miss Joe invited him, as soon as he should feel himself
-sufficiently rested, to take off his overcoat and sit down to supper.
-
-Then Hugh arose, and Agnes quietly took his hat and Miss Joe drew off
-his overcoat and inducted him into his seat at the table. The supper was
-a feast. Besides the usual indispensables of coffee, rich cream, fresh
-butter and light bread, there were oysters and wild duck, stewed fruit,
-cakes, and so on.
-
-Hugh asked Agnes how she liked her island home. This was the first
-question he had put to her since his return.
-
-Agnes answered that she liked it very well. Did she not find it
-lonesome?
-
-“No, indeed.”
-
-Poor Agnes in her desire to be agreeable was totally unconscious of her
-falsehood.
-
-Then Hugh turned to Miss Joe, inquiring kindly after her health.
-
-Oh, her health was always good, and had never been better than at this
-moment.
-
-When tea was over and the table cleared away they all drew around the
-fire. Miss Joe, with her reel and yarn, and Agnes sitting idle in
-compliment of Hugh’s return.
-
-Hugh, on his part, began to tell them of his voyage, of his success, of
-his happiness to find himself at home again; of a certain large and
-well-filled box which he hoped might be acceptable to his aunt and
-Agnes. Whereupon Miss Joe began an exordium on the sin of “heaving away”
-money, which was gently cut short by Hugh, who, rising up, announced
-that he really ought to have been back to his vessel an hour before, and
-that he must now take leave of them.
-
-“When shall we see you again?”
-
-“To-morrow, about noon.”
-
-“What! not before?”
-
-“No; I have to go to Huttontown.”
-
-“Well, you’ll stay when you do come?”
-
-“I am afraid I cannot promise you, indeed, aunt; but, at all events, I
-will see you every day, and make it a point to spend the whole of
-Christmas Day with you. Good-night, aunt! Good-night, Agnes, my dear!”
-
-A week passed, during which Hugh was for the most part at the cottage.
-
-New Year’s Day dawned. It was the last day he had to stay at home. They
-spent this holiday very much as they had spent Christmas Day—going to
-church at Huttontown in the forenoon and returning to the isle to
-dinner. After dinner Hugh took them to the mainland, where he hired a
-sleigh and gave them a long, fine run over the frozen snow.
-
-The next morning Hugh came early—unknown to Aunt Joe, however, who was
-outdoors giving directions to Pontius Pilate about his day’s work. She
-had returned to the kitchen and was busily engaged, as usual, at her
-loom, when she was very much astounded by a noise on the stairs as of a
-man’s heavy footsteps, and the stair-door was pushed open and Hugh
-appeared, porter-like, with a great trunk—Agnes’ trunk—upon his
-shoulders, a basket in his hand, and a bandbox under his arm, and
-followed by Agnes herself, dressed in traveling gear, with another
-basket and a bundle.
-
-Miss Joe stared in amazement, without being able to articulate.
-
-“Why, what in the name of all the saints in heaven does all this here
-mean?”
-
-“I am going to take Agnes to sea with me,” said Hugh.
-
-The old lady broke out into loud sobs for company.
-
-Hugh set his trunk, bandbox, and basket down upon the floor and set
-himself to the task of comforting and soothing both.
-
-Miss Joe was the first to recover.
-
-“Come here, Aggy, my darling child! You have been like a darter to me,
-honey. Kiss me again. Since you will go, Aggy, God bless you, my child!
-God bless you! I shall comfort myself very well by weaving cloth and
-flannel, and making counterpanes for you against you come back.
-Good-by!” And she embraced Agnes fondly and lifted and placed in her
-hands the basket and bundle.
-
-Hugh now came forward, and, for the second time, bade his aunt farewell;
-and, resuming his bundles, trunk, bandbox, basket, etc., set out for the
-beach.
-
-“If I’d only known, I’d a’ had a cup of coffee ready for you,” said the
-old lady; and she looked really pitiable as she stood there in her
-solitude, watching them as they went down to the beach and embarked on
-board the little boat and sped toward the distant ship. Having with the
-aid of a spyglass seen them embark on board the ship, Miss Joe turned
-into her lonely home and began preparing her solitary meal.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER X.
- THE PATIENCE OF ALICE.
-
- Thou must endure, yet loving all the while,
- Above, yet never separate from thy kind;
- Meet every frailty with the gentlest smile,
- Though to no possible depth of evil blind,
- This is the riddle thou hast life to solve;
- But in the task thou shalt not work alone,
- For while the worlds about the sun revolve,
- God’s heart and mind are ever with His own.
- _—J. Monckton Milnes._
-
-
-It is now twelve years since the marriage of Alice Chester and General
-Garnet, and six months since the departure of Hugh Hutton and Agnes upon
-their sea voyage.
-
-General Garnet is absent on an electioneering tour, but daily expected
-back.
-
-It is June, and the scene is the terrace in front of Mount Calm. There
-are four persons upon the terrace.
-
-Alice occupies a rustic seat under the shadow of a locust tree. She is
-still a most beautiful woman, very delicate, almost sylph-like, with her
-fair, blond beauty and airy, white muslin wrapper. She is calmly
-pursuing a piece of fine, white, knitting-work—that favorite busy
-idleness of all Maryland ladies. At her feet is a very small basket,
-containing her keys and the ball of lamb’s wool yarn from which she
-knits. Near her stands a young mulatto hand-maid of about ten years of
-age.
-
-Lower down upon a step of the terrace sits her daughter Alice, or Elsie,
-as she was called for distinction’s sake. Elsie is now a very beautiful
-child, promising to be much more beautiful than her mother had ever
-been. She strangely united the most beautiful features of both parents.
-She had the delicate, Grecian features, fair, roseate complexion, golden
-hair, and blue eyes of her mother, with the passionate, veiled gaze and
-bewildering smile of her father. She had a finer vital and sanguine
-temperament than either could have possessed; a more rounded form, more
-elastic motion, a more joyous expression, a more gladsome cadence in her
-speech and in her laughter. Elsie sat sketching an elm tree from
-nature—the tree stood before her, at some distance on the lawn. She was
-bending over her drawing-board, that rested on her lap, until her fair
-ringlets almost concealed her rosy cheeks. She, also, wore a simple
-white muslin dress that harmonized well with her blooming beauty. Behind
-her, bending over her, stood a youth of sixteen; but for height, for
-breadth of shoulders and depth of chest, and manly and athletic
-proportions generally he might have been taken for twenty years of age.
-He was a very handsome boy, with bright chestnut hair, waving around a
-massive brow and relieving and beautifying its heavy strength,
-gracefully as foliage shades rock. He seemed to have just returned from
-gunning, for he wore a dress of forest green, his cap lay at his feet,
-his pointers were near, and one hand rested upon a fowling-piece, while
-with the other he pointed alternately to the elm tree and the drawing,
-giving Elsie some instruction in her work. His dark gray eyes, full of
-thought, truth, and affection, were fixed upon her.
-
-And while they pursued their work Alice, from her rustic seat, watched
-them. Alice, looking as serenely happy as though her heart had never
-been broken, her brain never been crazed by calamity, anguish, and
-despair verging upon madness; as healthful, amiable, and self-possessed
-as though she had never sworn in her frenzy that she could not survive
-the severance from Sinclair; that neither moral, intellectual, nor
-physical nature could stand the test—the misery of a life with Garnet.
-
-But Divine Providence is kind, and nature is full of remedial power. We
-have all strength given us according to our need. If our joys are
-greater in anticipation than in realization, so certainly are our
-sorrows.
-
-Alice, in the terrible storm of passion that had temporarily dethroned
-her reason, believed that she could not outlive her marriage; yet she
-had lived twelve years, and was comparatively happy—possibly happier
-than many a girl who had married for love, or its semblance.
-
-It is true that from the hour she awoke from the strange torpor that
-immediately followed her marriage her religious principles had taught
-her to turn from the memory of Sinclair, whenever that memory recurred.
-She prayed against, she strove against it, wrenched her thoughts
-forcibly from it, and riveted them to something else. And her prayers
-and struggles had produced this happy effect. The image of Sinclair had
-faded away with the brightest visions of her girlhood. And now that that
-typhoon of youthful passion had long passed, and even its memory had
-almost faded away, her genial, affectionate, religious nature made her
-happy. With such a nature Alice could not live without forming
-attachments to those around her. He must have been a terrible brute who
-could not have been blessed with some portion of her affection by simply
-living in the house with her for twelve years. And General Garnet was
-not exactly a brute. He was very handsome, graceful, and accomplished
-and habitually polite. And now that time had long worn out his jealousy
-he had ceased all undignified and ungentlemanly interference with his
-wife’s specially feminine occupations and associations. Alice was happy
-with her housekeeping, her garden, her dairy, her country neighbors, her
-favorite Magnus, and her little daughter. Yet, had the Angel of Destiny
-whispered to her heart this alternative: “Your daughter! two fates await
-her—to die in her childhood, or live to be an unwilling bride—choose for
-her!” Alice would have answered with a shudder and without a moment’s
-hesitation: “Let her die in her childhood rather. Let her die now,
-rather!” And to have saved her from the misery of wedding one she could
-not love, Alice would have been content to lay her heart’s only
-treasure, her idolized child, in the grave.
-
-But no such question of Destiny had yet called back the memory of the
-past, and Alice was happy as she drew out her knitting-needle and smiled
-at the boy and girl on the terrace.
-
-At last the sketch was finished and Magnus pronounced it perfect, and
-threw his shoulders back with a yawn of relief, and brought his hands
-together with a ring, exclaiming, as he turned to Alice:
-
-“Now, cousin, let me order the horses and let us ride at once to the
-beach. Why, here’s Goliah come from the post office—with a letter, too!”
-
-“It is from the general, madam,” continued Magnus, receiving the letter
-from the boy and handing it to Alice. She opened and glanced through it.
-Then turning to the expectant child, she said:
-
-“Elsie, your father will be home this evening. He will bring with him
-Judge Wylie, Mr. Ulysses Wylie, Mr. Hardcastle, and Mr. Lionel
-Hardcastle. He requests me to have supper ready for the party.”
-
-Alice was soon superintending the preparations for supper. She had a
-good deal of the pride of the housekeeper and the hostess about her.
-Every Maryland woman has.
-
-And that evening General Garnet entertained his friends to his heart’s
-content. It was a sort of little political party, at which Mrs. Garnet
-was not expected to appear.
-
-After supper Lionel and Ulysses left the grave conclave of politicians
-to the discussion of Congress and canvas-back ducks, and came out upon
-the green.
-
-Lionel was full of the new good fortune that had befallen him. The
-dearest wish of his life was gratified; his father had at last obtained
-for him a midshipman’s warrant and he was going to sea. Alice looked at
-the wild and willful youth with much anxiety, and wished in her heart
-that it might have been otherwise; that he might have been forced to
-stay under his father’s protection and surveillance.
-
-Lionel also, in his frank, off-hand manner, informed his Cousin Magnus
-there before them all that his father had not forgotten him, either;
-that he had arranged with a celebrated physician of Baltimore to receive
-him as a student.
-
-Magnus received this news with feelings of blended pain and
-pleasure—pain at the thought of leaving his dear “Cousin Alice” and her
-beautiful child—pleasure at the idea of the opening prospect of study,
-improvement, and independence.
-
-Elsie never thought of the evil; she only thought of the good; she threw
-her arms around his neck and wished him joy and success.
-
-But Alice was much more depressed than the occasion seemed to warrant.
-Again she caught herself wishing that young people could possibly remain
-at home. All partings depressed her. The idea of these saddened her.
-
-Was the cloud on her beautiful face really sorrow at the certainty of
-losing her loving boy-friend, or was it the shadow of coming events?
-Alice sighed heavily as she watched the young people dance. And at an
-early hour she recalled them to the house, served them with
-refreshments, and, pleading great fatigue, dismissed them all to their
-several chambers.
-
-She then threw herself languidly into the great easy-chair to await the
-breaking up of the party and the appearance of General Garnet. She had
-scarcely had an opportunity of speaking to him since his return.
-
-It was not very long before she heard the gentle, cheerful bustle of the
-departing guests, and the ringing tones of Judge Wylie’s voice above all
-the rest, inviting everybody to Point Pleasant the next evening for the
-purpose of meeting everybody else.
-
-When the last guest had departed General Garnet entered Alice’s parlor.
-
-“Up yet, Mrs. Garnet! Have I been so unfortunate as to disturb your
-rest?”
-
-“No—oh, no! I think you were very quiet for a party of gentlemen—not at
-all like the noisy parties Judge Wylie gathers. No; I had no opportunity
-of welcoming you home,” she said rising and offering her hand. “Have you
-had a pleasant journey?”
-
-“A successful one, madam, which is better. I think that there can be no
-reasonable doubt that D—— will carry the majority of votes in the
-districts through which we traveled.”
-
-Her next question was a housekeeper’s query:
-
-“How did you like your supper, and were your guests pleased?”
-
-“All was very well, Alice—and, could they be else than pleased after so
-triumphant a canvass?” said he, taking a seat and motioning Alice to do
-the same. “I have something to propose to you, Alice, in regard to our
-daughter.”
-
-“Our daughter!” repeated she, with a vague fear creeping over her heart.
-
-“Yes, our girl. I scarcely approve the loose, irregular manner in which
-her education is conducted at home.”
-
-“It may appear to you so, because her occupations and amusements are so
-various; but, indeed, her habits—all habits, I mean, upon which health
-and improvement depend—are very regular; and for the rest, human nature
-itself—health, improvement—require some little irregularity. The rain
-does not fall and the sun shine upon set days. See what a bright,
-healthful, happy, intelligent child Elsie is! Part of that is owing to
-her habits. She rises very early, breakfasts early, rides with Magnus or
-one of the servants, returns and devotes three hours to her books.”
-
-“Yes, all that is very well, but there should be a systematic course of
-study, which, I fancy, you are not quite competent to direct.”
-
-“Try me,” said Alice. “I have not been idle all my life, nor all my life
-occupied exclusively with the eating, drinking, and wearing interests of
-our family. I have found time to cultivate my mind, for Elsie’s sake. I
-have read and reflected much. I expected to be Elsie’s only teacher. I
-have been, hitherto. And I wish, above all things, to continue to be.
-Then I shall feel better assured of her best good; better assured that
-her affections will not run to waste while her intellect is cultivated.”
-
-“‘A little learning is a dangerous thing.’ It makes anyone
-conceited—especially, I think, a woman who has few opportunities of
-comparing her ignorance with other people’s knowledge,” muttered General
-Garnet to himself. Then slightly raising his voice, he said: “No, Alice,
-it will not do. Elsie cannot remain under your tuition. I have other and
-wiser plans for her.”
-
-“I suppose,” said Alice, in a low voice, “that you are thinking of
-employing a private governess or tutor. Well, if you think it best——”
-
-“No, Alice, I have no faith in governesses, and I totally disapprove of
-private tutors for young ladies. My intention is to send Elsie to a
-boarding-school for the next six or seven years.”
-
-“To boarding-school for seven years! Elsie, my darling, my only one,
-away from me for so long! She!—so young!—to go among total strangers for
-so long! No! you cannot mean it!” exclaimed Alice, rising and wringing
-her hands.
-
-“Sit down, Mrs. Garnet, and listen to me.”
-
-Alice sank into her seat again, and listened.
-
-“There is no female academy of the first class in this country, I am
-sorry to say; none, at least, at which I should like to place our only
-daughter.”
-
-Alice’s hopes raised; she thought she might have misunderstood what he
-had said before—her mind was so confused. She hastened to say:
-
-“Oh, then, you are thinking of some very accomplished woman, or some
-highly intellectual graduate of William and Mary, who, though not
-exactly an ordinary governess or tutor, may be induced to come and take
-charge of our little girl for a very liberal salary?”
-
-General Garnet waved his hand impatiently.
-
-“Hear me out, if you please, Mrs. Garnet. I have told you that I dislike
-private tutors and governesses! I dislike the idea of a stranger
-domesticated in the house very much. I said, besides, that there was no
-boarding-school in the country to which I could care to trust our
-daughter. I intend to send Elsie to England.”
-
-“To England!” murmured Alice, in an inaudible voice, growing very pale
-and sinking back in her chair.
-
-“Yes, to England. My friend, General A—— is going out there as minister.
-He takes all his family, of course. He expects to remain abroad many
-years. In talking over with me his prospects, among other things for
-which he congratulated himself was the opportunity that his residence
-abroad would afford giving his daughters a very superior education.
-While we conversed, I spoke of Alice, regretting the limited means of
-female education afforded by our country. Well, he proposed that I
-should commit my daughter to his charge, to go to England, and be put to
-school with his own. He pressed this favor very earnestly upon me. The
-opportunity was one not likely to occur again, and therefore not to be
-lightly thrown away. Finally I accepted his offer. It was all arranged
-between us. The embassy sails from Baltimore in two weeks, and before
-that time Elsie must be ready to join the family.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-In the course of the month their departure took place from the
-neighborhood.
-
-Elsie Garnet, with many tears, left for her English school under the
-protection of the American minister to the Court of St. James.
-
-Lionel Hardcastle sailed as midshipman aboard the United States ship
-_Falcon_.
-
-And Magnus Hardcastle, taking a most affectionate leave of his beautiful
-friend, Alice, and promising many letters, left for Baltimore to enter
-upon the study of medical science in the office of a distinguished
-physician.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XI.
- ALICE’S VISIT TO HUTTON ISLE.
-
- “At eve a sail
- On the blue water with a freshening gale.”
- _—Crabbe._
-
-
-It was a bright evening near the last of October. The mail had just come
-in, and brought Alice letters to gladden her heart for many months.
-There was a letter from Magnus—that strong, confident, joyous Magnus,
-who always saw so much good and glory in the future. And there was one
-post-marked London, and ship-marked _Belle Agnes_, from Elsie—the
-healthful, hopeful, happy Elsie, who always made the best of everything,
-and was gladsome everywhere. No letter could be more replete with the
-tenderest filial affection than hers, yet there was not a word of
-home-sickness, or sorrow, or discontent in it. It was full of genial
-life, of happy love, and confident hope.
-
-Alice kissed the loving letter again and again, and walked about, happy,
-restless, overjoyed. General Garnet was away from home again, as he was
-about half the time. And Alice, after she had read the welcome letter to
-all the confidential servants who loved Elsie, bethought herself—by way
-of expending some of the extra life she had received—of going over to
-see Miss Joe and telling the old lady that her nephew’s vessel was in
-port, for that she had got letters by it. She had frequently gone on to
-Hutton’s Isle to cheer the lonely old woman, and she knew the old soul
-would also be delighted to hear from Elsie.
-
-Alice told Diogenes, the colored servant, to get the one-horse chaise
-and take her over to Huttontown. The chaise was soon ready. Alice
-entered it and was driven by Diogenes over to the village. She left the
-chaise at the ‘Neptune and Pan,’ and, attended by Diogenes, went down to
-the beach. The afternoon was very clear and calm:
-
- “The air was still and the water still,”
-
-and she felt no uneasiness in trusting herself to the little skiff and
-the one oar to the old servant.
-
-As they glided over the silent waters the profound stillness of the air
-and water was vaguely disturbed by a distant, deep-toned, solemn moan,
-swelling on the horizon like the breeze upon a mammoth harp-string, and
-dying away in the deep of silence.
-
-“Did you hear that?” asked Alice of her attendant.
-
-“No, ma’am, I heard nothing, Miss Ally,” replied the obtuse negro.
-
-And Alice thought she was mistaken. The bay was perfectly smooth, yet it
-seemed to Alice that the vast body of water under them just perceptibly
-rose and fell, as though instinct with life and breath. The little skiff
-sped like an arrow across the bosom of the waters, and in something less
-than half an hour cleared the distance between the mainland and the
-isle. The old negro stuck his oar into the sand and shoved the boat up
-high and dry upon the beach, so that his mistress could step out
-dry-shod.
-
-“Does not the wind blow around this bleak island even when it is calm
-along the coast of the mainland?” asked Alice, as she gathered her
-flapping veil and shawl more closely around her and stepped out upon the
-strand.
-
-“La, no, Miss Ally, ma’am; it never doesn’t, of course; dough when der
-is a win’, it has more ’siderable of a clean sweep here than anywhere
-else. No, Miss Ally, no, ma’am; but de win’ do seem for to be a-risin’.”
-
-“Come, let us hurry on to the house, for really it is quite fresh,” said
-she, drawing her veil down over her face and under her shawl, and
-wrapping the latter more closely around her, and striking into the
-narrow path leading through the cornfield and up to the house. But when
-she had got about halfway up the hill the wind took her so fiercely,
-flapping her skirts about her feet, flapping her bonnet and veil about
-her face, that she was forced to turn around from the wind to recover
-her breath and strength.
-
-“I can scarcely face this gale! How very suddenly it has sprung up!”
-
-“Yes, ma’am,” replied the old negro, looking uneasily at the sky;
-“I—I—mos’ wish us hadn’t a-ventured out! I—I—I do hope us aint a-gwine
-to have a squeeling, knocking storm afore us gits back!”
-
-“Oh, it is entirely too late in the season for an equinoctial storm,”
-replied Alice, following his glance to the sky. “The wind has blown a
-few straggling clouds up from the horizon, but it does not look at all
-threatening.”
-
-“Ah, Miss Ally, you don’t know, honey! Der aint never no good in dem ar
-switchy mare’s tails!” replied Diogenes, pointing to the long, black,
-ragged clouds flying before the wind. Holding her head down, and hugging
-her shawl tightly about her, Alice pushed on toward the house.
-
-Looking up as she reached the top of the hill she saw Miss Joe with her
-head far out of the gable end loft window, with an old spyglass in her
-hand, leveling it out to sea. Miss Joe lowered her glass for a moment
-and perceived Alice, and shouted to her above the blast:
-
-“How do you do, Mrs. Garnet? Hasn’t this here bluff of wind come up
-sudden? ’Taint a-going to be anything but a wind, though, I believe.
-Come up to the house, honey. I’ll be down from here about the time you
-get up. I have just been looking out after that there vessel down the
-bay, as I think must be Hugh’s, seeing I’m expecting him. I spied that
-there craft about two hours ago. She was making slow headway, because
-the tide was strong agin her. Now she seems farther off than before. I
-shouldn’t wonder if this gust of wind, with the current, didn’t blow her
-out to sea agin. I hope it aint nothing but a gust, though, that’ll soon
-be over. The wind bluffs around as if it were a-going to change too;
-then it’ll be fair for her, and she’ll scud along fast enough before it.
-Come up to the house, honey! I’m coming down.”
-
-Alice reached the garden gate just as Miss Joe opened the house door and
-came out to meet her, her clothes all blown aslant and flapping about as
-if they would go over her head, but looking so hardy, sturdy,
-storm-proof, with her shining face rubicund with joy and welcome, Alice
-laughed out to see her.
-
-“Dear Miss Joe! you look chirping as a frosty morning! It enlivens one
-to see you! I have heard of people who, going out for wool, returned
-shorn. I have come to cheer you, and shall go home gladdened! You look
-so chirp!”
-
-“Oh, honey! I have enough to chirrup me. I’m heern from Hugh and his
-wife. You saw that sloop in at Hutton’s Harbor? Well, that there sloop,
-she came from the port of Baltimore, where she spoke the _Belle Agnes_,
-jest in from Liverpool, and brought a letter from Captain Hutton, saying
-as he should run down here soon as ever he unloaded his cargo and took
-in some freight for this here port. His letter says how Agnes is going
-for to stay long o’ me now. ’Deed, I reckon she’s had enough o’
-sea-faring, a’ready!” said Miss Joe, as she straddled on toward the gate
-and opened it.
-
-Very soon the neat tea-table was set out and a repast, delicate and
-luxurious as any epicure could have desired, spread upon it. And Miss
-Joe arranged Alice in a comfortable seat at the side of the table near
-the fire, and as she poured out the fragrant tea she told all the story
-of the letter she had got from Hugh. How they had made such a prosperous
-voyage; how Hugh was going to stay home for three months; how Agnes was
-not going away again at all; and how she supposed Agnes was cured of her
-curiosity to see the ocean. And through all her talk Alice saw how much
-family affection was in that old frost-bitten heart of hers.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XII.
- CHILD OF THE WRECK.
-
- The strife of fiends is on the battling clouds,
- The glare of hell is in the sulphurous lightnings.
- This is no earthly storm!
- _—Maturin’s Bertram._
-
-
-The sun went down. The wind seemed to lull. Alice arose and put on her
-bonnet and shawl for a start. Old Diogenes buttoned his coat up to his
-chin, and took up his old felt hat to attend her. Miss Joe threw her
-check apron over her head to accompany them, and the little party opened
-the door and set out for the beach. The eyes of old Diogenes rolled
-
- “From heaven to earth, from earth to heaven,”
-
-in a great trouble!
-
-Though the sun had but just set, the sky was no longer blue, but of a
-lurid, metallic, coppery color, mottled over by leaden clouds, athwart
-which, and lower down, scudded huge, black, inky masses of vapor, driven
-wildly before the wind that had shifted and was again rising. Lower down
-and nearer the earth flew other clouds, flocks of wild sea fowl,
-screaming frightfully and dashing hither and thither, or settling upon
-the island as for shelter from the coming tempest. Such was the sky.
-
-The look of the sea was still more terrible. The surface of the water
-was very rough, the waves breaking into foam as though frost were thrown
-up from the depths of the sea. The whole enormous mass of waters was
-rising with a vast, slow, mighty swell, as though some monstrous
-under-power were laboring to upheave the ocean from its bed and shatter
-it into precipices and caverns. And all around the lurid horizon boomed
-the low, deep, awful sound of the coming storm.
-
-“It will never do to try to cross the water to-night, my dear child,”
-said Miss Joe, solemnly and fearfully. “We’re going to have an awful
-storm, and it may burst upon us at any minute.”
-
-“’Deed, Miss Ally, child, it’s wery unsafe—wery! Don’t let’s be
-a-tempting o’ Providence! Don’t!” said Diogenes, his teeth chattering
-with cold and terror.
-
-Just then the voice of the wind wailed across the waters like the shriek
-of a lost spirit, and the salt spray of the sea was dashed in their
-faces. The sky seemed to be settling down over the isle, and the waters,
-black, heavy, and dark! The mighty sea was heaving, settling, rising to
-meet the lowered sky! The vapor of the clouds and waves seemed
-intermingling! The rising wind howled and shrieked!
-
-“Well, child, if you venter upon the water this evening, you’ll row to
-the Kingdom of Heaven,” said Miss Joe. “Turn—hurry back! We must get to
-the house as fast as possible, or the storm will be upon us! Child,
-alive! what are you standing looking out to sea for? I do believe you
-are more afraid of braving General Garnet’s anger than that of the wind
-and sea themselves.”
-
-“I should not have come,” said Alice, turning shuddering, away from the
-beach.
-
-“Yes, you should!” replied Miss Joe; “and now you should come back!
-Hurry! hurry! hurry! Look at that mass of black cloud rushing like a
-demon up the sky!”
-
-It was now very dark, and they hastened on toward the house. They
-reached it as a furious blast of wind drove them against its walls. They
-went in the house. Shutters were closed, props were placed against the
-doors to assist the old locks in holding them against the fury of the
-storm. And as the room was now pitch dark, except by the lurid light of
-the smoldering fire, Miss Joe lit a candle and set it on the
-mantelpiece. Alice sat down in the chimney-corner armchair, very pale.
-
-The storm raged, shrieked and howled around the house. Hourly its
-violence increased; tenfold the crash of falling trees, twisted off at
-the roots, the clatter of rattling tiles and shingles, reft off and
-rained down from the roof; the scream of the frightened water-fowl, the
-howl of the alarmed cattle, mingled with the shriek of the wind and the
-thunder of the waves in the grand diapason of nature’s wildest, most
-terrific harmony.
-
-At last came the awful crisis of the storm. The wind had
-
- “Paused to gather its fearful breath.”
-
-and now rushed upon the house with the invincible power of a storming
-battery, with a sound, a shock, as if two planets had met in fatal
-concussion. The earth trembled; the massive roof of the strong house was
-torn off and hurled aloft; heavy blocks of sandstone came clattering
-down from the topmost wall, and then the rain fell its vast sheets, as
-if “all heaven was opened.” And now came a sound more terrific than that
-of an advancing army!
-
-The ocean was upon them in its might!
-
-Speechless with awe, like those in the immediate presence of sudden
-death, Alice and Miss Joe remained locked in each other’s arms. The old
-negro ran wildly about, like one perfectly distracted, screaming:
-
-“Oh, my God! my God! we shall be all drowned in this very house, like
-blind puppies in a tub! Oh, will nobody ’fess me o’ my sins? Oh, Lord! I
-’fess to de breaking o’ all de ’mandments, rather dan miss absolushum
-for dem as I has broke!”
-
-And so he ran about and raved, while Alice and Miss Joe remained
-motionless, waiting for death where they sat.
-
-The water that dashed against the wall was no longer the rain, but the
-sea—the sea cannonading the house!
-
-An hour like an eternity passed, during which the waves, with deafening
-sounds, stormed the walls, and the inmates waited for death. Then the
-horrible tempest seemed to abate; the ocean seemed to be retiring.
-
-Oh, were the waves indeed receding, or was it only one of those fatal
-pauses, during which the storm fiend gathered new strength for
-destruction?
-
-Alice, fearful, hopeful, raised her head, doubtful of the reprieve from
-immediate death.
-
-Miss Joe clasped her closer in her arms, but listened.
-
-Diogenes stopped in his wild walk and began to praise all the saints.
-
-Yes, the ocean was certainly receding. They were saved! But now, amidst
-their joy, came a knell of doom!
-
-The signal gun of a ship in distress!
-
-No one knew how often that knell had pealed before. It could not have
-been heard, amid the deafening noise of the waves, any more than the
-report of a single cannon could have been distinguished in the thunder
-of a million others. The sound struck to the hearts of all present.
-
-“Oh!” said Miss Joe, “that ship! that ship! It is the very ship I
-spied—I know it is—I know it is! And, oh! it may be the ship of Hugh!”
-
-Again the minute gun boomed over the sea.
-
-“Oh, Heaven, how I pity them! What can be the nature of their danger?
-The storm has almost ceased; if they could live through that terrific
-tempest, surely they can save themselves now. What can be the danger to
-which they are exposed now?” asked Alice.
-
-“The ship, tossed about so in the horrible storm, must a’ sprung a leak.
-Oh, if it should be Hugh’s ship!” replied Miss Joe.
-
-Again the minute gun wailed across the waters.
-
-“And, oh!” exclaimed Alice, wringing her hands, “if there is one thing
-worse than imminent danger or death to one’s own, it is to be in perfect
-safety and to hear, near by, the cry of others in extremity, and to be
-unable to give them aid!”
-
-Once more the minute gun wailed across the waters. It seemed the voice
-of a last appeal.
-
-“My God, I can scarcely stand this!” exclaimed Alice, shuddering,
-cowering, stopping her ears, while Miss Joe walked about, groaning,
-groaning, groaning!
-
-But once more the minute gun wailed across the waters. It seemed the
-voice of a last reproach.
-
-The two women and the old negro could do absolutely nothing to help the
-dying ship. They felt their own safety as a shame, and covered their
-heads to shut out the sound of death. They need not have done so.
-
-The minute gun wailed no more across the waters. The voice was silenced
-for ever!
-
-“Oh, my God! my God! she is gone down! she is gone down!” screamed Miss
-Joe, wrought up to an agony of terror and grief beyond all self-control.
-
-The dread silence that followed was more insufferable than the terrific
-storm in its utmost fury had been—than the awful voice of the minute
-gun, in its vain appeal, had been! It was long after midnight now. Miss
-Joe, unable longer to bear the awful pause of fate, went and pulled open
-the door and looked out.
-
-The wind had lulled, the rain had ceased, the waves had gone down, the
-storm was nearly over. Yet in the deep darkness she could only guess the
-wild ruin that had been wrought around. The sky hung over the waters
-black as a pall, yet by the phosphoric light of the sea that still moved
-and sparkled she discovered a dark object, like the hulk of a huge
-vessel, disappear under the waves.
-
-And, hush! What sound is that, low and distinct, in the deep silence of
-the awful night? The sound of approaching footsteps and voices hurrying
-on, and now very near.
-
-“Light another candle, for God’s sake! some people are coming. God send
-it may be Hugh and his men! Light another candle, quick! and thrust it
-into a lantern!” exclaimed Miss Joe, hastening into the house.
-
-And before the light of the other candle blazed, the room was filled
-with sailors, storm-beaten, dripping wet, two of the foremost of whom
-bore the body of a fainting woman in their arms.
-
-It was Agnes.
-
-“Where is Hugh—where is your captain? My God! where is Hugh?” exclaimed
-Miss Joe, as her eyes roamed over this wild party in the vain quest of
-her nephew.
-
-“We left the captain on the deck of his vessel. He refused to leave it
-while a man remained on board. We are going back for him, and half a
-dozen others,” said the mate, looking about in haste for a place to lay
-Agnes; then, putting her in the arms of old Dodgy, he turned, with three
-others of the men, and left the house for the beach.
-
-“Too late! too late! I saw the ship go down myself!” exclaimed Miss Joe,
-beside herself with grief.
-
-“What must I do with this here young ’oman, Miss Ally?” inquired
-Diogenes of his mistress.
-
-“Take her upstairs, Diogenes, and I will go up and attend to her,” said
-Alice. And leaving Miss Joe and the shipwrecked sailors below, Alice
-followed the old negro with his burden upstairs.
-
-But there a scene of ruin met her startled gaze. The roof had been reft
-from the house in the storm; the rain had poured through the ceiling of
-the loft and drenched the bed-chambers. One of the beds, however, being
-in a more protected angle of the room, was comparatively dry. This Alice
-turned over, and upon this the old negro was directed to lay his
-insensible burden.
-
-While Alice was rubbing and chafing the cold, cold hands and feet of the
-shipwrecked girl, a loud cry of despair came up from below.
-
-She hastened downstairs to know the cause.
-
-The mate had returned from a fruitless errand. The _Belle Agnes_ had
-gone down with all left on board, and among them the brave and generous
-Captain Hugh Hutton!
-
- * * * * *
-
-Within the next three dreadful hours, “in night and storm and darkness,”
-a man-child was born—son of the storm and the wreck—heir of a desert and
-a ruin!
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIII.
- THE DESOLATE HOUSE.
-
- Alas! It desolately stands
- Without a roof, the gates fallen from their band,
- The casements all broke down, no chimney left!
- _—Allan Ramsay._
-
-
-The sun rose next morning upon a scene of ruin that defies description.
-
-The house was almost a wreck. The roof, the chimneys, and the shutters
-of the upper story were gone. The windows were shattered and driven in.
-
-The grounds also were literally laid waste. All traces of field, and
-garden, and flower yard were washed away. Trees were torn up by the
-roots, fences were leveled, outbuildings blown down, and all swept away
-by the flood. Cattle and poultry were drowned, and their bodies carried
-off by the sea.
-
-Yes! the isle was indeed a desert, and the house was a ruin, with the
-exception of the lower story, which, having been built of stronger
-material, and being less exposed to the violence of the wind, had
-remained entire.
-
-If the scene without was wretched, the scene within was scarcely less
-so.
-
-The shipwrecked sailors had gone down to the beach for the purpose of
-searching for the bodies of the drowned men, if, perchance, they might
-have been thrown up, and of hailing any boat that might pass within
-hail.
-
-Agnes and her child had been removed from the open and exposed upper
-chamber to the lower one, which was more comfortable. Alice, forgetful
-of her own fears and cares, bestowed upon the unfortunate young woman
-the most affectionate attention. Miss Joe, broken-hearted and half
-crazy, yet still governed by her inveterate habits of order and
-industry, went about putting things to rights, groaning, wringing her
-hands, and getting breakfast. Diogenes brought wood and water, and stood
-shivering and waiting orders without the door.
-
-Very soon after sunrise General Garnet, with two of his servants,
-arrived from the mainland. The wild ruin that reigned around, the deep
-distress that prevailed within the house, arrested all speech of blame
-upon his lips. He kissed Alice, expressing his gratitude to Heaven that
-she was saved. He condoled with Miss Joe, said that he would send over
-workmen to repair the house, offered any other assistance in his power,
-and requested to know in what manner he could serve her. But Miss Joe
-shook her head dolefully, said that she had always lived without alms,
-and that she could not receive any now; that she had not very long to
-live, but hoped she should not die a pauper.
-
-After breakfast General Garnet took Alice home.
-
-For many days nothing was talked of but the storm and the wreck. And
-every day brought in news of some disaster that had been wrought by the
-tempest.
-
- * * * * *
-
-One day, as Alice sat sewing in her room, General Garnet entered with a
-cloud upon his brow, and the newly arrived Norfolk _Signal_ in his hand.
-To his wife’s startled look and anxious question, he answered:
-
-“A heavy misfortune has befallen our neighbor Hardcastle. His son Lionel
-was lost in the storm of the 28th.”
-
-“Oh, Heaven!”
-
-“Yes, fearful as the wind was here, it was even more terrific farther
-down the coast. The _Falcon_, homeward bound, was about entering Hampton
-Roads when overtaken by that horrible and disastrous tempest. The
-_Falcon_ suffered frightfully. In the midst of the storm several of the
-crew and one of the midshipmen were washed overboard. Here is the full
-account in the leading column of the _Signal_. Read it. I must go over
-and see poor Hardcastle. By the way, Alice, this makes a very great
-change in the prospects of your young friend, Magnus. Hardcastle had no
-other child but Lionel, and has no near relation but his nephew Magnus,
-has he?”
-
-“No,” said Alice, looking surprised at such a question at such a time.
-
-“Hum-m-me! then, indeed, this ‘ill wind’ has blown a great inheritance
-to Magnus. I suppose that after his uncle has somewhat recovered the
-shock of his bereavement he will recall Magnus. He will scarcely permit
-him to pursue the study of medicine now.”
-
-“I think that Magnus will prefer the study of some profession. I am sure
-that he wishes to live an earnest and useful life.”
-
-“Well, I do not know a more earnest purpose, or a more useful life, than
-that lived through in the proper administration of a large estate. By
-the way, Alice, I hope you have not, with your usual indifference in all
-things and to all persons, neglected to write to the poor boy during his
-banishment among total strangers in Baltimore?”
-
-“I write to him every week.”
-
-“That is right; perfectly right. I am very glad to hear it. Apropos,
-Alice, were not Magnus and Elsie very great friends?”
-
-“They were very much attached to each other,” replied Alice, with her
-innocent eyes still dilating with wonder at these queries.
-
-“‘Very much attached to each other.’ Hum-m-me! Mount Calm and Hemlock
-Hollow would form one very magnificent estate, joining as they do—about
-ten thousand acres, would they not be?”
-
-“Yes,” said Alice abstractedly.
-
-“Yes, certainly, that is it. Let us see—how old is this youth?”
-
-“About seventeen, I believe.”
-
-“Yes, and he will marry very early, if he can find a wife to suit him.
-He will settle very soon to serious, practical life. He is just the
-young man to do it. Alice, when he returns I hope you will not permit
-him quite to forget old friends. Stay—our Elsie is—twelve years of age?”
-
-“Not quite.”
-
-“Well, nearly twelve—then thirteen, fourteen, fifteen, sixteen—four
-years. Four years will quickly pass away; and our young gentleman can
-wait that long. At the end of four years I shall bring Elsie home from
-school. She will then be sixteen years of age. You were but a year older
-when you were married, Alice. Say, answer me—you were but seventeen when
-you were married, were you not?”
-
-“I was but seventeen,” replied Alice.
-
-And here the conference ended.
-
-General Garnet found Mr. Hardcastle in the extremity of grief. He had
-only received the dire intelligence of the loss of his only and
-well-beloved son, in a letter of condolence from the captain of the
-ship. He had nothing new, therefore, to learn from General Garnet, but
-thanked him for his visit and his sympathy. General Garnet remained with
-him all day and until a late hour of the night, when he took his leave.
-
-Days, weeks elapsed, before Mr. Hardcastle found courage to summon
-Magnus to Hemlock Hollow, though in the meantime Magnus had written
-often, expressing his heartfelt sorrow and his earnest sympathy, and
-entreating permission to come home and see his uncle. At last Mr.
-Hardcastle wrote and recalled him. Magnus came and remained over
-Christmas. Then, his uncle being restored to his usual state of
-composure and cheerfulness, and being engaged in his customary
-occupations of agriculture and politics, hunting, fishing, and company,
-Magnus begged leave to return to his studies. His uncle opposed the
-proposition. What was the use of his studying a profession now? Could he
-not be contented to stay at home and keep a childless old man company?
-
-But Magnus wished to be busy again.
-
-“Well, could he not be busy enough overseeing the overseer, and keeping
-the plantation in order?” queried the old man testily.
-
-But Magnus was very much in earnest, and persisted in his purpose.
-Finally, the old man angrily threatened to disown him, and let him go.
-And Magnus, preferring his profession to any inheritance, departed.
-
-But let the reader rest assured that the old gentleman had not the
-slightest intention of discarding the fine boy, whom he loved as a
-second son.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIV.
- VANISHING OF AGNES.
-
- They sought her that night and they sought her next day,
- They sought her in vain ‘till a week passed away;
- The highest, the lowest, the loneliest spot;
- Her neighbors sought wildly, but found her not.
- _—Mistletoe Bough._
-
-
-Days and weeks passed on, and brought Christmas, when an event occurred
-of so startling and inexplicable a nature as to fill the whole
-neighborhood with wonder.
-
-Miss Joe’s preparations for Christmas were all made, with the exception
-of the turkey and the materials for the plum-pudding. Miss Joe’s turkeys
-had all been drowned in the great flood. Now, to have a roast turkey and
-a plum-pudding at Christmas was Miss Joe’s eleventh commandment of the
-Lord and fortieth article of the Episcopal faith. So she took two pairs
-of men’s woolen socks that she had just completed, donned her antiquated
-bonnet and shawl, and, taking Pontius Pilate as her negro body-servant,
-prepared to start for Huttontown to exchange her work with the village
-shopkeeper for raisins, currants, and spice, and money to purchase a
-turkey. Snow clouds were slowly condensing in the sky, but Miss Joe
-assured Agnes that she would be back long before it came on to snow.
-
-And then, full of cheerful energy and anticipation, she set out.
-
-Agnes remained in her usual apathetic mood, unheeding the flight of
-time, until the sudden rising of the wind and the sudden hustling of
-hail-stones against the windows told her that a furious storm was coming
-up. She arose and closed the window-shutters with some difficulty, and
-lighted a candle, when she found, to her surprise, that it was already
-seven o’clock. It was high time for Miss Joe to be at home. And now it
-occurred to the kind heart of Agnes that the good old lady, coming in
-from the storm, might relish a cup of hot tea. So she threw more wood
-upon the fire (Miss Joe’s forethought had supplied her with a pile of
-wood by the chimney corner), and filled the tea-kettle and hung it over
-the blaze. But Agnes knew that if Miss Joe did not come almost
-immediately, if she had not already landed on the island, she would not
-come that night. Agnes set the table and made the tea.
-
-An hour passed by and Miss Joe had not returned, and Agnes gave her up
-for the night.
-
-At about midnight the storm abated, the clouds broke up, and a few stars
-looked shyly out as if reconnoitering the darkness. The night was very
-dark. Agnes, who felt lonely and nervous, and could not sleep, opened
-the window-shutters to look out, but could scarcely discern the line
-where the dark waters met the snow-covered beach. The sky hung like a
-black pall over the island. The deep darkness, the deep silence, the
-deep solitude oppressed her with gloom and fear. Her form was shrunk,
-and her eyes dilated by terror.
-
-Suddenly, while she gazed, the whole scene was brightly illuminated.
-Several torches blazed along the beach, lighting up the whole line of
-coast, and revealing the forms of three boats already landed, and the
-figures of several men passing back and forth.
-
-At the same instant that Agnes perceived them, she felt that she herself
-must have been seen in the strong glare of the lighted window at which
-she sat.
-
-She started up with the wish to extinguish her candle, when she saw
-several of the men with torches approaching the house; and, overpowered
-with terror, she fell in a swoon.
-
- * * * * *
-
-In the meantime Miss Joe had very reluctantly been detained at
-Huttontown by the utter impossibility of getting through the snowstorm
-to the isle. She had passed the night with Mr. Fig’s—the
-grocer’s—family, bemoaning the necessity, and lamenting that “that poor
-young thing would feel so lonesome, staying by herself on the island all
-night.”
-
-Very “bright and early” the next morning Miss Joe, with a fine fat
-hen-turkey, living, and tied by the legs, and several packages of
-raisins, currants, and spices, entered her boat and set out on her
-return home.
-
-When she reached the lodge the scene of confusion that met her eyes
-nearly transfixed her. Both doors, front and back, were wide open, and
-the air was rushing through the room. The fire had gone out; the great
-logs of wood had burned in two and fallen apart, and the charred and
-blackened ends were sticking up. The candle had expired in melted
-grease, which was now spread, cold, all over the candlestick, and down
-upon the nice white-oak table. The bed had not been slept in, for there
-it was perfectly smooth as Miss Joe had left it, with her own peculiar
-folds and twists about it. And there lay the baby in the cradle,
-screaming its little life away.
-
-“In the name o’ God A’mighty, Pont, what has been a-happening?” asked
-Miss Joe, lifting up the child, and sinking with it into a chair, pale
-as death.
-
-Pontius Pilate stood there with the screeching and struggling turkey in
-one hand and the bundle of groceries in the other—looking like a statue
-of dismay, carved in ebony.
-
-“In the name of Heaven, Pont, what has been a-takin’ place?” repeated
-Miss Joe.
-
-“Gor A’mighty knows, mist’ess; but I does werily b’lieve how de
-Britishers is been landen’ ag’in, or else Bonnypart. Chris’ de Lor’ be
-praised, ole mist’, dat I an’ you wa’nt home when dey come. See, now,
-how ebery ting turn out for de bes’. S’pose dat snowstorm hadn’t a come
-up, where you an’ I been? Good Lor’! poor Miss Aggy! Wonder what’s come
-o’ her?”
-
-“Yes, what, my Lord! Pont,” said Miss Joe, who never in any emergency
-was known to neglect the plain practical duty of the moment, “go and get
-the tinderbox, and light a fire quickly, and heat some milk and water
-for this child. He is almost frozen and almost starved.”
-
-And Pontius Pilate put down his burdens and did as he was bid. And Miss
-Joe made the infant perfectly comfortable, and put him to sleep, before
-she joined Pont in his vain search around the island for Agnes, or some
-clew to her fate.
-
-When she ascertained that Agnes was certainly not on the island, she
-dispatched Pontius Pilate to the mainland to rouse up the people of
-Huttontown to prosecute the search.
-
-And the people were aroused indeed to a state of nine days’ wonder.
-
-What could have become of her? How could she have left her sea-girt isle
-without a boat? Would she have forsaken her child at all?
-
-No; Miss Joe was certain she would not; she was too fond of him.
-
-Had she possibly drowned herself?
-
-No; Miss Joe was sure not; she was too much afraid of dying and leaving
-her babe.
-
-Had she been carried off, then? and by whom?
-
-Yes. It was finally concluded that she must have been carried off; but
-by whom? That was still the problem unsolved. Inquiries were made up and
-down the coast and in every direction. Advertisements were inserted in
-the papers, and large rewards offered for her discovery by General
-Garnet, Judge Wylie, and other benevolent neighbors. For to this sort of
-assistance Miss Joe made no objection. She considered the recovery of
-Agnes quite an affair of general interest, as indeed it was. Nothing,
-however, was heard of her.
-
-As months passed, the mystery deepened, and people grew weary of
-conjecture.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XV.
- THE ELFIN GIRL.
-
- But who is this? What thing of sea or land!
- Female of sex it seems.
- _—Samson Agonistes._
-
-
-For a time Miss Joe had grieved immoderately over the untimely and
-mysterious fate of her niece, and the loneliness of her own lot, and the
-prospect of a poor and solitary old age before her; but soon, in the
-native kindness and disinterestedness of her heart, she turned to the
-child thus thrown upon her exclusive protection, and only hoped that she
-might be spared long enough to raise him, and see him able to take his
-own part; for, after all, small and helpless, and abandoned as he was,
-he was the last Hutton of the Isles, and the heir of—the little sand
-bank in the bay, yclept St. Clara’s Isle or Hutton’s Isle.
-
-Very strange was the lot and life of the lonely recluse of the sea-girt
-isle and her little protégé. Their only possessions were the nearly
-barren islet, the dilapidated lodge, a cow, a sheep or two, a little
-poultry and a dog. No cart or horse had they, nor even any use for
-either. The small skiff conveyed them to the mainland whenever, for the
-purpose of laying in a few groceries or dry goods, or of attending
-divine service, they found it necessary or agreeable to go. Their
-faithful old servant, Pontius Pilate, whose duty it was to till the
-land, row the boat, fish the weir, rake the oyster bed, and cut and
-bring wood from the mainland, was their only companion. The soil
-immediately around the house being mixed with clay and marl, still
-yielded, with careful cultivation, corn and wheat enough for the small
-consumption of the little family. And Pontius Pilate saved money by
-grinding this in a hand-mill. The little garden produced vegetables
-enough for their table. And the two sheep yielded wool enough for their
-winter socks and mits—carded, spun, and woven by the indefatigable
-fingers of Miss Joe. And so time passed on, until Miss Joe, not having
-trouble enough on her hands already, was induced to assume the
-responsibility of rearing another child, a little wild elf-like girl,
-whose advent was almost as great a subject of gossiping speculation as
-the disappearance of Agnes had been. And the name of this elfin child
-was Garnet Seabright.
-
-The history of Garnet Seabright, as it was understood in the
-neighborhood, was very briefly this:
-
-When Hugh was about six years of age Miss Joe received a letter from a
-distant relation living in Calvert County, beseeching her, for the
-Redeemer’s sake, to lose no time in hastening to the sick-bed of the
-writer, who was most anxious to see her before she died.
-
-Miss Joe had to rub her organ of eventuality before she could recognize
-in the writer a cousin, a wild young girl of exceeding beauty and
-willfulness, who had, years before, eloped with a soldier, a certain
-George Seabright, a distant relation of Captain Seabright.
-
-Miss Joe never slighted any appeal to her benevolence. She shut up
-house, left the island in care of Pontius Pilate, took Hugh to
-Huttontown and left him in charge of Mrs. Fig, the grocer’s wife,
-borrowed a mule, and set out for Calvert County.
-
-The house of her cousin she heard upon inquiry was a miserably poor
-cottage, with scarcely any cleared ground around it, and situated in the
-midst of a deep, dark forest. It was approached for miles only by a
-narrow bridle path. It was near nightfall when Miss Joe entered this
-lonesome path; it was quite dark before she got near the house.
-
-“Oh, good Lord! this is a great deal more lonesomer and more wilder than
-my sea-girt island they make such a fuss about; for there, at least, I
-could see an enemy a long ways off. But here! Lord, there might be an
-Injun, or a bandit, or more likely still, a runaway nigger, behind every
-tree. Get up, Jinny! Hark! Lord deliver us! what was that?”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Highe! cheep! th-sh-sh-e-e-e-e!” laughed,
-screamed, chirped, chirruped a sharp, shrill voice, high up in the
-trees, or somewhere between them and the blinking stars.
-
-“Lord save us, what was that?” ejaculated Miss Joe, looking up at the
-branches overhead, in the direction of the eerie voice.
-
-And there she saw, in the dark, bright starlight, in the highest
-branches of the trees, among the green and glistening leaves, a little
-elfin face, with glittering eyes, and gleaming teeth and streaming hair,
-mopping and mowing at her—chattering, gibing, laughing, and screaming at
-her.
-
-“St. John and all the Holy Evangelists! St. Mary and all the Holy
-Virgins!—what’s that? It’s—it’s—a fairy—it’s—it’s—a brownie!” exclaimed
-Miss Joe, bursting out into a profuse perspiration.
-
-Miss Joe was neither cowardly nor superstitious, yet when the little
-elf, with its wild eyes and streaming hair, glided down the tree with
-the swiftness and celerity of a monkey down a mainmast, and leaped, with
-a yell of malice and delight, upon the mule, behind her, Miss Joe opened
-her throat with a prolonged shriek, that might have waked the dead.
-
-And at the same time the mule dashed, plunging and kicking, forward.
-
-The elf stuck its little hands into Miss Joe’s fat sides, and, as the
-good lady herself afterward said, clung there like a craw-fish or a
-crab. The mule plunged madly on.
-
-Miss Joe, delirious with terrors, real and imaginary, lost all power of
-controlling the animal, dropped the reins, and must have fallen off, had
-not the bit been seized by a strong hand, and the mule forced back upon
-her haunches.
-
-“That’s Godfather!” cried the elf, in human words and tones, and Miss
-Joe, looking up, recognized in her deliverer General Garnet.
-
-The sprite leaped from the saddle to the bosom of General Garnet, and
-clung there in her crab-like fashion, her little head rubbed, rooted,
-under his chin, her little arms around his neck, and her little figure
-almost veiled by her long hair, screaming with her inarticulate tones of
-affection and delight.
-
-Miss Joe dismounted from the now stationary mule, and began in an eager
-voice to pour forth her surprise, gratitude, and wonder.
-
-General Garnet, with a look of vexation, tinged with amusement, tried to
-shake off his little encumbrance. But it was like trying to get rid of a
-chestnut burr; for if he succeeded in pulling her off from one place,
-she would stick at another, screaming with wild delight and elfish
-perversity, clinging to him, rooting her little head into him.
-
-“Come, Netty! Come, come! this will not do; release me. Goodness, child,
-are your hands and feet furnished with claws?” exclaimed General Garnet,
-trying to tear off the little human bramble.
-
-“Chip! Chip! Chee-ee-ee! H-sh-sh-sh! Whip!”
-
-It is impossible to convey in words the saucy, defiant, chirping,
-inarticulate cry of the sprite, as it rammed its head again into the
-bosom of its victim. Presently the elf sprang away of itself, and
-perched upon the back of the mule.
-
-“How is your mother, Netty?” then asked General Garnet.
-
-“Waiting for you and the old woman, too. She sent me after you.”
-
-And now Miss Joe and the general looked at each other in astonishment,
-as if mutually inquiring, “You, too?”
-
-General Garnet, putting his hand upon the shoulder of the elf, and
-giving her a slight shake, put her upon the ground, took her hand, and
-walked up to the dark forest path, drawing her after him.
-
-Miss Joe took the bridle, and leading her mule, followed.
-
-A little way up the path was a horse standing perfectly still, saddled
-and bridled, and with a portmanteau on the crupper.
-
-General Garnet remounted this horse, and, taking the wood-sprite before
-him, rode on up the path.
-
-Miss Joe, not wishing to be left behind, tumbled up into her old saddle,
-and urged old Jenny to her best speed. They soon came to a little
-clearing in the forest, and paused before the humble door of a log
-house. The elf sprang down from her seat, and, darting into the door,
-cried:
-
-“They’ve come, Minny! Godfather and the old body, both.”
-
-“Poke up the fire, and let them both come in, Netty!” was the answer;
-and presently the sprite pulled open the door with a bang, and stood
-there with her glittering eyes and streaming hair and naked legs, to
-admit them.
-
-They entered and found the room occupied by two persons; a young woman,
-who sat propped up in an armchair by the fire; and an old negress, who
-seemed to be her servant or nurse. The young woman bore a singular
-resemblance to the elf-like child; but her dark eyes were burning, and
-her face was bathed with the fatal fires of consumption. She held out an
-emaciated hand to welcome her visitors, while the old negress set rude
-stools for their accommodation. The young invalid, pressing the hand of
-Miss Joe, thanked her many times for her kindness in taking this
-journey, and begged her to sit down quite close to her, for that she
-could not raise her voice much. Miss Joe drew the stool to the side of
-the invalid and begged to be informed how she could serve her,
-expressing at the same time her perfect willingness to do so. Then the
-young woman, in a feeble voice, interrupted by frequent fits of
-coughing, said that she felt she had but little time to live,—that her
-days, nay, her very hours were numbered,—that after her death she wished
-Miss Joe to take charge of her orphan child; that General Garnet, who
-considered himself under great obligations to her late husband, would be
-at the costs of its rearing and education, and would, besides, liberally
-repay Miss Joe for the trouble she might be put to in taking care of it.
-
-General Garnet was there to indorse her promises. He approached them;
-and taking the feverish hand of the invalid, and turning to Miss Joe,
-said:
-
-“The husband of this young woman was a soldier under my command; he
-fought under me during the whole course of the war. Once he saved me
-from death. Once he saved me from dishonor. He received his
-death-wound—for, years after, it caused his death—in the same battle in
-which I won my present military rank. I am under eternal obligations to
-him; and while I have an acre of ground, or a dollar at my banker’s, I
-will never see this child want!”
-
-The invalid died the next morning, immediately after being placed in her
-chair, where she had insisted upon sitting.
-
-General Garnet arrived within an hour after, and took the direction of
-the humble funeral.
-
-Within four days from this Miss Joe found herself at home with her
-grandnephew, little Hugh, her ward, Garnet Seabright, the old negress,
-who had fallen to little Garnet’s possession, along with the personal
-effects of her mother, and, lastly, with old Pontius Pilate, who had
-complained of great loneliness during his mistress’ absence.
-
-Little Hugh Hutton was a proud and happy little man the day of Netty’s
-arrival. He tried to multiply himself into a train of attendants to wait
-upon the little girl. He first proposed to give up his cot bed, his
-chair, and his little chest for her use. He brought her all his
-playthings, his bows and arrows, and guns and traps, and hammered all
-day at what he fondly supposed to be a boat, that he was making for her
-benefit.
-
-When General Garnet had taken leave of Miss Joe at Huttontown, just as
-she was about to cross over to her island, he had begged her to apply to
-him in any emergency, and to call on him for anything her young charge
-might want. The child of the soldier who had served under him throughout
-the Revolutionary war, who had once interposed his body to save his
-life, should never suffer for the necessaries or comforts of existence
-while that life was spared. And this he had said with that earnest and
-fervent tone, and with that benign and beautiful smile that never failed
-to fascinate the love and trust of all who heard and saw him. And Miss
-Joe felt assured and comfortable.
-
-But now, as days slid into weeks, and weeks grew into months, Miss Joe
-heard no more of General Garnet and his promises, nor did she like to
-take him at his word and apply to him. He ought to prevent that and save
-her feelings, she said.
-
-As years passed away, however, Miss Joe occasionally wrote to General
-Garnet in behalf of her little protégée. For the most part, her letters
-would remain unanswered, but when one did elicit a reply, General
-Garnet’s epistle would be full of kindness, blessing, encouragement,
-good advice, and—nothing else.
-
-At last, during a bitter winter, their main dependence, their faithful
-servant, poor old Pontius Pilate, caught the pleurisy and died. In the
-midst of this trouble Miss Joe wrote again to General Garnet, and once
-more, and for the last time, invoked his promised assistance. After the
-lapse of several days she received a letter from the benignant general,
-full of condolence, sympathy, and exhortation to hope and patience,
-and—nothing else! The letter concluded with the assurance that she had
-nothing to fear—that God never made a mouth for which he had not also
-provided food. To this letter the long-suffering old lady was
-exasperated to reply—that though it was true God had made both the
-mouths and the food, yet the mouths had fallen to her lot, and the food
-to his.
-
-The general never replied to this last letter, and here the
-correspondence ceased.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVI.
- ELSIE.
-
- Oh! the words
- Laugh on her lips; the motion of her smiles
- Showers beauty, as the air-caressed spray
- The dews of morning.
- _—Milman._
-
- But ever still,
- As a sweet tone delighteth her, the smile
- Goes melting into sadness, and the lash
- Droops gently to her eye, as if she knew
- Affection was too deep a thing for mirth.
- _—Willis._
-
-
-General Garnet was certainly not a parsimonious man; perhaps his
-interest in his little godchild had died with her mother; perchance,
-being a very wealthy man, he could not appreciate the strait to which
-poor Miss Joe and her little family were reduced; possibly, he did not
-wish to give his personal attention to little Garnet’s necessities;
-probably, he intended that Miss Joe should get what was needed at the
-village store, upon his account; certainly, if Miss Joe had liberally
-interpreted his letters, and done so, he would, without demur, have
-settled the bill. But Miss Joe was far too cautious to put a doubtful
-construction on his letters, and run in debt. I never clearly
-comprehended the difficulty between them, but I believe they each
-misunderstood the other, and so General Garnet remained with the stigma
-of cruelty and ingratitude resting upon him, when, perhaps, he could be
-justly accused of indifference only.
-
-Just about the time of Miss Joe’s last application also, General Garnet,
-like Martha, was troubled with many things. He was a candidate for the
-Senate, and all his thoughts engaged in the secret, intriguing,
-vexatious, multifarious business of electioneering; or if he had a
-thought or a moment to spare, it was divided between the negotiation
-with his neighbor, Mr. Hardcastle, of a marriage between Magnus
-Hardcastle and Elsie Garnet, or in preparations for the return of his
-daughter—having his house repapered, repainted, and newly furnished.
-
-Magnus Hardcastle had obtained his diploma, and was getting into some
-little practice, despite the grumbling, growling, and swearing
-objections of his uncle, who could see no necessity for his nephew
-“making a slave of himself for nothing.”
-
-Yes, absolutely for nothing! Let Magnus show a dollar that he had ever
-earned by all his practicing of medicine. Let him show even a dollar
-that he had ever got back for the medicines that he had dispensed along
-with his attention and advice!
-
-It was true, Magnus’ receipt-book, if he owned one, was an unwritten
-volume. His practice was mostly among poor people, who had no dollars to
-spare.
-
-Well, then, what did he do it for? What good did it do him? There he
-was, rapped up out of his warm bed in the middle of the winter’s night,
-in the midst of a snowstorm, to ride five or six miles to some old woman
-in a cramp colic, or some child with the croup! What good did it do? And
-this was not the case once or twice, but five or six times in a month.
-And what good did it do him?
-
-Lives were saved!
-
-Yes, but what did he get for his trouble? Thanks, maybe. Pooh! he knew
-very well that half the time he got nothing but ingratitude and coarse
-abuse. He had better remember that Irishwoman, with an inflammatory
-fever, who took her powders every hour in a gill of whisky, and, being
-near death, swore the d—— doctor’s stuff had murdered her. He had better
-remember how the other woman cursed him for cutting off her husband’s
-mortified leg to the saving of his life. Pooh! Let him give up the dirty
-profession. He did not adopt him, did not intend to give him a fortune
-for the sole purpose of enabling him to be a poor doctor without even
-parish pay!
-
-Sometimes Magnus would answer to this effect:
-
-“Nonsense, my good uncle! If I can do any good in my day and generation,
-let me do it. Though I do sometimes get abuse from some poor, ignorant
-man, or, more frequently, a blowing up from some poor, nervous,
-overtasked woman, who, by the way, would defend me, to the death, the
-very next hour, if anyone else attacked me—why should I care? I am quite
-as well liked as I deserve to be. Most people are, in fact. Some day the
-people around here will send me to Congress in my own despite, I am so
-popular.”
-
-“Send you to Congress! I expected that—I was only waiting for that. It
-only wanted that to complete my despair and your ruin.”
-
-“Dear uncle, be easy—I shan’t go,” Magnus would reply, laughing.
-
-Yes, Dr. Magnus Hardcastle was very popular, and could have carried as
-many votes as any man in the county. He was the constant companion of
-General Garnet, by what sort of attraction and association the reader
-cannot fail to know. Never was such a zealous partisan as Magnus! Never
-was such a stump orator,—earnest, eloquent, impassioned, large-souled,
-great-hearted, full of human sympathies,—he could sway a crowd to and
-fro in a manner that might have been amusing, if it had not been sublime
-in its exhibition of power. It was his personal appearance, as well as
-his temperament, that was the cause of much of this power over others.
-
-But it is time to give you some idea of Magnus Hardcastle at
-twenty-three. He was a fine illustration of the beauty of the vital
-system. He had the tall, athletic form that distinguishes the men of the
-Western Shore; a face rather square, by reason of the massive forehead
-and massive jaws, both indicating intellect and strength; but it was in
-the fullness of the beautifully rounded chin and cheeks, in the fullness
-of the large, but beautifully curved lips, that the fine, genial
-serenity, and joyous temperament was revealed; the line of the nose and
-forehead was nearly straight, and the eyes were clear blue, the
-complexion was clear and ruddy; and the face was surrounded by the
-darkest chestnut hair, and whiskers that met beneath the chin. The
-prevailing expression of this fine countenance was confidence and
-cheerfulness.
-
-Magnus had been corresponding with Elsie for the last three years, and
-looked forward to her return with more of joyful anticipation than
-anyone else in the world, perhaps, except her mother. A year before
-this, two miniature portraits of Elsie, in her young womanhood, had been
-forwarded from England. One of them had been retained by her mother; the
-other was presented by General Garnet to Magnus. He wore it in his—vest
-pocket. It was his charm, his talisman, his abracadabra. When, if ever,
-he would become, for the instant, lazy, stupid, hopeless, or impatient,
-he would take that miniature out, touch the spring so that the case
-would fly open, and gaze upon that handsome, wholesome, happy face until
-energy, inspiration, hope, and patience came again; and he would close
-it, and replace it in his pocket with a joyous faith in his coming life,
-that not all the powers of evil could have shaken.
-
-I told you that Magnus was the zealous, active, and most efficient
-partisan of General Garnet; he was also the dear friend and confidant of
-Mrs. Garnet. Many and long were the confidential talks they would have
-in Alice’s dressing room; and the subject of these conversations was
-Elsie—still Elsie.
-
-One day, after reading with Mrs. Garnet Elsie’s last delightful letter,
-and discussing with her Elsie’s expected arrival, he exclaimed joyfully:
-“This makes me gladdest of all!—that our fresh, dewy, charming Elsie
-will come at once to us. Well!—at once to me—that she will not have had,
-as most young ladies have, many other lovers; that the sun of the world
-will not have stolen the bloom and the dew from our beautiful Maryland
-rose.”
-
-But Magnus “reckoned” his future without destiny, his “host.”
-
-Elsie had been withdrawn from school, indeed, and was quite ready and
-anxious to get home. She was to return with General A——’s family, who
-were soon expected to sail for the United States. But one circumstance
-following another, and connected with his diplomatic business, had
-deferred his departure from time to time, until six months passed
-away—during which time Miss Garnet had been presented at court, and was
-moving in the best society in London. Yes; and, though still impatient
-to come home, enjoying her happy self to the utmost, as every letter
-testified.
-
-Now, you would think that after having congratulated himself so upon the
-unsunned freshness of this beautiful Maryland rose, that Magnus would
-lament that she was blooming in the very blaze of the sun of fashion, in
-the very conservatory of a court.
-
-By no means; her letters reassured him, every one.
-
-“It is well, very well, upon the whole,” he said. “She has now an
-opportunity of forming an acquaintance with one order of society that
-may never occur again—of getting an insight into one phase of human
-nature that nothing but this experience could afford her.”
-
-And time sped on, and brought the day when a letter came to them, dated
-at Liverpool, and announcing that General A——, with his family, and Miss
-Garnet, would sail within a few days, in the ship _Amphytrite_, bound
-from that port to Norfolk. Therefore, it was expected that within a few
-days after, if not before the arrival of the letter, the _Amphytrite_
-would be in port.
-
-General Garnet, accompanied by Dr. Hardcastle, left Mount Calm
-immediately for Norfolk, to welcome his daughter, if the ship had come;
-to wait for her if it had not.
-
-Mrs. Garnet remained at home to receive her, in fond, impatient
-expectation.
-
-She had Elsie’s bed chamber decorated, and a fire made in it every day,
-and the parlors lighted and warmed, and the tea table set for the whole
-party every evening.
-
-At last, one night,—a week after they had left home,—while she was
-standing before the parlor fire, trimming a lamp on the chimney-piece,
-and wondering sadly if she were not merely imagining that her long-lost
-daughter was expected home, a carriage drove rapidly up the shaded
-avenue, steps were let down, people came, a little bustle ensued, hasty
-steps and joyous voices were heard. Alice ran out, and, in an instant,
-the mother, weeping, laughing, exclaiming, had caught, and was hugging
-her daughter laughing to her bosom. Yes, Elsie herself!—Elsie, warm,
-alive, real, and such an armful of bright, rosy, joyous life, and love
-and reality! I leave you to imagine the joy of the party around the
-tea-table that night, where all were too joyful to eat—or the late hour
-at which they separated for the night and retired to their several
-rooms, where each one was too happy to sleep.
-
-The next morning, happy, joyous Elsie had to hold a sort of levee for
-the benefit of the colored folks. Every negro in the house, or on the
-plantation, who had known her before she went away, had to come and
-shake hands with her, and welcome her back. And every little one that
-had grown from infancy to childhood during her absence, and to whom she
-was a sort of fabulous demigoddess, or, it might be, one of the angels,
-had to come and stare at her and be patted on the head, and get its
-paper of sugar-plums or its toy.
-
-And then, later in the day, when her trunks and boxes arrived in the
-wagon, and were unpacked, she had to distribute her presents and tokens
-of remembrance to all and each of the colored people.
-
-And in the course of the second day, when the news of her arrival began
-to be rumored about, the companions of her childhood, now grown up to be
-young men and women, flocked in to see her. And it was from their sly
-hints and innuendos that Elsie was taught that it was expected of her
-father to give a ball, and that, indeed, a great many people would be
-very greatly disappointed if he did not. And good-natured Elsie, in
-order to make so many young folks happy, named the matter to her father,
-and begged him, as a personal favor to herself, in consideration of her
-recent arrival home, to give a party. So General Garnet, willing to
-please his child, and believing, besides, that a large party might
-forward his electioneering prospects, gave his consent. He consulted
-Mrs. Garnet and Dr. Hardcastle, and fixed the time of the ball for that
-day two weeks. Magnus was with Elsie every day. She perfectly
-understood, though she could scarcely have told why, for no one had as
-yet hinted the subject to her, that she was at no very distant period of
-time to be married to Magnus. She considered her marriage, like her
-leaving school, her presentation at court, and her coming-out ball, a
-part of the programme of her happy drama of life, and was content. She
-loved Magnus. During her absence in England, she had remembered and
-loved him as she had remembered and loved her father and mother—as one
-of the elements of her life’s joy.
-
-When she returned, she had met him with the fond and free affection of a
-sister for an only brother.
-
-And when she had been at home a week, and Magnus had found opportunity
-and courage, and led the beautiful and happy girl to a shady nook in the
-twilight parlor, and told her with the burning eloquence of passion how
-long, how deeply, how greatly he had loved her; how she had been at once
-his one memory and his one hope—his incentive, his dream, his
-inspiration, his guiding star, Elsie heard him with undisguised
-astonishment at his earnestness and enthusiasm, and wondered to herself
-where it all came from. And when he, full of doubt and fear, for her
-free and unembarrassed manner discouraged him, begged her to give him
-answer, she replied, without the slightest hesitation or
-embarrassment—nay, even in her native, gladsome, confident manner—that
-he need not have given himself so much anxiety; that of course everybody
-knew they were going to be married; didn’t their lands join? and, of
-course, she had never even thought of retreating.
-
-Now you may think from that speech that Elsie was a sadly heartless and
-mercenary and calculating little baggage. She was as far as possible
-from being that. She was a fresh, innocent, totally inexperienced girl,
-who repeated, parrot-like, the sentiments of those around her.
-
-Magnus knew that, and caught her, strained her to his bosom, pressed
-kisses on her brow, her cheeks, her lips, in the delirious joy of “first
-and passionate love.” And Elsie broke from his arms and ran from the
-room suffused with blushes, trembling with a strange, painful, blissful
-tumult. All that evening Elsie wandered about upstairs, or sat dreaming,
-half in terror, half in joy, until her mother came in and asked of what
-she was thinking so deeply?
-
-Elsie started, and blushed violently.
-
-Alice took both her hands and gazed deeply into her face.
-
-At that earnest and tender mother’s gaze, the tears sprung into Elsie’s
-eyes, and then, as struck by something ludicrous in herself or her
-position, Elsie laughed.
-
-Alice pressed her hands, and released them, saying:
-
-“It is time to dress, my dear Elsie, your father expects you in the
-parlor. Let me fix your hair; it is in sad disorder.” And she smoothed
-and twined the rich ringlets around her fingers, letting them drop in
-long tendrils of golden auburn.
-
-And then she arranged her dress of purple cashmere, and they went below
-to the lighted parlor, where General Garnet and Magnus awaited them. The
-general and Magnus were engaged in a political discussion, but Magnus
-broke off and came at once to meet them.
-
-Elsie, with a bright blush, turned away and walked to a distant table,
-where she ensconced herself with her tambour frame.
-
-But from that day Elsie gradually changed. She kept out of the way of
-Magnus most sedulously. The courtship became a regular hunt. All Magnus’
-ingenuity was employed in devising how he could circumvent Elsie’s arch
-and saucy prudery, and entrap her into a little lover’s talk or walk.
-And all Elsie’s tact was engaged in devising means to avoid without
-offending Magnus.
-
-And so days went on, until one day it fell like ice upon the warm heart
-of Magnus, that Elsie might not love him except as a brother; and oh! he
-thought of her first, free, fond, sisterly affection for him, until the
-evening upon which he first declared his passion, and then of her calm
-agreement to marry him because their lands joined, and her cold
-avoidance of him ever since. “Yes,” he said to himself, “it is too true.
-Elsie does not love me. I am wooing an unwilling bride. Shall I continue
-to do so? Shall I marry her and seal her misery? No, my God! No, though
-she is the first and last hope of my life, I will resign her if that
-will make her happy.” And so Magnus suddenly abandoned the pursuit of
-Elsie, and grew thoughtful, sorrowful, pale, and weary-looking.
-
-Then he absented himself from Mont Calm for several days. Elsie did not
-grow pale or thin; she was too sanguine for that; but she became uneasy,
-then anxious, then restless, and would walk about looking silently from
-the windows, particularly the back windows that overlooked the forest
-road leading down to the Hollow; or looking into her father’s or her
-mother’s face with an anxious, appealing look of silent inquiry. If the
-door-bell were rung, she would start violently, pause breathlessly, turn
-very pale, ask eagerly of the servant who returned, “who was that?” The
-answer, “Judge Jacky Wylie,” or “Marse Roebuck” caused her to sink back
-in her seat, disappointed and blushing with mortification. And yet only
-two or three days had passed; but then Magnus had been in the habit of
-coming twice a day, and staying over night; and two or three days seems
-to a young, impatient heart like two or three eternities.
-
-At last General Garnet, in the blackest rage and the brightest smile,
-put a pair of pistols in his pocket, mounted his magnificent black
-war-horse Death, and rode down to Hemlock Hollow, with the deliberate
-intention of courteously inquiring into Dr. Hardcastle’s motives of
-conduct, and blowing his brains out if the answer should not prove
-satisfactory. Not that he sympathized with Elsie, or believed in broken
-hearts, but that he had a saving faith in the junction of estates, and a
-high respect for the “honor of his house.”
-
-He found Magnus looking sallow and haggard, and immediately surmised
-that he had been ill, reproached him in a polite, gentlemanly way for
-not having informed his friends of his indisposition, and finally hoped
-that he had recovered.
-
-Magnus pleaded guilty to illness, and much care and anxiety, and spoke
-of the pain that enforced absence from Elsie gave him. Not for the world
-would Magnus have hinted that Elsie’s coldness had driven him away, and
-that despair had made him ill; he knew too well that such a
-communication would be visited with great severity by her father upon
-the head of Elsie. And he judged rightly—General Garnet’s heart was set
-on the marriage of those two joining plantations. If Magnus had backed
-out, he would have shot him like a dog. If Elsie had retreated, he would
-have turned her out of doors. If both had broken off, by mutual consent,
-he would have—Satan only knows what he would not have done.
-
-As it was now, he was perfectly satisfied with Magnus, insisted that he
-should come over the day of the ball, if not before, received his
-promise to do so, and took leave.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVII.
- THE BALL—THE UNEXPECTED GUEST.
-
- There was a sound of revelry by night.
- ... and bright
- The lamps shone o’er fair women and brave men;
- A thousand hearts beat happily, and when
- Music arose with its voluptuous swell,
- Soft eyes looked love to eyes that spoke again,
- And all went merry as a marriage bell!
- But hush! hark!
- _—Byron._
-
-
-The day of the ball arrived. People had been invited for twenty miles
-around. Apartments had been prepared for the guests who, coming from a
-distance, would be likely to remain all night. From an early hour in the
-afternoon carriages began to arrive, and the men-servants had enough to
-do in stabling the horses and putting away the vehicles; while the
-maid-servants were employed in showing the company to their dressing
-rooms, and attending upon them there.
-
-Magnus came early in the afternoon, in order to have a private
-conversation with Mrs. Garnet, to whom he intended to open his heart
-fully.
-
-He asked for her as soon as he arrived, and was immediately shown up
-into her bed chamber, into which both Alice and her daughter had been
-crowded by the incoming of their guests. As he entered, Alice came
-forward with a smile to meet him. Elsie started violently, colored
-brightly, and, ere anyone could prevent her, even if they had wished,
-flew from the room.
-
-As she flew by him, Magnus fixed one passionate reproachful look upon
-her, and said, in a hurried voice:
-
-“Fear nothing, Elsie! I will never trouble you.”
-
-Alice, still smiling, pointed him to a chair. He sat down, dropped his
-forehead upon his hands for a moment, sighed heavily, looked up, and
-opened his story. He told Alice that he had discovered, to his eternal
-sorrow, that Elsie did not love him, that though to resign her was like
-resigning his hope of heaven, yet every principle of justice and honor
-obliged him to do so; he concluded by asking her opinion as to the best
-manner of breaking this affair to General Garnet, so as to shield Elsie
-from his indignation.
-
-“And so you wish to give Elsie up?”
-
-“Wish!” and Magnus dropped his forehead into his palms with a groan that
-might have started all the house, had they been listening. Then, lifting
-his head up again, he said sternly, almost fiercely:
-
-“Listen! If Elsie loved me, not all the power of earth or of hell—or—God
-forgive me!—I had nearly said of heaven—should sever her from me! not
-you—not her father—not herself—if only she loved me! But she does not,
-and it is all over.”
-
-“And who told you she did not love you?” inquired Alice, smiling at his
-vehemence, and sighing as her thoughts flew back to the past, when she
-was resigned in spite of herself. “Who told you that Elsie did not
-return your love?”
-
-With a gesture of despair Magnus recounted all that had passed between
-himself and Elsie, and ended, as he had begun, with a groan, dropping
-his head upon his hands.
-
- “Puir human bodies are sic’ fules,
- Wi’ a’ their colleges and schules,
- That when nae real ills perplex ’em,
- They mak eno’ themsel’s to vex ’em,”
-
-sang Alice; then said:
-
-“Oh, Magnus! with all your knowledge—with your classic, and mathematic,
-and philosophic, and metaphysic learning—with all your knowledge, not to
-know a young girl’s heart better than that! Oh, Magnus! ‘with all your
-getting, get wisdom, get understanding.’”
-
-“Alice, Cousin Alice! Do you mean to intimate what sometimes I have
-madly hoped—that I have been mistaken, that Elsie does——”
-
-“That Elsie loves you a thousandfold more now, that she avoids you, than
-she did while she laughed, and talked, and romped with you. Oh, man! you
-should have found this out for yourself, and not have put me to the
-shame of betraying my child. And now, never let me hear another word of
-your self-sacrificing resignation of Elsie’s hand, or I shall take you
-at your word, as she would do now, for I don’t believe in it. I have
-more faith in the cruelest demonstrations of a downright, honest,
-sincere, human passion than in all the self-martyrizing resignation in
-the world!” said Alice, with a strange asperity, for her thoughts flew
-back again to the past. “Go, Magnus! You will find Elsie in the
-ballroom. Go, Magnus; I love you, or I never would have said all that I
-have said to you.”
-
-Magnus seized the hand of Alice, pressed it to his heart, to his lips,
-and darted from the room in search of his betrothed.
-
-He found her in the large saloon, described in the beginning of this
-story as occupying the whole of the righthand wing of the house. She was
-standing at a table, arranging a large bouquet in a marble vase. He
-stole softly up behind her, and, restraining the impetuous force of his
-emotions, passed his arm gently around her waist, and drew her—so
-gently!—to his heart. And Elsie’s head sank upon his shoulder. He raised
-her chin and kissed her—still so gently!—as fearing to startle her shy
-trust and again frighten her away. So gently, and trembling all over,
-for in his bosom he held a young tornado in check. At last she moved to
-withdraw herself from his arms; he pressed her once more to his bosom,
-printed one more kiss upon her lips, and let her go. So quiet and so
-silent was their reconciliation.
-
-He stood there where she left him in a happy trance, until the company
-began to drop in one by one, and in couples, and trios, and in small
-parties.
-
-And then he wandered on by himself. He strolled down the shaded avenue,
-and through the gate, and over the burnished hills, now brown with the
-sear wind of November, under the cold deep-blue starlit skies, wrapped
-in a blissful dream, until the sudden peal of music from the house awoke
-him.
-
-He turned to retrace his steps, and now saw the whole south wing blazing
-with light, and the sprite-like figures of the dancers as they flitted
-by the illuminated windows. He hastened back, entered the house, hurried
-to the little room always kept sacred to his use, arranged his toilet,
-and went below.
-
-He entered the ballroom, which was resplendent and joyous with light,
-and music, and gay and brilliant company. Magnus slowly made his way
-through the crowd in search of his ladylove, but nodding, smiling,
-shaking hands, according to the degree of his acquaintance with the
-individuals that made up the company.
-
-Judge Jacky was there in great force—superb in a blue velvet coat, white
-satin vest, and smallclothes.
-
-And Ambrosia Wylie was there, too. Miss Ambush, as the colored folk
-perverted her pretty name. Oh, well named both ways, for she had grown
-up the most alluring _ignis-fatuus_ that ever drew men on an elf chase
-through brambles and quagmires.
-
-She had already drawn General Garnet on to ask her to dance! General
-Garnet, the proud, the stern, the majestic, the unbendable, is actually
-bending over her with his most seraphic smile, and a gaze that might
-melt all the icebergs in the Northern Ocean—and she has raised her
-languishing eyes, with the look of a gratified angel, and she has given
-her hand, and he, still shining upon her with that sunlike smile, is
-leading her to the head of the cotillion.
-
-In the meantime, Magnus found his ladylove. She was sitting at the
-farthest extremity of the room, the center of a circle of sprightly
-young people, who were eagerly engaged in asking her questions
-concerning her residence abroad, London, the court, the king, etc.,
-etc., and as eagerly listening to her replies. As Magnus gently broke
-through this circle, and approached her side, with a smile, her eyes
-fell and her color rose.
-
-Her young friends, with a smile, a laugh, or an arch glance, dropped
-off, one by one, leaving the lovers alone.
-
-And now Elsie’s eyes were dropped to the ground, and her color mounted
-to her temples.
-
-At the same moment a young gentleman came up and asked the pleasure of
-her hand in the next quadrille.
-
-Elsie, with a start, and a sigh of relief, suffered him to lead her
-forth to the head of the cotillion.
-
-I am sure Dr. Hardcastle was unconscious of the angry flush and fierce
-glance with which he followed the meanderings of the young couple
-through the mazes of the dance.
-
-Not so Elsie. With many a swift, furtive glance she detected the angry
-passion of her lover’s face, and felt self-reproach enough to bewilder
-her movements. Never had beautiful Elsie danced with less grace, and
-never had she been so glad when the set was over.
-
-Her partner led her to a seat, distant from the one he had taken her
-from, took his seat by the side of her, and held her in conversation
-that made her more fidgety than before.
-
-Poor Elsie was at length relieved by Judge Jacky, who, seeing her
-distress and embarrassment, came up, and taking my gentleman by the arm,
-and saying to him: “There is a very lovely woman who would not be averse
-to dancing the next set with you; come, let me introduce you to her,”
-marched him off to dance with a tall, thin young lady of sixty-five.
-
-Dr. Hardcastle now left his position across the room, and, walking
-leisurely, came up to Elsie, and dropped slowly into the seat just
-vacated.
-
-And at that very instant, as if to try his patience to the utmost, up
-came Ulysses Roebuck, and holding out his hand, in quite a confident
-way, informed Elsie that he intended to confer upon her the glory and
-the joy of being his partner in the next set.
-
-Elsie glanced at Magnus, shook her head, and laughed lightly.
-
-Ulysses persisted, affirming that indeed he was in earnest, and did not
-mean to humbug her; that he really had reserved the honor and the
-pleasure of his hand in the next cotillion for her, and her alone. That
-his uncle had selected a very charming partner for him, whom he had
-declined, in consideration of her.
-
-Elsie laughed a little, and told him she feared “the honor and the
-pleasure” was only offered to her in order to pique Ambrosia.
-
-Whereupon Roebuck began to vow and protest, but in the midst of his
-vociferous asseverations, he happened to spy Ambrosia sitting down,
-quite exhausted, quite alone, apparently quite disengaged, for the first
-time during the evening, and Ulysses suddenly sped off toward her, in
-order to secure her at once—for the dance?—no, for a good, rousing
-quarrel.
-
-“Why did you not dance with Ulysses?” inquired Magnus of Elsie.
-
-She threw a swift glance to his face, then dropped her eyes, and
-replied, in a low tone:
-
-“I shall not dance again to-night.”
-
-“Why?” he asked, taking her hand, and seeming to study its deep beauty.
-“Why will you not dance again to-night?”
-
-But she colored so deeply, and looked so distressed, that he desisted
-from questioning her.
-
-At last Elsie of herself said, in a very low voice:
-
-“Mother told me not to dance, unless it were to make up a set that could
-not otherwise be completed.”
-
-“But I do not understand why you should have been warned against your
-favorite amusement, Elsie?”
-
-“Why, lest by filling up one place in the cotillion, I might keep some
-young lady from dancing,” replied she. But then, as though spurning
-disingenuousness, she added: “But that was not the only reason I refused
-Ulysses.” Then pausing, and making a great effort over herself, she
-added, in a very low and tremulous voice: “It was because you looked so
-annoyed while I was dancing with Mr. Brent.”
-
-The light of an unutterable joy shone on the face of Magnus. He caught
-her hand with a strong, almost crushing clasp—his bosom heaved—his eyes
-kindled and smoldered. He stooped his lips near Elsie’s ear to whisper
-something, but her cheek blazed.
-
-And just then a slight bustle at the other extremity of the room
-attracted their attention. Exclamations of astonishment, joy, and wonder
-were intermingled with many words of cordial greeting, and of hearty
-welcoming. Above all noises were heard the jocund tones of old Mr.
-Hardcastle. The bustle widened in the crowd, like eddies in the water
-where a stone had just been cast, and the crowd seemed to be swayed
-toward the place where our lovers sat. The center of this crowd was a
-young man of rather effeminate, but exceeding personal beauty, tall, and
-slightly, but elegantly proportioned, with Grecian features, a fair,
-roseate complexion, golden hair, and light, soft, hazel eyes. He was
-receiving, and gracefully and graciously acknowledging, the _devoirs_ of
-all around him, who were also moving with him towards Magnus and Elsie.
-As he drew near, they both simultaneously exclaimed:
-
-“My Cousin Lionel!”
-
-“Lionel Hardcastle!”
-
-And both eagerly started forward, holding out their hands, in joyful
-welcome, before even thinking of the miracle of his advent.
-
-Lionel at first shook hands with Magnus, then, seeming to yield to a
-sudden and irresistible impulse, folded him to his heart in a close
-brotherly embrace.
-
-He then took Elsie’s hand, bowed over it gracefully, raised it tenderly
-to his lips, when Elsie exclaimed:
-
-“Oh, my dear old playmate, I am so glad! so glad! that you were not lost
-after all!” threw herself into his arms.
-
-The youth’s eye and cheek kindled with a hectic flush, as he pressed the
-innocent, affectionate girl for an instant to his bosom, and released
-her to turn and see Magnus grasp her arm with no very gentle hand, and
-lead her away. To the many eager questions of “When did you arrive?”
-“Where from?” “How did you escape?” “Where have you been all this time?”
-put to him by the astonished crowd as soon as they recovered sufficient
-strength, Lionel replied:
-
-“To-morrow, to-morrow, I will tell you all about it.”
-
-“That you shan’t! you shan’t tell for a week. It is enough, good Heaven,
-to have you among us. No more questions shall be asked or answered for a
-week!” exclaimed Judge Wylie, in a magisterial tone, and the company
-understood that they had been wearying a fatigued traveler, and
-desisted.
-
-It was late when the ball broke up. And Judge Jacky, who seemed
-possessed with a spirit of jollity, resolved to follow up this party by
-one of his own. Accordingly, that very night, he improvised the “time,
-place, and circumstance” of a ball, and availed himself of the
-opportunity afforded by the presence of so many of his familiar friends,
-to give out rather informal verbal invitations. When all the company had
-departed, a cloud remained upon the brow of General Garnet. He spoke
-coldly to Magnus, in reply to his “good-night,” as the latter left the
-house. Alice looked deeply distressed. Elsie glanced from father to
-mother with a vague presentiment of impending evil.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XVIII.
- THE NEW-FOUND HEIR.
-
- _Ernest._—Which is the bridegroom?
- _Wilhelm._—Marry! the heir.
- _—Newman._
-
-
-Magnus had returned home with his cousin. The next day the family from
-the Hollow dined at Mount Calm, by invitation. General Garnet was still
-cold and reserved to Magnus, but showed the most marked attention to
-Lionel. This at first surprised Dr. Hardcastle; but soon, with a haughty
-curl of the lip, he thought:
-
-“I see how it is; fortune has changed. I have lost an inheritance.”
-
-After dinner Lionel told a tale of an Algerine cruiser, of a long
-captivity, of a hair-breadth escape, but left as vague an impression of
-reality upon the minds of his hearers as it leaves now upon the minds of
-my readers. They did not doubt his story, but they could not well
-connect the effeminate beauty of the man with any life of
-pirate-adventure and slavery hardships.
-
-Elsie was saddened for the first time in her life, and she scarcely knew
-wherefore. During the short estrangement between herself and her lover
-she had been nervous, anxious, excitable; now she was depressed. She
-loved her mother very tenderly; she loved her father passionately; and
-Magnus she loved—oh, how shall I say?—with an infinite future
-reservation. But now she saw a cloud—she was too guileless to know
-wherefore—settle and deepen, dark, cold, and chill, between her lover
-and her father; and the happy, buoyant Elsie grew pensive and
-thoughtful. General Garnet, with all his coldness, was studiously
-polite; and Magnus was self-possessed and social.
-
-As this day passed—as far as the relative positions of some of the
-parties were concerned—so passed the weeks, and brought the day upon
-which Judge Wylie’s party was to be given.
-
-There was a heavy cloud of thought and care upon the brow of General
-Garnet; and those who knew him well surmised that he was considering the
-best manner of transferring the hand of the heiress of Mount Calm from
-the poor doctor to the rich heir of Hemlock Hollow.
-
-Magnus continued his visits, as usual, undisturbed by the freezing
-exterior of General Garnet.
-
-Alice always received him with affection; and Elsie’s manner to him was
-earnest, affectionate, deferential, as if she wished to make up for her
-father’s coldness. She was no longer shy and diffident. It seemed as if
-the presentiment of some impending misfortune, which she felt rather
-than understood, had thrown down the barriers of her reserve, and that
-she could not do too much, in her sweet, feminine way, to assure Magnus
-of her unchangeable affection and unswerving truth. Her eyes waited on
-him, shyly, all day long, for her maiden pride was self-subdued, but not
-her maidenly delicacy. Elsie had no suspicion of what her father really
-meant until the morning of the day upon which Judge Wylie’s ball was to
-be given. General Garnet called Elsie into his room, and having
-explained in his polite way—he was polite even to his child—that
-circumstances beyond all human calculation or control had rendered it
-expedient that a new adjustment of affairs should take place, and that
-she must no longer look upon Magnus Hardcastle in the light of a suitor
-for her hand, but must, on the contrary, prepare herself to think of,
-and accept, Lionel Hardcastle, to whom he had given permission to visit
-her—Elsie opened wide her eyes in undisguised astonishment, that her
-father, her revered father, should ask her to break her plighted faith;
-but without one atom of terror, and without an instant’s hesitation, she
-answered:
-
-“Why, father, being engaged to Magnus, with yours and mother’s consent,
-I would no more forsake him now than if I were already his wedded wife.”
-
-“We shall see, Miss Garnet. I will give you time,” replied the General,
-in his soft, but sarcastic, manner.
-
-“Father,” said Elsie, her cheek burning with shame and indignation, “if
-I should give you to suppose that any lapse of time could alter my
-determination, I should be a coward or a hypocrite. Father, I would not
-have engaged myself without your consent and my mother’s, for I should
-have felt that to be wrong; but having engaged myself with your consent
-and blessing, I will not break that engagement, come what may. I
-promised, with your approbation, to give my hand to Dr. Hardcastle on
-Thursday week, and Thursday week, father, I must do it. Dr. Hardcastle
-has lost an inheritance; an event which he rejoices in, since it gives
-his uncle back a dearly beloved and long-lost son. But he must not lose
-his wife, father; he shall not.”
-
-General Garnet stood like one thunderstruck. His wife had never ventured
-to oppose his will, except
-
- “To plead, lament, and sue,”
-
-to avert some cruel deed. His servants had ever trembled before him. His
-very neighbors and associates had fallen into the habit of yielding to
-his inflexible will; and here was a little girl of seventeen years of
-age, with positively her own notions of right and wrong, of faith and
-infidelity, of honor and dishonor—and telling him, with a high,
-unblanching cheek, and a clear, unfaltering voice, that she meant to
-abide by right, and eschew wrong! He turned pale with suppressed rage;
-his eyes gleamed with their sinister light; he clenched his fist, and
-made one step towards her, but retreated again, and dropped his hand.
-The polished “gentleman” asserted its supremacy of habit over the angry
-“man.” It would not be _comme-il-faut_ for “General Garnet” to give
-“Miss Garnet” a good drubbing with his fists; besides, there was a look
-of calm, healthful moral strength about the mere child that forcibly
-impressed him.
-
-“Father, this thing came suddenly upon me, and surprised me out of my
-self-possession, and the respect that is due to you. I spoke hastily,
-and, I fear, irreverently. I earnestly repent it, and ask your pardon.
-Forgive me,” said Elsie; and she approached, and would have offered
-herself in his embrace; but General Garnet extended his hand, and waved
-her off.
-
-“Do I understand you to say, Miss Garnet, that you repent your foolish
-decision? If so, I am sincerely rejoiced to hear it.”
-
-“No, sir. Always, father, and in all else, I will be your submissive
-child. But for this, sir, you, yourself, laid on me this other duty,
-which I cannot shake off. Forgive me.”
-
-General Garnet looked at her steadily, while gleamed that red light from
-his dark eyes, and slowly shook his head, as communing with himself.
-Then, turning suddenly, and muttering something that sounded very much
-like a threat to “break her will or break her heart,” he left the room;
-and Elsie sank down in her chair, and leaning upon the windowsill,
-raised her eyes to heaven, “full of thought and prayer.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XIX.
- THE DEVOTION OF LOVE.
-
- Oh! sweeter far than wealth, than fame, than all,
- Is first and passionate love; it stands alone.
- _—Byron._
-
-
-There was a much larger, but not so select, a company invited by the
-genial, social Judge Jacky than that assembled by the proud and reserved
-General Garnet. And by “early candle light”—the country hour for
-assembling for a ball—the whole house—parlors, chambers, family rooms,
-and saloon—were crowded to overflowing. The dining room only was kept
-shut up, for there the two long tables were to be set for supper. The
-saloon, or “big room,” as it is plainly called in old-fashioned country
-houses, was blazing with light and splendor, and pealing with music, and
-alive with young men and maidens in ball dresses, laughing, talking,
-wooing, flirting, dancing. It was something like General Garnet’s ball
-on a larger and somewhat coarser scale, it must be confessed, but then
-it was such a joyous, jubilant, exultant scene! The young folks laughed,
-and talked, and danced, and jested with so much gladness and freedom!
-And Judge Jacky moved about laughing, talking, joking, gallanting all
-the ugly old maids, making love to all the low-spirited old widows,
-flattering and complimenting all the plain girls, encouraging all
-shamefaced young gentlemen, and electrifying into jocund life all the
-“flat, stale, and unprofitable” folks in the joyous company.
-
-But it is not with the gay and thoughtless of that merry throng that we
-have to do, but with our great-hearted Magnus and our dear Elsie. You
-know at this moment, just as well as I do, that they both had too much
-on their minds to think of dancing. They had each come to the ball
-chiefly to meet the other and have a talk. General Garnet would
-willingly have kept Elsie away, but he did not think it polite to offend
-Judge Wylie by doing so. But one thing he had taken care to do—to send
-for Lionel Hardcastle to escort her there. And Lionel had ridden in the
-carriage alone with Elsie from Mount Calm to Point Pleasant, and had had
-every opportunity of pursuing a courtship that he had commenced almost
-from the first evening of his return. Elsie cut him short in the midst
-of one of his finest speeches by telling him that he was making love to
-his cousin’s wife—or to one who would be so on Thursday week! Yes, Elsie
-compelled herself to say exactly that to Lionel, to crush his hopes at
-once. On reaching the house at Point Pleasant, Elsie said aloud to
-Magnus, who came out to meet them:
-
-“Dr. Hardcastle, help me to thank your cousin for the kind manner in
-which he has supplied your place in attending me here,” and, bowing
-courteously to Lionel, she took the arm of Magnus and entered the
-saloon.
-
-They were now seated at the farthest extremity of the vast saloon,
-within the bay window. Elsie was looking very beautiful this evening.
-She was dressed in a gossamer white crape, over white satin. Her snowy
-arms and neck were bare, and encircled by diamond bracelets and
-necklace. She was always beautiful, but now her usually happy, joyous
-face was softened and deepened into an expression of serious thought and
-feeling ineffably charming.
-
-They had been conversing. Elsie had told him all that had passed between
-herself and her father. And Magnus had recounted a similar scene that
-had taken place between himself and General Garnet. He had, as Elsie
-had, asserted his determination to abide by their betrothal. He repeated
-the same thing to Elsie now. It was this—this saving of her heart’s
-fondest hopes amid the crash of fortune—that made Elsie feel and look so
-very blessed.
-
-They were still conversing. He raised her hand—she had an exquisitely
-beautiful hand, elegantly shaped, and white as snow, and now diamond
-rings sparkled upon it; appropriate ornaments for it, as one may see.
-Well, he raised that small, white, jeweled hand, and looking tenderly,
-half-remorsefully upon it, said—and his voice was full-toned and
-melodious with love and sorrow:
-
-“This tiny, snow-white hand, sparkling with diamonds—this fresh, pure,
-delicate thing!—a jewel itself!—how can it be put to the uses to which
-my wife’s hand must be put, Elsie?”
-
-She looked at him with passionate devotion, saying:
-
-“Take the jewels off and cast them from thee, Magnus—do!”
-
-“And this slender wrist—you have such a beautiful arm, Elsie! What a
-round, full, graceful curve from the elbow to the forearm, and how
-elegantly it tapers off to the slender wrist! Ah! this arm, so pure and
-fresh, so well decked with this sparkling diamond bracelet—like icicles
-upon snow! How will it support labor?”
-
-“The bracelet offends you, too? It was my father’s birthday gift; but I
-like it no longer—it offends you. Take it off and cast it from you.
-Press your thumb and finger around my arm instead. Press it tightly, so
-that you will leave a ring there. It will be a red bracelet—or even a
-black one; so that when I can no longer see you, I may close my eyes,
-and, feeling the impress of your fingers, cheat my heart with the fancy
-that you still grasp my wrist with a sweet violence. It will be another
-dearer bracelet that I will wear in remembrance of you. Oh, don’t you
-know I understand now the enthusiasm of the saints?”
-
-“Dearest Elsie, let us go forth from here. The light, the glare, the
-crowd, the noise here is insufferable. Let us go forth in the fresh air
-under the light of the holy stars. Come, love! My heart hungers, faints,
-to press you to itself. Come, love!” And opening a leaf of the bay
-window, he led her forth. It was a mild, clear, beautiful starlight
-night for the season, yet the air was chill, and Elsie was lightly clad.
-He looked at her and glanced around. The lighted window of a sitting
-room in the angle of the building showed that apartment to be vacant. He
-led her there. It was one of those small, conical wainscoted parlors so
-common in old houses. A fine fire was burning in the chimney, and a
-little old-fashioned green settee drawn up on one side of the fireplace.
-The room had an air of delightful snugness, comfort, and repose. He led
-her to this sofa and seated himself beside her, opened his arms, and
-whispered: “Come to my bosom, my own soul’s love!” and folded her
-closely there. “Elsie, my pure, fresh, delicate, elegant Elsie, can you
-go with me indeed to share my lot of poverty and struggle? Oh, Elsie! if
-you do, will you never repent? Oh, Elsie! do you know what poverty is?
-Born and brought up in luxury and wealth, do you know what poverty is?
-Oh, Elsie, my little idealist, there is no poetry in poverty. Oh, Elsie,
-my little epicurienne, every sense is shocked and tortured in poverty.
-You see unsightly things, you hear discordant sounds, you come in
-contact with roughness, you partake of coarse food; oh, Elsie! ideality
-is wounded and saddened, sense is shocked, and love itself, perhaps,
-revolted!”
-
-“Never! oh, never!” she said fervently.
-
-“Oh, Elsie! my bright, beautiful Elsie! my delicate, elegant Elsie! I am
-worse than an executioner to marry you. I feel it, and yet I shall do
-it. God knows that I will have you, and let the future take care of
-itself!” he said, pressing her strongly to his bosom.
-
-“Yes, have me, have me; let me be always with you. It will be bliss
-ineffable. I should die if you were to leave me. My heart would consume
-itself in its own fires. I do not care for wealth, or rank, or
-distinction, or for ease or luxury. I only care for the wealth and
-luxury of your affection, and your constant society. I do not fear to
-have ‘ideality wounded and saddened.’ No, for the soul creates its own
-poetry. I do not fear to have every sense shocked. I do not fear to live
-amid unsightly objects and discordant sounds, and rough contacts; oh,
-no, for the soul creates its own heaven of beauty and harmony. I do not
-fear to have love revolted. Oh! no, no, no! I only fear a separation
-from you. My whole being trembling, tends toward you—so strong, as it
-would lose itself in you. Shut out the world, shut out light and sound,
-only let me feel your arms around me, pressing my bosom to your heart as
-now. All my life is compressed within my heart, and it is bursting to
-meet yours. I am blind, deaf, dead to all but you. I have scarcely self
-enough to say ‘I have no self.’ I love myself in you. Oh, my greater
-self! my larger life!”
-
-So the softly flushed and moist cheeks, the heavy, liquid eyes, and the
-palpitating bosom said, but no word escaped the parted and glowing lips.
-Nor could a word have escaped between the kisses that were pressed upon
-them. Then he released her, and they sat upon the old-fashioned sofa by
-the glowing hickory fire in the old wainscoted parlor, and, hand in
-hand, talked. Oh, how they talked! Sometimes with profound earnestness,
-sometimes with light and bantering gayety.
-
-“Yet you have had many admirers, Elsie,” said Magnus.
-
-“Have I?” she asked.
-
-“Oh, Elsie, you know that you have.”
-
-“I try not to know it.”
-
-“Why, dearest?”
-
-“Because I wish I was an Eastern bride for you. Oh, yes! I wish that I
-had been reared in conventual seclusion, that no man’s eye had seen me
-until my husband came to claim me; that, then, I could have gone apart
-from the world and seen only him. That would have been exquisite; that
-would have been blissful; for I do not want admiration; I want only your
-heart’s approval! There would be such intense and concentrated joy in
-knowing only you. My joy would be diluted if my heart were divided among
-many.”
-
-“But your numerous admirers, dearest?”
-
-“Oh, my numerous admirers! I did not finesse when I asked you if I
-really had any; for, in truth, my ‘admirers’ never came near enough to
-me to breathe their admiration.”
-
-“Why was that? How was that? Tell me.”
-
-“Look in my eyes, love, and read your answer there. Peruse my heart,
-love. It lies open to you as a book.”
-
-“Nay, tell me. I love to hear you talk. It delights me to listen to you.
-Tell me now. It is some sweet secret that will give me heaven to know.
-Come, love, be generous. Breathe the secret out upon my bosom,” he
-whispered softly, and drew her again to his heart. “Come, love——”
-
-“Yes, I will. I will repress this feeling of reluctance, and tell you
-all my thoughts. Yes, for surely I feel you have a right to have an
-answer to any question you ask me, my higher self. Listen, then. Bend
-low, for I shall whisper very low, lest the air around should hear me.
-When you first drew me on to love you, when leaf by leaf my heart
-unfolded and developed under the life-giving warmth of your eyes, of
-your touch, just as a rose buds and blossoms under the rays of its
-sovereign, the sun—my heart, I mean, or something rising within
-it—taught me many mysteries that neither prophet, priest, nor sage could
-have taught me. Among other things, it revealed to me the knowledge of
-all that would please and all that would displease you in myself, and
-impelled me to follow the first and eschew the last. It made me wish to
-isolate myself for you. It killed the very first germ of vanity in my
-heart, and made me wish that none should come near enough to me to know
-whether I were beautiful or otherwise, far less so near as to tell me of
-it. It made me shrink from all those little gallantries from gentlemen
-which make up so large a portion of a belle’s life. I was so afraid of
-being found unworthy of you when you should take me. I should not have
-felt good enough for you if my hand, that awaited your hand, had been
-squeezed and kissed, and my waist, that awaited the dear girdle of this
-arm—fold it closer around me now—had been pressed, and I, your expectant
-bride, had been twined and whirled about in the giddy waltz. But none of
-these things have happened to me. I come to you almost an Oriental bride
-for exclusiveness, and that makes me so happy. I should have else been
-unhappy, should else have been unworthy of you.”
-
-All this was murmured slowly, softly, dreamily, as though the truth
-stole out of a slumbering heart, while she lay upon his bosom, and the
-last words were breathed forth in an almost inaudible sigh. But he
-answered with passionate vehemence, clasping her to his heart:
-
-“Unworthy of me! You! so beautiful! so good! so intellectual!—save when
-your highest intellect is whelmed in feeling!—yet, no—your highest
-intelligence—your spirit—is never so whelmed! You, the heiress of the
-haughtiest family in Maryland—and I—who am I?”
-
-“My greater self! my life-giver!—by these titles only I know you. Does
-my rank and fortune offend you? Pluck me away from them; for I am yours.
-Bury me with yourself, in some lone forest cabin, in the wilderness,
-whither your footsteps tend; and there my hunter’s wife will forget the
-world, while preparing the cabin for his return at eve. And she will not
-think the hours of his absence long, for they will be filled with
-fervent thoughts of him. Oh, that hunter’s lodge in the wild! I see it
-even in my dreams!”
-
-And this was not romance; but the passionate fanaticism of first, of
-early love.
-
-“Oh, Elsie! how you talk!” he exclaimed, gazing on her eloquent face
-with wonder, reverence, and passion.
-
-She blushed deeply, and bowed her crimson brow upon his bosom,
-murmuring:
-
-“Do I? I am sorry. I suppose maidens do not talk so; do they?”
-
-“I do not know how maidens do or should talk, any more than you do,”
-answered Magnus, and then a singular expression passed over his
-countenance. He bent his gaze upon her, with a look of profound thought
-and searching inquiry, as though to read the depths of that heart she
-had so freely laid open to his perusal. And he said, very seriously: “I
-do not know how maidens talk, for I have spoken with but one maiden
-before of love.” He paused and gazed down deeply into her eyes, as if to
-read her most hidden thought and feeling—possibly he expected to see
-some trace of jealousy there—he saw only the calm, profound repose of
-love, deep joy, and infinite trust. He resumed: “I never talked with but
-one maiden of love before; she was my first love.” Again he looked down,
-and saw upon her beautiful face the same ineffable peace. He continued:
-“I loved her passionately. I lost her. It nearly maddened me.” For the
-last time he gazed down upon her, as she lay quietly over his arm, with
-her face turned up to his, but her whole countenance radiated with a
-sort of calm, rapt ecstasy, as though she were then in the possession of
-all the bliss possible on earth. He gazed for a moment, full of
-astonishment, and then quietly asked: “Is it possible that this gives
-you no uneasiness, my love?”
-
-“Does what?”
-
-“The thought of my first love.”
-
-“No, dearest. Why should it?”
-
-“‘Why should it?’ What a question. Why should it not?”
-
-“I don’t know, I am sure. When I do, I’ll tell you.”
-
-“Yet,” said Magnus thoughtfully, “though the idea of my having had a
-first love gives you no pain, you felicitated yourself and me very much
-upon the fact of your having had no other lover.”
-
-“Oh, that was a very different thing. Don’t you feel that it was?”
-
-“Yes; I feel it. But tell me now—think—why is it that the thought of my
-first love does not distress you?”
-
-“Indeed, I do not know at all. I only know by the sure inspiration of my
-soul, and feel in every nerve of my body, that you love me; and I am so
-ineffably blessed.”
-
-“My darling Elsie!” he said, joyously kissing the lids down upon her two
-sweet eyes. “My darling Elsie, you are not selfish or jealous for
-yourself at all. I only wished to probe your heart a little. You were so
-jealous for me that I thought perhaps you might be so for yourself. You
-are not, my darling Elsie; my light of life! You are the only woman I
-ever loved! Yet, dearest, I told you no fiction. You, yourself, were
-‘the maiden to whom I spoke before of love.’ But it was soon after you
-returned from school. You, yourself, were the maiden whom I lost,—for a
-little while, during our short misunderstanding,—and whose loss nearly
-maddened me. Oh, come! enter the heart of hearts, and live there
-forever!” He clasped her closer, and they subsided into silence, or
-conversed only with their eyes.
-
-Long, long they remained in that still trance of joy, but at last Elsie
-withdrew herself, laughing, from his arms, sat down beside him, and they
-began to talk of their future home. He told her it would be indeed a
-cabin in the backwoods of Maryland; but not a hunter’s cabin, as she
-fancifully supposed. Oh, no! but a country doctor’s dwelling, in a new
-settlement. And that he would not return at eve in the hunter’s
-picturesque costume, with a gun and a nine-antlered deer across his
-shoulders, but upon the back of a stout mule, with a country doctor’s
-saddle-bags behind him. How would she like that?
-
-“Oh, very well, dearest Magnus! for then you will be saving life instead
-of taking it. Oh, yes, I do like—I do love—your profession, Magnus.
-Since you must have one, I like it better than any other you could have
-chosen. I think physicians do more disinterested good than any other set
-of men on earth. I will not even except the preachers. Oh, yes! I do
-love your profession, dear Magnus, and love you better, if possible, for
-being a poor country doctor. God love and bless you! When you shall have
-come home tired, from your long round—oh, you shall have sweet repose,
-love—indeed you shall! God bids me to assure you that you shall.
-Whatever our cabin home may be, I can make it a little haven of repose—a
-little heaven of bliss for you. Oh, indeed I do not fear; my whole full
-soul assures me that we shall be happy and victorious over fate. Let me
-kiss your eyes—you kissed mine just now, so sweetly. God bless those
-grand eyes! Oh, Magnus, can a cabin or a garb of homespun hide the
-light, the greatness that is in you? Oh, Magnus, I saw a king and
-several princes of the blood when I was presented at court by General
-Armstrong; but their foreheads were low and receding, their presence had
-the strut without the dignity of majesty. Oh, Magnus, their kingly crown
-could not have given either that magnificent forehead of yours. Oh,
-Magnus, there is something greater in you than any surrounding you can
-have. Do not any more dread that I shall be either pained or revolted at
-anything in the circumstances of our condition. The rough walls of a log
-cabin will not shock or sadden me.”
-
-“No, darling, for the rough walls of our log cabin, like the rough bark
-of an oak tree, has something really picturesque about it; but”—said he,
-in a half-sorrowful, half-comic way—“the pots and kettles, the mops and
-brooms!”
-
-“What! the humble little household gods and goddesses that set up no
-pretension to worship, or even to honorable mention, and yet confer so
-much benefit? No, indeed. I have a kindly feeling for all such. Mine, if
-they can’t be beautiful, shall be neat and pretty. Oh, don’t you
-remember when we were children, and used to run in out of the snow to
-old Aunt Polly’s kitchen, and how she’d press us in to help her every
-time she could? Oh, I know a great deal about cooking, and I always had
-a turn for housekeeping.”
-
-He arose, took her hand, and raised her up, and looked at her from head
-to foot, as she stood—that delicate, beautiful girl, in her elegant ball
-dress of gossamer crape over white satin, diamonds sparkling on her arms
-and neck, as he had said, like icicles upon snow. He surveyed her, from
-her white rose-wreathed auburn hair to the tip of the white satin
-slipper. He clasped her hand, and looked at it.
-
-“I know,” she said, “what you are thinking of again—‘Elsie must doff
-this dress, and this style of dress, for some years to come’; but do not
-fear, within ten years, and by the time that the beauty of your love has
-matured, Elsie will weave a more elegant dress than this, when her
-husband’s talents shall have ‘achieved greatness.’ And this little hand
-that you look at so fondly, so sadly—‘this pure, fresh, delicate thing,
-a jewel itself,’ as you called it just now—under this soft, white
-cushion of flesh are nerves and sinews of steel. I am very strong, dear
-Magnus, very strong every way. And I can work; this hand shall toil and
-retain its beauty, because you prize it, too.”
-
-He clasped her again to his breast, and drew her white arms up around
-his neck. And then that notion of isolation came upon her again like a
-fond superstition, and she whispered:
-
-“I do not want neighbors or friends where we live, love. I want only
-you. I want no one that can take me off from you. It is late. Shall I
-go?”
-
-“Yes, dear love,” she answered, untwining her arms from about his neck.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XX.
- ELSIE IN THE ATTIC.
-
- To-night, when my head aches indeed,
- And I can either think nor read,
- And these blue fingers will not hold
- The pen—(this attic’s freezing cold)—
- I tell you, I pace up and down
- This garret, crowned with love’s best crown,
- And feasted with love’s perfect feast,
- To think I bear for him at least.
- _—Browning._
-
-
-When they re-entered the ballroom the revelry was still at its height.
-Six cotillions were on the floor.
-
-Judge Jacky was flying about, now here and now there, now everywhere at
-once.
-
-Ambrosia Wylie, in a gold-colored satin, that harmonized well with her
-warm-hued tone of beauty, sat in the bay window, the sunny center of a
-system of satellites.
-
-General Garnet, who had got through with the political business that
-detained him at Huttontown, had just arrived, and was now standing
-apart, conversing with Lionel Hardcastle. He frowned darkly on seeing
-Elsie enter the room leaning on the arm of Magnus, and both looking so
-self-possessed, confident, and happy.
-
-He smoothed his brow quickly, however, excused himself to Lionel, and
-advanced toward them. Bowing slightly to Magnus, he took the arm of
-Elsie, and saying that he wished to have a conversation with her, drew
-her off for a promenade.
-
-In going off, Elsie turned, smiled on Magnus, and said:
-
-“If I do not return in half an hour, Dr. Hardcastle, you must seek me
-out,” and, bowing playfully, she went on.
-
-“Was that done to insult me, Miss Garnet?”
-
-“No, dearest father, it was done out of respect to Dr. Hardcastle; as
-you forgot to excuse yourself to him for taking me off so abruptly, it
-would have been scarcely courteous in me to have left him without a
-word. We would not have treated a common acquaintance so, father.”
-
-“A common acquaintance! And pray what more is Dr. Hardcastle entitled
-henceforth to be considered?”
-
-“As my husband, and as your son-in-law, father.”
-
-General Garnet turned pale, and spoke low, with suppressed rage:
-
-“Your husband, and my son-in-law! I—would—see—him—and—you—in the lowest
-pit of h——l first!”
-
-Elsie gave a violent start as this awful word struck her like a bullet.
-It was the more awful, that Elsie had never known her father to forget
-himself so far before. Violence shocked her, profanity revolted her; she
-was unaccustomed to either. Her father, even in his tyranny, was
-habitually polite. Her mother was ever gentle. Fury, threats, were
-strange to her; and now came this terrible burst of passion, the more
-terrible for its half suppression. She gazed at him in alarm. His face
-was white with anger, but it reminded her of the white ashes upon a
-burning coal. He continued in the same deep, stern tone:
-
-“How dared you even receive that young man’s attentions, after I have
-withdrawn my countenance of him?”
-
-“Father, because his attentions were my right and his right. Who else,
-in your absence, could have attended me with so much propriety?” asked
-Elsie, trembling in her flesh, but firm in her spirit.
-
-“Do not commit the impertinence of answering my question by asking
-another again, Miss Garnet. A question which, impertinent as it was, I
-will answer. ‘Who,’ you inquire, ‘in my absence, could have attended you
-with so much propriety?’ I reply, Mr. Lionel Hardcastle, the gentleman
-under whose protection I placed you for the evening.”
-
-“And who wickedly abused his position by addressing the words of love to
-one whom he knew to be Dr. Hardcastle’s betrothed wife.”
-
-“Death! if you say that again,” exclaimed General Garnet, trembling with
-fury.
-
-“And whom,” continued Elsie, frightened, but resolute, “I had therefore
-to dismiss as soon as I found Dr. Hardcastle.”
-
-He grasped her arm with a violence that might have crushed it. He set
-his teeth, and drew his breath hard. He could not shake or beat her
-there—not in that room full of company—among those hundreds of people.
-He could not even let them see the rage that was on the eve of
-explosion.
-
-He looked around. Seeing Lionel Hardcastle at a short distance, he
-beckoned him to approach, and, without relinquishing his vise-like grip,
-said, in a deep, hurried tone:
-
-“Do me the favor to call my carriage, sir, instantly, if you please.”
-
-Lionel opened his soft, bright eyes in a look of wide surprise, turned
-on Elsie a gaze of mingled admiration, sorrow, and deprecation, and,
-bowing to General Garnet, moved off to comply with his request.
-
-General Garnet grasped Elsie’s arm with a suppressed fierceness, and
-pulled her after him into the hall, thence out into the portico, and
-down the steps to the carriage door. Pushing her forcibly in, he jumped
-in after, pulled to the door, commanded the coachman to drive rapidly
-for Mount Calm, and was soon whirled away on the road to that place. He
-maintained a stern silence toward Elsie during the whole ride.
-
-Arrived at Mount Calm, he sprang from the carriage, took Elsie out, drew
-her arm roughly within his own, and pulled her up the steps.
-
-“Has your mistress retired?” was the first question he asked of the
-servant at the door. The man started at the fierce abruptness of his
-master’s tone and manner, and replied hurriedly that she had.
-
-“It is very well. Go wake up the housekeeper; ask her for the keys of
-the attic-room, and bring them to me yourself, with a night-lamp.”
-
-The man hurried away in dismay. And General Garnet remained there, still
-with his violent grasp upon Elsie’s arm. When the servant returned with
-the bunch of keys and the light:
-
-“Precede me upstairs, and on up into the attic,” said General Garnet;
-and grasping Elsie more tightly, he fiercely hurried her on, till they
-reached the first floor, and the wide hall into which the family
-chambers opened.
-
-“Father, this is my chamber door. I wish to retire,” said Elsie,
-pointing to the door on her left. But her father hurried her past it.
-
-The servant was now going up the attic steps, but paused to look down
-upon the scene.
-
-“Father, what are you about to do?” asked Elsie, holding back. Her
-attire had been very much disordered by the violence with which she had
-been hurried in, her cloak and hood had fallen off below stairs; now her
-beautiful dress was tumbled, and her hair in wild disorder. “What are
-you going to do, father?” she asked again, drawing back.
-
-But he turned upon her sharply, shook her furiously, as though he would
-have shaken the life from out her; and then seeing the horrified gaze of
-the servant standing on the stairs, he exclaimed, “Up into the attic,
-and wait for me there, instantly, sirrah. And consider yourself already
-sold to a trader, for your insolence in watching me!”
-
-The appalled servant vanished up the steps, and the unmasked tyrant
-turned to Elsie, and tightening the grasp that he had never
-relinquished, dragged her to the foot of the attic stairs. Here the girl
-sank with all her weight upon him, upheld only by his hand.
-
-“Up, up the stairs with you!” he exclaimed fiercely.
-
-Elsie had too much physical strength to swoon, and too much presence of
-mind to scream. She would not have terrified her poor mother to no good
-purpose. Yet her agitation was so great, with augmented astonishment and
-terror, that she could not move.
-
-He seized her violently, drew her up the stairs until they had reached
-the narrow attic passage, and commanding the negro to unlock the door
-that stood before them, forced her into the room; dismissed the servant,
-locked the door on the inside, and turned upon her. Elsie had dropped
-into an old flag-bottomed armchair, where she sat shivering with cold
-and fear. He turned upon the delicate and trembling girl fiercely,
-scornfully, triumphantly, tauntingly, as if she had been some rough male
-adversary in his power. He placed the key in his pocket, buttoned up his
-overcoat, and stood looking at her with a bitter, sarcastic laugh,
-saying:
-
-“You have insulted and provoked me sufficiently this evening, Miss
-Garnet! You were very happy and confident an hour ago. What do you think
-of your prospects now?”
-
-Elsie shuddered and was silent.
-
-“Can you escape from this room? Will you jump from one of those windows
-and fall a hundred feet? Will your lover find a ladder long enough to
-reach you? I think not. Can you break that lock? I think not. Will you
-bribe your jailer? I think not; for I shall be your jailer myself. No
-one else shall enter this room. And now listen to me,” and taking a
-chair, he sat down before her, and said in a hard, harsh voice, “I do
-not care one jot for all the miserable, contemptible love sentiment in
-the world; I never did! I do not believe in it. I never did! But that
-which I want, and that which I will have, is the union of these two
-joining estates, Mount Calm and Hemlock Hollow. That project is as dear
-to old Mr. Hardcastle as it is to me. It was for that reason, and not
-upon account of any trifling, mutual predilection of yours, that we were
-about to negotiate a marriage between my daughter and his nephew, when
-fortunately Lionel came home in time to arrest the execution of the
-plan; of course it was perfectly easy to see what then became the duty
-of all parties.”
-
-“Fidelity,” said Elsie in a low voice.
-
-General Garnet laughed tauntingly, and continued without further notice
-of her reply:
-
-“The young man who was to inherit the estate was to have the bride. It
-mattered nothing to me whether that were Magnus or Lionel; but the hand
-of my heiress was to be bestowed upon the heir of Hemlock Hollow. That
-was the treaty. So I reminded old Mr. Hardcastle. He remembered that it
-really was so, and fully and entirely agreed with me. Young Lionel
-Hardcastle is also conformable. You only are contumacious. But I have
-pledged myself to your consent, and, by Heaven, you shall redeem my
-pledge. Listen, minion! You never leave this room until you leave it as
-the wife of Lionel Hardcastle. Curious place for a marriage ceremony!
-but, come, it does not matter; we can have the wedding afterward. You
-were to be the wife of Dr. Hardcastle, as you very respectfully call
-him, on Thursday week. Ha! ha! ha! Come, what do you think of your
-prospects of marrying him now?”
-
-“Father, as far as my marriage with Dr. Hardcastle on Thursday week is
-concerned, my fate has gone out of my hands and into God’s! I have no
-more to say about that.”
-
-“Ha! ha! I should think not. Not quite so confident as you were an hour
-ago, hey?”
-
-“But, father, forgive me for reminding you that as far as marriage with
-any other person is concerned, that is entirely in my hands for refusal.
-Church and State very properly make the bride’s consent an indispensable
-preliminary to marriage, and even a vital part of the marriage ceremony.
-And my consent can never be gained to marry Lionel.”
-
-“Ha! my pretty piece of stubbornness, we shall see. Pray, do you
-know—have you ever felt the power of solitary imprisonment, cold, and
-hunger, in bringing a contumacious girl to docility?”
-
-Elsie’s face flushed, more for him than herself.
-
-He continued:
-
-“For all those mighty engines can I spring upon you! And will I, by
-Satan and all his hosts!”
-
-“Father, you may do that, and nature may faint and succumb to their
-power. I am very strong, but those things you threaten me with may be
-stronger still. But, father, if ever I am left with strength enough to
-stand before the minister with Lionel Hardcastle by my side, when that
-minister shall ask me whether I will promise to love, honor, and obey
-him till death, I shall answer, ‘No, I do not love him, I never did, I
-never shall. If I stand here to be married to him, it is to please my
-father, his father, and not myself! And so I cannot tell a falsehood,
-far less vow one in God’s presence about it. I love Dr. Hardcastle, to
-whom you all know that I have been long engaged. I always did love him,
-and always shall,’ and then let the minister of God marry us, if he
-durst.”
-
-With a furious oath he sprang upon her—seized her—the idea of strangling
-her upon the instant darted through his brain; but he only shook her
-with frenzied violence, and holding her in his terrible grip, said, with
-a husky voice and ashen cheek, and gleaming eye:
-
-“If you were to do so, girl, as God in heaven hears me, I would kill
-you!”
-
-And she felt to the very core of her shuddering heart that he told the
-truth. Then he dropped her, and threw himself out of the room, leaving
-her there, half dead with cold and fright, in the miserably bleak attic,
-without a spark of fire or light, for the lamp had been blown out by the
-fury with which her father had banged the door.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXI.
- CRUELTY—A CHAMBER SCENE.
-
- Thou knowest not the meekness of love,
- How it suffers and yet can be still—
- How the calm on its surface may prove
- What sorrow the bosom may fill.
- _—Mrs. Ellis._
-
-
-Early the next morning Mrs. Garnet arose softly, without awaking the
-general, and thrusting her small feet in wadded slippers, and drawing on
-her wadded dressing-gown, passed into her daughter’s chamber for the
-purpose of looking silently upon her while she slept, to see whether she
-bore the fatigue of the ball well. She went in softly, drew the curtains
-of the bedstead, and to her surprise, found that it had not been slept
-in. Her first thought, of course, was that Elsie had remained all night
-at Point Pleasant.
-
-She felt disappointed, and returned immediately to her own chamber, rang
-for her maid, and proceeded with her morning toilet.
-
-Her maid, Milly, entered, bearing on her arm the cloak and hood that
-Elsie had worn to Point Pleasant, and afterward dropped while being
-dragged through the passage. Mrs. Garnet gazed at her in fixed
-astonishment, saying:
-
-“Why, where did you get those, Milly? Is it possible that your Miss
-Elsie has returned so early this morning? Where is she?”
-
-“Miss Elsie returned last night, missis, and must have dropped these in
-the passage, for that is where I found them.”
-
-“Returned last night! Her bed has not been occupied! Where is she?”
-exclaimed Mrs. Garnet, dropping the long mass of golden curls that she
-had been twisting into a knot, and standing aghast with vague terror.
-“Where is she? What is the meaning of this? Why do you look so
-strangely? Oh, my God! what has happened to my child? Speak this moment,
-Milly! What do you know of it?”
-
-“I thought you must a’ known, Miss Ally; marster’s locked her up in the
-garret.”
-
-All the blood of the Chesters rushed to the brow of Alice, and crimsoned
-it.
-
-“Locked Elsie up in the attic!” she exclaimed. Then: “Give me the keys!
-Where are they? Bring me the keys instantly!”
-
-“Please, Miss Ally, marster took the garret key off of the bunch, and
-put it in his pocket.”
-
-“Leave me, Milly. Go! Hasten! Go downstairs! I don’t want you this
-morning,” said Alice, conscious of having betrayed too much emotion in
-the presence of her servant.
-
-Milly left the room, and Alice hastened, with a flushed brow, and
-trembling hand, to the big armchair at the head of the bed, over the
-back of which hung the general’s clothing that he had worn the night
-before. Alice searched all the pockets of the overcoat in vain. And she
-took up the dress coat.
-
-But while Alice was hunting for the key, the general had risen upon his
-elbow, and, unseen by her, was watching her motions with a demoniac
-leer.
-
-Alice searched all the pockets of the dress coat, and it was not there.
-Then she raised the vest, and in the pocket found the key. She seized it
-eagerly, and was about to fly off with it when a heavy blow felled her
-to the floor! The key dropped from her hand. General Garnet stooped and
-repossessed himself of it, and looking at her with a laughing devil in
-his eye, said:
-
-“Oh, was that you? Excuse me, madam! I beg ten thousand pardons; but
-waking up suddenly, and seeing a hand in my pocket, I naturally enough
-supposed it to be that of a thief! It’s Heaven’s mercy that I had not
-shot you by mistake, my dear!”
-
-But seeing that she did not move, he leaned further over the side of the
-bed, and perceived that in falling the back of her head had struck the
-corner of the dressing bureau, and that she was stunned by the
-concussion—stunned or dead, he did not know which. He jumped to the
-floor and raised her. Her head and limbs fell helplessly over his arms.
-He laid her on the bed, ran his fingers through the golden tresses of
-her hair, but found no fracture; there might be a concussion of the
-brain, but there was no outward sign.
-
-He started to the bell to ring it, but before he got there changed his
-mind and returned, locked the door, went to the bureau, and taking a
-couple of linen handkerchiefs, tore them in strips, and took a lancet
-from his case (all planters kept such things for the exigencies of the
-plantation). He then went to the bedside, ripped up the sleeve of
-Alice’s dress, and baring the arm, opened a vein. As the blood began to
-flow—first very sluggishly, then faster—she opened her eyes and looked
-at him. He then bound up her arm, and telling her that he hoped this
-sharp lesson would teach her the danger of opposing his will again, left
-her and proceeded to dress himself.
-
-Alice attempted to rise, but her head grew dizzy, her eyes dim, and she
-sank back at the same moment that he sternly bade her be still, and not
-venture to leave her bed that day. He dressed, and left the chamber.
-
-At noon General Garnet returned and entered the room, and approaching
-the bedside asked Alice how she felt.
-
-“Only drowsy, inclined to sleep while lying down, but sick and dizzy and
-blind when I attempt to rise.”
-
-“If that be the case, you must not, upon any account, yield to that
-inclination to sleep. It is dangerous; you must rise and sit up.”
-
-“I cannot—I wish I could—I cannot. I turn deadly sick as soon as my head
-is lifted.”
-
-“Alice—I—think I must bleed you again,” he said, taking out the lancet
-and baring her arm. Then he hesitated a moment; he doubted whether this
-second bleeding would be right, but he resolved to risk it rather than
-risk the exposure of their secret by sending for a physician. He opened
-the vein again, and while the blood was trickling, looked so full of
-solicitude that Alice felt sorry for him, and said:
-
-“Never mind; don’t you know I knew it was an accident—the striking of my
-head against the bureau.” She now looked so much better again that he
-ventured to say, as he bound up her arm:
-
-“I hope, Alice, that this will be a profitable lesson to you, at least.
-Consider. You—you might have been killed.” Then he raised her in a
-sitting posture, propped pillows behind her, took a seat in the big
-chair, and said: “This is really a trifle as it turns out, Alice. This
-dizziness will soon pass away if you sit up. Only, I hope, as I said
-before, that this will be a warning to you, for it might have been much
-more serious, or even fatal. It is dangerous, Alice, dangerous to rebel
-either by stratagem or force against just authority. And, now listen,
-for I wish to talk to you of Elsie for two reasons—first, to keep you
-from falling into an injurious sleep; and, secondly, to let you know my
-reason for confining her, and my plans and purposes toward her.”
-
-And then General Garnet, for the first time, openly avowed to his wife
-his fixed determination to break off forever the projected marriage
-between Magnus and Elsie, and to bestow the hand of the latter upon
-Lionel Hardcastle, giving her his reasons in full for doing so, and
-declaring his intention to keep Elsie confined until her consent was
-obtained, and to take her then from her room at once to the altar, that
-no deception might be practiced. Alice dreaded lest he should ask her
-opinion, or her co-operation. Fortunately for her, he did not consider
-either of the least importance, and soon rising, left the room and went
-down to dinner.
-
-Alice pressed both hands to her head and groaned forth the prayer:
-
-“Oh, God! guide me aright through this labyrinth of crossing duties,
-lest I lose my way!”
-
-In the afternoon General Garnet went out again.
-
-And soon after he was gone Milly entered her mistress’ chamber and put
-in her hand a little slip of paper, which she said Elsie had given her
-as she handed in her dinner.
-
-Alice took it eagerly. It was the flyleaf of her pocket prayer-book, and
-on it was picked with a pin the sentence:
-
-“Say something to me, beloved mother.”
-
-Alice asked for a pencil, and wrote:
-
-“To-morrow I will write, dear child.” And then the pencil dropped from
-her hand. “Milly, when you take her supper up, give her that,” she said,
-and closed her eyes from exhaustion.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXII.
- MARRIAGE.
-
- Take her, and be faithful still,
- And may the marriage vow
- Be sacred kept in after years,
- And fondly breathed as now.
- _—Old Song._
-
-
-The next morning, after General Garnet had left the house—for the whole
-day—Alice arose, still dizzy and weak, not only from the effects of the
-blow, but from fasting and anxiety. She was scarcely seated in her chair
-when a letter was brought to her that had come in the mail-bag from the
-post office. It was superscribed in the handwriting of Dr. Hardcastle.
-Alice tore it open, and read a much longer epistle than I can find space
-to transcribe here, reader, but the sum total of it was this: Magnus
-informed his friend Alice of what she already knew—General Garnet’s
-expressed determination to break the engagement existing between himself
-and Elsie, for mere mercenary motives; of his own and Elsie’s fixed
-resolution to abide by their betrothal, and his hopes that their
-decision would meet her—Alice’s—approval. He told her of his wish that
-their marriage should take place on Thursday, as had been first
-proposed; and of his intention to depart on the following Monday for his
-home, among the new settlements in the backwoods of Maryland. He told
-her, farther, that he had called the day before to see her and Elsie,
-but that he had been refused admittance at the very threshold, the
-servants adducing their master’s commands as their warrant. He had
-heard, he said, that Elsie was immured, but hoped and believed that this
-was not so. He concluded by entreating Alice to write and inform him of
-her own and Elsie’s state of health and spirits, and advise him how to
-proceed.
-
-Alice folded the letter, clasped her hands, and closed her eyes a moment
-in intense thought and prayer. Then, bidding Milly wheel her writing
-table before her, she took pen and paper, and wrote the following short
-but important note:
-
- “DEAR MAGNUS:
-
- “As soon as you see this, go to a locksmith and send him instantly to
- me. Then get a carriage, procure your license, call at Fig’s to take
- up the young Methodist minister who boards there, and come at once to
- Mount Calm. When you return, Elsie shall accompany you.
-
- “Your friend,
- “ALICE GARNET.”
-
-She sealed this note, dispatched it, and then dropped her head into her
-hands, holding it tightly, as though to chain thought to its object.
-Then once more she drew her writing-desk nearer to her, took her pen,
-and wrote these hurried lines to Elsie:
-
- “Within a very few hours from this, my own dear Elsie, you will be
- released and married. And now let me tell you, my own dear child, my
- reasons for advising and aiding you in this step. It is not only, my
- Elsie, that your heart has long been given to Magnus; that your hand
- has long been pledged to him with the approbation of both your
- parents; that your happiness is concerned in being united to him; that
- your honor is implicated in keeping faith with him; it is not, either,
- that it would be a heinous wickedness to forsake your betrothed at the
- very moment that fortune forsakes him, and in the hour of his greatest
- adversity; it is not that this very desertion of yours would shake his
- faith in all that is good and true in heaven or on earth, palsy his
- energy and enterprise, and thus do him a serious mortal and social
- injury. And, on the other hand, it is not that you do not love Lionel.
- No, Elsie, it is simply because Magnus is entirely the better man of
- the two,—better, incomparably better,—physically, mentally, morally,
- religiously. Magnus is healthful, strong, handsome, energetic, highly
- intellectual, purely moral, profoundly religious; and he loves you
- completely. Lionel is broken in constitution, evidently by excess;
- indolent, selfish, voluptuous, yet irritable and often violent. His
- interest in you is a low compound of vanity, cupidity, and sense—it
- would be false and profane to call it by the sacred name of love.
- Magnus would make you better and happier, in loving you greatly, in
- elevating your moral and religious nature, while Lionel would draw you
- down to the misery and degradation of his own low nature. My child, my
- one lone child, it is for this consideration that I bar you from
- wealth, luxury, ease, adulation, and give you to the stern but kindly
- discipline of poverty, toil, and privation—with love by your side, to
- lighten all your labors and God above you to reward them. May God love
- you, my only child! my little Elsie!”
-
-No tear-drop blotted this paper, though her tears had fallen thick, and
-fast, and blindingly, while she wrote it. She had turned her head away;
-for no sign of sorrow should wound and weaken Elsie in the letter
-written to comfort and sustain her. She had turned her head away, and
-the tears had rained upon her lap. Many times she had arisen from her
-writing desk and fallen, overcome with grief, upon the bed. But it was
-done. She had succeeded. And there was nothing upon the paper or in the
-letter to betray the anguish of mind in which it was written.
-
-Trying to steer as blamelessly as she could through her labyrinth of
-duties, Alice would not call one of the servants, all of whom had been
-expressly forbidden to approach the attic, but took the paper herself,
-went feebly up the stairs, and supporting herself by the balustrades,
-she reached the topmost landing, and went to the door of Elsie’s room.
-
-“You are there, dear mother. I know your footstep so well, though it is
-weaker than usual. And if I did not know your footsteps, I should know
-your sigh. Dear mother, do not grieve for me. I am happy—reverently be
-it spoken—as Peter was in prison.”
-
-“My darling Elsie, here is something I have written for you. I will push
-it under the bottom of the door. Take it, darling, read it. Try to
-compose your mind, and be ready for me very soon. I must go now, dear,
-for when you begin to read that you will find I have a great deal to
-prepare. Good-by, for an hour, my dear.”
-
-Alice then went down, entered her chamber, and rang for Milly; then she
-went to her drawers and caskets, and got together all the jewelry that
-she possessed, to the amount of several thousand dollars, and all
-Elsie’s, that amounted to several thousand more, and placed them in one
-strong casket. Then she searched her purse and pocketbook, and took out
-all the money she had in possession, a few hundred dollars, and put it
-in a strong packet. Then she sent Milly into Elsie’s vacant chamber, and
-had all her clothing collected and packed into two large, strong
-traveling trunks. Next, she sent for a man-servant to come and lock and
-strap them down before her face. Lastly, she received the keys from him,
-and told him to procure assistance, take the trunks down, put them into
-a cart, carry them over to Huttontown, and leave them at Mr. Fig’s, with
-a request from her that he would keep them until they were called for.
-When Alice had done this she was told that a man wished to see her in
-the hall.
-
-She went out, and found the locksmith with his tools. She bade him to
-follow her, and led the way up into the attic, and to the door of
-Elsie’s prison. She stopped there, and turning to the locksmith, said:
-
-“Pick this lock.”
-
-No sooner said than done. The man put in his instrument and unlocked it
-with as much ease as though he had used a key.
-
-“There, thank you, sir! you need not open the door. Please to retire
-now. Milly, my girl, will settle with you downstairs,” said Alice, who
-did not by any means wish to “reveal the secrets of that prison-house.”
-
-The man bowed, gathered his tools, and went downstairs.
-
-Alice opened the door, and was instantly locked in the arms of her
-daughter. Fearing to lose her courage and presence of mind, perhaps
-trembling for the strength of her purpose, too, Alice did not venture to
-indulge these enervating endearments, but hastened to say:
-
-“You read and understood my note, my dear Elsie?”
-
-“Yes, mother.”
-
-“You know, then, what is about to take place?”
-
-“Yes, dear mother.”
-
-“Come, then, my child, we must be quick. I expect Magnus here with the
-license and the minister every minute. Your trunks are already packed
-and sent off to Huttontown. Where are your diamonds, Elsie? I did not
-see them among your jewelry. They are the greatest portion of your dower
-now, my child. Where are they? I wish to put them into a casket that I
-have packed for you.”
-
-“Here they are, mother, with the ball dress in which I came to prison.”
-
-“Ah, that ball dress, put that on, it will do as well as another; or,
-no, you will perhaps have no time to change it afterward. Come down into
-my room, and put on your traveling dress at once. I have left it out
-with your bonnet; come, Elsie.”
-
-“If you please, ma’am, Dr. Hardcastle and Parson Wilson are downstairs,
-inquiring for you,” said a servant from the foot of the interdicted
-stairs.
-
-“Invite them into the back parlor, and say that I will be with them in a
-few minutes,” said Alice. “Come, Elsie, hasten, dear, and let me dress
-you.” She drew Elsie down.
-
-She felt no weakness or dizziness now. She was upheld by a strange
-excitement. Her cheeks and lips seemed burning, and her eyes blazing as
-with a hectic fever.
-
-Arrived in her own chamber, she quickly assisted Elsie to put on her
-traveling dress, smoothing her beautiful auburn ringlets, pressed her
-again fondly to her bosom, tied on her little beaver bonnet, and led her
-downstairs into the back parlor, where Dr. Hardcastle and the minister
-sat.
-
-Both forward, bowed, and shook hands.
-
-“Oh! for God’s sake have it over quickly, Magnus, lest my strength
-fail!” said Alice, trembling violently.
-
-The minister drew the prayer-book from his pocket and opened it.
-
-Elsie suddenly lost every vestige of color, and threw herself again into
-her mother’s arms. Alice pressed her passionately to her heart a moment,
-and then gave her up to Magnus, who took her hand, passed his arm around
-her waist to support her, and stood before the minister.
-
-In ten more minutes Magnus Hardcastle had the joy of clasping his wife
-to his bosom.
-
-“Thank Heaven that it is over! Oh-h-h! Ugh-gh-h! I felt my flesh
-creeping all the time, as if father were peeping over my shoulder,”
-exclaimed Elsie, shuddering, and burying her head under the arm of
-Magnus.
-
-“Yes, thank Heaven, it is over! It was short. A few solemn words of
-exhortation, a brief prayer, a briefer benediction, and now I possess
-you, without a doubt, or dispute—entirely. The laws of God and man give
-you to me alike, and no power under heaven can tear you from me, my own
-Elsie! my own wife!” said Magnus fervently, and almost crushing her in
-his arms.
-
-“Yes, thank Heaven it is over! The doubt, the struggle, and the fear is
-over. You are safe, Elsie. Your happiness, as far as human foresight can
-secure it, is insured,” said Alice, as she received Elsie once more from
-the arms of Magnus, and folded her in her own.
-
-“But you! Oh, my dear mother! you will be left without your child!”
-
-“Never regret me, my own darling. You go without your mother, but you go
-with your husband, and you are happy. Are you not, my Elsie?”
-
-“Oh, yes, yes, mamma.”
-
-“Well, I am left without my daughter, but I remain with my husband.
-Think that I am happy also,” said Alice, feeling thankful to Providence
-from the bottom of her heart, that Elsie was “innocent of the knowledge”
-of General Garnet’s tyranny over herself.
-
-Yet Elsie half suspected, she knew not what. She looked deeply,
-searchingly, for an instant into her
-
-mother’s dark blue eyes, as if to read the secret of the deep sorrow in
-them.
-
-But Alice dropped her long lashes, and averted her head.
-
-Then Elsie took her hand, and bending round to look into her troubled
-face, said, slowly, earnestly, tearfully:
-
-“You love my father dearly, very dearly; don’t you, mamma? Say, don’t
-you, mamma? Oh! don’t you, mamma?”
-
-“Yes, Elsie, I love him,” said Alice, in a very low voice, turning again
-to her daughter.
-
-“Oh, mamma, you love him as well as I love Magnus! Don’t you, mamma?
-Don’t you? You love him better than you love me, and you will be very
-happy with him even when I am gone? Say, mamma! Oh, tell me before I
-go.”
-
-For an answer Alice stooped and kissed her daughter on the forehead.
-
-“But oh! tell me before I go! Tell me that you love my father better
-than you love me, and that you will be very happy with him when I am
-gone,” said Elsie, growing more anxious for an answer every instant.
-
-Alice turned very pale.
-
-And Magnus, who saw that she was fast losing her self-control, came to
-her relief, by saying, as he approached, took her hand, and drew her
-off:
-
-“I have a word to say to you, if you please, Mrs. Garnet.”
-
-They went to a window, leaving Elsie near the parson.
-
-“Mrs. Garnet! Cousin Alice! Dearest friend! I have a proposal to make to
-you that must surprise and may shock and offend you. But nevertheless, I
-make it. Listen to me, Alice. I know too well what you have risked for
-us, and what you have incurred at the hands of your husband this day!
-Alice! I fear—I tremble at the thought of leaving you here alone, and
-exposed to his terrible wrath. You——”
-
-But Alice raised her hand and gently arrested his speech.
-
-“Magnus, forgive me for reminding you that you should not talk to me in
-that way. General Garnet’s displeasure, as far as I am implicated, will
-perhaps be just. You and Elsie were right. Your faith was pledged with
-his consent. You were right in redeeming your mutual pledge. But I,
-perhaps, was wrong in assisting you in it. I do not clearly know. Oh,
-Magnus, for many years my ideas of right and wrong have been very much
-confused. For many years I have lost sight of the exact line that
-divides good and evil. Oh, Magnus, when the eyes are dimmed with tears,
-the sight is not very clear—and when the soul is drowned in grief,
-Magnus, the moral vision may be very much obscured. But this I know—that
-General Garnet’s anger, just or unjust, moderate or violent, I must
-meet, and meet alone. By all means alone! The dignity of both is
-concerned in that.”
-
-“Alice, you must not! Hear me! Listen to me! Do not turn away with that
-air of gentle self-respect, and wave me off! Don’t I know that your
-heart is breaking this moment—this moment, that your child is leaving
-you, and you are left desolate and exposed to danger! Desolate,
-wretched, in peril, though you would have her to believe otherwise? Oh,
-Alice, you may deceive the child of your bosom, but you will not deceive
-the boy who sat at your feet and loved you, and studied the mystery of
-the sorrow on your brow when you came home a bride, and everybody called
-you happy. I was not deceived then; I have not been deceived since. Oh,
-Alice, my love for Elsie, my love for you, my relation toward both, give
-me the right to feel, the right to speak and advise. Hear me: You must
-not remain here to meet the anger of your husband. Your life—your life
-will be endangered. Nay! do not lift your hand to stop my speech; hear
-my plan; hear me out—I will be very brief. Listen! You love Elsie and
-me. Go with us when we leave here. Go with us to our backwoods home. Our
-home will be humble, but full of peace and love, and the repose you so
-much need. We shall be poor, but you shall not feel it. Respectful and
-loving hands will wait on you all day long. You will be happy with us.
-Remain with us till the storm blows over. There need be—there would
-be—no exposure, no gossip, no scandal. To the neighbors who knew of our
-betrothal, our marriage and departure will seem perfectly natural, only
-rather unsocial because we did not give a wedding. And I can answer for
-the discretion and fidelity of Wilson. Your accompanying us, for a
-visit, will seem nothing unusual. General Garnet, if I mistake not, is
-too much a man of the world not to keep his own secret, and too much of
-a despot not to enforce silence upon his people, in regard to this
-matter. General Garnet will be very anxious to get you back before your
-visit is prolonged to a suspicious extent. And then, Alice, while you
-are safe with us, you can make your own conditions with him for your
-return. You can secure for yourself——”
-
-“Stop! Magnus, I do not wish to mar the harmony of this sad hour by one
-dissonant word or thought or feeling. But let me hear no more of this.
-Not one breath more, dearest Magnus. What! I leave my home! leave my
-husband, and remain away to make conditions with him! I, who
-unconditionally pledged myself to him ‘for better or worse’—I, who vowed
-love, honor and obedience to him ‘until death’! No Magnus. That marriage
-vow, in all its details, is not to be tampered with. It is not a
-question of happiness, or of peace, or of expedience, or of repose, or
-of affection, but simply of duty. No, Magnus. When I hastened to bestow
-my daughter upon you, it was for the reason that I believed you to be
-one toward whom it would be a happiness as well as duty to keep sacred,
-in all its minutiæ, that marriage vow.”
-
-“Alice, dearest Alice, your heart is very mournful, and, forgive me for
-saying it, very morbid.”
-
-“It is? Call Elsie, then. Her feelings are all singularly healthful.
-Call her, and in her presence just invite me to go with you, simply to
-go with you—that will be the mildest form of your proposal—and see what
-Elsie will say. Come, do so.”
-
-Magnus turned with a smile, and beckoned Elsie to approach. Elsie came,
-with her bright face beaming with interest and inquiry.
-
-“Elsie, my love,” said Magnus, “I have been trying to persuade your
-mother to accompany us to our new home, and remain there for a few
-weeks.”
-
-“And leave father so suddenly, when I am leaving him, too! Oh, don’t
-press her to do any such a thing, dear Magnus. Oh, don’t think of
-leaving father just now, dearest mother,” said Elsie earnestly; then
-throwing herself in her mother’s arms, whispered anxiously: “Mother,
-don’t you love father? Oh, mother, tell me, before I go, that you love
-father.”
-
-“Yes, Elsie, I do love him. No, Magnus, I cannot leave him. I have
-helped to bereave him of his child for a season—I cannot leave him.”
-
-“But, oh, Alice!” said Magnus, drawing her apart, “think again! think
-what you will meet. How can you brave his anger?”
-
-“I shall not brave it, Magnus. It may be just, coming from him. At least
-I must bear it—patiently, too.”
-
-Just then the door was burst open by a servant, who exclaimed, in
-affright:
-
-“Madam!—mistress!—doctor!—Miss Elsie! Marster is a riding down the road,
-post-haste, to the house!”
-
-“Oh, my God! there is not a moment to spare. Good-by, my beloved child.
-God bless you!” said Alice, straining her daughter to her bosom.
-
-“Oh, mother, don’t you love father dearly? Tell me once more.”
-
-“Yes, yes, Elsie.”
-
-“Oh, mother, if you love him so dearly, get my pardon from him. Tell him
-how I grieve to be under the necessity of offending him. Get my pardon
-for me, beloved mother.”
-
-“I will do my very best. God bless you, my darling child! Good-by! Oh,
-Magnus, be good to her, be merciful, be loving, be tender. Oh, Magnus, I
-have torn the heart from my bosom and given it to you. Be good to her.”
-
-“May God deal by my soul as I deal by her heart!” said Magnus, folding
-his mother-in-law in a fervent embrace.
-
-Then they hurried out, hastened into the carriage, the blinds were let
-down, the doors closed, the whip cracked, and the vehicle rolled away.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIII.
- “THE HEART OVERTASKED.”
-
- Oh, break, break, heart! poor bankrupt, break at once!
- To prison, soul! Ne’er hope for liberty!
- _—Shakspere._
-
- Oh! do whate’er thou wilt! I will be silent.
- _—Joanna Baillie._
-
-
-Alice heard an advancing step. She looked around. Milly stood at her
-side.
-
-“Where is your master? Did he enter by the back gate? Is he at the
-stables?” she inquired.
-
-“Miss Alice, no, ma’am; he didn’t come home at all. He didn’t even meet
-the carriage. He turned off ’fore he got to the porter’s lodge, and rode
-hard as he could down the path as leads down the Hollow. I ’spects how
-he had some ’litical business long o’ Mr. Hard’stle.”
-
-“Oh, thank Heaven!” said Alice, with a long-drawn sigh of relief, and
-rising, she hurried off to her own chamber. Not to sit down in faithless
-despair, but to write a letter to General Garnet, softly and meekly
-breaking to him the news of their daughter’s marriage, so that the first
-shock of astonishment and rage should be over before he should come home
-and she should have to meet him. She wrote this letter. It contained all
-that she had said in her letter to Elsie, and much more; besides, a
-meek, appealing spirit pervaded it, that few hearts could have resisted.
-She dispatched it by a servant to General Garnet at Hemlock Hollow. Then
-she lay down and tried to sleep.
-
-She was disturbed by the entrance of a servant bearing a letter.
-
-She raised up and took it. It was for General Garnet, and bore the
-post-mark of Huttontown. She regarded it attentively for an instant, for
-it was written in a coarse, schoolboy-like hand.
-
-Then she placed it on the dressing-table, and, dismissing the servant,
-lay down and closed her eyes again, with an effort to sleep. She could
-not do so for a long time. Emotion was busy in her heart, and thought in
-her brain. One, two, three hours passed; and then she prayed, prayed for
-the promised rest, and, praying, fell asleep.
-
-She did not know how long she had slept, when, waking, she perceived
-General Garnet in the room.
-
-He was sitting in the large armchair near the bed, and his attention
-riveted upon a letter he was reading. Alice glanced at the
-dressing-table. The letter she had placed there was gone. Yes, it was
-that letter which he was reading with such fixed interest.
-
-Alice lay quietly, yet anxiously watching him, until he finished
-reading, folded up the letter, and put it in his pocket. His attitude
-was one of deep, even intense, thought. In the crimson twilight of that
-closely curtained chamber she could not see the expression of his face.
-It was evident, she thought, that he had not seen her in the shadowy
-recess where her sofa stood.
-
-After thus watching a moment, breathing a prayer for mercy, she slowly
-arose, crossed the room, and sank upon the cushion near his feet, took
-his hand, and looked up pleadingly into his face.
-
-Alice was still a very beautiful woman, as I have told you, and never
-was a more beautiful picture than that kneeling figure, with the bright,
-flowing hair, flushed cheek, and upturned, pleading gaze with which she
-sought silently to deprecate the anger of her husband. She sought to
-read her fate in his countenance; but that high and haughty face was
-lifted and averted, and its features were stern, and calm, and
-impassible. Then she found words to speak, and inquired, softly:
-
-“You received my letter, General Garnet?”
-
-“Yes, madam, I received your letter,” he answered, in a hard, cold tone
-of voice.
-
-“Then you know what else I should tell you here at your feet.”
-
-“I know that my daughter has eloped, and that my wife helped her off,”
-he replied, in the same dry tone, and with his head still averted.
-
-Alice could not see that his lips were bloodless and compressed, and his
-eyes burning with a fearful, lurid glare. His very quietude, hard and
-dry, and constrained as it was, deceived her. She took his hand again
-and pressed it to her lips, and held it to her bosom, murmuring softly:
-
-“Let us forgive each other! Oh, my husband, let us forgive each other!
-For many wrongs there is positively no other remedy in the wide universe
-but simple forgiveness—simple, magnanimous, sublime forgiveness. ‘It is
-impossible but that offenses will come,’ said the most merciful of all
-beings. It is impossible, says the experience of life, it is impossible
-but that disappointments, sorrows, pains, and partings will come. They
-are the conditions of our existence. We cannot escape them. Let us
-lessen their bitterness as much as we may. It is impossible but that
-troubles will come, but the vital question is whether we shall turn them
-to good or evil account—whether we shall live to any good end or not.
-Oh, my husband, make friends with me! We have only each other in the
-wide world upon whom to depend for our life’s comfort and happiness.
-Make friends with me!”
-
-She paused, covering his hand with fond caresses, pressing it to her
-lips, laying it against her cheek, holding it to her throbbing heart. He
-drew his hand from her gentle clasp, and folded his arms.
-
-Alice sank back, sobbing—sobbing, as though her heart would burst—then
-suddenly she clasped his knees, exclaiming wildly: “Can we hate each
-other—you and I who have lived so many years together? Can we hate each
-other—you and I, who love our only child, our dear Elsie, so much? Make
-friends with me! Let us understand each other! Let us be candid with
-each other! Let us forbear each other! I know that you deeply regret the
-failure of your favorite plan to unite these estates. I know it; I am
-sorry for it; sorry that I have been constrained to have a hand in it.
-But, oh, General Garnet, I, too, you know, was once—long years
-ago—bitterly disappointed—terribly disappointed! But it is all over now;
-it has all been over many years ago! And that is what I have often
-wanted to tell you, when I saw by the cold, dark shadow on your brow
-that you thought yourself unloved. But I never could approach you near
-enough to tell you—to tell you that if you would look into my heart you
-would see it filled with the love of God, of my husband, and my child.
-Oh, Aaron! let us forget all that estranged us in the dreary past, and
-see if we cannot live a better and happier life in the future! At least
-we can be kind, candid, forbearing with each other. Think how long we
-may have to travel the rough road of mortal life side by side! We are
-not old—you and I, Aaron! You are not forty-five, and I am much younger.
-People healthful as we are usually live to the age of eighty and beyond
-it. Think how many years we may have to live together! Shall we, through
-all these years, be unloving, cold, estranged, suspicious, uncharitable
-each to the other? Think how many years of our life we have already
-wasted in coolness, strangeness, misunderstandings! Think how many yet
-remain! Shall we not live the rest in mutual forbearance, candor,
-benevolence? Make friends with me. Let us comprehend each other. Dear
-Aaron, I have opened my heart to you; give me your confidence!” She
-ceased, half turned to gaze up in his face; his head was quite
-averted—had he relented? She thought so. She suddenly, impulsively
-arose, threw her arms around his neck, and bent her lips to kiss him,
-repeating softly: “Dearest Aaron, make friends with me. Give me your
-confidence.”
-
-He sprang up, and with one dash of his strong arm threw her from him,
-exclaiming:
-
-“Off, traitress! Off, serpent! Viper!”
-
-She tottered and fell back among the silken cushions of an old-fashioned
-low lounge, exhausted, pale, and shuddering.
-
-He gazed at her with flashing eyes and darkening brow, and white and
-writhen lips, and the long restrained passion broke out in a torrent of
-invective. Shaking his clenched fist at her, he exclaimed:
-
-“How dare you talk to me of confidence, traitress that you are? How
-durst you even approach me, serpent! viper! after your black treachery?
-What do you mean by braving me? Are you enamored of a broken head? Or do
-you think your own too hard to be broken? At what do you value your
-life, pray? What hinders me now from strangling you? Why didn’t you fly
-with your hopeful daughter? Don’t you expect me to hurl you out of doors
-after her? How durst you cross my path after your treachery? Viper,
-answer me, I say!” he vociferated, striding toward the lounge, grasping
-her shoulder, and jerking her to her feet before him. “Answer! How dared
-you face me after your black treachery?”
-
-“It was no treachery,” answered Alice, pale and trembling, yet with a
-certain gentle dignity in her words and tone; “it was no treachery; I
-broke no promise; I betrayed no trust; I am incapable of doing either.”
-
-“Silence, traitress!” he thundered, shaking her furiously; “I do not ask
-you for any impudent falsehood; I will not, by Heaven, permit you to
-tell me one! I ask you how you dared to meet me here?”
-
-“Oh-h-h!” sighed Alice, suddenly sinking at his feet. “It was to return
-to my allegiance; at whatever personal risk, to yield myself to you; to
-abide henceforth by my duties. And oh, General Garnet, do not
-misunderstand me! If I have humbled myself before you—vainly, perhaps,
-it is not from so base a motive as fear! Oh, I have outlived and
-outsuffered the fear of pain—the fear of death—the fear of anything that
-might befall me! I am at your feet. If I have placed myself
-unconditionally in your hands, it is for the sake of the holiest
-principles, the most sacred duties. General Garnet, you believe me—I see
-that you do! General Garnet, listen to me farther; this is positively
-the first time in our married life of seventeen years that I ever
-opposed you.”
-
-“The first time that you ever successfully opposed me, madam; and, by
-Heaven, you have made a signal beginning!” commented General Garnet, no
-longer speaking in a furious voice, but in the dry, hard, stern tone,
-and fixed, inflexible brow with which he had in the beginning of their
-interview heard and replied to her gentle words. The burst of violent
-passion had passed away and left him—the hard, scornful, sarcastic, yet
-cool, calculating, dissembling, most dangerous man that he was before.
-
-Alice gazed up at his face, seeking to read the changed expression
-there; but it passed her skill, and she murmured slowly:
-
-“Perhaps I was wrong; I know that under other circumstances it would
-have been very wrong; yet I dare not say that I regret what I did, for
-under the same circumstances I should do it again. Not to obtain your
-forgiveness would I deceive you, though to obtain it would make me
-comparatively happy; but I deeply regret that anything I had a hand in
-should give you pain. And I say, do as you please, I shall not complain,
-I cannot. From the one revolt of my whole life I return to a full and
-unconditional allegiance; there is nothing farther to disturb it,
-nothing to draw me aside. My love for my child only did it; that cannot
-move me again.”
-
-“Ha! can it not?” he asked scornfully.
-
-“No, no, indeed it cannot!”
-
-“Never!”
-
-“Never! How can my love for Elsie ever again draw me aside from you?
-Elsie is married and gone; now I have only you; my duty is
-undivided—and, oh, if you would let me, I would try to make you so
-happy!”
-
-“Would you?” he asked, doubtfully, scornfully.
-
-“Yes, I would,” she said, suddenly rising, leaning her hand upon his
-arm, and her head upon his shoulder, with the confidence of perfect love
-and faith. “Oh, Aaron, you have not been yourself for a few days past.
-Yet I do not love you the less on that account; indeed, I do not. Oh,
-Aaron, I can excuse your violence more than you can excuse yourself, I
-know, for I have been used to it in others. My father was violent
-sometimes. And I know that anger is a brief intoxication—’a short
-madness’—in which people do and say what they never intended. Come, you
-are not angry now; you are smiling; and I—I can only repeat what I said
-in the beginning, ‘Let us forgive each other, and live better and
-happier all our future lives.’ That is right—put your arm around me,
-dear Aaron, for I am very weak.”
-
-It was scarcely in human nature, or in devil nature, to resist the charm
-of her winning beauty, gentleness, and meekness. General Garnet pressed
-a passionate kiss upon her lips, and clasped her to his heart. It was
-the first kiss of many, many years; and Alice, trembling, happy, with
-her blushing face hidden on his bosom, saw not the “laughing devil in
-his eye.”
-
-“Oh, Aaron, this is generous—this is magnanimous. Oh, Aaron, if you knew
-how the simple act of forgiveness has power to bind the human heart! I
-know it by the way it draws my heart to yours,” said Alice, with
-enthusiasm.
-
-But another and a more passionate kiss sealed her lips for a time.
-
-At last she said:
-
-“My friend, how has it been with you this long, long time? I mean how
-has it been with your heart and soul, your inner life? Have you been
-happy—have you had any great life purpose? Oh, Aaron, often when I have
-watched you in your daily life, as you walked, or rode, or drove; as you
-sat at table, or at your writing-desk, or settled business with your
-overseer or agents; or jested or told anecdotes among your friends; when
-you have seemed to live lightly on the outside of things, I have longed
-to ask you, ‘How is with you—is this reality, and is this all of your
-life, and are you contented with it—are you happy?’ And when I have seen
-you sit, or stand, or walk apart, silent, moody, abstracted, retired
-into yourself, I have longed to knock at your heart’s door, to be let
-in, too—to be let into your confidence, and to give you my sympathy, but
-I dared never to do so. It has taken the grief and passion of this hour
-to enable me to do so now. But this shall never be so again, shall it?
-We shall never be such strangers to each other again? Come, tell me
-now—how it is with you. Are you happy?”
-
-“Quite happy, just at this hour, Alice.”
-
-“And do you truly love me—a little? Oh, love me—only love me!”
-
-“Love you! That is not so difficult, Alice. You are still a very lovely
-woman.”
-
-“Will you let me deliver Elsie’s last message to you?”
-
-He quickly averted his face to hide the dark cloud that overswept it,
-while he answered:
-
-“I will hear it.”
-
-“Elsie’s parting words to me were, ‘Oh, mother, you love my father very
-dearly, do you not?’ I answered, ‘Yes.’ She replied, ‘Oh, if you love
-him, mother, win my pardon from him!’ Aaron, look on me. Father, forgive
-your child for loving her husband as much as her mother loves thee.”
-
-“Alice,” he said, drawing her again to his bosom and kissing her, “this
-seals your full pardon; be content; for the rest, give me time.”
-
-“Oh, if I could persuade you to forgive poor Elsie—who only needs her
-father’s pardon and blessing to be perfectly happy in her humble state.”
-
-“Alice, if Elsie were before me, as you are, in all your beauty, perhaps
-I could not choose but be reconciled with her as with you, my lovely
-Alice.”
-
-Alice was so unused to praise from him that these words and caresses
-were beginning to embarrass her. Blushing like a very girl, she withdrew
-herself from his arms, and sat down. Then, as fearing to have offended,
-she said:
-
-“Do not think me ungrateful. Test my sincerity in any way you please.”
-
-“In any way, Alice?” he asked significantly.
-
-“Yes. Try me—test me.”
-
-“Pause—think—in any way?”
-
-“In anything and everything will I obey you, that does not transgress
-the laws of God, I mean, of course.”
-
-“Ah, that to begin with, is one very broad and comprehensive
-exception—especially if you design to give it a very liberal and
-latitudinarian interpretation. And it implies, besides, a suspicion and
-a guard against my giving you any command which, to obey, would be to
-transgress the laws of God. Do you really suppose that I am capable of
-doing such a thing, Alice?”
-
-“No—oh, no. Only you pressed me for an exception, you know, and I gave
-you the only one I thought of.”
-
-“I am satisfied with your exception, Alice. But is that really the only
-exception to your vow of compliance?”
-
-“Yes, indeed, the only one.”
-
-“Reflect—you may find another.”
-
-“No; indeed, no.”
-
-“No? What is the dearest wish of your heart, now, Alice?”
-
-“For peace—for perfect family peace and perfect Christian love.”
-
-“Thanks, Alice. ‘Almost thou persuadest me to be a Christian.’ But is
-there no secret, darling thought that hovers around Magnus and Elsie?”
-
-Alice suddenly turned very pale. Her hands flew up pleadingly, and
-involuntarily she cried, in a voice of anguish:
-
-“Oh, for the loving Saviour’s sake, do not require me to renounce
-Elsie!”
-
-“If I did, would you do so, Alice?”
-
-She was silent, with her head bowed upon her clasped hands.
-
-He looked at her and smiled sardonically, saying:
-
-“I knew it—another exception! How many would follow this, I wonder? But
-be easy, Alice. I do not require you to renounce your daughter. Far be
-that from me. Hold her as closely to your heart as you wish. Nothing but
-nervousness could have put that thought into your head. Have I not said
-that even I might be brought to forgive Elsie? Pshaw, dear Alice, I only
-wished to prove to you how really vain were all your promises.”
-
-“No, they are not!” exclaimed Alice earnestly, energetically. “You have
-reconciled yourself to me when I least hoped and expected it, and I will
-do anything to prove how glad I am—anything except renounce Elsie or
-fail in my higher duty to Heaven. Oh, do not close your half-opened
-heart to me again! Try me!”
-
-“Good! I will put your sincerity to one more test. And woe to both if
-that third test should prove you faithless.”
-
-“It shall not—it shall not!” said Alice solemnly. “All our future
-confidence and peace depends on it, and it shall not fail, so help me
-Heaven. What is it?”
-
-“You shall soon see, Alice,” replied General Garnet, rising and
-preparing to leave the room. “Where are they now?—I mean Dr. Hardcastle
-and his wife.”
-
-“I believe they are at the hotel at Huttontown, where they expect to
-remain for a few days—if you do not bring them back here. Oh, General
-Garnet, if you would pardon them—if you would bring them back here to
-live with us—how happy we should all be—oh, how happy we should all be
-the long future years! No more partings—no more tears. Our children and
-grandchildren would be with us all through life. Magnus could practice
-his profession, and be of such inestimable value besides, in your
-political plans, and such company for you at home. And Elsie would be
-such a comfort to me. We should all be so happy! Come, bring them back
-with you. Ah! do. Let us have them with us, all reconciled, around the
-table to-night—and it will be the happiest family gathering that ever
-was held. Oh, I see you smile, and I know you will bring them back—will
-you not?” said Alice, suddenly seizing his hand, and gazing eloquently,
-beseechingly into his face.
-
-“We shall see, Alice—I will tell you more about that when I return,” he
-said, with one of his charming smiles, and shaking her hand cheerfully,
-opened the door and went out.
-
-“Oh, yes—I do believe he will bring them back with him. Ah, no father
-can harden his heart against his child. Yes, yes, I am sure he will
-bring them back!” she repeated, seeking to still the anxiety that was
-tormenting her breast.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIV.
- THE WIFE’S TRUST.
-
- I know not, I ask not, if guilt’s in that heart,
- But I know that I love thee, whatever thou art.
- _—Moore._
-
-
-The sun was going down when a servant entered the chamber and announced
-that Judge Wylie was below stairs and begged to see Mrs. Garnet alone
-upon important business.
-
-Telling the man to show Judge Wylie into the library, Alice threw a
-shawl around her, and, full of vague and painful misgivings, descended
-the stairs.
-
-What could be the important business upon which Judge Wylie came? What
-business, trifling or important, could he have with her? Had any
-accident happened to Elsie? The thought gripped her heart like a vise.
-Had anything happened to Magnus or General Garnet?
-
-Trembling and pale, and almost overwhelmed by the trials of the day, she
-opened the library door and entered in.
-
-Judge Wylie was standing there awaiting her. Judge Jacky’s usually
-jubilant face was now overcast and troubled as he advanced to meet
-Alice, took her hand, led her to a settee, and seated himself beside
-her. He pressed her hand with paternal kindness and said, gravely and
-gently:
-
-“My dear Mrs. Garnet, you will pardon the liberty about to be taken by
-your oldest friend.”
-
-“For Heaven’s sake—what has——” happened, she was about to ask, but the
-words died on her pale lips.
-
-“Do not be alarmed, my dear Mrs. Garnet. Nothing has occurred since the
-marriage—you perceive that I know all about it. But it is to warn you—to
-put you upon your guard against something about to occur, that I come to
-you this evening.”
-
-“For God’s sake—what? what?”
-
-“Be easy. Nothing that you have not in your full power to avert by a
-little firmness.”
-
-“For Heaven’s sake, explain yourself, Judge Wylie.”
-
-“You know something, I presume, of the Maryland laws of property, of
-inheritance, and of marriage?”
-
-“No, no; I know nothing about it.”
-
-“At least you know that when a girl marries, all the personal property
-she may be possessed of at the time of her marriage, or may afterward
-inherit, becomes the property of her husband?”
-
-“Yes, of course, I know that.”
-
-“Yes, but—listen. All the landed property she possesses at the time of
-her marriage, or afterward inherits, is hers—hers alone. Her husband can
-neither alienate it during his life, or will it at his death. He cannot
-mortgage it, nor assign it, nor can it be taken for his debts. It is
-hers, and hers alone. She alone has the disposal of it.”
-
-“Yes. Well?”
-
-“Therefore, all the personal property you became possessed of at the
-death of your father is the property of General Aaron Garnet.”
-
-“Certainly. Who disputes it? Well?”
-
-“But. And now listen! All the landed property, consisting of six
-thousand acres of the best land on the Western Shore, which you
-inherited from your father, is yours, your own, and at your death it is
-your daughter’s, if she survive you, and unless you choose to will it to
-someone else. General Garnet can make no disposition of it either during
-your life or at your death.”
-
-“It seems to me, Judge Wylie, that this conversation is a very singular
-one,” said Alice coldly.
-
-“Not so singular or so impertinent—that is what you mean—as it appears
-to be. Bear with me. Hear me out. I speak for your good, and your
-child’s good, I have before me now the face of your sainted mother. I
-loved her in my youth, Alice; but that is neither here nor there. Well,
-this is what I had to say: Your daughter Elsie has, by her marriage,
-grievously offended her father. He may or may not pardon her. He may
-discard her. Do not put it in his power to disinherit her.”
-
-Alice turned very pale.
-
-“Why do you say that to me?” she asked falteringly.
-
-“Because,” he answered, “it is said that women can always be kissed or
-kicked out of any right of property they may happen to possess. Now,
-don’t you, my little Alice, be kissed out of your six thousand acres of
-finely cultivated and heavily timbered, well-watered land, with all its
-land and water privileges. The best plantation within the bounds of old
-Maryland. Don’t you be kissed out of it, little Alice, for it makes you
-independent and of great importance. Don’t you be kissed out of it,
-Alice, for you can leave it to your beloved daughter, who will need it.
-Don’t you be kissed out of it, Alice, my child; and as for the other
-alternative, my courteous friend, General Garnet, is far too much of a
-gentleman to resort to it, either literally or metaphorically.”
-
-“Judge Wylie, why do you talk to me in this way? You are my oldest
-friend; you have a certain privilege. I beseech you, forbear to abuse
-it,” said Alice, divided between mortification and anxiety. The latter
-at last prevailed, and she asked: “Why did you open up this subject just
-now, Judge Wylie? You came to tell me why, I suppose. Tell me now at
-once.”
-
-“Well, then, only this, Alice. That about an hour ago I happened in at
-Squire Fox’s office, where General Garnet was superintending the drawing
-up of a deed. An involuntary—a providential—glance, now I think it was,
-over the clerk’s shoulder revealed to me the fact that he was drawing up
-a deed of assignment, by which you were to convey all your right, title,
-and interest in the landed property of Mount Calm to General Aaron
-Garnet. General Garnet then turned to me and requested me to meet him
-here to-night, to witness your signature. I asked, with surprise, if you
-had consented to give it. He looked offended, and expressed astonishment
-at my question. By which I knew that he intended to come upon you by a
-coup de main, and I came off here to put you on your guard.”
-
-“Oh, is that all?” asked Alice, with a sigh of great relief. “Well,
-Judge Wylie, if anyone else in the wide world had talked to me as you
-have been talking for the last ten minutes, I should have said that they
-took a most unwarrantable and most offensive liberty in presuming to
-interfere in a matter that concerns only General Garnet and myself. Of
-you, my old friend, I only say that your doubts and fears are totally
-groundless. General Garnet, perhaps, wishes to test the strength of my
-confidence in him, or he may have some other and still better reason for
-what he is about to do. At all events, when he lays that deed before me
-for signature, most willingly, most cheerfully, will I prove my love and
-respect, and confidence in him, by signing it at once. Judge Wylie, I am
-not well this evening. The events of the day have shaken me very much.
-Judge Wylie, with many thanks for your kind intentions, permit me to
-wish you good-evening.” And Alice held out her hand.
-
-Judge Wylie arose, saying:
-
-“Ah! I knew it. I might have known it before I came. She will not be
-saved when she might be. She is like all her sex: none of them ever will
-be saved, unless it’s those who aint worth saving. Well, good-evening,
-Mrs. Garnet! God be with you! It is said that children and—pardon
-me—fools—enjoy the privilege of an especial Providence. May such a
-protection be yours! Good-evening, madam.”
-
-And pressing her hand, he took his hat and stick, and was about to leave
-the room, when the front door was heard to open, steps to hurry up the
-hall, and the library door was thrown open, and General Garnet entered,
-ushering in a magistrate and a lawyer, who held some documents, tied
-with red tape, in his hands.
-
-“Ah, Judge Wylie! I am glad to find you already here. Gentlemen, be
-seated. Alice, my love, I preferred to bring these gentlemen here, for
-the purpose of transacting a little law business in which you are
-concerned, rather than risk your health by taking you out in this severe
-weather. Judge Wylie, resume your seat. Gentlemen, pray be seated.
-Alice, my love, come hither; I had expected to find the library empty,
-and you in your chamber, where I left you. I wish to have a word with
-you apart.” And putting one arm affectionately over the shoulder of
-Alice, he took her hand, and led her away to a distant part of the room,
-where, with his most angelic smile, he said: “Alice, I am the nominal
-master of Mount Calm only! but, Alice, I am at this moment a poor man.
-Prove your affection and confidence now, as your heart dictates!”
-
-“I know what you mean, Aaron. Come! I am ready to do so—at once. But,
-oh, Aaron! have you seen Elsie?”
-
-“I will tell you all about that after this little business is over, dear
-Alice! Come.”
-
-“Immediately after?”
-
-“Yes, instantly, and it will take but a moment.”
-
-“Come, then, let us have it over quickly, that I may the sooner hear of
-Elsie. But, oh! just assure me of this—that you have forgiven her! I
-know by your smile that you have—but, oh! I long to hear you say so!”
-
-“Can you doubt me, Alice? Come! let us have this affair over, and then
-you shall know all about it.”
-
-And taking her hand he led her up the room.
-
-The magistrate was seated behind a table; before him lay a copy of the
-Holy Scriptures, pen, ink, and paper, and certain documents, among which
-was the deed of assignment in question. By the side of the table stood
-Judge Jacky and the lawyer, as witnesses.
-
-General Garnet led Alice up in front of it, and immediately before the
-magistrate.
-
-Squire Fox took up the deed of assignment, and read it aloud. Then he
-administered the oath to Alice, and put the usual questions, as to
-whether she gave that deed of her own free will, without compulsion, or
-undue persuasion from her husband?
-
-“Without being kissed or kicked out of it?” whispered Judge Jacky.
-
-Having received satisfactory answers to all questions the magistrate
-laid the deed open before Alice, for her signature. General Garnet
-dipped a pen in ink and handed it to her. Alice received it, smilingly,
-and in a clear, unfaltering hand, wrote her name at the bottom of that
-deed, that conferred upon her husband immense wealth and left herself
-penniless.
-
-The lawyer affixed his signature, as witness. Judge Wylie, with a deep
-groan, wrote his name. The squire performed his part, and the business
-was complete.
-
-Alice looked up into General Garnet’s face, with an expression that
-said—“Now have you proved me sufficiently? Now will you confide in me?
-Will you love me?”
-
-General Garnet stooped down and whispered to her:
-
-“Retire immediately to your chamber, Alice!”
-
-“But—Elsie—tell me of her?”
-
-“Retire to your chamber, instantly, Mrs. Garnet!—and await me there! I
-must offer these gentlemen something to drink, and dismiss them;
-immediately after which, I will come to you, and tell you all that I
-have done, and all that I intend to do!” said General Garnet, in a tone
-of authority and impatience, that would brook no opposition or delay.
-
-And Alice, courtesying slightly to the party, withdrew.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXV.
- LIFE’S STORM AND SOUL’S SHELTER.
-
- Go, when the hunter’s hand hath wrung
- From forest cave her shrieking young,
- And calm the lonely lioness—
- But chide not—mock not my distress.
- _—Byron._
-
-
-Alice retired to her chamber and waited restlessly. An hour passed, and
-still she heard no sound of departing guests. It was quite dark and she
-rang the bell.
-
-Milly entered with lights.
-
-“Tea is ready to go on the table, Miss Ally. Shall we put it up?”
-
-“Where is your master? What is he doing?”
-
-“He is in the library, ma’am, with the gentlemen. They don’t seem to
-have any notion of going home. General Garnet—he sent for more wine, and
-ordered deviled turkey and scalloped crabs—two other gentlemen have come
-in, and they are all very high upon pullyticks.”
-
-Alice heard and sighed deeply.
-
-“So I thought, Miss Ally, how you’d like your cup of tea, anyhow. Shall
-I set the table as usual? Though it will be very lonesome for you to sit
-at the table all alone, now that Miss Elsie is gone, and marster’s
-engaged. Or else shall I bring you a cup of tea up here, with anything
-else you would like? There is some cold fowl in the pantry, and some
-neat’s tongue, too; shall I bring it up to you, with a cup of tea?”
-
-“No, Milly. Perhaps the general would like supper got for his guests.
-Come with me; I will go down and see.”
-
-“God bless your soul, Miss Ally, honey, they’s been a stuffing ever
-since they’s been here.”
-
-“No matter for that, Milly; you know our gentlemen have infinite
-gastronomic capacities.”
-
-“My Gor A’mighty, Miss Ally! you don’t say so. Is it catching?”
-
-“What?”
-
-“That there complaint our gemmen has got.”
-
-“Nonsense, Milly! you misunderstood me; I meant to say that they had ‘no
-bottoms to their stomachs.’”
-
-“My Gor A’mighty! Miss Ally, what a misfortunate state to be in. It’s a
-world’s wonder as it don’t kill ’em to death!”
-
-“Pshaw, Milly! There is nothing the matter with them except that they
-never get done eating.”
-
-“Oh, is that it, Miss Ally? Well, indeed, I don’t believe they ever
-does; especially when they is a talkin’ pullyticks. ’Case, you see, Miss
-Ally, I done sent ’em in four dozen scallop crabs and six dozen raw open
-Nanticoke oysters, each one of ’em as big as the palm of my hand, and
-two deviled turkeys, and bless patience if they didn’t put all that away
-in less than an hour, and sent for more.”
-
-“Well, they will want a hot supper by and by, that is certain. So take
-the candle, Milly, and go before me. I am going down to the library door
-to speak to General Garnet.”
-
-Milly lifted the candlestick, and preceded her mistress down the stairs.
-
-When she reached the library door Alice stepped before her and rapped.
-
-General Garnet came to the door and opened it. On seeing his wife:
-
-“Well, what do you want now? Didn’t I direct you to keep your chamber
-until I came?” he inquired sternly.
-
-“Yes; and I would have done so, but your visitors are staying longer
-than you or I supposed. Perhaps they will need supper; shall I order
-it?”
-
-“No! Mind your own business. Don’t go beyond your orders. Return to your
-room and wait me there,” he said, and shut the door in her face.
-
-Alice sighed, and turned from the door.
-
-Milly was indignant. This was the first time she had ever positively
-witnessed any disrespect shown to her beloved mistress. And Milly boiled
-with rage.
-
-“High! Who he? Mus’ think how people ’fraid o’ him. My Lor’! I only jes’
-wish how my ole man, Tom, ’ould turn a darned etarnal fool in his ole
-days, and talk to me so! that’s all! ‘High!’ I say, ‘Nigger, better hit
-somebody, hadn’t you? Is you done tuk o’ your ole woolly head’s senses?’
-’Deed I would. Look here, Miss Ally, honey! Don’t you put up o’ that
-there shortness. Now Miss Elsie’s gone, he can’t spite you any way. He
-daren’t hit you. ’Case why? ’case the law protects you. Now, Miss Ally,
-I say, you take my ’vice. You jes’ pluck up a sperit and turn on him.
-And put a ’stonishment on to him. Jes’ you step it over him in style.
-Make him walk chalk. Ses you, ‘Now, you behave yourself, or I’ll unmask
-you afore all the world, and let people see how pretty you are underneat
-of your smiles.’ Lor’, Miss Ally, if men aint the easiest spil’t and
-a-made fools of, of all the dumb beasts as ever wore shoe leather.
-There’s my old man, Tom. Why, anybody’d think he was the bestest old
-nigger as ever said prayers. But Lor’! when we first took up ’long o’
-each other, the cussed infunnally fool thought he was master; thought
-how he’d got a nigger of his own. Ugh—umph! I soon took him out o’ that
-there. I wa’nt a-goin’ to lay down on the ground and let people walk on
-me. Now he ’haves himself as a man ought to do. ’Twon’t do, Miss Ally,
-’deed it won’t, Miss Ally! to spile men folks. Men folks ’quire to be
-made to know their places. ’Deed, ’fore my Heavenly Marster, they do,
-honey.”
-
-Doubtless Alice would have rebuked this freedom of speech, had she heard
-one word of it; but she did not. She only knew that Milly was twaddling
-some monotonous strain of monologue, as she carried the candle before
-her upstairs.
-
-Arrived within her chamber Alice dismissed her maid, refusing all
-refreshment, and threw herself, exhausted and anxious, upon her bed.
-
-As the hours passed slowly away, sounds of revelry from below stairs
-began to reach and disturb her. As time wore on toward midnight these
-orgies became louder and higher. Vociferous laughter, shouting songs and
-thundering cheers mingled in a strange wild discord, and broke
-startlingly upon the aristocratic repose of that mansion and the holy
-quiet of that night. Alice listened in fear and trembling and disgust,
-for such orgies were unprecedented there.
-
-At length, long after midnight, the company broke up in great disorder.
-Alice listened shudderingly to their noisy leave-taking, as with jocular
-songs, coarse jests, vociferous cheers and laughter, they departed. Then
-she heard the closing of doors and windows, and the steps of General
-Garnet as he moved about the house. Lastly, she heard him coming up the
-stairs. He entered the chamber. Alice rose to meet him.
-
-“Oh, you are waiting to hear something about Elsie. Well, sit down,”
-said he, putting down the night-lamp, closing the door, and turning to
-her with a sarcastic smile.
-
-Alice had sunk into a chair, faint, sickened by the sight of the demon
-leer that now he did not even turn to conceal.
-
-“Well, now, what questions do you want to put to me? I am quite ready to
-answer any,” he said, dropping himself into a chair before her, crossing
-his feet, folding his arms, and leaning back.
-
-“Elsie, then? Have you seen her?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“What, not seen Elsie!” she repeated, with a look of deep
-disappointment. “Not seen Elsie?”
-
-“No,” he answered again, looking at her with steady, imperturbable
-contempt.
-
-“But you—you intend to see her?” asked Alice, with a sinking voice.
-
-“Never! Never, so help me Heaven! And now listen, minion! fool! It was
-for the purpose of punishing her and you—of beggaring her and you, that
-I obtained that deed!” he exclaimed, malice, scorn, taunting triumph
-writhing around his lips, flashing from his eyes, and lighting up the
-whole dark face with a lurid demoniac fire.
-
-Alice stared at him for an instant with a marble-like immobility of
-countenance, as if it were impossible for her to comprehend such black
-treachery.
-
-Stretching out his arm, and pointing his finger at her, he laughed
-aloud.
-
-Then the spell of amazement that checked the current of her blood was
-broken, and slowly from the pallid lips came the words:
-
-“Oh, my God! I understand it all now!”
-
-“Ha! ha! ha! do you?”
-
-“All—all,” she continued, without withdrawing her steady gaze—“all, all.
-I have sold my birthright and hers, for—a kiss!”
-
-“Ha! ha! ha! Well, what do you want to complain of? You got the kiss,”
-he exclaimed, in the most insulting manner.
-
-“I have sold her birthright for a kiss! a serpent’s kiss! a Judas kiss!”
-cried Alice, wildly wringing her hands.
-
-“Come, Mrs. Garnet, no hard words, if you please. Remember how you hung
-upon me this morning. You were so affectionate! I was quite flattered;
-grew ‘quite in favor with myself,’ and almost with you—only it is
-impossible to rekindle ashes.”
-
-“Oh, fiend, fiend! remorseless fiend! I shall go mad! Oh, God! where
-sleep your thunderbolts?” cried Alice, rising, and walking distractedly
-up and down the floor.
-
-“Come, madam. No more of this. I am tired of it. Resume your seat,”
-exclaimed General Garnet, leaving his scornful, taunting manner, and
-speaking in the deep, stern tones of haughty command.
-
-But Alice heard him not, as she walked wildly up and down the room,
-crying:
-
-“Oh, God! God! where rest your thunderbolts?”
-
-“Do you hear me? Sit down, I say! or, by Heaven, I will send you in
-search of the thunderbolts!”
-
-But Alice was not to be stopped now. Still wildly walking up and down
-the floor, distractedly wringing her hands, she was pouring forth the
-gathered bitterness of many years.
-
-“I have borne so much, great God. I have borne so much. Oh, I have been
-a woman ‘of sorrows and acquainted with grief.’ And who is it that has
-made my life, my harmless life, one long pain? You, General Garnet, you.
-You married me by force, you know you did. In my young girlhood—nay, in
-my innocent childhood, when life opened to me with such a bright promise
-of usefulness and happiness with one I loved, with one to whom my faith
-was plighted, you tore me away from that one, and made his life a
-useless, barren waste, and married me yourself, for your own selfish
-purposes, and nearly broke my heart and crazed my brain. God knows I
-have no clear recollection now of the months that followed my marriage.
-Well! Well! Well! ‘Time and the hour beareth away all things,’ and as
-time passed, I learned to love you. Because you were my husband, and the
-father of my child, and because it was the great necessity of my nature
-to love, I loved you. God knows, I think there was no other reason. Oh,
-if Heaven gave me one idea purer and higher than all the rest, it was
-that of the beauty and holiness of marriage! And though mine was a
-miserable sacrifice, so great was my need to live in an atmosphere of
-love and piety, that I tried to make a sort of temple of it. It was a
-wild ruin. Oh, worse! it was a ridiculous failure! This hour has proved
-it. Ha! ha! ha! Hark! did I laugh? No, it was not I. I have nothing to
-laugh at in earnest, and I never laugh in scorn. But there are two
-spirits in me now, and one mocks at the other.”
-
-“Sit down, this moment, sit down!” thundered General Garnet, stamping
-furiously.
-
- “But heedless as the dead was she
- Of all around, above, beneath!”
-
-Of all but the stormy outpouring of thought and feeling, from her own
-over-burdened heart and brain.
-
-“When you trampled all my rights and my happiness beneath your feet,
-when you seized and married me against my will, I excused you, for I
-said you loved me with a strong passion, and strong passions have their
-necessities and their rights. When you required me to give up my dearest
-friends, and lay aside habits of study and elegant amusements, that were
-a second nature to me, I said that your position gave you a right to
-dictate to me, and I acquiesced without a murmur. When you took my
-little child away from me, the only comfort I had left in the world, and
-sent her across the ocean, to remain at school for many years, I said
-you were her father, and what you did was doubtless intended for her
-good, however mistaken the intention might be, and I submitted.
-Recently, when you have laid violent hands upon my person, and
-endangered my life, I said it was violence of temper, not malignity of
-heart, and I resolved, for your sake and mine, to keep our secret, and
-to bear with it. I excused it—nay, I went farther, and vindicated it. No
-ill-usage, from mere violence of temper, could have affected my
-happiness. I do not know but that I thought you had a right to strike me
-if you were angry. Because I was superstitious and fanatical, and
-because I loved you then. They say that ‘perfect love casteth out fear.’
-My love, imperfect as it was, cast out fear. When I conscientiously
-assisted at Elsie’s marriage, and remained home here to meet you, I
-nerved my heart to bear all your fury. I even said it would be just,
-coming from you. And no matter how much I had suffered at your hands, no
-matter if you had left me for dead, as you did once before, if I had
-recovered I could have gone on cheerily with my daily duties, as if
-nothing had happened. Because I could have understood violence, as I
-said: I could have understood anything that grew out of heat of
-passion—anything, but this clear-headed, cold-blooded treachery—because
-I loved you then. Nay! My God! I believe in my soul, I love you yet, and
-it is that which stings my self-respect to madness. It is that which
-lays my soul open to the entrance of the scornful, jibing spirit that
-mocks at my holiest instincts.”
-
-“Sit down! Sit down, I say!” vociferated General Garnet, striding toward
-her.
-
-Suddenly she fell at his feet, and raised her clasped hands, saying:
-
-“I am mad! I am mad! Two spirits possess me—a mad and a sane one. It is
-the mad spirit that impels me to say now—while your serpent-treachery
-folds its cold, damp coils about my heart, and not so much stings as
-chills me to death—to say now, in the face of all reason—while the same
-spirit keeps before me—to say, only forgive Elsie! only be reconciled
-with her, and take all the rest; and I will try to forget that I have
-been deceived and scorned. At least I will never, never harbor the
-thought, much less give it expression again. Come, forgive your child!
-You cannot be forever obdurate to your child! Be reconciled to her, and
-I will believe that anger and disappointment bereft you of your
-reason—for a little while—and that it was only during a temporary fit of
-insanity that you could have done such a thing. And I will honor you
-again.”
-
-“Pooh! fudge! You are not so mad as to believe the words you are
-saying,” said General Garnet, jerking her up and flinging her upon the
-sofa. “There, be quiet; I hate raving. And now listen to what I have to
-say in regard to Elsie: I will never see her, or speak to her, or
-receive a letter or a message from her, under any circumstances
-whatever, so long as I live. I will never permit you to see her, or
-speak to her, or hold any communication, by letter or message, with her,
-under any circumstances that may occur, so long as you live. I will
-never give her an acre of land, or a cent of money, or an article of
-food, or raiment, or fuel, to save her from starvation or freezing!”
-
-Alice, exhausted, prostrate, gazed at him in horror, as with a darkened
-and ferocious countenance, and a voice of concentrated hatred, so deep
-as to be nearly inaudible, he continued:
-
-“If she were to dare to set foot upon this plantation I would loosen my
-bloodhounds upon her!”
-
-“Fiend—you are the only bloodhound that would hurt her. Turn them loose
-on her, then—do it! They would crouch at her feet! They would lick her
-hands—her beautiful hands—that have fed and caressed them all. Or get
-strange dogs to hunt her with, and even they would grovel before the
-angel in her eyes. Oh, fool!—you are the only brute on God’s creation
-that would harm her,” said Alice, in a low, deep tone.
-
-General Garnet continued, as if he had not heard her:
-
-“If she were lying, dying, at my gate I would not suffer one of my
-negroes to hand her a drink of water, if that drink of water would save
-her from death!”
-
-“Demon—there is not a man, woman, or child on this plantation that you
-could hinder, with all your malice and power, from rendering Elsie any
-service she might require—unless you imprisoned them, or tied them hand
-and foot!” said Alice, in a dying voice.
-
-Still he continued, without attending to her indignant but faint
-interruptions. And his face became still more dark and demoniac.
-
-“And now comes the very best part of the argument, which, like a good
-orator, I have saved for the very last—I wonder how you will like it! I
-shall take pleasure in watching the play of your pretty features while I
-tell you, and dissecting and analyzing the emotions of your heart as you
-hear! And saying within myself—there is so much regret, and there is so
-much shame, and there is so much jealousy, and there is so much rage.
-Listen, then—you have disappointed me in my first plan for uniting two
-great estates. Before I have done I will make you regret that. The
-estates shall be united yet. You have taught your daughter to disobey
-me. Very well; you have bereft her of her birthright for a caress, to
-your shame be it remembered—and I have discarded and disowned her. But,
-listen: I have another daughter—the child of my love—ha!—are you pale
-with jealousy? Listen, farther yet: all the broad lands of Mount Calm
-that came by you, and should descend to your child, and enrich her, will
-I bestow upon the child of my love; and her hand will I bestow upon
-Lionel Hardcastle, who will be glad to accept it, no doubt. Ha! Now die
-of rage!” he exclaimed, with a ferocious laugh.
-
-But neither regret, shame, nor jealousy, nor rage, disfigured that
-peaceful face, or agitated that composed figure. General Garnet, who
-glanced at her first in triumph, now gazed in awe. Her eyes were closed,
-her hands had fallen. Her whole figure expressed perfect repose. She
-looked as if the Angel of Death had laid hand upon her head, and said to
-that storm-tossed life, “Peace—be still.” “And there had fallen a Great
-Calm.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVI.
- DAY AFTER THE WEDDING.
-
- What is the world to them?
- Its pomp, its pleasure, and its nonsense all?
- Who in each other clasp whatever fair,
- High fancy forms and lavish hearts can wish,
- Or in the mind or mind-illumined face;
- Truth, goodness, honor, harmony and love,
- The richest bounty of indulgent Heaven!
- _—Thompson._
-
-
-At break of day a large traveling wagon, strongly and compactly built,
-and neatly roofed with snow-white tent-cloth stretched lightly over
-hoops, and drawn by two stout gray mules, stood before the village hotel
-at Huttontown. This wagon was closely packed with a small assortment of
-cabin furniture. All this “household stuff” was perfectly new, clean,
-neat, and bright, and snugly stowed away in the back and middle part of
-the wagon. Near the front of the vehicle stood a small, flag-bottomed
-armchair, wedged tightly in between boxes and trunks, so that it could
-not be jostled by the motion of the wagon. It is needless to say that
-this was the “traveling carriage” of our bridal pair, or that the little
-flag-bottomed chair was provided for the especial convenience and
-comfort of the bride. Early as the hour was, a crowd of village
-neighbors had collected for the pleasure of seeing the “bride and groom”
-come out, and the wagon start “for the Western country.” Among the
-assembled villagers was a fine, handsome boy of ten or twelve years of
-age, who volunteered to hold the reins until the travelers should come
-forth.
-
-The people had not very long to wait. The front door of the hotel
-opened, and Dr. Hardcastle, clad in a large, shaggy overcoat and
-overalls, and fox-skin cap and gloves, and looking as great, energetic,
-and joyous as ever, came out, leading Elsie, wrapped in a full, brown
-cloth cloak, with her healthful, happy face blooming and smiling from
-out the comfortable rolls of a wadded, brown silk hood.
-
-Magnus nodded and smiled as he shook hands hastily right and left, and
-hurried Elsie toward the wagon. He lifted her in, fixed her comfortably
-in her chair, wrapped the ample folds of her cloak about her, and tucked
-it snugly around her feet, with a solicitous care for her and a total
-indifference to the eyes of the lookers-on that provoked their merriment
-into peals of good-humored laughter, accompanied by exclamations of:
-“That is right, doctor. Take good care of her, God bless her! That’s
-right, doctor. That’s the way. Tuck her up warm. Indeed, her chin will
-freeze, if you don’t muffle that comforter closer around her throat.”
-
-“Oh, hurry! let’s escape this!” whispered Elsie, laughing and blushing.
-
-“Never mind, dear! Never mind their rough manners. You are too generous
-and large-hearted to feel anger or contempt at their unrefined method of
-expressing their sympathy, which is really more sincere and earnest than
-all the congratulations in elegant phrases that ladies and gentlemen
-give and receive upon such occasions. Let us have patience with
-uncultivated Nature, dear Elsie, for we are going to live with her a
-long time. At least, have any other feeling for humanity rather than
-contempt, dear Elsie,” replied Magnus, as he finished arranging her
-cloak.
-
-“Me! me presume to feel contempt for my rough, honest, kindly neighbors!
-Oh, Magnus, never! I will prove to you that I do not!” exclaimed Elsie,
-in a low, hurried voice.
-
-Then Magnus sprang into his seat, and took the reins from the hands of
-the lad.
-
-As he gave them up, the boy fixed a long, lingering, wistful look at the
-wagon and its occupants.
-
-“You look as if you had half a mind to accompany us, my boy,” said Dr.
-Hardcastle, as he read the expression of the lad’s countenance.
-
-“Oh, I have, sir! for I feel I could be useful, almost necessary to you,
-and beneficial to myself, if I could go; but I cannot, for I have a
-little girl to take care of at home.”
-
-“A little girl to take care of? You!”
-
-“Yes, sir, my little sister, or rather she is just like my little
-sister. We live on Hutton Island.”
-
-“Oh, yes! the two Children of the Isle. How come you over here so early,
-my boy?”
-
-“I came over to bring some maninosies to the tavern, sir, in time for
-them to be prepared for breakfast. I expect you ate some of them
-yourself, sir.”
-
-“Yes, and they were very good.”
-
-“My sister and I gathered them, sir.”
-
-“Yes. Well, my boy, you look like a fine, independent, enterprising lad.
-Rely on God and yourself, improve your mind, be honest, industrious, and
-frugal, and you will make your own way in the world. What is your name?”
-
-“Hugh Hutton, sir.”
-
-“Yes, young Hutton of the Isles, one of the ‘Scotch lairds,’ as the
-people used to call them for their pride and——”
-
-“Poverty,” calmly concluded the boy.
-
-“Well, child, they go admirably together. Hold to your pride as long as
-you are poor, and cast it away when you become rich. Well, Hugh, I will
-not forget you, or lose sight of you. Some day I shall come back, and
-then you may return with me. Good-by,” said Dr. Hardcastle, shaking
-hands with the boy.
-
-Then he arose in his seat, lifted his cap, and waved farewell to the
-neighbors. Elsie kissed her hand to them several times, blushing
-brightly as they all waved their hats and handkerchiefs, and amid the
-cheers and benedictions of the little crowd the wagon started.
-
-“We must make thirty miles to-day, dear Elsie, and reach Deep Dell by
-nightfall if possible,” said Magnus.
-
-“Oh, how I wish that fine boy were really with us. How useful he could
-be to you, and what a man you could make of him!” said she, looking back
-to where Hugh stood, the last of the crowd, watching the departing
-wagon.
-
-“God has made a man of him already, dear Elsie. What a fine, independent
-look he has! Yes, I could have wished him to go with us; a very strong
-sympathy attracts me to that boy. I should be very proud of that boy.”
-
-“He will be gentle and great like you. He reminds me of what you were at
-his age, when you used to carry me about the forest in your arms, as
-joyous as a boy, yet as careful as a woman. I thought of that when he
-talked about his sister. Magnus, I used to feel as if I should so love
-to have a sister or to be a sister. There is such a sweet and tender
-thought in sisterhood—children of the same mother. Just now I thought
-that boy’s voice took a tone of modulated sweetness when he spoke of his
-sister. Yet his very gentleness must be the playfulness of a lion’s
-cub—there is such fire in his grand eyes, that reminded me of you, too.
-Oh, Magnus, do you know what I have been thinking of? what great music
-has been sounding its majestic harmony through my soul this morning as I
-journey by your side into the wilderness? Listen:
-
- “Thy spirit, Independence, let me share,
- Lord of the lion heart and eagle eye!
- Thy steps I follow with my bosom bare,
- Nor heed the storm that howls along the sky.
-
-“And I feel as if you were that very incarnate spirit of Independence,
-and I am sure that that boy was the worshiping disciple who was ready to
-follow you. And as for me, Magnus,” she continued, laughing, “there is
-such a superfluous amount of energy in my little body and soul this
-morning, that I feel as if I could not only brave and bear hardships and
-peril by your side, but should be disappointed if they did not come.”
-
-“You have so much resistance, Elsie! but do not do with your wealth of
-energy as the prodigal son did with his wealth of money, spend it all at
-the outset; and, as an illustration of what I mean, put your hands
-within your cloak, and fold it closely around your chest—we are about to
-turn and face a sharp, if not a violent northwester, and after the sun
-is fully up you will see that it will blow harder,” said Magnus, as they
-turned the end of the street and entered the turnpike road.
-
-It was a glorious winter day; the sun now arose in cloudless splendor,
-lighting up the snow-clad hills and plains and ice-spangled forest trees
-and bushes into flashing, dazzling radiance, while far away behind them
-dashed and sparkled the green waters of the Chesapeake, like a sea of
-molten emeralds.
-
-Their road, after leaving the village, lay over the snowy hills and
-plains, and through the forest around the base of Mount Calm. In making
-the circuit they once came in full view of the front of the mansion
-house, and Elsie, seizing her husband’s arm, exclaimed:
-
-“Magnus, tie your pocket-handkerchief at the end of your stick, and get
-up and wave it. I know that our beloved mother has been watching at that
-window for the last hour to see us pass. I know it, though it is too
-distant to see her distinctly; yet I think I see somebody there. Wave
-it, Magnus, and then we’ll know.”
-
-Dr. Hardcastle stood up, lifted the impromptu flag on high, and
-presently the signal was returned by a white cloth waved from the
-window, and instantly withdrawn.
-
-“She saw us, she saw us, Magnus! But stay! why didn’t she look out?”
-
-“It would not have been safe on such a sharp morning as this for your
-mother to run her head out of the window in that bleak, exposed
-position,” said Magnus, repressing the various vague forebodings of his
-heart.
-
-“I am afraid something has happened to mother, Magnus. Oh! indeed, I
-feel as if something had,” said Elsie anxiously.
-
-“Nonsense, my love. I saw some of the gentlemen who were there last
-night until twelve, and who slept at the hotel, and one of them told me
-when I inquired, that all the family were well. However, Elsie, in
-driving around we will see some of the colored folks, and receive fresh
-assurance. Elsie, dear, it is solely on your mother’s account that I do
-not turn into the grounds and drive up to the mansion house now, and
-make a last effort at reconciliation with your father. I know, Elsie,
-that it would only subject her to a violent and perhaps fatal scene. I
-know, poor child, that it is a great trial to you to pass by your
-father’s house, bound for a long journey, and a new, strange life,
-without stopping to ask his blessing. Oh! I know it, my poor Elsie! but
-keep your courage; this is the sharpest, and it is also the last trial
-you shall have.”
-
-“Oh, my courage is up,” said Elsie, dashing the sparkling tears from her
-eyes, and smiling out like an April sun from the clouds. “These, father,
-are the very last tears I am going to shed. No, indeed, won’t I weep,
-and make you sad for me, my dear Magnus! No, indeed, won’t I, for
-anybody’s cruelty and injustice!”
-
-“Hush, hush, my darling! ‘The heart grows bitter by saying bitter
-things,’” said Magnus, kissing the dew-drops from her rosy cheek.
-
-“Gee up, Dobbin! Make them gee up, Magnus,” said Elsie, poking at the
-mules with the point of her umbrella.
-
-Magnus put whip to the animals, and they started afresh. Soon, in
-turning around toward the back of Mount Calm, they came to a group of
-negroes just starting to their work. Every man of them dropped his hat,
-and stood bowing, smiling, and grimacing at the sight of their young
-mistress. Magnus stopped the wagon.
-
-“How are they all at the house, Uncle Bob?” he asked of the driver.
-
-“All fus’ rate, sir! ’Deed dey is, Miss Elsie, honey.”
-
-“Are you sure that mother is quite well, Bob?”
-
-“’Deed, fus’ rate, Miss Elsie! ’Deed is her, honey!”
-
-“How do you know, Uncle Bob? You never go to the house.”
-
-“’Deed, honey, sister Milly told me; ’deed, honey, you needn’t be ’t all
-oneasy, nor likewise ’stress in your mind ’bout your ma! De madam is
-fus’ rate—’deed her is. Der wa’n’t nothin’ of no fuss, nuther,
-honey!—eberyting passed off quite quiet. Marse Iron he had some company
-las’ night, and ’joyed himself ’long o’ de gemmen very much.”
-
-It is unnecessary to say that “Iron” was the negro corruption of Aaron,
-and not an unapt translation, either.
-
-“And mother is well and cheerful?”
-
-“High! what I tell you, Miss Elsie? Think I gwine to ax you a lie? De
-madam is fus’rate!”
-
-“Thank Heaven, then! Here, Bob, here is a keepsake for you. It is a
-little prayer-book that I have carried in my pocket ever since I first
-left home for England. I held it in my hand when I was married, and I
-intended to carry it out West with me; but here, you shall have it. And,
-Bob, give my love to mother, and tell her that I am very happy—you hear,
-Bob?”
-
-“Yes, miss.”
-
-“And give her this letter also, Bob,” said Dr. Hardcastle, taking one
-ready sealed and directed from his pocket.
-
-Then they took leave of the colored folks, shook hands with Uncle Bob,
-and started. Again Elsie called the driver back.
-
-“Now, be sure to tell my dear mother that she must not have a thought or
-a care for me. Tell her I am very happy.”
-
-“Yes, Miss Elsie; yes, honey; I’ll be sure to tell her—’deed, God
-A’mighty knows will I. Good-by! God bless you, Miss Elsie, and you, too,
-Marse Magnet! I wishes you both all the good luck in the worl’—’deed I
-does, children!—’deed, God A’mighty knows does I—I don’t care what ole
-marse say!”
-
-And Uncle Bob hurried off after his staff of workmen, leaving the wagon
-pursuing its way.
-
-Suddenly, with one of his impetuous bursts of emotion, Magnus threw his
-arms around the form of his bride, and drew her to his bosom,
-exclaiming:
-
-“Oh, Elsie! every now and then I realize, with a sort of quick, sharp,
-almost mortal pang of joy, that you really are my wife! Oh, Elsie, my
-love! my child! there lives not a being on earth so happy as I! There
-lives not a creature in heaven so happy as I!”
-
-And she sank upon his bosom, pale, faint, with excess of joy. The reins
-were loosed, the mules came to a standstill on the decline of the hill,
-when Elsie, with one of her sudden, healthful rebounds from the bathos
-of sentiment, sprang laughing up, and seizing the reins, exclaimed:
-
-“Gee up, Dobbin! Magnus, why don’t you make them gee up? We shall not
-make our thirty miles to-day.”
-
-Magnus took the reins from her hands, flourished the whip, and they set
-off in earnest, unmindful of a cynical old negro by the roadside, who,
-watching them as he bagged his snow-birds from the trap, said:
-
-“The cussed infunnally young fools! I s’pose dey tink it always gwine be
-jes’ so! Gor A’mighty help ’em! Aar, Lor’! der troubles is all afore
-’em, like young bearses!”
-
-And they went on, happy, hopeful, confident, and justly confident;
-recalling the past with its childish pleasures, planning for the future,
-pointing out to each other familiar places in the forest, and spots
-associated with some childish reminiscence—now it was the very tree
-where Magnus first took her to gather chestnuts; now the very dell where
-he set traps to catch snow-birds for her; now the thicket where the wild
-rose-bushes bore so full in spring; now the glade that was red with
-strawberries in May; and so, talking and laughing, hoping and believing,
-billing and cooing, our pair of turtledoves pursued their Westerly
-flight.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVII.
- DEEP DELL—COUNTRY TAVERN.
-
- Here rustic statesmen talked with looks profound,
- And news much older than their ale went round.
- _—Goldsmith._
-
-
-It was far into the night when they reached Deep Dell, and put up at the
-large log tavern that fulfilled the manifold duties of country store,
-post office, smithy, meetinghouse, and hotel, and was consequently a
-place of great bustle, if not business. Here our emigrant pair, by
-special favor, were accommodated with the landlady’s own parlor, and
-promised a private supper. The tavern was full of people, for this was
-mail day, and the post-boy from Huttontown was expected every moment.
-
-Magnus went out to put his wagon under cover, and to feed and stable his
-mules.
-
-And Elsie sat to employ his absence in writing a few lines to her
-mother, which she inclosed and directed to Mr. Wilson, the young
-Methodist minister.
-
-She had scarcely concluded when supper, consisting of fine coffee and
-rich cream, buckwheat cakes, fresh butter, and venison steaks with
-currant jelly, was brought in and neatly arranged upon the table.
-
-Magnus came in, and Elsie, with a blush and a smile, took her seat at
-the head of the board. This was the first time she had “done the honors
-of the table,” and her half-womanly, half-childly heart was pleased at
-the novelty of her position.
-
-As for Magnus, he was as gravely comfortable as if he had been used to
-his vis-a-vis all his life.
-
-Very early the next morning the mules were fed and watered and put to
-the wagon, and a substantial breakfast prepared for our travelers.
-
-But when Magnus went to the bar to pay his bill, the barkeeper, with the
-slow nonchalance of a country postmaster, handed him a letter, which he
-said had been brought by the Huttontown post-boy late the night
-previous. Magnus took the letter. It was superscribed in the handwriting
-of Mr. Wilson. He turned it to break it open, and found, to his dismay,
-that the seal was black. He tore it open. It was short, even abrupt in
-its annunciation.
-
- “HUTTONTOWN, December 18, 18—.
-
- “DR. HARDCASTLE.
-
- “MY DEAR FRIEND: I keep the post-boy waiting while I write to announce
- the painful intelligence of the death of Mrs. Garnet. She expired
- suddenly about two o’clock this morning—three hours before you left
- Huttontown, although we did not receive the sad news of her decease
- until seven o’clock. The funeral is fixed for to-morrow afternoon at
- four. Return immediately, if you would be present to pay the last
- respects to the memory of the sainted dead. May Heaven grant that this
- season of awful and mutual bereavement may be sanctified to the hearts
- and souls of the father and daughter, of the father-in-law and the
- son-in-law, and that you may be all reconciled—each to the other, and
- all to God—is the prayer of
-
- “Your brother in Christian love,
- “EBENEZER WILSON.”
-
-“Why, why was not this letter given me last night?” exclaimed Dr.
-Hardcastle, in strong excitement.
-
-“Because, sir, the mail did not get in until an hour after you had gone
-to bed.”
-
-“Have you any description of carriage here, lighter than my wagon? We
-must set off instantly, on our return to Huttontown.”
-
-“I hope there’s no bad news, sir?”
-
-“Yes—my wife’s mother died yesterday.”
-
-“Good Heaven, sir; was the poor lady sick when you left?”
-
-“No, no—it was unexpected—quite suddenly; we left her in perfect health.
-Is there any vehicle I can procure?”
-
-“Why, sir—dear me, this is very shocking; I am very sorry to hear it.
-Yes, there’s Mrs. Barber—her old carryall.”
-
-“Have my mules put to it on the instant,” said Magnus; and pale with
-trouble, he went into the little breakfast parlor where Elsie sat at the
-head of the breakfast table awaiting. His grave demeanor, his troubled
-face, and the open letter with the broken black seal, alarmed her.
-Starting up in haste, she rushed to his side. He threw his arms around
-her, and placed the letter in her hand.
-
-Elsie read the first lines. She was too strong and full of blood to
-faint, but the strength and sanguinity that kept her from falling under
-the sudden, tremendous blow gave greater energy and passion to her
-grief. Breaking from her husband’s arms, with a wild shriek she gave
-herself up to passionate lamentations and bitter self-reproaches.
-
-“I should not have left her—I should not have left her! Oh! I see now,
-it was thoughtless—it was selfish—it was cruel to leave her! If I could
-scarcely bear my father’s tyranny, how could she? How could she—so
-delicate, so sensitive! Died suddenly!—oh, yes, done to death—done to
-death! And to keep it secret for four or five hours—oh!”
-
-“Elsie—dear, darling Elsie—hush! Do not say bitter and sinful things,
-which you will repent.”
-
-“Oh, don’t put your arms around me, Magnus! It would be heinous for me
-to be loved, or comforted by your sympathy, now. I who left my gentle,
-fragile mother alone, to be done to death for me; my dove-like mother,
-in the claws of the vulture. I, who was so much stronger, and who,
-having your protection also, should have remained to protect her. I to
-leave her, defenseless, and in peril for my sake, and to come flaunting
-off, so happy and thoughtless, like a very matron. Oh, Magnus, I could
-go to a nunnery, Magnus—I could go to a nunnery, Magnus. A hundred
-serpents are gnawing at my heart! Oh, Magnus, I can never be happy—never
-make you happy in this world again. Oh, Magnus, I am sorry—so sorry for
-you, too! You did not deserve a sorrow-stricken, remorseful wife. Oh,
-mother, dear, gentle mother, what harm did your innocent life do to
-anyone, that it should have been trampled out?”
-
-And then she burst into tears—such copious tears, such floods of tears,
-as only one of her strong and sanguine temperament could have shed.
-
-Tears and lamentations are the natural vent of a healthful sorrow. It is
-only the sorrow unto death that is mute and dry.
-
-And while she was drowned in tears, and wringing her hands, and wailing,
-and talking, Magnus walked up and down the floor, waiting as patiently
-as he would have waited for a storm of thunder, lightning, and rain to
-subside, except when some unfilial expression of bitter indignation
-against her father would escape her lips, when he would go up to her,
-and gently risk to stop her.
-
-“Dear Elsie, you must not speak so. Nothing that your father can do or
-say to me, or to others, can affect your duty toward him. Elsie, you
-must speak of your father with respect, or not speak of him at all. That
-is what your sainted mother would have advised, and, gentle as she was,
-enforced. There was nothing more admirable in Alice Garnet’s blameless
-character and conduct than the delicate reserve with which she concealed
-her own sufferings, and the gentle dignity with which she constrained
-the respect of all her friends for General Garnet. I often compared her
-to the dove, folding her wing over her mortal wound, to hide it from all
-eyes.”
-
-“Blessed mother!—oh, angel mother!” said Elsie, bursting into fresh
-floods.
-
-“She respected the husband in General Garnet—will you not respect the
-father?” at last said Magnus.
-
-“Oh, yes—yes, I will, indeed! I will never say another word about him.
-If I do, stop me—don’t let me, please, Magnus. I don’t wish to do wrong;
-but, oh, Magnus, is it not enough to try one’s faith—to kill one’s
-faith—when one so good as my mother is permitted to suffer and to die?”
-exclaimed Elsie, giving way to another extravagant burst of sorrow.
-
-Magnus knelt by her side, and took her hands, and stroked her hair, and
-wiped her tears, until the fresh gush of grief had spent itself, and
-then he said:
-
-“Dear Elsie, it is the great strengthener and supporter of faith—the
-sufferings and premature death of the good. It makes immortality,
-heaven, certain, because necessary; and necessary, because just. Dear
-Elsie, what is the life and death of Christ intended to teach? What is
-the resurrection and ascension intended to insure?”
-
-“I know—oh, I know she is an angel in heaven; but heaven itself needs
-‘familiarizing’ to our feelings, before it can console us for the
-lost—much.”
-
-At this moment the barkeeper came in, and said that the carryall was
-ready. Dr. Hardcastle re-arranged the cloak around his almost helpless
-companion, tied her hood, and leading her out, fixed her in the back of
-the carryall.
-
-Three o’clock came, and they had still fifteen miles to go. The mules
-went in a fast trot. Four o’clock came, and ten miles lay before them.
-Five o’clock came; it was nearly dark, and they were still several miles
-from town. At length, at a little before six, when it was quite dark and
-piercing cold, they entered Huttontown.
-
-Elsie had long in silence given up the hope of getting even to the
-church in time for the funeral service there; and now she whispered, in
-a low, solemn, sorrow-fraught tone:
-
-“Drive to the church—to the house of the sexton. We must see her again,
-if only in the vault.”
-
-“It will be too much for you, oh, my Elsie!”
-
-“No, no; I entreat, I implore you, take me to the vault.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXVIII.
- THE VAULT.
-
- Death, that hath sucked the honey of thy breath,
- Hath had no power as yet upon thy beauty;
- Thou art not conquered! Beauty’s ensign yet
- Is crimson in thy lips and in thy cheeks,
- And Death’s pale flag is not advanced there.
- _—Shakspere._
-
-
-A silent drive of about half an hour’s length brought them to the deep
-and sheltered forest dell in which St. John’s Church stood. Surrounding
-the dell was the boundless forest, whose nearer trees stood up, stark
-and black, in strong contrast with the snow. Within the circle of these
-grim trees gleamed a single ray of red light, shooting in a line of
-crimson across the graveyard. This came from the window of the old
-sexton’s log house, that stood just within the shelter of the forest.
-Taking this ghostly light as their guide, and picking their way
-cautiously and reverently among the tombs, they approached the lone
-dwelling. As they drew near they saw the light flitting backward and
-forward in the house, and then perceived an old negro with a saddled
-mule at the gate.
-
-Before Dr. Hardcastle could speak to ask a question the door of the
-house was opened, and the old sexton came forth, clad in a shaggy
-overcoat, fox-cap, and fur gloves, and carrying a lantern in his hand.
-Seeing two strangers, he made an exclamation of surly surprise, and
-asked their business. Dr. Hardcastle drew him apart, explained to him
-who they were, and what they wanted. The old man then changed his tone,
-invited them into his house, and, lantern in hand, slowly led the way.
-With plain kindness, he took the hand of Elsie, and led her to a rude
-armchair in the chimney corner, telling her that, being about to go away
-for the night, he had put out the fire, but that he would soon kindle it
-up again to warm her. Then going to an obscure corner of the room, he
-brought forth a quantity of oily pine knots, and lighting one at the
-candle in the lantern, and placing it on the hearth and piling other
-around it, and heaping more upon them, in an instant he had a very hot
-fire. Then he turned to Dr. Hardcastle, begging him to be seated, and
-explained that he had just been summoned away to Green Mills to see his
-brother, who was dangerously ill; that he had therefore to depart on the
-instant, lest he should not see his brother alive; that if Dr.
-Hardcastle would dispense with his services, and take the keys of the
-church and let himself in, he would be very much obliged; farther, that
-if Dr. Hardcastle should choose not to return to Huttontown in the
-severe cold, this poor cottage was at his service, with all it
-contained; only when the doctor left, would he please to put out the
-fire, and lock up everything, both at the church and at the cottage,
-securely, and put the bunch of keys under the stone by the doorstep. Dr.
-Hardcastle thanked him, accepted the keys, promised security to all
-things intrusted to his care, and even hastened to dismiss the old man.
-When the sexton and the negro had departed, Magnus turned to Elsie, who
-had sat all this time in the armchair by the chimney corner, with her
-face covered by the flap of her cloak, and whispered:
-
-“Elsie, my dear, dear girl, pause, think; do not insist upon going into
-the vault!”
-
-“Oh, yes! yes, I entreat you; something in my heart urges me beyond the
-possibility of keeping back; haste! haste, I implore you. I am sick with
-impatience while you hesitate. I feel as if something momentous,
-something tremendous hung upon this instant of time; haste, haste!” she
-said.
-
-“My darling, my poor darling, strong as you are, this has been too much
-for you; you are nervous, excited, flighty; but, come along; I can take
-care of you.”
-
-Elsie arose and took his arm, and solemnly and silently they passed out
-of the old sexton’s house, and took their mournful way toward the
-church. Solemnly and silently they entered its portals, and, dimly
-lighted by the lantern, passed up its shadowy aisles—silently, but for
-the mournful echo of their footsteps. The door of the vault was situated
-at the side of the altar. Opening this door with reverential care, and
-still bearing the lantern, Magnus Hardcastle descended, followed by
-Elsie, pale with grief and awe, into its shadows. There is a depth of
-solemnity about the last resting-place of the dead which overwhelms the
-wildest sorrow with awe, and subdues it into deathlike stillness. Magnus
-and Elsie entered the vault with profound calmness. But here was only
-the darkness and repose of death. The vault, like the church, was new.
-Only two mortals—an aged man and an infant—had been placed there to
-rest, just before Alice Garnet fell asleep and was laid by their side.
-As the two mourning pilgrims entered, the light of the lantern partially
-revealed the new, gray stone walls, the white ground floor, and the
-three coffins. That of Alice was, of course, easily recognized.
-Reverently, mournfully, they approached and knelt by its side. With
-reverent hands Magnus raised the top of the outer case.
-
-A glass-plate set in the lid of the coffin gave the features of the
-quiet face once more to the view of the mourning son and daughter. There
-was the face, even as Elsie had seen it often in its natural sleep; only
-more serene than in slumber, for in her life the very sleep of Alice had
-seemed troubled or too deathlike. Was this repose deathlike? Was this
-death? Beautiful, strangely beautiful, was that heavenly face, in its
-deep repose, in its rapt repose, for there was a look of ecstasy in the
-countenance, in the elastic fullness of the muscles, in the faint color
-on the rounded cheeks, and the full and pouting lips. Was this death?
-Someone’s reverence for the beautiful had left the amber ringlets
-straying from the close border of the cap, and now so lifelike looked
-the lovely face, and these ringlets seemed to tremble as with a
-trembling breath. Was this death? Was the suddenness with which life had
-left the clay the cause of this lifelike look? There are moments when
-the most rational have wild hopes, moments when the most habitually
-self-collected doubt the evidence of their own senses; it was thus in
-amaze that they gazed upon her countenance, seemingly instinct with
-life; with the freshness, and fullness, and bloom of life; the color
-seemed brightening upon her cheeks and lips with life; the eyelashes and
-the amber ringlets seemed quivering with life, and even as they gazed
-with amaze the view was obscured by a mist on the glass, and the
-beautiful countenance veiled from their eyes. Elsie spoke with a voice
-full of tears.
-
-“Oh, Magnus! dear Magnus! wipe off the glass. Our breath, as we looked
-too close, has dulled it. I cannot see her angel face any longer for the
-mist upon the glass.”
-
-Magnus drew out his silk pocket-handkerchief and wiped the glass
-carefully.
-
-“I cannot see her yet, Magnus. I cannot see her yet. Oh, I want to see
-her again, that that divine countenance may be indelibly fixed in my
-memory—oh-h-h!”
-
-Magnus wiped the glass again very carefully, looked, wiped it a third
-time most carefully, and, taking up the lantern, threw its whole light
-upon the plate, rubbing it assiduously as he did so. Why did Dr.
-Hardcastle start—
-
- “As if the Archangel’s trump he heard?”
-
-The new mist upon the glass was from within the coffin. To snatch a
-hunting-knife from his belt, to wrench open the coffin lid with one
-wrench of his strong hand and throw it off, to give her fresh air; to
-snatch her from the coffin to the warmth and shelter of his living arms
-and bosom; to turn to the thunder-stricken Elsie, and exclaim:
-
-“Elsie, don’t faint! Be strong, I command you! Your mother lives! she
-lives! She has been placed here in apparent death only; she must not
-recover to find herself in this dreadful place; to see these
-grave-clothes; to know what horrors have befallen her, lest reason be
-shocked forever from its seat. Give me your cloak, Elsie! Quick! quick!
-My God, don’t faint, I abjure you; I’ll never forgive you if you faint
-now. Your cloak, I say; your cloak, quick! to throw around this shroud,
-which she must not see.”
-
-Elsie, with pallid lips and dilated eyes, too amazed and doubtful of her
-own senses and sanity to receive the joyful truth, with mechanical
-promptitude threw off her cloak and handed it to Magnus.
-
-“That’s my brave girl; that’s my pioneer wife!” he said, receiving the
-cloak, and folding it hastily yet carefully around the form he held in
-his arms, and pressing it closer to his bosom. “There, Elsie! Now, my
-little heroine, shade the lantern; quick, Elsie, lest she open her eyes
-and see the place we bear her from. Quick, Elsie! she is moving
-restlessly in my arms now, and her form is getting warm, thank Heaven!
-as warm almost as yours, my Elsie. There, now follow me closer behind,
-Elsie, my little soldier, and you may let the lantern shine as soon as
-we get out of the church.”
-
-And so, folding the form of Alice closer in his sustaining arms, closer
-to his sheltering bosom, and followed by Elsie, bearing the darkened
-lantern, he hurried up the stairs of the vault, down the aisle of the
-church, out of the great door, and across the graveyard toward the
-cottage of the sexton, never pausing in his speed until he reached the
-door of the cabin, which, without stopping to unlatch, he pushed open
-with a blow of his foot.
-
-He bore her in, followed by Elsie with the lantern. The fire they had
-left there was still burning brightly, warming and lighting the whole
-room. In the upper end of the apartment stood a poor but neat and
-cleanly bed.
-
-Toward this he hastened with the form of Alice. He turned down the
-cover, and, hastily divesting her of the heavy cloak, laid her in the
-bed and covered her warmly up. He stooped and looked at her with intense
-interest, then took her arm and felt her pulse. It was moderately full
-and quick. He gazed upon her face. The color was still brightening in
-her cheeks and lips; her eyelids were quivering as if about to fly open;
-her full, fresh lips were slightly apart, as if about to speak; she was
-moving gently, breathing softly, murmuring melodiously. He bent his ear
-to catch that low, musical murmur; low and musical as the faintest
-breath of the Æolian harp. The words of that strange melody were: “Oh,
-angels, let me go! I—only I of all the earth love him well enough to be
-the instrument of Christ for his redemption—I—only I of all the earth
-have faith in its possibility.”
-
-“Wandering, flighty, delirious,” said Dr. Magnus, quietly dropping the
-wrist he had held, and rising and going toward Elsie. “Elsie, I dare not
-leave your mother for an instant now. Pick up your cloak, wrap yourself
-well in it, take the lantern and haste to the gate, where we left the
-carriage; take my medicine chest from the box, and bring it hither.
-Haste, Elsie, haste! Every second counts a year of life.”
-
-Mechanically as an automaton Elsie had obeyed his every direction. She
-looked unnatural with her pale face and great, dilated eyes. And she
-performed her part with the abstracted air and literal and mathematical
-precision of a sleep-walker. With this strange, absent air she went out,
-and after an absence of about fifteen minutes returned with the medicine
-chest.
-
-Magnus heard her coming and left his patient for an instant to open the
-door and relieve her of her burden. But here another subject
-unexpectedly arrested his attention and claimed his care. As she gave
-the chest into his hands she stared straight at him—straight through him
-and past him with such unconscious eyes that he grew alarmed for her.
-Setting down the medicine chest upon a bench, he took her hands and drew
-her up to the fire, and, laying his hand upon her shoulder, and looking
-straight in her eyes, he said cheerfully:
-
-“Wake up, Elsie! Rouse yourself, my child! This is very awful, but not
-unnatural.”
-
-“Oh-h-h!” sighed Elsie, dropping into the armchair. “Oh-h-h! I know it
-is not unnatural, or uncommon, either, for loved ones to die, and hearts
-to be bereaved and broken; but, dear Magnus, I am afraid I am going
-crazy; I am afraid to tell you what I wildly imagined just now, what an
-extravagant fancy I took into my head.”
-
-“What was it, then?”
-
-“Now, don’t be too much astounded at my folly, dear Magnus, for I have
-been so grievously tried.”
-
-“What was it, then? Quick! I have no time for idle talk.”
-
-“Well, then, I fancied—oh-h-h! such a mad, frenzied fancy—that my
-beloved mother was alive again. Am I not going mad? I thought my dear
-mother was alive again!”
-
-“And you know she is!” he exclaimed, dropping his hand upon her
-shoulder, with hearty, kindly roughness; “you know she is! Rouse
-yourself this moment, Elsie; I command you; collect your thoughts;
-remember where you are, and what has occurred. What sort of behavior is
-this? Have I been premature and too partial in ascribing to you strength
-of mind; courage, coolness, promptitude in emergency? Can I depend upon
-you in extremity? Come out of this amazement this instant, Elsie! Wake
-up, and make yourself useful; weakness is meanness. Be strong; strength
-is grandeur. Be heroic; strength is heroism. Make me proud to call you
-wife. Stand up, now; give me both your hands. Look me straight in the
-eyes, and let me see if I cannot infuse some sanity and strength into
-that amazed and fainting soul of yours.”
-
-Elsie placed the back of her hands against her brow, while she slowly
-arose to her feet, and then, slowly throwing off her hands, as if to
-dispel an illusion, she said:
-
-“There; the cloud has passed, Magnus; the weakness has left me; I will
-be worthy of you. What is it that I can do, Magnus?”
-
-“There! I know you were not a poltroon; only a fatigued hero, Elsie.
-Come, one kiss, and then to work.”
-
-And he caught her to his bosom with an ardent clasp and fervent kiss,
-that inspired from his own rich and strong vitality all her life, and
-warmth, and energy, and activity that her weaker nature needed at this
-trying moment. Then he led her to the bedside of her mother, whispering
-as he did so:
-
-“Now, my own heroic wife, no relapse into weakness.”
-
-“No, no, indeed, my strength; I will be worthy of you. Oh, Magnus, I
-think you have life enough to raise me from the dead, if I were to die.
-Oh, Magnus, I begin to realize now that she lives, and that I am
-blessed; blessed to the fullness of content,” said Elsie, sinking upon
-her knees and raising her clasped hands and streaming eyes to heaven.
-
-“Calmly, calmly, my Elsie,” said Magnus, laying his hand gently on her
-head. “There, rise now, and sit beside your mother, and watch her, and
-listen for her words, that we may know the nature of her illusion, and
-not rudely shock it. She seems in a happy trance now—and her pulse is
-good, yet her state is so critical that her waking must be watched for.”
-
-“Hush-h-h! her lips move! she speaks!” said Elsie, bending over her.
-“Oh, mother! mother! darling mother! warm and living, restored to me!
-What shall I render Heaven in exchange for thee? Hush-h-h! she is saying
-something. Oh, Magnus, that look of quiet ecstasy has left her
-countenance, and the troubled, earthly look she used to wear has come
-again! What is the reason of it? oh, what is the reason of it? Oh, see
-how her brow contracts! how her lips quiver! Oh, see her hands fly
-together and clasp like vises! Oh, Magnus! Magnus do something! She is
-going into a spasm.”
-
-“No, no, child; she is not. Natural life is coming again. Her mind is
-taking up the train of thoughts at the place where it was lost. Nothing
-can be done as yet, but to listen—yes, listen—she speaks again—hear!”
-
-“Forgive Elsie—only forgive Elsie, and I will forget that I have been
-betrayed, and scorned, and trampled under foot. At least I will never,
-never speak of it,” murmured Alice, in a heart-broken tone; and then her
-hands flew up, her eyes flew open, and she looked around in the full
-possession of all her faculties, which was evident from the surprise
-with which she glanced upon the strange scene.
-
-Magnus and Elsie had drawn back, not to shock her with their sudden
-appearance.
-
-Yes, catalepsy, epilepsy, apparent death—whatever the medical faculty in
-their wisdom might have pronounced the fit to be that had held her life
-spellbound for two days—was over, quite over, and she raised up in the
-full possession of all her senses.
-
-“Where in the universe am I?” she asked, rising upon her elbow and
-looking around. “Has he turned me out of doors, really, and has one of
-the negroes taken me into a quarter during a fainting fit? Let me
-recollect. What happened after he threw me down? I remember nothing
-after that. ‘Now, die of rage’ he said, and spurned me from him. Yes,
-that is the last link in memory’s chain. I must have fainted after that;
-he must have thrust me out, and one of the poor negro women must have
-picked me up and brought me to her quarters, and here I have recovered.
-Oh, I wonder how long I have lain in this swoon?—not long. It was near
-daylight when I lost recollection. It is not quite daylight yet. Oh, I
-have not lain here long, perhaps not ten minutes. I wish someone would
-come. I want to warn them not to speak of this. It must not be talked of
-on the plantation. It must not get out among the neighbors. And never,
-never must Elsie hear of it—guess at it! God! God! save Elsie from this
-knowledge! Let her still respect her father. Let her still be happy in
-thinking of me in my home—‘home’—my home. Alas! it is not my home any
-longer! I do not own an interest there—not even a wife’s interest in the
-homestead which I should have had, even had the estate come by General
-Garnet, for I have signed even that away—‘all right, title, and
-interest.’ Yet it is my home, if not my homestead, for it is my
-husband’s place of permanent residence, and therefore my home. And I
-must go back to it. I must beg him to let me in. I must, no matter how I
-may be received. I must, even if his other daughter is there to insult
-me. I must, to spare Elsie the knowledge of this. Elsie must never
-know—must never suspect this.” And Alice arose, and, sitting up straight
-in bed, prepared to throw the cover off and arise, when Elsie sprang
-forward and threw herself upon the bed, exclaiming, in heart-broken
-tones:
-
-“Elsie does know it, darling mother. Elsie knows it all. God nor angels
-would suffer her to be kept in ignorance of it—of all the sufferings—of
-all the sacrifice that has made it her duty never to leave you nor
-forsake you again. And may Heaven forsake me, mother, the hour that ever
-I leave you again!”
-
-“Oh, Elsie! good, but rash child, have you ventured to come back here?
-Oh, Elsie!” And Alice threw her arms around the neck of her daughter,
-and clasped her to her bosom, and both wept copiously.
-
-At last—“Tell me what has happened, dearest child. I have no
-recollection of anything since my swoon,” said Alice, in a faint voice,
-slipping from the embrace of Elsie.
-
-“Mother, darling mother, won’t you please to rest now, without asking
-any questions? You must be so weak,” replied Elsie, laying her gently
-down, and arranging the cover over her.
-
-“I feel weak, yet well, light, renewed; but I won’t ask questions that
-will pain you to answer, dear child. I am almost certain of what has
-occurred. I swooned, and was picked up by one of the women and brought
-to this quarter, and she sent for you. Dear Elsie, I am afraid she
-alarmed you. Did Magnus come, too?”
-
-“Yes, dearest Mrs. Garnet, I am here,” said Dr. Hardcastle, advancing to
-the bedside with a cordial in his hand.
-
-Elsie raised her mother once more, and taking the restorative draught,
-placed it to her lips. Alice drank it, and then said:
-
-“Magnus, Elsie, I am afraid they have told you a dreadful tale of what
-occurred to me after you left the house. Dearest, you must not believe
-all that you may have heard, and you must excuse the rest. You know
-negroes, especially negro women, will exaggerate. They do not
-intentionally transcend the truth, but their quick fancies and warm
-sympathies lead them into extravagance. General Garnet, in the temporary
-insanity of rage, has done something violent, no doubt; but not so
-violent as has appeared to you, and no doubt he regrets his anger now.
-Elsie, do not think too hardly of your father. Give him time. All will
-come right at last. In the meanwhile, darling, I must return to the
-house. I must not seem inclined to make the most of his anger by
-absenting myself. Dearest Elsie, this morning we must part again. We
-will take breakfast together in this humble quarter, and then we must
-part, dear child, until better times. You must go with your husband,
-Elsie, and I must return to mine,” said Alice, lifting up her arms and
-embracing her child.
-
-Elsie looked at Magnus in despair. He stooped, and said:
-
-“Dear Mrs. Garnet, you must sleep now. I am your physician as well as
-your son. You must be silent, close your eyes, and lie still.”
-
-“I cannot, Magnus. I do not feel the least inclined to sleep. I feel as
-though I had had a very long sleep. I feel quite fresh and renewed,
-though a little weak, as from want of nourishment. Besides, day is
-breaking. It is time to rise. This is the day you were to depart for the
-backwoods, and you intended to have made an early start. I cannot hinder
-you. I must rise. We must have one more social meal together, and then
-depart to our several duties.” Alice spoke in a low, calm tone, but
-covered her face to conceal the quivering features.
-
-Magnus seized the chance to draw Elsie aside, to whisper hurriedly in
-her ear:
-
-“Elsie, she must know all about it. She is strong enough to bear the
-knowledge, and so it is perfectly safe to break it to her gently. In
-fact, to tell her the truth is the only safe plan. Her providential
-recovery from apparent death must not be made known to anyone for the
-present, or until General Garnet’s secret disposition is ascertained and
-can be safely trusted. She has nothing to hope from him; she shall have
-nothing to fear. She must be perfectly secure from his persecutions and
-annoyances, until he is in a better frame of mind. This I think the
-safety of her life and of her reason demands. I consider that she is
-providentially dead to General Garnet and living to us. She must
-accompany us to the West. We must be en route within an hour, lest the
-old sexton returns and discovers all. Listen, I will go back to the
-church and restore everything there to such complete order that no
-suspicion shall be excited. And while I am gone, do you assist her to
-arise, if she wishes it. When she gets up and looks about her, she will
-see where she is, and that will greatly prepare her for my explanation.
-If she asks you any questions refer her to me alone for explanation.
-There, love, is the bundle of clothing you put up in your haste when
-about to leave Deep Dell. I brought it from the carriage just now, while
-you were talking with your mother. Get your double wrapper out, and slip
-it on her before the window-shutter is opened. I would not have her see
-that garb suddenly.” And having given these hasty directions Magnus
-hurried out to the chapel, and having restored everything there to
-primal order, returned to the cottage. He found Alice sitting up by the
-fire with her hands clasped, and her head bowed with a look of deep
-thoughtfulness. Elsie had hung the tea-kettle on to make coffee, and had
-set the table, and was now handing out the contents of the old man’s
-cupboard.
-
-As Dr. Hardcastle entered, Alice, without raising her head, held out her
-hand to him, saying:
-
-“Magnus, come here. Where am I?”
-
-And Dr. Hardcastle went and drew a chair to her side, and took her hand,
-and slowly, and gently, and cautiously made known to her the events of
-the last two days. Alice made no comment.
-
-The awful solemnity of the facts disclosed—the apparent death, the
-burial, veiled, softened as they were in the telling—overwhelmed her
-soul. She dropped her head upon her open hands, and neither moved nor
-spoke for a long time, or until Elsie came to her side, passed one arm
-earnestly over her shoulder, placed a cup of coffee at her lips with the
-other hand, bending her bright, loving face smilingly upon her the
-while. Then Alice lifted up her head, took the cup, and kissed the
-gentle hand that gave it.
-
-While Alice drank the coffee Dr. Hardcastle went out and attended to his
-mules. When he returned they all gathered around the breakfast table. It
-was during that meal that he proposed to Alice the plan of accompanying
-them, urging upon her the strong necessity of her doing so.
-
-Alice combated all his arguments as well as her instincts taught her.
-
-Dr. Hardcastle avowed his intention of accompanying her back to Mount
-Calm, and, remaining in the neighborhood, in case of her perseverance in
-her present intention of returning. Alice sought to dissuade him from
-that plan.
-
-Finally, after much talk, Alice agreed to accompany them on the first
-stage of their journey as far as Deep Dell, and remain there incognito,
-while he should return to Mount Calm, and ascertain the disposition of
-General Garnet, and, if possible and prudent, break gradually to him the
-fact of his wife’s unexpected restoration to life.
-
-Having agreed upon this plan Dr. Hardcastle made rapid preparations for
-the recommencement of their journey. They—he and Elsie—restored
-everything about the cottage to complete order; put out the fire,
-fastened up the cupboard, and the windows, and then the doors, and,
-tying a little purse of money to the door-key, by way of compensation
-for all they had used, hid it “under the stone by the doorstep,” as
-requested, entered the carriage, and commenced their journey.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXIX.
- THE CHILDREN OF THE ISLE.
-
- Their earliest steps have wandered from the green and fertile land,
- Down where the clear blue ocean rolled, to pace the rugged strand,
- They proudly flung the proffered bribe and gilded toy away,
- To gather up the salt sea-weed, or dabble in the spray;
- They shouted to the distant crew, or launched their mimic bark.
- They met the morning freshness there, and lingered till the dark;
- And still their souls are as they were, and as they e’er will be,
- Loving and wild as what they love, the curbless, mighty sea.
- _—Eliza Cook._
-
-
-The little sea-girt homeland of Hutton’s Isle had never recovered from
-the fatal devastation of the great tempest and flood. The fences had
-never been reconstructed strong and complete as before. The house had
-never been properly repaired. All the little mending and rebuilding that
-had been done had been the joint work of Miss Joe and her factotum,
-Pontius Pilate. And these slight repairs were of such a temporary
-character as to require renewal every few months. And every year the
-house sank and fell, and grew more ruinous and dilapidated. And every
-year the isle became more desolate and desert. Every season the soil was
-less productive and the crop poorer. The oyster banks had failed
-entirely. The fisheries were becoming precarious. Nothing remained in
-primeval abundance except in the flocks of water-fowl that still flew in
-vast clouds over the isle, darkening the very air at certain times, like
-night or storm.
-
-So much for the house and isle. Now for the inmates and inhabitants.
-
-From having been always poor they were now upon the verge of
-penury—destitution. Miss Josephine Cotter, the good fairy of this
-sea-girt isle, was, to use her own expression, growing older and older
-every day of her life. She did not know, she said, which was most likely
-to topple down first, she or her old house.
-
-The death of Pontius Pilate in the beginning of the winter, and a severe
-attack of rheumatism in her limbs, had seemed to be the climax of the
-poor old lady’s misfortunes. It was immediately after the burial of
-Pontius Pilate that Miss Joe was sitting down in the depth of despair,
-with her apron thrown over her head, and her head bowed upon her knees,
-Hugh and Garnet suddenly stood before her.
-
-“Don’t cry any more, granny. I and Nettie can work the farm,” said Hugh,
-in a cheerful, confident tone.
-
-“You and Nettie work the farm!” replied Miss Joe, looking up with pity,
-anger, and contempt in the expression of her countenance and in the tone
-of her voice. To her, a woman past sixty, the boy of twelve and the girl
-of nine seemed yet infants. “You and Nettie work the farm!”
-
-“Yes, granny, and haul the wood, and fish, and shoot——”
-
-“Pah, pah! Hush talking, you make my head ache.”
-
-“Granny, I have sometimes taken the plow from Pont and plowed a row for
-fun. I know a little practice would make me perfect at that.”
-
-“Granny, Hugh can hoe up the hills, and I can drop corn. Hugh can cut
-wood, and I can fetch and carry it. And now, as there is no fish near
-the isle, Hugh can go out in the boat, and I can go with him to bait his
-hooks and look after the basket.”
-
-And do you guess all the hard and manifold work they did?
-
-It was the dead of winter—the earth was frozen hard, and two feet deep
-with snow, crusted with ice. All the wood that was burned on the isle
-had to be cut and hauled from the forest behind Huttontown, and brought
-over to the isle in a boat. And the boy, with no implements but a
-hatchet, a small wheelbarrow, and a little rowboat, performed all that
-labor alone, until one day, when he had made very slow progress, and
-effected very little, he returned home, near frozen, from having been so
-long at work in the snow and among the ice-clad trees.
-
-Then Nettie threw herself into a violent paroxysm of excitement, and
-vowed that she would go with him the next day to help him gather wood in
-the forest. And she went. And while Hugh cut the brush and the lighter
-branches of the dead trees Nettie would break them up and pile them in
-the wheelbarrow, enlivening the earnest, thoughtful boy all the time
-with her wild and joyous talk.
-
-It was late in the afternoon of a stormy day near the end of December,
-that the two children, Hugh Hutton and Garnet Seabright, might have been
-seen wandering on the cold, bare, snow-clad northwest beach of Hutton’s
-Isle.
-
-Hugh was at this time a fine, handsome, athletic boy of twelve and a
-half years of age; tall, broad-shouldered, deep-chested, strong limbed,
-with the high Roman features, dark complexion, and commanding
-countenance of all his race; a noble boy, undisguised even by the old,
-worn, faded, and patched suit of homespun cloth in which he was clad.
-Bitterly cold as it was, his head and feet were bare—bare, because
-though Miss Joe might shear the sheep, and card and spin the wool, and
-knit him socks enough, yet shoes and hats cost a great deal more money
-than Miss Joe or Hugh could often get together, and so shoes and hats
-were luxuries and elegancies, only to be indulged in on Sundays and high
-holidays.
-
-Garnet Seabright was now about ten years of age; a beautiful, brilliant,
-sun-burned, or rather sun-gilded brunette, whom the sea air and sun rays
-had made as hard, bright, dark, and resplendent as the burning, crimson,
-sea-coast gem whose name she bore. Child of Apollo and Amphytrite she
-was. Her eyes were large, dark, and burning bright; her rich and glossy
-hair seemed jet black in the shade, but emitted gleams of red light
-wherever the sun shone upon it; her complexion was rich and glowing; she
-wore a dress of scarlet country cloth, with coarse shoes and stockings,
-and a coarse straw hat—and, altogether, her bright presence warmed and
-illumined the cold, bleak desolation of the sea-coast, like some
-cheerful fire. She followed close behind Hugh, stopping whenever he
-stopped, and digging with a little stick wherever the little round holes
-in the sand indicated the presence of the maninosies, left by the
-subsiding wind and ebbing tide upon the beach. Very necessary was it
-that they should fill their basket, for very little else had they at
-home for supper.
-
-Their task was finished just as the clear, red winter’s sun sank to a
-level with the horizon, lighting up all the bay like a sea of fire.
-
-The boy and girl started for home with their baskets well laden with
-maninosies, and were gayly laughing around the fire, when Miss Joe held
-up her hand, exclaiming:
-
-“Hush, I thought I heard a man’s step.”
-
-“A man’s step!” echoed Hugh, with a look of surprise.
-
-“A man’s step!” re-echoed Nettie, her eyes wide open with astonishment.
-
-“Yes! A man’s heavy step crunching through the snow. There, listen!
-there it is again. It seems to be coming up the hill toward the
-house—listen!”
-
-They all listened.
-
-Crunch, crunch, crunch came the heavy, regular, monotonous tramp.
-
-And it is impossible to convey the effect of that regular, heavy sound
-breaking upon the profound stillness and solitude of night on that
-sea-girt isle.
-
-“In the name of Heaven, who can it be?” exclaimed Miss Joe, as nearly
-frightened as ever she was in her life.
-
-Crunch, crunch, crunch came the step, nearing the door.
-
-“I am going to see,” exclaimed Hugh, seizing up a pine knot, lighting it
-at the fire, and making for the door.
-
-Miss Joe could scarcely repress a scream.
-
-Nettie stood like a young panther at bay; clinging to Miss Joe in
-terror, yet looking toward the door with her eyes ablaze with defiance.
-
-Just as a loud rap started them afresh Hugh swung the door open, and a
-tall, majestic-looking man, wrapped in a large cloak, strode into the
-room.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXX.
- THE NIGHT VISIT.
-
- And scenes long past of joy and pain,
- Come weldering through her childish brain.
- _—Scott._
-
-
-“That’s godfather! As sure as a gun that’s godfather!” exclaimed Nettie;
-making one bound from the place where she stood to a chair, and
-springing thence to the bosom of the newcomer, where she clung
-desperately, pressing her arms around his neck; holding his head between
-her hands, while she kissed his eyes and cheeks and lips; then rubbing
-and rooting her head into his bosom, and screaming with delight.
-
-“And is it possible you recollect me, little Nettie?” asked General
-Garnet (for it was he), in a tone of voice almost sad.
-
-“Recollect you, godfather; sure I do! Though you have been away so long;
-I haven’t seen you since I was a wood-sprite, and that was a long time
-ago, and now I am a water-nymph,” exclaimed Nettie, rubbing her head
-into him, and clinging around him, laughing with joy.
-
-“Wild as ever, Nettie?”
-
-“Wild, yes! You know when I was a wood-sprite I could climb trees like a
-squirrel; well, now, I am a sea-nymph—I can swim like a duck and dive
-like a fish—ask granny if I can’t! cried Nettie, reiterating all her
-exclamations of affection and delight, and repeating all her impetuous
-caresses.
-
-“It seems to me that you love me a little, Nettie?” said he, in the same
-sad tone.
-
-“Love you a little, godfather! Oh! just open your cloak and take me
-inside next to you. Oh! just unbutton your coat, and button me up inside
-of that, too. I love you well enough to let you swallow me, godfather,”
-exclaimed the imp, nestling close to him with her arms about his neck,
-her head tucked into his bosom, and wriggling with delight.
-
-“Yes, you do love me—disinterestedly—poor, forsaken child! And you are
-the only thing on earth that does love me,” said he, folding both arms
-closely about her.
-
-All this took place in a very few minutes, while Miss Joe was rising in
-her corner, setting aside her wheel, smoothing down her apron, and
-coming forward to meet her visitor, saying:
-
-“Nettie, jump down this moment, and don’t trouble the ‘gentleman.’” But
-Nettie clung tighter, and General Garnet held her closer. “General
-Garnet, sir, it is an unexpected honor to see you here. Pray, come to
-the fire and sit down. Hugh, shut that door, and set a chair for the
-general, and throw more brush on the fire. General, do sit down, and
-don’t let that wild child bother you so. Come down, Nettie, I say.”
-
-“I sha’n’t, granny!”
-
-“Never mind, Miss Joe, I like to have her here,” said General Garnet,
-throwing off his cloak, seating himself in a large armchair at the fire,
-and seating Nettie on his knee. “Well, my old friend, how does fate use
-you nowadays?” he finally asked of the old lady.
-
-“Oh, sir, very well, indeed; fust-rate, I thank you,” answered proud
-Miss Joe.
-
-“I am very glad to hear it,” commented her visitor, with one arm still
-clasping Nettie, while he glanced sarcastically around the room.
-
-Miss Joe did not perceive the irony, but she saw his suit of deep
-mourning, and suddenly recollected that she might be expected to say
-something appropriate to the occasion. So, composing her countenance to
-funereal solemnity, she looked at General Garnet, and said, very
-seriously, the following commonplace:
-
-“We have heard of your heavy bereavement in the sudden death of your
-wife, General Garnet, and we are very much grieved. But you know, sir,
-death is the common lot of all. It is the only condition we can—can have
-life on. It’s just as nat’ral as being born. And so, sir, I hope you’ll
-be able to bear up under your fate like a philosopher. Besides which, it
-is the will of God. And being just so, I trust you will have grace to
-resign yourself to your trials like a Christian.”
-
-“I trust so, I trust so,” replied General Garnet, speaking quickly; then
-he added: “It augments my sorrow very much, however, to remember that it
-was the misconduct of the daughter that precipitated the fate of the
-mother.”
-
-“Good Heaven! you don’t say so, sir!”
-
-“Yes! you may as well know the truth, my good old friend. Elsie threw
-herself entirely away; eloped and went off to the West with that
-worthless beggar, Hardcastle,” said he, looking around to see the effect
-of his words.
-
-Hugh’s head sprang up with an expression of indignant astonishment,
-denial, and defiance on his fine countenance.
-
-Nettie gazed at him—appalled.
-
-Miss Joe stared, with mouth and eyes all open with wonder, exclaiming:
-
-“Good gracious, sir, you don’t tell me so. I heard something—but I
-didn’t—I never—well, dear me—Lord a-mercy. Was it really that away,
-arter all?”
-
-“Yes: and now my good friend, my excellent friend, let us change the
-subject; it is too painful; much too painful; even you can judge a
-father’s and a husband’s feelings must be upon such an occasion. Let us
-leave the agonizing topic, and never revert to it again. Let us turn to
-a more agreeable subject. My dear little goddaughter, here,” said he,
-bending over the child on his knee with his soft, bright smile—a smile
-as charming as full, beautifully curved lips, pearly teeth, and a dark
-mustache, and the spirit of Belial could make it; “my dear little
-godchild here—she is a very fine little girl, and will one day, no
-doubt, make a very accomplished woman. You have taken good care of her;
-it is easy to see that. What rosy cheeks she has!”
-
-“I have taken as good care of her as I could, sir—which being an old
-woman—too old to follow after children—wan’t much.”
-
-“I am under great obligations to you, Miss Joe, and must find some way
-in which to repay you for the years of trouble and expense you have been
-put to upon account of my little ward.”
-
-“Not at all, sir; you owe me nothing,” said the proud old lady. “I have
-always been a-t’iling, striving, saving soul; but I never saved
-anything, as I thought anyone near me, ’specially a little child, was a
-sufferin’ for. No, General Garnet, ef I am to be paid at this hour of
-the day I had rather the Lord pay me. I don’t want you to take it out’n
-his hands.”
-
-General Garnet, turning to little Nettie, again took her hand, looked at
-the beautifully-molded but sun-browned thing, and said, softly and
-smilingly:
-
-“You have a very pretty-shaped hand, my dear little girl. You ought to
-take care of it. You ought to wear gloves.”
-
-“Haint got any, godfather.”
-
-“But you should get them or have them got for you. Why don’t you?”
-
-“Couldn’t dig for maninosies or break brush with gloves on, godfather.”
-
-“Why, you don’t do these shocking things?”
-
-“Yes, indeedy! and I’m going coon hunting with Hugh next moonshiny night
-that comes.”
-
-“Next moonlight night that comes you will be in a very different looking
-place from this,” said he, pushing the lurid black ringlets back gently
-behind her ears, and noticing for the first time that sure index of
-“gentle blood” in human kind or horses—the small and elegantly formed
-ear.
-
-“Where shall I be, godfather?”
-
-“Never mind where! They have not bored your ears, Nettie!”
-
-“No; I haven’t had my ears bored, but I saw a picture of an Indian with
-his nose bored.”
-
-“Pooh—yet, after all, one is about as barbarous as the other, little
-Nettie. Nettie, my little girl, would you like to go home and live with
-me?”
-
-“Go home and live ’long o’ you! Um-m-m-me—no! I had rather you’d come
-and live ’long o’ me.”
-
-“Why?”
-
-“’Cause I don’t want to leave granny; she wouldn’t have anybody to hug
-her up and keep her back warm at night.”
-
-“But if we were to take granny with us, too?”
-
-“Um-m—me. Could you take Hugh along, too?” asked the child, with the
-astute air of one making a shrewd bargain.
-
-“No,” very decidedly answered General Garnet; adding, in a lower tone,
-“No more childish friendships ripening into mature love.”
-
-“Very well, then, godfather, if you love me, you’ll have to come and
-live ’long of us; for I can’t go home ’long o’ you.”
-
-“Why not, pray?”
-
-“’Cause, godfather, how could Hugh live here by himself?”
-
-“Well, little ‘Martha,’ anxious and troubled about many things, Hugh
-need not live here by himself. Suppose I was to get a situation for
-Hugh?”
-
-“A what?”
-
-“Suppose I were to put Hugh in the way of getting an honest living?”
-
-“La, godfather, no white men about here except niggers ever get an
-honest living, and I can’t let you black Hugh’s face and crisp his
-hair—that’s black enough already—and make a nigger of him!”
-
-“You silly child, you will let me make a lawyer, or a doctor, or a
-parson of him, won’t you?”
-
-Before Nettie could answer Hugh Hutton came up, cap in hand, and stood
-facing General Garnet.
-
-“Well, my boy?” said the latter.
-
-“General Garnet, if you have any notion of taking Nettie away from here,
-just look out for her and the old lady, who has had the care of her so
-long, and never mind me. I can take care of myself. Nettie, darlin’,
-never stop for me; I know what to do with myself. And now, general, as
-long as I am talking to you, I must tell you I don’t believe one word
-about Dr. Hardcastle’s being a worthless man, because I know he is a
-good and great man; nor do I believe one word of Miss Elsie’s breaking
-her mother’s heart, because—because I know she is as good as she is
-beautiful. You needn’t be angry. I should have hated myself if I hadn’t
-spoke out!” exclaimed the boy, his frank, brave spirit flashing boldly
-from his eyes.
-
-But the words had scarcely left the lips of Hugh before Nettie had
-jumped to her feet, and administered a sound box on the ear to him,
-exclaiming:
-
-“Now! take that! Now, you make godfather out to be a story-teller
-again!” And having given her sharp little lesson, Nettie sprung back to
-her seat, and threw her arms again around his neck. General Garnet,
-without seeming to have seen her action, regarded the boy with a sort of
-gentle, dignified surprise and leisurely scorn, merely saying:
-
-“Why, you impertinent young dog!”
-
-Nettie sprang down a second time. General Garnet gently attempted to
-restrain her, but she dashed his hands away, exclaiming:
-
-“Let me alone, godfather. You are wicked and ugly, and I hate you. He’s
-not an impudent young dog at all! he is my dear, gentle brother Hugh,”
-she said, throwing herself about the neck of the boy, who folded his
-arms around her.
-
-“You must please to excuse Nettie, sir; indeed she is the wildest,
-queerest child that ever was born. But then, you know, she was wild and
-queer before ever I took her in hand,” said Miss Joe, who was all this
-time busy with a saucepan over the fire; and a pitcher, a bowl, and some
-eggs, sugar, and spices on a chair by her side.
-
-“Nettie seems to have very little self-control or any other sort of
-control,” dryly observed the general.
-
-“Now if you aint mad long o’ granny. Just as if it was her fault. And
-she making you mulled cider, too, to keep the cold out of your stomach.
-And taking the top-knot hen’s eggs, too, that she was saving to set,
-because they’re a first-rate breed of hens, that lay eggs all the
-winter, and she wants more of them. And she had but six eggs, and now
-she’s taken three to make you mulled cider to keep the cold from
-striking to your stomach; and you to get mad long o’ her, and cut her up
-short for nothing. Never mind him, granny. I’ll speak right up for you,
-and take your part,” said Nettie, with her arms still clasped around
-Hugh’s neck, looking at her guardian, who was regarding her with a smile
-of mingled amusement and condescending toleration.
-
-“Don’t you mind her, sir. Eggs aint no scarcity in this house; no, nor
-anything else you could want. Would you like the leg of a cold turkey,
-broiled, with a little currant jelly, sir? Or a few queen-cakes, with a
-glass of good old sherry?”
-
-“Why, granny, I thought you hadn’t——” began Nettie, but Hugh put his
-hand over her lip and whispered:
-
-“Don’t talk too much, Nettie. Go make friends with your guardian.”
-
-Nettie turned, saw once more the tolerant, indulgent smile that was
-beaming upon her, and, with her usual way of assimilating only the good
-and the beauty of a mixed thing, sprang at once to his arms, to his
-neck, and caressing him vehemently, asked:
-
-“You are not mad with me, are you, godfather? I love you dearly! dearly!
-’Deed I do, godfather!” And turning around his bushy face between her
-little hands, she kissed him many times, repeating her question: “You
-are not mad ’long o’ me, are you, godfather?”
-
-“No, darling little Nettie, I am not.”
-
-I have often thought that the spell of power that child held over that
-man’s hard, stern, reserved nature was this: The blending of passionate
-fondness with perfect freedom, frankness, and fearlessness in her
-feelings and her manners toward him.
-
-General Garnet then turned, and, addressing himself seriously to the old
-lady, informed her that he thought the time had come for him to
-discharge the great obligation under which he lay to his worthy deceased
-friend, the late gallant Corporal Seabright, and redeem the promise made
-to his widow when dying by taking care of the rearing, education, and
-future fortunes of their orphan girl. That it was now expedient that his
-dear little goddaughter and ward should be brought into proper restraint
-and training; that, in order that this should be fittingly accomplished,
-it was necessary that his sweet little ward should become an inmate of
-his house, and live under his immediate protection and supervision;
-that, being most unhappily a widower, and having no lady at the head of
-his establishment to look after his household, and do the honors, he
-should be under the necessity of engaging the services of some highly
-respectable matron as housekeeper; that he thought no more competent
-person for the duties of the position could be found in the world than
-Miss Josephine Cotter, and, under all the circumstances, no one could be
-found to fill the situation with such perfect propriety; that if she
-chose to exchange her lodge on the isle for the housekeeper’s rooms at
-Mount Calm, she might name her own salary, and he would come up to it or
-exceed it.
-
-Miss Joe’s eyes twinkled under her iron-bound spectacles, but she
-hesitated to answer.
-
-General Garnet gave her full time to digest his proposition, while he
-toyed with the child upon his knee—telling her of her new home and new
-prospects, as far as he thought she could comprehend them; promising her
-new dresses, books, playthings, a pony, etc. Finally, he raised his head
-and turned to Miss Joe, saying:
-
-“Well, madam, have you reflected upon my proposition, and what do you
-think of it?”
-
-Miss Joe hemmed, cleared her throat, blew her nose, wiped the tears from
-her eyes, rubbed her specs and replaced them, and then said:
-
-She didn’t know. She was used to staying where she was. She had lived
-there twenty odd years, and did not feel like leaving it at her time of
-life. Besides, she must see what could be done for Hugh. She must take
-time to consider. She couldn’t give an answer no way till next day.
-
-General Garnet acceded to the short delay, and, smiling to himself,
-arose to take leave; tasted and praised Miss Joe’s mulled cider; kissed
-and fondly embraced little Nettie; nodded to Hugh Hutton; shook hands
-with Miss Joe, and withdrew.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXI.
- NETTIE IN THE MANSION.
-
- She shall dwell in lordly houses, with gardens all about,
- And servants to attend her when she goes in and out;
- She’ll have music for the hearing, and pictures for the eye,
- And exquisite and costly things each sense to gratify.
- _—Howitt._
-
-
-Very early on the morning of the 2d of January, while yet the level rays
-of the newly-risen sun were projecting golden lines of light aslant the
-snow-covered earth, the traveling carriage of General Garnet passed
-through Huttontown on its way to the beach to take in Miss Joe and
-little Nettie, who were that day to leave their island home.
-
-At the same hour Miss Joe was bustling over her last preparations at the
-isle. The simple furniture was to be safely stowed away and left in the
-house; the most valuable portion of their personal effects was to be
-transported to Mount Calm at more leisure; her own and Nettie’s clothing
-was packed into a chest ready to be taken away.
-
-Hugh’s bundle was made up and slung at the end of a stick across his
-shoulder. The boy certainly looked the most hopeful and happy of the
-three.
-
-“Dear Hugh, you do just ’mind me of Jack in the fairy tale, going to
-seek his fortune,” said Nettie, gazing at him with admiration.
-
-Nettie herself was wild with joy and expectation. Scarcely had she slept
-or ate since the noted visit of her godfather. How could she? All the
-fairy tales she had ever read in her life were about to be realized in
-her own person; she was Cinderella, going in splendid style to the royal
-palace, to be married to the king’s son; she was Beauty, who had just
-discovered the Beast to be a handsome, powerful prince, who was going to
-make a princess of her; or, if not literally so, her dreams were equally
-fanciful and extravagant. But how different was the reality, poor
-Nettie! more fairy-favored as wood-sprite in the forest wild, or
-water-nymph in her sea-girt isle than ever as heiress of the millionaire
-in the cold magnificence of Mount Calm.
-
-The last thing Miss Joe did was to put out the fire and dress Nettie in
-a little cloak of scarlet country cloth, made with a hood to go over her
-head.
-
-At which Nettie, with many extravagant capers, declared herself to be
-Little Red Riding Hood in person.
-
-When all was done and the house locked up, the three took their way down
-the solitary footpath through the snow to the water’s edge.
-
-Hugh had already cleaned out the boat, and they all got into it. Hugh
-took the oar. The water was very smooth, the current in their favor, and
-in twenty minutes the boy landed his charge safely upon the beach.
-
-The carriage of General Garnet was in waiting.
-
-Miss Joe and Nettie were handed in by Hugh, and then the boy put in his
-hand to bid them a sorrowful good-by.
-
-Miss Joe burst into tears, sobbed aloud, told Hugh if he should not find
-his place as shop-boy at Mr. Fig’s grocery pleasant to let her know and
-she would go right back to Hutton’s Isle, and they two would work
-together and see better times when the warm weather should come.
-
-Nettie, for her part, much as she loved Hugh, could not cry. She had
-read too many fairy tales not to know how her own ought to end; and so
-Nettie felt perfectly assured that by some dénouement at Mount Calm
-every wish of her heart must be accomplished, most especially the
-dearest wish of all, that of having her playmate always with her. So
-they took leave. Hugh struck into a by-path, and walked off briskly
-toward the store of Mr. Fig. And the carriage rolled on up through the
-main street of the village and out over the country road that led over
-the snow-covered hills and through the hollow to Mount Calm.
-
-Arrived at Mount Calm they were met by General Garnet, who, receiving
-little Nettie in his arms, pressed her fondly and carried her into the
-house, followed by Miss Joe. Here, in the hall, he delivered the little
-girl to the charge of a neatly-dressed “ladylike” mulatto girl with a
-gray Madras turban on her head and a pair of heavy gold hoops in her
-ears, telling her to take Miss Seabright to the chamber lately occupied
-by Miss Garnet, and to prepare her for the breakfast table.
-
-“And what’s your name?” asked Nettie, looking up with curiosity at the
-gay mulatto.
-
-“Nettie, my darling, she is Hero, your maid,” said General Garnet.
-
-Hero took the hand of the child and was about to lead her up the great
-staircase, when Nettie suddenly broke from her, and, exclaiming,
-interrogatively: “This way?” sprang up the stairs like a squirrel.
-
-Hero tripped after her, overtook her on the landing, and gently took her
-hand, saying:
-
-“Miss Seabright, young ladies oughtn’t to romp through a quiet house,
-and race upstairs in that manner.”
-
-“I know young ladies oughtn’t to, but I am a little gal.”
-
-“You are a little lady, and should act like one. But here is your
-chamber, Miss Seabright,” said Hero, opening the door of Elsie’s
-beautiful room.
-
-“Oh, how—how grand!” exclaimed Nettie, breaking from her maid, springing
-into the midst of the apartment, and standing gazing, speechless with
-admiration upon the splendor—for such they were to her—of the furniture.
-
-The French paper on the walls, with its pretty pattern of wild rose
-vines climbing up gilded pillars and forming into arches: the carpet on
-the floor, chosen to match, with wild rose vines running over a white
-ground; the pink damask and white muslin curtains of the windows, that
-suffused the whole chamber with a soft, roseate light; the rosewood
-dressing bureau standing between these two windows, with its tall mirror
-and marble top, and elegant ornaments of porcelain, pearl and gold; the
-rosewood bedstead, standing in the opposite recess, with its
-white-embossed counterpane, and rich valance, all softly shaded by
-hanging curtains of pink damask, like those of the windows; the
-wardrobe, with its mirror doors, occupying the side to the left of the
-chimney; the marble-top table, with its elegant trifles—a work-box of
-mother-of-pearl and gold, a standish of ebony, inlaid with ivory, a
-portfolio, books, etc.; the work-stand of satinwood; the luxurious sofa,
-chair, and ottoman, covered with rose-colored cut velvet to suit the
-draperies; the polished steel grate; with its silver mounting, and
-marble mantelpiece, with its ormolu clock, vases, statuettes,
-medallions, etc.; lastly, the paintings, few, but admirable, though
-attractive to Nettie chiefly upon account of the massive and
-richly-gilded frames.
-
-Introducing Nettie into that elegant, luxurious chamber was like letting
-a monkey loose in a fancy-shop. For a moment she stood shading her eyes
-with her hand, as she would have done in looking upon a dazzling winter
-landscape, gazing transfixed with surprise; and then she ran hither and
-thither, seized this and that, upset an inkstand, seized a porcelain
-bottle by its stopper, letting the other part fall and break; knocked
-down an elegant dressing-case, splitting off its pearl corners, and
-spilling all its contents; jumping up into one of the beautiful chairs
-and standing on it; snatched a statuette of Thalia from the mantelpiece,
-and, calling it a doll-baby, declared she would make it a red petticoat
-and give it the name of Dolly.
-
-All this was the work of a minute, for then Hero went and took her hand
-again, and said:
-
-“Come, Miss Seabright, all these pretty things are yours, but you must
-learn to handle them carefully, so as not to break and destroy them.
-Come, now, I have to get you ready for breakfast. You are to eat
-breakfast with the general. Come, let me wash your face and comb your
-hair.”
-
-“No, indeed, you aint a-goin’ to wash my face and comb my hair. I’ve
-washed my own face and combed my own hair ever since I can remember, and
-I aint a-goin’ to let anybody else do it now.”
-
-“Well, then, you do it; and here is such a pretty blue dress of princess
-cloth, all trimmed with black braid; and here is a black silk apron and
-a nice lace tucker, and silk mits, and a tortoise-shell long comb to
-keep your curls back, and here is a pair of black morocco boots, see!”
-
-“Oh, how beautiful!” exclaimed the child admiringly, as she hastened
-with her ablutions.
-
-When Nettie was arrayed in her new dress she scarcely permitted her maid
-to tie the last thing, or turn the last long ringlet behind the comb,
-before she sprang from under her hands and fled downstairs to “show
-godfather and granny how she looked dressed like a lady.”
-
-As Nettie sprang into the presence of her guardian he arose and walked
-toward her, took her hand gently, and told her that little girls must
-walk and not jump and skip through the rooms of a house. Then he led her
-into the breakfast room, where Miss Joe was already installed at the
-head of the table, attended by a “genteel” waiter. General Garnet seated
-his ward and took his own place. Hero now made her appearance and stood
-by her little mistress. But Nettie’s eyes were wandering from the
-elegancies of the breakfast table, with its damask tablecloth, fine
-napkins, Sevres china service, etc., to the superb sideboard, with its
-splendid array of cut-glass and silver plate; and from the rich Turkey
-carpet to the wonderful paper hangings of the walls that showed the city
-of Paris by morning light. And Nettie’s maid had several times to remind
-her that little ladies did not stare about, but ate their breakfast
-prettily, before she could withdraw her attention from the new glories
-around her and fix it upon her breakfast.
-
-But before the meal was half over Nettie had sprung up and bounded out
-of the room in search of more novelties. The hall, the library and the
-picture-gallery, the parlor and the drawing room, the saloon and the
-conservatory—all on the first floor—were in turn invaded and overhauled
-by the eager, impetuous child. Then all the chambers on the second floor
-were visited and ransacked. And then the indefatigable little explorer
-made for the attic, and besieged the doors of the locked-up rooms there.
-Through all these runnings and ramblings Hero followed her, telling her
-that little ladies should not do this, or that, or the other.
-
-When night came, a little tired with her incessant running, and a little
-fretted and dispirited with the ceaseless accompaniment of her maid’s
-tuitions and fault-finding, Nettie went into the library, where her
-guardian sat luxuriating in his easy-chair at a table covered with books
-and papers before a fine fire.
-
-Nettie was too tired to notice the elegant and luxurious appointments of
-General Garnet’s favorite retreat; the superb book-cases at intervals
-along the walls; the rare and costly statues, busts, and oil-paintings;
-the tables laden with prints and articles of virtu; the easy-chairs,
-sofas, and foot-cushions; the deep, soft carpet, “stealing all noises
-from the feet”; the heavy damask curtains, excluding all cold air, and
-the splendid chandeliers pendant from the ceiling and diffusing through
-their stained glass shades a rich, warm, and glowing light throughout
-the apartment. Nettie sauntered straight up to General Garnet, climbed
-upon his knees, and threw her head and arms languidly upon his bosom.
-
-“Tired, my little Nettie?”
-
-“Oh, very tired, godfather, indeed. Take me in your arms and rock me
-back and forward, as Hugh does.”
-
-“You must forget Hugh and the isle, and the lodge, and all your
-infantile life, little Nettie. You are going to be a young lady, and
-some day you may feel mortified if anyone reminded you of these things.”
-
-“But I think it would be wicked to forget them, godfather, and indeed I
-won’t forget them, either,” said Nettie, lifting herself from her
-resting-place.
-
-General Garnet saw his error. If he wished Nettie to forget her past
-life, companions, and occupations, he must never remind her of them. If
-she spoke of them, he must not keep her mind fixed upon the subject even
-by opposing it. He must draw her attention to something else. Reaching
-out his hand, drawing a book of colored prints up before him, and
-opening it, he said:
-
-“You have a great deal of curiosity, little Nettie. Here are views taken
-on the Mediterranean; pictures of strange places and old cities, which I
-will tell you about. But as I do not wish to talk to a listless hearer,
-you must first tell me when you see a picture that interests you, and
-question me about anything that excites your curiosity, and then I shall
-know that I am speaking to an attentive pupil.”
-
-Nettie kissed her guardian rapturously, and, still sitting on his knees,
-bent forward and eagerly turned over the leaves of the folio, until a
-view on the coast of Greece arrested her attention, and, pausing upon
-it, she caressed her guardian and claimed the explanation. General
-Garnet was absorbed in the description and history of this plate, and
-Nettie was listening eagerly, when the front door-bell was heard to
-ring. General Garnet ceased talking, and raised his head and listened.
-Nettie pressed her lips to his and listened, too. The library door
-opened; a servant entered, and announced:
-
-“Dr. Hardcastle!”
-
-“Show Dr. Hardcastle in,” said General Garnet, gathering Nettie closely
-to his bosom with one arm, resting the other hand upon the table, and
-elevating his head and Roman nose to the loftiest angle of scorn. A
-minute passed, and then the door opened again, and Magnus Hardcastle,
-still clothed in his rough emigrant suit, entered the library, walked
-down its length, and stood face to face with General Garnet.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXII.
- THE INTERVIEW.
-
- Here I disclaim all my paternal care,
- Propinquity and property of blood,
- And as a stranger to my hearth and me
- Hold her from this forever!
- _—Shakspere._
-
-
-Thus they stood:
-
-General Garnet had arisen and put Nettie from his bosom, but she stood
-upon the chair he had just vacated, with her arms around his neck,
-gazing at the newcomer.
-
-Dr. Hardcastle stood, cap in hand, immediately before him.
-
-They looked at each other. The countenance of General Garnet was calm
-and impassable; he could afford to be calm; he had his revenge in his
-hand—in his arms! The countenance of Magnus was frank, open, eager as
-ever, yet tempered with a certain gravity and earnestness of expression.
-
-But a single instant they thus regarded each other, and then:
-
-“Well, sir?” said General Garnet.
-
-Magnus held forth his hand, saying seriously:
-
-“General Garnet, I have come a day’s journey back from my Western road
-to offer you my hand in amity, to say to you how kindly I feel, and must
-ever feel, toward the father of my beloved wife—to say how much I desire
-your friendship—how much we all desire a reconciliation. Will you take
-my hand?” General Garnet drew himself up and remained silent. Nettie,
-with her arms still around his neck, gazed with interest at their
-visitor. Magnus dropped his hand, but continued: “Sir, I can understand
-the resentment of disappointed ambition. But I do not, and will not,
-believe such anger to be implacable; not now—not under the afflicting
-dispensation of your recent deplorable bereavement. General Garnet, I
-had proceeded a day and night upon my westward journey before I received
-a letter from Mr. Wilson announcing the sudden death of Mrs. Garnet. My
-dear wife was overwhelmed with sorrow, a sorrow which I also deeply
-felt. She reproached herself bitterly with a thousand fancied sins
-against her lost mother, vowing in her remorse and despair what she
-would give, or do, could the grave but give up its dead. ‘The grave is
-inexorable!’ General Garnet, to some extent I have judged your heart by
-hers. The husband and the daughter have a common sorrow. The husband
-must have suffered as much as the daughter. General Garnet, can I
-venture to speak candidly to you? Can I venture to say that, little as
-your Alice may have been loved or valued while she was still by your
-side, in your daily path, yet now that she has vanished from your sight
-you miss her in a thousand endearing attentions—in a thousand gentle
-ministrations every moment of your life. You miss her in countless
-comforts, and nameless refinements of comfort, of which she, till lost,
-was the quiet, unsuspecting origin. And now you find out the cause by
-missing the effect!”
-
-“‘How blessings brighten as they take their flight!’” said General
-Garnet, in a low, ironical tone, filling up the pause made by Magnus.
-But, without observing the sneer, Dr. Hardcastle replied, gravely and
-sweetly:
-
-“Yes! ‘We know not that an angel had been with us till we saw the glory
-of her vanishing wing!’ In your deep heart, was it not thus with you,
-General Garnet? Is it not so in a modified way with many of us? Oh, the
-loved and lost! we may have misapprehended, undervalued, misused them in
-life; but let the inexorable hand of Death be laid upon them, and how
-changed are all our feelings toward them! How remorsefully we appreciate
-their worth; how despairingly we love them. What would we not sacrifice
-to restore motion, warmth, consciousness to that still, cold heart, so
-we might press it beating to our bosom; to restore light to those folded
-eyes, so we might gaze into them all the remorse, all the love we feel,
-but cannot speak; to restore life to the dead, that we might see them
-again at our fireside or table is the old, familiar dress, with the old,
-familiar look; that we might be a saint or a slave to them thenceforth
-for ever! Take a closer case; take that of your Alice. Could now the
-doors of that vault where you laid her fly open and yield up its
-beautiful dead—or, to leave the supernatural and impossible out of the
-question, could Alice be found to have been laid there during a fit of
-epilepsy, as has sometimes been the case with others, and could she now
-be restored to you living, loving, would you not rejoice as you never
-rejoiced before—would you not love and value her as you never loved or
-valued her before—would you not do anything on earth to render her
-renewed life happy?” Magnus paused again to see the effect of this hint
-of the truth, thinking, also, that in the event of General Garnet
-remaining obdurate, he had possibly verged too nearly upon a disclosure.
-
-But the stern, immovable countenance of the latter betrayed no emotion,
-either of suspicion or of relenting. It positively gave no clew to his
-thoughts or feelings. Magnus hoped the best, yet withdrew from the
-precipice of a dangerous confidence by saying:
-
-“But to leave improbable things also. Could you wake up in the morning
-and find that you had only dreamed her death, and see her by your
-side—living, beautiful, loving—would you not clasp her to your heart in
-joy, exclaiming: ‘Oh, dearest wife, I have had such a dreadful dream! It
-seemed, too, so very real. I dreamed that you were dead, Alice. Thank
-God, it was nothing but a dream! Now, ask me what you will, Alice, for I
-am so happy to know I have you yet—to know that you have not gone from
-my side, but are here—here!—that I can refuse you nothing.’ Would those
-not be your words and feelings? And what would Alice say—what would
-Alice ask? What was nearest her heart when she fell asleep? What would
-she say could she now be restored, and should you ask her what would
-make her happy, but ‘Father, be reconciled to your daughter!’ General
-Garnet, the same letter that announced our sudden and mutual
-bereavement, the letter of that Christian minister, expressed a hope
-that the hand of Death, which had led our friend away from our midst,
-leaving us all in a common sorrow, might reunite our hands in amity.
-General Garnet, that hope is my prayer. I entreat you, take my hand!”
-
-General Garnet recoiled a step, and answered scornfully:
-
-“Sir, I know you for an orator of old. But if you hope to work upon my
-feelings through the sorrow of my recent and very sudden loss, you
-deceive yourself. And now, hear me! Could—as you have put the
-question—could the doors of my wife’s tomb fly open—and could she be
-restored to me, living, loving, in all the beauty and goodness of her
-being—could such impossibilities occur—and should the first boon she
-craved to bless her renewed life be the reconciliation you desire, that
-boon would be refused, though that refusal should send her back into the
-grave! Now I hope you understand me thoroughly.”
-
-Dr. Hardcastle nodded his head several times, keeping time to his
-thoughts, as he said, in his heart:
-
-“And little do you surmise, poor man, that your refusal will send her
-back to the grave—for you! That she will be indeed dead—to you!”
-
-General Garnet, taking this nod for one of assent, added:
-
-“And now, I hope, sir, that no more false hopes may be raised upon me.
-Neither you nor your wife need ever expect anything at my hands. By my
-fireside, and at my board, and in my heart, the place of the late Miss
-Garnet is filled. This little girl, sir, is my daughter and heiress. I
-have regularly and legally adopted her. The late Miss Garnet had, but
-for your reminder, passed from my memory. Mrs. Hardcastle is an alien
-and a stranger, and I desire that she remain such. I beg you also to
-remember, sir, that, though I have a slight electioneering acquaintance
-with Dr. Hardcastle, such as every prominent politician may have with
-persons not to be recognized under any other circumstances, I do not
-wish even that acquaintance to continue. And I beg you to recollect that
-I have never even seen Mrs. Hardcastle, and never wish to see her. I do
-not know the person, and never wish to know her. Have you anything more
-to advance, Dr. Hardcastle?”
-
-“Yes, sir!” said Magnus, drawing himself up, and as his fine chest
-expanded, looking at his adversary with a brow, a glance that made him
-quail and drop his eyes. “You have dared to misrepresent my purpose in
-coming to you, or else you have naturally mistaken my motives—naturally,
-for it may not be in your nature to understand them. Yet, no, it is not
-so. You do not mistake me. And do not dare to affect it again. You know
-that your fortune is nothing—absolutely nothing—to me, and never was. So
-little do rank and fortune weigh with me against hearts and souls that,
-had I been a millionaire and had Elsie been the child of a beggar
-instead of a daughter of General Garnet, and the heiress of Mount Calm,
-I would have taken her to my bosom in the face of all the world. And,
-more—further, had Elsie possessed, in her own inalienable right,
-hundreds of millions, and I possessed no more than the clothes I wore, I
-would have married her, and not thanked her for the millions she brought
-me, but simply loved her for the beauty, the goodness, the love, the
-dear womanhood she gave me. So little do I value money where nature and
-affection are concerned. As it is, we are both poor, both will have to
-work hard. Elsie has chosen her lot in life, and shall abide by it. Even
-you, her father, shall not rescue her from it with your wealth. You
-cannot change her destiny. Your fortune could not do it. I am resolved
-to make, to command whatever success may be in life for us. Yet”—he
-added, with a softening brow and tone—“yet, father of my dear wife—for
-her sake, for your own, for mine, I would be reconciled with you. Spite
-of all the bitter things written upon your forehead, and spoken by your
-lips, and which I do not think your heart indorses, I would be at peace
-with you; bitter talk is but hasty breath. Let us forget it. Let us be
-friends. Now, then, for the last time I offer you my hand. For the last
-time, I beseech you take it.”
-
-General Garnet frowned darkly and averted his head.
-
-But Nettie, who had been gazing kindly and admiringly at the speaker,
-now suddenly thrust out her little hand, and, emphatically striking it
-into the broad, open palm of Magnus, exclaimed cordially:
-
-“Yes! Let us be friends! I’ll be friends! I like you!”
-
-There was no resisting that sparkling, cordial smile—that earnest,
-confiding manner, and Magnus closed his hand upon the child’s hand,
-pressing it kindly.
-
-“Godfather, why don’t you ask the good-looking gentleman to sit down,
-and why don’t you ring the bell and have wine brought for him like you
-did for Mr. Judge Jacky? Sit down, gentleman, in that armchair, and I
-will go and ring the bell,” she said, jumping down and running to the
-bell-rope, which she pulled vigorously.
-
-“Will you be seated, sir?” said General Garnet ironically.
-
-“Will you first take my hand, General Garnet?”
-
-“No, sir! To forbear is the utmost limit of my self-control. I cannot go
-further, and forgive. Yet you are in my house—standing by my fireside.
-While you bestow upon us your presence, I beg you be seated.”
-
-Magnus waved his hand in rejection of this invitation and turned to go,
-but Nettie, returning from her vociferous bell-ringing, stopped him by
-seizing both his hands and leaning up against him as she exclaimed:
-
-“No! you mustn’t go till you get something—I hear a boy coming now.”
-
-And at this moment, indeed, the door was opened, and a waiter appeared
-in answer to the noisy summons.
-
-“Get some good wine and some sort o’ witches—you make with bread and
-butter and ham—sandwitches, and bring up here for this gentleman. And
-make haste, you hear, because he is in a hurry,” said Nettie to the
-waiter.
-
-The man looked with surprise and perplexity from the self-constituted
-little mistress to the master. And General Garnet, in some perversity of
-mood, exclaimed fiercely:
-
-“Well, sir! Why do you pause? Did you hear Miss Seabright’s order?”
-
-“Yes, sir, but——”
-
-“Go and obey it, then. Do you wait for me to tell you that her commands
-here are only second to my own?”
-
-“Yes, why don’t you go along when I tell you that the good-looking
-gentleman is in a great hurry? What makes you look so queer?” exclaimed
-Nettie, stamping with impatience, but not with ill-humor.
-
-The man bowed and withdrew.
-
-Again Dr. Hardcastle sought to free himself from his loving little
-captor, but Nettie clung to him like a very nettle, or an opossum to a
-tree, exclaiming:
-
-“No, sir, you mustn’t go; you shan’t go, till the wine comes.”
-
-And before he could get away the wine and sandwiches arrived. As the
-waiter walked straight up the room and set the refreshments upon the
-table, General Garnet turned coldly to Dr. Hardcastle, saying:
-
-“My little daughter invites you to take something. Will you do so, sir?”
-
-Dr. Hardcastle, who had been released by Nettie, declined the
-invitation, and retired, followed into the hall by Nettie, who sought to
-recapture and detain him. He raised the child, kissed her, and left the
-house at once.
-
-After he had gone Nettie remained standing in the hall so long that
-General Garnet came out to seek her. Having found her, he exclaimed:
-
-“Why do you linger so, my little Nettie? Come with me into the library,
-and let us go on with the pictures and stories.”
-
-“I don’t want to go back to the library with you, godfather.”
-
-“What! Don’t want to return with me and see the beautiful pictures, and
-hear the wonderful stories?”
-
-“No; I don’t care for the pictures, nor the stories, nor you, either,
-godfather. I want to go to my own room—and I wish you would call my
-maid.”
-
-“Whe-ew! How my little princess takes state upon herself! But I must say
-it becomes her—rarely. But why does she not care for pictures, stories,
-or godfather, either?”
-
-“Because, godfather, you treated the pleasant-spoken gentleman so
-meanly. I’m sure when I and Hugh and granny lived in the poor lodge, and
-had nothing to offer but persimmon beer and sour, knobby apples, we
-never treated our visitors so meanly. No, that we didn’t! Granny used to
-say, ‘Hospit—something or other—before everything’ which meant that it
-was a shame to treat well-behaved company meanly. And you treated the
-pleasant-spoken gentleman meanly. ’Deed, I thought he preached nice as
-the parson. But you treated him meanly—and I don’t want to have anything
-to do with you, and I won’t, either, have anything to do with you,
-godfather. I want my maid. Will you please to send her to me?”
-
-Piqued, amused, attracted by the naïve candor and courage of the fond
-but passionate child, General Garnet laughed and held out his arms,
-saying:
-
-“Oh, come to me, my little Nettie. Come and kiss me, and give me one of
-your tight hugs.”
-
-“’Deed, I won’t, godfather!”
-
-“Won’t! Why?”
-
-“’Cause I don’t feel like it, one bit.”
-
-“Don’t feel like it! Well, then, now what shall I give my little Nettie
-for a good, hearty hug and kiss—say? Shall it be a pony, or a little
-carriage, or a great wax doll, or what? Come! say now. What shall it
-be?”
-
-“Nothing, godfather. You will give me all them things, anyhow, ’cause
-you promised them to me if I’d come and live ’long o’ you. But I aint
-sure that I will take any of them—and I aint even sure that I shall
-stay.”
-
-General Garnet laughed aloud, and said:
-
-“Very well! if you won’t come and give me a good, hearty hug and kiss,
-neither for free love nor bribery, I can come and give you one.” And he
-went toward her.
-
-Nettie ran, flew up the stairs, and from the first landing looked down
-to see if she was pursued, and said:
-
-“No, you mustn’t, indeed, godfather. I had rather anyone hit me a hard
-lick right in the face than kiss me when I don’t want to be kissed. And
-I don’t want to be kissed by you, godfather. I wouldn’t kiss you hardly
-to save your life.”
-
-And having said this, Nettie fled the rest of the way upstairs. Hero was
-already there with a light to take charge of her.
-
-“Strange! How strange it is that I love that wild child more and
-more—need her love more and more every hour that I live! Strange,
-passing strange, that with all her willfulness, I love that half-savage,
-but most beautiful thing, better than I ever loved anyone in the wide
-world! Oh, it is not strange, after all! It is because she loves me
-thoroughly—with every fiber of her soul and body; because I can trust in
-her, for she hides nothing from me—not even her childish anger.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-Dr. Hardcastle returned to Huttontown, and to the tavern, where he was
-to lodge that night. He intended to retire early, preparatory to a very
-early start the next morning. But first it was necessary to go to Mr.
-Fig’s for the purpose of making a few purchases of articles that had
-been forgotten in his first packing up.
-
-When he entered the grocery he saw, to his surprise, Hugh Hutton behind
-the counter, ready to serve him.
-
-“Well, my boy,” said he, extending his hand, “I am surprised and happy
-to see you again.”
-
-“Oh, doctor! have you really turned back? I am so very glad!” exclaimed
-Hugh, his countenance actually illuminated with joy.
-
-“Yes, my boy. We had proceeded but a day’s journey, when we heard of
-Mrs. Garnet’s death, and came back.”
-
-“Where is Mrs. Hardcastle? Is she at the inn?”
-
-“No, my boy; finding that we came too late for the funeral I took Mrs.
-Hardcastle immediately back to Deep Dell, where she now sojourns,
-waiting for me. I found it necessary to come back a second time. I have
-traveled the road between Huttontown and Deep Dell forth and back twice
-within a week, Hugh; and to-morrow morning, at five o’clock, I make the
-third start.”
-
-“The old folks say that there is great luck in the third attempt,” said
-Hugh.
-
-“I should think there was in my instance, if I could take you back with
-me, my boy.”
-
-“Oh, sir, Dr. Hardcastle, you can if you will,” exclaimed Hugh, in a
-tone of anxious, eager solicitude.
-
-“I assuredly will, if I can. And no obstacle exists with me. But your
-little sister, my boy?”
-
-“Oh, sir, my little sister is better provided for than I could hope to
-provide for her for many years to come. She is the ward of General
-Garnet, and he has just this morning taken her home to live with him,
-and to be educated.”
-
-“How? What? Is it possible? The little, fond, wild, beautiful creature I
-saw at Mount Calm to-night?”
-
-“Yes, sir, that was she—Garnet Seabright.”
-
-“What kin is she to you, boy—not your sister?”
-
-“No kin at all, sir; but dear to me as if she were my twin sister.”
-
-“A beautiful child! A sweet, wild, haunting thing!”
-
-“Oh, yes, sir; and so true and good—so trusting!”
-
-“A little eerie, spirit-like thing! What a pity!” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-communing with himself; then, raising his voice, he said: “Well, you
-desire to accompany me, my boy? But how long have you been with Mr. Fig,
-and what are your obligations to him?”
-
-“No obligations at all, sir. The truth is, seeing that from having been
-a help to aunty and Nettie in the time of their need I had got to be a
-hindrance in the way of their doing better than I could do for them, I
-went to Mr. Fig and told him that I would stand behind the counter and
-help about the store, for no more than my mere board—not even asking
-clothing—on conditions, it should be understood, I was to go to the West
-the very first chance that came. Well, Mr. Fig knew me, and how much I
-could do, and agreed to my plan; and so I came this morning, and have
-done a very hard day’s work, too—hauling several cartloads of freight
-from the brig up to the store, and unloading them, and storing them in,
-and waiting behind the counter the rest of the time. All that makes me
-feel well to-night. So, you see, sir, I owe Mr. Fig nothing but good
-friendship; and I am ready to set out with you to-morrow.”
-
-“Be it so, then, my boy. And I am rejoiced to know that in thus
-following the bent of your inclinations, you abandon no duty. Will you
-join me to-night, or early to-morrow morning?”
-
-“Early to-morrow morning, Dr. Hardcastle. You may pick me up at the
-south gate of the falling-field, behind Mount Calm—that will be directly
-in your road. I must go up to Mount Calm, to-night, to bid good-by to
-Aunt Joe and Nettie.”
-
-“Very well, my boy. Be punctual.”
-
-And having obtained the articles for which he came Dr. Hardcastle left
-the store.
-
-That night Hugh Hutton went up to Mount Calm. He succeeded in obtaining
-entrance to his Aunt Joe’s rooms, but found, to his regret, that Nettie
-had some time before retired to bed, and was now fast asleep. He spent
-the night on a pallet in his aunt’s room, and in the morning made up his
-bundle to start. Miss Joe objected, cried, bemoaned her fate and Hugh’s,
-but finally consented to his departure; for Miss Joe believed in Hugh
-and had faith in Dr. Hardcastle, besides it would not sound so badly to
-tell the neighbors, by and by, that her nephew, Hugh Hutton, was
-“studying medicine underneath Dr. Hardcastle.” So Miss Joe gave him her
-blessing, and went to wake up Nettie, to bid him farewell, prophesying
-all the while that Nettie would “take on dreadful.” But Nettie did not
-“take on” at all; she threw herself joyously around Hugh’s neck, gave
-him a hearty hug and kiss, and declared, that with his bundle across his
-shoulder he was Jack the Giant-Killer, going to seek his fortune; and
-that he must let her know about every giant he killed, and every
-enchanted lady he freed, and every magician’s castle he took, and ever
-beautiful princess that loved him. And then she pulled the scarlet
-worsted comforter from her neck and wound it around Hugh’s throat,
-tucking the ends into his coat breast, and bid him good-by. Hugh went to
-the door, turned to take a last look, impulsively darted back, clasped
-his old aunty, and then Nettie, in a last embrace, sprung from the room,
-and was gone. A rapid walk brought him to the spot where he found Dr.
-Hardcastle, just arrived in his carryall, waiting for him, and
-exclaiming:
-
-“Just in time, my boy—and very welcome. Jump in! All right!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIII.
- ELSIE IN THE LOG CABIN.
-
- It was a lodge of ample size,
- But strange of structure and device,
- Of such materials as around
- The workman’s hand had readiest found.
- _—Scott._
-
-
-The place selected by Magnus Hardcastle as the field of his life labor
-was that grandly picturesque portion of Maryland now known as Alleghany
-County, but then called indifferently the Mountains, the Wilderness, or
-the Backwoods. The site chosen for his home was a wildly beautiful spot
-in the midst of a deep, narrow valley lying between two ridges of the
-Alleghany Mountains, and watered by a branch of the Potomac River.
-Although Magnus Hardcastle’s first idea of a home in the backwoods
-presented nothing but a log cabin, and although his young and lovely
-bride was quite ready to dare and share the unmitigated rudeness and
-privations of such a home and life, yet Providence, who “tempereth the
-wind to the shorn lamb,” mercifully ameliorated the hardships of the
-condition for the delicately nurtured girl, who, however willing, was,
-notwithstanding all her health and strength, scarcely able to bear the
-shock of such a sharp and sudden change. The contents of that casket—the
-bridal gift of Alice Garnet to her daughter—amounted to nearly five
-thousand dollars, and though the whole of this sum would go but a very
-little way toward supplying the superfluities of a fashionable bride’s
-trousseau, yet the half of it went very far toward completing and
-furnishing a comfortable backwoods home for our young couple. Their
-house was a log cabin indeed, but one of “ample size” and commodious
-appointments.
-
-It was near the close of a fine winter day that Alice and Elsie were
-together in the family rooms of the cabin. This apartment was large, and
-supplied with all needful furniture. The walls were lathed and
-plastered, but not whitewashed, and retaining the original stone color,
-gave a sober tone to the air of the room. There was no carpet on the
-floor, but the broad hearth was a notable specimen of the fine arts, by
-Hugh Hutton, who declared, in his pride, that it was an interesting,
-instructive, and endless study, to anyone fond of tracing the
-individuality and infinite variety of natural form and color. The hearth
-was, in fact, a fine mosaic of fragments of rocks, of divers forms,
-sizes, and colors, perfectly filled in, leveled and chinked with a hard,
-white composition, that formed an irregular boundary line between the
-pieces. Each side the ample fireplace were dressers, constructed of
-strong plank, and at once laden and ornamented with crockery ware. From
-the lowest and broadest shelves hung dark calico curtains, reaching to
-the floor, and concealing “the humble little household gods,” as Elsie
-called them. There were chairs and tables, made more for strength than
-beauty, ranged along the walls. The windows were curtained with dark
-calico. There was no article of luxury, no superfluity in the room, but
-everything was convenient, orderly, and immaculately clean.
-
-A fine fire blazed in the broad chimney, and though the hour was growing
-dark, it illuminated the room, so as to render a lighted candle
-unnecessary. The tea-kettle hung over the blaze, an oven lid sat upon
-the logs by its side, and the oven was turned up against the front of
-the fire to heat for baking.
-
-Elsie stood at a deal-table, making out biscuits—busy, healthful, and
-happy as ever.
-
-A little to the left of the blazing, too-hot fire, sat Alice, in a
-rocking-chair, and—a reverie. There was but one change in Alice since we
-saw her last. The sunny ringlets of her unfaded hair (be it remembered
-that she was but thirty-five), the sunny ringlets of her hair were
-turned around her cheek, and their end twisted around with her back
-braid. A little lace cap which she wore, because she said a cap was
-proper for her at her time of life, and in her relations, sat gracefully
-upon her still beautiful head, and gave a softness to the outline of her
-delicate and spiritual face, making her seem even more youthful and
-beautiful than before. She had been embroidering an infant’s dress, but
-the work had dropped into her lap, and her hand had fallen upon the
-little snow-white heap of muslin, and the richly-chased gold thimble
-glittered idly in the firelight; but the tiny foot, in the delicate
-slipper, was not idle—it turned upon the rockers of a cradle, where,
-amid downy pillows and soft white drapery, reposed a lovely babe of
-about two months of age. Altogether this beautiful and graceful group
-was a little out of keeping with the log cabin, to which it nevertheless
-lent a charm. But then, Elsie had always laughingly said that her mother
-was an ingrain “lady,” while she herself, for her own part, was “only a
-woman.”
-
-Elsie having finished making out her biscuits, brought the tray to the
-fire to put them on to bake. While kneeling with one knee upon the
-hearth to arrange her bread in the oven, she looked up at her mother’s
-pensive face, and said, sympathetically:
-
-“Dear mother, it seems to me you are not happy, though you would have us
-believe it is so?”
-
-“Elsie, no one is perfectly happy; that is a saying as old as the
-plucking of the forbidden fruit that first brought suffering into the
-world, and yet we never believe it. We are ever striving for that
-perfect happiness which is impossible.”
-
-“I do not believe it to be impossible, dear mother. I am a firm believer
-in perfect earthly happiness; I am so near it myself. Why, even now, I
-should be perfectly happy but for the shadow on your brow, mother.”
-
-“‘But,’ there is ever a ‘but.’ It is the order of life, and I am content
-with it. Be at ease, dear; I, too, should be perfectly happy, but——”
-
-“What, dearest mother?”
-
-“I am a living falsehood, Elsie.”
-
-“Mother!”
-
-“Child, I did not mean to speak so strongly. But I have a secret to keep
-that pains me always—a sinful secret, inasmuch as I am conscious that
-the keeping of it may cause sin in others.”
-
-“Sin, mother?”
-
-“Yes, Elsie; your father is in the prime of life; he believes himself a
-widower. What if he were to marry again?”
-
-“Ha! I never thought of that. It seems so strange to me that people
-should ever marry again.”
-
-“I know it does, my happy Elsie; but, nevertheless, they do, you know.
-Elsie, I have refrained from speaking of my thought, because I did not
-wish to distress you or have an argument with your husband; but, my
-love, I feel that I ought to write to General Garnet, and after that, as
-you and yours are doing so very well, and as you are all so comfortable
-and happy, and as I should not be missed among you, I think, if General
-Garnet wishes it, I ought to go home.”
-
-“He will not wish it, mother; you know he has a gentlemanly horror of a
-nine days’ wonder. Sweet mother, you must remain with us. Not miss you!
-Whom should we have to wait upon and adore if you were gone? And as for
-writing, mother, talk to Magnus about that. Here he comes now, and Hugh
-with him, as usual, and—a stranger with him, as unusual. Who can it be?”
-said Elsie, as, setting the lid upon the oven and replacing the tray
-upon the table, she looked out of the window into the moonlit yard.
-
-The door opened, and Magnus Hardcastle entered, accompanied by a
-gentleman, and followed by Hugh Hutton. The stranger was clothed in a
-suit of rusty black, his tall, slim figure was slightly bowed, and his
-black hair was thickly mixed with gray.
-
-“Come in, sir; come in, sir. Hugh, my student, there, will care for your
-horse. Come in, sir. It is needless to say that you are most gladly
-welcome. A guest is a God-send to us. Come to the fire, sir,” said Dr.
-Hardcastle, leading the way.
-
-“Mrs. Garnet, let me present to you the Rev. Mr. Sinclair, missionary to
-the Winnebagoes, who will do us the honor of resting in our cabin for a
-few days, on his western route. Mr. Sinclair, Mrs. Garnet of Mount
-Calm.”
-
-“Is it possible! Alice!” ejaculated the stranger, dropping hat, gloves,
-and whip, and reeling on his feet.
-
-A slight paleness overspread the face of the lady, but rising with
-perfect ease, she offered her hand, saying:
-
-“Mr. Sinclair, it is many years since we last met. I am very glad to see
-you.”
-
-He drew back, then took the hand she offered, and looked wonderingly,
-searchingly, into her face, as if to read her soul. Her face was
-impassible to him. Turning to Dr. Hardcastle, she said:
-
-“My dear Magnus, this is a very old acquaintance you have brought me, an
-acquaintance of my girlhood. Elsie, my love!”
-
-Elsie came forward.
-
-“Mr. Sinclair,” she continued, still retaining his hand, “let me
-introduce you to my daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle. Elsie, my love, Mr.
-Sinclair is a very old friend of mine.”
-
-“I am very glad to see you, sir. I should be glad even if you were a
-perfect stranger, but I am very glad to see an old friend of my
-mother’s. Do take this chair between mother and the chimney corner, sir;
-it is not the post of honor, perhaps, but it is the most comfortable and
-convenient seat, as you can rest and toast your feet and talk over old
-times with mother at the same time—old times, I said. She does not look
-like she had seen any very old times, does she, sir?” said Elsie, gayly
-talking on, while she shook the hand of the guest and installed him in
-his seat.
-
-“Mamma,—‘Mrs. Garnet of Mount Calm,’—pray take the entertainment of Mr.
-Sinclair upon yourself, while I attend to that for which I have the most
-talent. I mean the creature comforts. Don’t tell him, mamma, that if
-ever I lose my soul through either of the three great enemies of souls,
-‘the world, the flesh, and the devil,’ it will be by the flesh, for that
-I have very little of worldliness, not a whit of diabolism, but a grand
-passion for creature comforts,” said Elsie, laughing, as she raised the
-lid off the oven. “These biscuits are going to be very nice,” she
-remarked, as the steam of the fresh warm bread greeted their nostrils.
-She then replaced the lid, perceived and picked up the fallen hat,
-gloves, and whip of the minister, looked at him as the most careless and
-slovenly man she ever saw in her life, brushed and put away the things,
-and hurried on with her preparations for supper.
-
-“And is this the residence of the wealthy and distinguished General
-Garnet’s widow and daughter?” said Sinclair, in a deep, stern tone,
-looking around upon the rough walls.
-
-“It is the home of General Garnet’s daughter, certainly, and the
-temporary home of his wife.”
-
-“Ah! I beg your pardon, earnestly—yet—the mistake was very natural,”
-said the minister.
-
-“Hugh, attend to that gentleman’s animal in the very best manner. Dear
-Magnus, please to get me some more wood. Hugh, take the bucket, and, as
-you come back, bring me a bucket of water. Dear Magnus, we must not
-forget to request the minister to christen our baby. It may be a long
-time before we have another opportunity, and anyhow, I prefer Mr.
-Sinclair to officiate; it will be so interesting, he being mother’s old
-friend,” said Elsie, as she hurried about, speaking to first one and
-then another, attending to everything and forgetting nothing. Supper was
-speedily placed upon the table—tea, fresh butter and eggs, venison, and
-the nice biscuits. The minister asked a blessing, but ate little. And
-soon after they arose from the table, Mr. Sinclair pleaded fatigue, and
-requested to be shown to his room.
-
-Dr. Hardcastle attended him to his chamber.
-
-When Magnus returned to the family room he found the tea things had been
-already washed up and put away, the hearth swept, the fire replenished,
-and the two ladies with their needlework, and Hugh with his books, all
-gathered around the table that was lighted by but one tallow candle. He
-drew a chair up with the rest, and, putting his hand in his pocket,
-said:
-
-“I have got a letter from Huttontown.”
-
-“A letter from Huttontown!” exclaimed all three, looking eagerly up.
-
-“Yes, from Mr. Wilson.”
-
-“What’s the news? How is father?” asked Elsie.
-
-“Does he speak of the general? How is he?” inquired Alice anxiously.
-
-“How are all the folks? How is Aunt Joe and Nettie?” asked Hugh Hutton.
-All were speaking together, and all eagerly awaiting an answer.
-
-“Peste! ladies and young gentleman, I cannot answer all at once,” said
-Magnus, smiling, yet with something constrained in his manner. “I will
-read the letter; it is very short; a mere note—a mere matter of
-business.”
-
-“Well?” said Alice, seeing him pause.
-
-“A mere announcement, in truth—a—but I will read it. Hugh, you’re
-discreet?”
-
-“Yes, sir.”
-
-“Elsie, my dear, I have been anxious to submit this letter to your
-mother and yourself all the evening.”
-
-“Well, well, Magnus. My mother is on thorns, and I am scarcely more at
-ease. Has anything happened? You look ‘perplexed, yet not in
-despair’—not like the recipient of very ill news.”
-
-“Why, no, not of ill news, yet strange news. You know before I came away
-from Huttontown the last time I requested the Rev. Mr. Wilson to inform
-me immediately by letter of anything important that might occur at Mount
-Calm, and concern us.”
-
-“Yes, yes. Well?”
-
-“He has done so. Here is his letter—listen.”
-
- “HUTTONTOWN, January, 18—.
-
- “DEAR DR. HARDCASTLE: At our last interview you desired me, in the
- event of General Garnet’s contemplating any second matrimonial
- engagement, to inform you, by letter, without delay, saying that it
- vitally concerned the welfare of all parties that this should
- instantly be done. Without having the most remote idea of the cause of
- your very emphatic instructions, I hasten to obey them, by advising
- you that General Garnet and Miss Wylie of Point Pleasant are to be
- married on Tuesday next. Nothing is talked of but the match and the
- great preparations making for the wedding at Point Pleasant, and for
- the reception of the bride at Mount Calm. The family of the lady seem
- very well pleased with the match. Ulysses Roebuck, the jilted lover,
- has gone—sailed for Europe, with the purpose of making the grand tour.
-
- “There, you have the facts that most interest you. There is nothing
- else stirring; all the same dull, dead level; a birth, death, or
- marriage would be an historical event in this village.
-
- “With respects to your lady, I remain,
- “Your sincere friend,
- “E. WILSON.”
-
-“Good Heaven! There, what did I tell you, Elsie!” exclaimed Alice,
-clasping her hands.
-
-“My dear mother! my darling mother! never mind. There is one love on
-earth that shall never fail you. I can have no second mother,” said
-Elsie, rising and throwing her arms around the lady’s neck.
-
-“Magnus, you see that I must go. I must write to-night, to prepare him
-for my arrival, and to-morrow I must set out myself.”
-
-“Oh, no, mother; don’t go! It will be worse than ever now in your old
-home. Oh, mamma, don’t go! Write—only write. Or if it be indispensable
-that someone go, Magnus will. Will you not, Magnus?”
-
-“I will do whatever your mother wishes.”
-
-“Then, dearest Magnus, mail my letter to-night, even late as it is, and
-prepare to set out with me to-morrow. Yet, no: you must not leave Elsie.
-Prepare me a way to go alone.”
-
-“Dear Mrs. Garnet, dear friend, I implore you not to think of going. I
-will go myself.”
-
-“Magnus, dear, you know that upon some points I can be stubborn. I must
-go straight to Mount Calm,” said Alice.
-
-And despite all arguments and entreaties, she persisted in her
-resolution.
-
-“Then, since you will go, I shall attend you to the end of your journey,
-and—bring you back—perhaps.”
-
-“But, Elsie; you cannot leave her alone and unprotected at home.”
-
-“She will not be alone; Hugh will be with her; and for protection, my
-brave wife can protect herself, if necessary. Pooh! my dear madam, I
-would leave Elsie here in the heart of the wilderness six months, if
-needful, without fear or hesitation. She is one in a million, our Elsie.
-What say you, dear Elsie?”
-
-“I say—go with mother if you love me, Magnus. See her safe to her
-journey’s end, and, if it be possible, bring her safe back to me again.”
-
-That same night Alice’s letter was written and mailed.
-
-The next morning, at an early hour Alice Garnet set out, under the
-protection of Dr. Hardcastle, for the East.
-
-An hour later, when the Rev. Mr. Sinclair arose and came down to
-breakfast, Mrs. Hardcastle tendered him the compliments and excuses of
-his host, informing him that a domestic affair of vital moment called
-Mrs. Garnet suddenly to Mount Calm, whither Dr. Hardcastle was instantly
-obliged to attend her.
-
-After breakfast the minister, leaving his respects and adieus for the
-absentees, took leave and proceeded on his journey.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIV.
- WHAT CAME NEXT.
-
- Uncomfortable time! why camest thou now
- To murder—murder our solemnity?
- _—Shakspere._
-
-
-It was two days before the appointed wedding day, and General Garnet sat
-in his library, over his wine, in deep consultation with his lawyer.
-
-“And, you say, sir, that my will might be successfully contested?” he
-asked, setting down his empty glass, and looking anxiously, half
-angrily, at the attorney.
-
-“I give it, sir, as my best digested legal opinion, that in the event of
-your death, should the will by which you bequeath all this vast property
-to your adopted daughter be contested, it would probably be set aside in
-favor of Alice Chester Hardcastle, the only living representative of the
-old Chester family, who have held the land from the first settlement of
-the country to the present time—upward of two hundred years. You know,
-sir, that the decision of the case would rest finally with the jury, and
-such are the prejudices in favor of wealth, rank, hereditary descent,
-and——”
-
-“Well! speak out—justice, you would add, I suppose,” said General
-Garnet, filling his glass and passing the bottle.
-
-The lawyer bowed.
-
-“Well, sir! what of these prejudices? Finish your sentence.”
-
-“That scarce a jury could be found to give a verdict against your legal
-daughter—a Chester—and in favor of your—I beg your pardon—adopted
-daughter—a stranger and an alien.”
-
-“Sir, you know nothing of the law. I shall seek better legal advice,”
-exclaimed General Garnet, bringing down his glass upon the table with a
-force that shivered it, and rising in an excited manner.
-
-“You may seek other, and find more palatable advice, sir. Our
-consultation ends here. I wish you good-evening, sir,” said the lawyer,
-rising and going to the door.
-
-“Stay!” said General Garnet, going after him.
-
-But the attorney bowed deeply and retired.
-
-General Garnet continued to pace up and down the floor, with a strange,
-excited manner, totally at variance with his usual serene
-self-possession. Frequently, also, he stopped—poured out and quaffed a
-glass of wine. At last, pausing, he struck his forehead, emphatically
-exclaiming:
-
-“I have it, now! a deed! To-morrow morning, the first thing I do will be
-to have drawn up, sign, seal, and record a deed of conveyance, giving
-the whole of this estate to Garnet Seabright, and retaining only a life
-interest in it myself. Yes! a deed! There will be no contesting or
-setting aside that, I fancy. And whether I die next year, or a hundred
-years hence, Nettie, if she lives, becomes possessed of all this
-property. Yes! yes! I must revenge myself upon Hardcastle. I must punish
-that ungrateful daughter—true scion of the stubborn Chesters. And by all
-means, by any means—I must—will!—elevate and aggrandize Nettie—my child,
-my darling, my darling, the only thing on earth that loves me. Yes!
-elevate and aggrandize her until I force the world to recognize her.
-Nettie, my heart’s core! whose thought has power to banish even the
-image of my young bride from my mind!—to banish it, because fair and
-lovely and loving as she is—her fantastical and selfish passion,
-flattering as it is—is a more selfish thing than your sweet affection,
-my darling child. Yet she is beautiful, this fervid Ambrosia! And once
-this business settled—this deed that secures wealth and rank to my
-Nettie, executed and recorded, I shall be free to yield up soul and
-senses to this dream of passion. How my thoughts wander! I am giddy. I
-am not well. When ever did I talk to myself before? I must stop this. I
-will consult a physician to-morrow,” said General Garnet, sitting down,
-and drinking great draughts of wine.
-
-The next day, true to his purpose, he rode to Huttontown, and had the
-deed of conveyance, giving all the great Mount Calm property to Garnet
-Seabright, and reserving only a life interest in it himself, drawn up,
-signed, and witnessed with all legal formulæ. Then he rode with it
-himself to the county town, and had it recorded. In the course of the
-day the slight indications of approaching illness that had visited him
-the night before returned, and now, with more marked emphasis. Sudden
-vertigo, with failure of sight and confusion of thought, would seize him
-an instant, pass away—return again, and again pass. He drew up his horse
-at last before a doctor’s office, entered, sat down, and apologizing for
-troubling the physician with such a trifling indisposition by saying,
-jestingly, that he wished to be in perfect health upon his wedding
-day—he related his symptoms.
-
-“It is nothing, sir,” said the physician, after he had felt his pulse,
-etc. “It is nothing. Do not be alarmed, I beseech you! Keep a calm mind;
-it is of vital importance that you keep a calm mind. I would advise you
-to defer your marriage for a few weeks.”
-
-“Do you think, sir, that I am threatened with——”
-
-“No, sir! Oh, no, there is not the least occasion for alarm; these
-symptoms must yield to a very little judicious treatment. Abstain from
-the use of wine and stimulating food, and, above all things, avoid all
-agitation and excitement; keep from all places and persons that have the
-least effect upon your nerves. A day or so will set you up again. Stay,
-I will write you a little prescription. Here, sir, take this—it is
-simply a cooling draught; follow directions, and all will be right.”
-
-General Garnet took the scrap of paper, bowed, and withdrew, with a
-contemptuous smile upon his lips, muttering to himself:
-
-“Fool that I am, to seek medical advice of a fellow whose interest it is
-to make and keep me ill for a month or so! Shall I take this
-prescription, now? No, I feel better already. The fresh air has revived
-me. I will go to Point Pleasant and spend the evening with Ambrosia; her
-sweet smile and gentle touch will charm this fitful illness.”
-
-And turning his horse’s head, General Garnet took the road to Judge
-Wylie’s. The sky was clouding up, but, heedless of the threatened rain,
-he rode on rapidly to Point Pleasant. He spent a long, delightful
-evening with Miss Wylie, and left, at a late hour, more intoxicated than
-ever with the alluring beauty of his promised bride, and repeating, in
-an impassioned tone, many times, the words of his parting: “To-morrow!
-oh, to-morrow, Ambrosia.”
-
-He faced a cold and driving rain all the way home, and arrived at his
-own gate, dripping wet.
-
-Throwing the reins of his horse to an attendant, he hastened into the
-house. The voice of Nettie greeted him.
-
-“Here, godfather! come in here to the library; here is a good fire, and
-your dressing-gown and slippers all warm, and hot coffee and oysters and
-wine. I made them for you.”
-
-Divesting himself of his wet overcoat, cap, leggings, and gloves, he
-walked into the library, where he found Nettie presiding over the
-comforts she had prepared for him.
-
-“My dear little brownie! Why are you up so late?”
-
-“The rain waked me up, godfather, and then I couldn’t sleep any more for
-thinking you were out in it. So I got up and dressed myself, and came
-down here to make things comfortable for you.”
-
-“My own Nettie! I have been making things comfortable for you, also! But
-where is your granny?”
-
-“Gone to bed these two hours.”
-
-“And now you must go, my dear little one. Come and kiss me close, and
-then, good-night.”
-
-The elf sprang to his neck, squeezing him tightly, and rooting herself
-into his bosom, as though she would grow there, and then suddenly
-springing off, bounded from the room.
-
-The little supper standing before him did not tempt his appetite. With
-another retrospective glance of contempt at the physician’s advice, he
-turned to the table and poured out and swallowed glass after glass of
-wine. Then, without heeding the mail-bag that hung upon the chair, or
-ringing for a servant to clear off the things, or even closing up the
-house, as was his invariable custom, he arose and retired to his
-chamber.
-
- * * * * *
-
-At this same hour, on the turnpike road, about six miles distant from
-Mount Calm, plunged on through darkness, mire, and driving rain, a
-one-horse chaise, occupied by two travelers—Dr. Hardcastle and Mrs.
-Garnet. They traveled on in perfect silence for two hours before
-reaching the grounds of Mount Calm. But, upon passing the outer gate and
-entering upon the premises, Alice became nervous and uneasy, and at
-length she asked:
-
-“Magnus, do you feel positively assured that he has received my letter,
-that he is prepared and expecting to see me?”
-
-“Without a doubt, dear Mrs. Garnet, he got your letter to-day at noon;
-assuredly, late as it is, he must be now expecting us.”
-
-“I wonder if he really does. I wonder if he has spread the news among
-the people of the plantation! It is really necessary to know, dear
-Magnus. Else my sudden and unexpected apparition among them will cause a
-general alarm and rouse the neighborhood.”
-
-“Very true, and at the first quarter I come to I will alight and find
-out.”
-
-They rode on in silence until they came to a solitary quarter on the
-outskirts of the plantation. Then Dr. Hardcastle, alighting, gave the
-reins to Mrs. Garnet, and trudged through the deep mud and pelting rain
-to the cabin from whence a faint light issued, and the low, sweet sound
-of a violin was heard. He rapped smartly with the handle of his riding
-whip. The music ceased, and a voice, which he recognized as belonging to
-Bob, the driver, called out from within:
-
-“Hoo dar, rappin’ at my door dis onseasonable hour o’ de night?”
-
-“Me, Bob! your old friend, Dr. Hardcastle; open the door and show
-yourself.”
-
-“Oh, my Gor A’mighty, Marse Magnate, is it you, sure ’nough, come from
-forrin parts?” ejaculated the old negro, fumbling at the wooden latch
-and wrenching open the door. “Come in, come in—come in, Marse Magnate,
-come in. Oh, blessed Lor’! I’m so joyed to see you. How is Miss Elsie!
-she long o’ you? Come in!”
-
-“No, Bob, I cannot come in. I am going straight on to the house. Elsie
-is not with me; she is at home, and—well, I can’t come in. I only called
-by to see you, my old friend, and to ask you if all were well at the
-house, and if anything new had happened.”
-
-“All well dar, honey, ’deed dey is, fus’ rate. Nuffin new, honey, ’cept
-’tis Marse I’on g’wne be marry to Miss Ambush Wylie to-morrow night.”
-
-“Ah! Well, I wrote to General Garnet to say that I was coming to-night;
-is he expecting me, do you know?”
-
-“’Deed he got de letter, honey, caze I fotch it from de pos’ office
-myself dis mornin’, an’ de pos’ marser said how it war from out yonder
-where you gone to. But I never hear General I’on say nuffin ’bout
-’spectin’ no one to de weddin’, ’deed I didn’t, honey. Let me run along
-to de house an’ rouse ’em all up and tell ole marse how you’ve come.”
-
-“No, by no means, Bob. Thank you, good-night,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-jumping into the carriage.
-
-“All right, he has received your letter, madam; but has not imparted its
-contents to anyone. He is doubtless expecting you momentarily; but as no
-one else is, your sudden appearance would strike a panic to the
-household, suddenly roused up out of their sleep, or perhaps send them
-all shrieking from the plantation.”
-
-“But would not your presence by my side—they know you’re alive—reassure
-them?”
-
-“My dear Mrs. Garnet, they assisted at your funeral, twelve months ago,
-and seeing us enter at midnight together will sooner believe me to be a
-second ghost than you to be a living woman. No, my dear friend, you must
-veil yourself closely, and after I have got you into the house, pass
-quietly up to General Garnet’s chamber and reveal yourself to him. Here
-we are at last,” said Dr. Hardcastle, pulling up before the front door
-of the mansion.
-
-All was dark except a fitful light that gleamed and sunk, and gleamed
-and sunk, from the upper windows of General Garnet’s chamber—as if a
-candle was expiring there in the socket.
-
-“It must be near two o’clock—yet he is still sitting up for me—see
-there,” whispered Alice, pointing to the flashing and darkening light.
-
-“He must be alone, and have dropped asleep by that expiring light,”
-murmured Magnus, as he led her up the stairs to the front door. “Now,
-courage, my dear friend. Remember that in me you have a protector near
-you,” whispered Dr. Hardcastle, as he fumbled about in the dark for the
-knocker. In doing so the door swung silently open—it had evidently been
-left ajar. They entered noiselessly. The hall was perfectly dark and
-silent; no sound was heard but the moan of the wind and the heavy fall
-of the rain without. “Now, dearest Alice, he has evidently left the door
-ajar that you might enter without rousing the servants, and make your
-way at once to his chamber, where he awaits you. Go on—yet! stay! I do
-not like the looks of this thing, either. No one knows of your
-existence—no one knows that you were expected here; he awaits you alone
-in the solitude, silence, and darkness of deep night. No, Alice! I
-cannot let you go alone to his baleful presence—I must attend you.”
-
-“Not for the world, Magnus. What monstrous thought is in your mind? Does
-midnight storm and solitude raise such phantoms of fear in your strong
-mind?”
-
-“Alice! bethink you! he is a man of fearful passions, yet of profound
-subtlety and secretiveness. He believed you dead and was about to be
-married. He finds that he has been deceived in your death, and that his
-own marriage is about to be ridiculously broken off. He has imaginary
-injuries to revenge, and endangered joys to secure—both ends to be
-reached by one means. And, more than all, he has the fearful temptation
-of fancied impunity. Alice, take care! This open door—this silent
-house—this lonely watcher in the solitary chamber—this deep night
-hour—and the expected lonely visitor. Alice, take care!” whispered
-Magnus.
-
-“Horrible! most horrible. You make my blood curdle. Not with fear, but
-with horror, at the monster in your imagination. You must not enter with
-me. I will go in alone. Follow, if you please to do so, at a short
-distance. I have no such dreadful fear or doubt. I tremble, it is true;
-but I should also tremble if, in broad daylight, a score of people
-witnessed our meeting. Come on, and remain upon the landing while I go
-in.”
-
- * * * * *
-
-On entering his chamber General Garnet suddenly bethought himself of
-something—he could not exactly think what—forgotten. A strange absence
-of mind, temporary loss of memory, transient confusion of thought, had
-fitfully afflicted him all day long. He put his hand to his forehead,
-and walked up and down in doubt and perplexity, then suddenly
-recollecting what he wanted, he rang the bell, and when a servant,
-half-dressed, appeared, demanded, impatiently:
-
-“Anything from the post office to-day, sir?”
-
-“Yes, marser. Bob, he went to de post office an’ fotch de bag.”
-
-“Then where is it, you scoundrel? and why was it not brought to me?”
-stamped the master.
-
-“De-ur-ur——” stammered the negro, in fear and perplexity, scratching his
-head for an answer.
-
-“Sir!” thundered General Garnet.
-
-And the reply bolted from the lips of the negro as if thumped out by a
-blow between his shoulders:
-
-“Ugh! Yes, sir! You wan’t comed home when it ’riv, marser, an’ I hanged
-it on a chair by de liberry table, where you could see it when you
-comed.”
-
-“And if I had forgotten all about it, as I did, you scoundrel! Go and
-bring it to me. Vanish!”
-
-The man precipitately retreated, and soon reappeared with the mail-bag,
-which he placed in the hands of his master, who immediately opened and
-turned out its contents.
-
-“Only one letter! And that—— D——!” exclaimed General Garnet, recognizing
-the handwriting of Magnus Hardcastle in the superscription of Alice’s
-letter. “Here, you sir! Come here!” added he, hastily blotting out the
-superscription and re-directing it. “Come here! take this letter! By the
-earliest dawn to-morrow take it back to the post office, that it may be
-in time for the mail, and tell the postmaster to send it back where it
-came from.” He tossed the letter toward the feet of the negro, who
-tremblingly approached, picked it up, and retired from the chamber.
-
-Left alone he paced up and down the floor in troubled thought, for about
-the space of an hour. All about the house was profoundly still; no sound
-was heard but the mournful murmur of the wind, and the dreary beating of
-the rain. The clock struck twelve, and the strokes fell through the
-awful stillness of the night with preternatural solemnity.
-
-“So late! and I not yet calm enough to sleep—fearing to sleep, almost,
-lest I should never wake again. What is this? Why now does the solitude
-and silence of my chamber so affect, so appall, me? The truth is, I am
-ill! must be, or I should not be so weak. I did not kill her. No, I did
-not kill her. I did not take any means to recover her for hours? Well!
-what if I did not? That was not murder! I let her die in her fit for
-want of assistance? She might have died anyhow. Why does her image haunt
-my bed, driving sleep thence? Oh, miserable weakness! Oh, cowardice!
-Would my bitterest enemy believe it of me? that I dread to look around
-me, lest I see her face? It is this that is my illness. Oh, doctor! can
-your drugs banish her thoughts? Pshaw! They say nothing evil can come
-into the neighborhood of innocence. Nettie! my Nettie is near me! in the
-next room. Surely my reason wanders. What evil could come nigh me? She
-was not ‘evil’ on earth. She is not ‘evil’ in heaven. She would not
-avenge herself, if she could. Oh, wretched driveling! What am I talking
-of? I am ill—I must be. It is illness that raises these phantoms of
-dread. And solitude and uncommunicated thoughts and sorrows have caused
-this illness. Courage! This is my last lonely night. To-morrow, and ever
-after to-morrow, the cheerful face of that fair girl shall banish all
-such sickly fancies. To-morrow, and ever after to-morrow. But to-night I
-cannot rest at all. I—I will go and look at Nettie, sleeping; the
-innocence of slumbering childhood shall disperse the cloud of devils
-lowering over me. Nettie! ‘The sins of the father shall be visited upon
-the children——’ I dare not. No! I dare not now. No! I dare not.”
-
-He dropped upon a chair—struck both hands to his forehead, whence the
-cold sweat oozed. He sat there, heedless, while the wind moaned around
-the house, and the rain beat drearily against the windows. He sat there,
-motionless, until the clock struck one, and the stroke fell like a
-knell. He started then, but relapsed, immediately, into statue-like
-stillness. The hour passed on, while the rain still beat, and the wind
-still moaned. The candle burned low in its socket, but he did not heed
-it. It flashed, filling the room with a strange brilliancy, and sunk,
-leaving it in darkness—but he did not heed it. It flashed and
-darkened—and flashed and darkened ever—but he did not heed it.
-
-The door swung open—but he did not know it. Alice, his lost wife, stood
-within, motionless—pale—but he did not see her. She gazed at him—growing
-paler every instant—she glided toward him—she stood over him—where he
-sat, with his face buried in his hands—but he gave no sign of
-consciousness. Trembling, pale, and cold with fear, she laid her icy
-hands upon him, saying, in a voice faint and hollow with exhausted
-emotion:
-
-“Aaron, I have come.”
-
-He sprang up as if shot; his face ashy pale, his countenance aghast,
-hair bristling, eyes starting with horror, as he exclaimed:
-
-“Then such things are! You have taken form at last! or else—yes—it must
-be so—I am mad—mad!”
-
-Dashing his hands against his forehead, as though to shut out a horrible
-vision, he sunk back again into his chair.
-
-Astonished, terrified, shuddering, Alice approached again, kneeled by
-his side, spoke gently, soothingly, deprecatingly to him.
-
-But ere she ceased speaking his hands dropped from his forehead, his
-head sank upon his bosom, his form swayed to and fro an instant, and
-then he fell forward, prostrate, at the feet of his wife.
-
-A succession of violent screams from Alice brought Dr. Hardcastle
-rushing in at one door, and Nettie, in her nightgown, flying in at the
-other.
-
-They gathered around the fallen man. They raised him, set him in his
-chair.
-
-General Garnet was dead.
-
- * * * * *
-
-After that the wild shrieks of a distracted child, refusing to be
-comforted, filled the house of death.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXV.
- THE FLIGHT OF TIME.
-
- And years flew by, and the tale at last
- Was told as a sorrowful one, long past.
- _—Mistletoe Bough._
-
-
-It was the morning of Garnet Seabright’s majority, when she was to come
-into possession of the vast estate given her by her adopted father, and
-she was expecting a visit from her trustee to give an account of his
-stewardship and yield up his office.
-
-Lionel Hardcastle, foreordained by General Garnet as the husband of his
-inheritrix, had been appointed trustee of the estate and guardian of the
-heiress, and of—his own interests at the same time.
-
-And well had he fulfilled his trust; no Eastern despot had even
-established a stricter guard over a young Georgian maid than did this
-guardian over the heiress. At the early age of twelve he had placed her
-at a strict convent school, where she avowed that she had to eat, drink,
-and sleep; pray, sing, and learn lessons; sit, stand, and walk by exact
-rule. We may fancy the effect of such a discipline upon our wild child.
-The fleet deer of the mountain penned, the free bird of the air caged,
-was nothing to this wild child of sea and land confined! At first she
-was anxious to go; for all children like change; but at the first visit
-of her guardian, whom with her confiding nature she already loved, she
-sprang upon his lap, threw her arms around his neck, entreated, prayed,
-wept to be taken away; and when she found her vehement solicitations
-vain, she passionately dashed her hand into his face, called him an evil
-spirit, sprang from his arms, and threw herself face downward flat upon
-the floor; called the good sisterhood a pack of witches, with Hecate at
-their head, and threatened to starve herself to death, as the partridge
-did she tried to tame once; and so, by this conduct, got herself into
-disgrace for a week. There is great adaptativeness in childhood, and in
-time our little girl became reconciled to her convent, especially as the
-gentle nuns took an affectionate interest in civilizing the little
-barbarian, who, notwithstanding her faults, drew all hearts to herself.
-The effect of this conventual education was altogether good. It
-cultivated and directed the powers of her intellect and moral sense, and
-taught her to control the almost savage strength and daring of her
-passionate and energetic nature. But she left the convent distinguished
-by the same inflexibility of will with which she had entered its walls.
-By the will of her adopted father she was not to marry until she had
-attained the age of twenty-one, and though then her choice was not
-absolutely controlled, it was directed to her guardian. It was upon this
-account, and to seclude her from society and the chance of forming
-another attachment, that, despite the conscientious expostulations of
-the Mother Superior, he left her boarding at the convent until she had
-nearly reached her twentieth birthday. About that time Miss Seabright
-became inspired with a desire to see the world—not society, but the
-earth and all thereon; so, without asking any favors, she expressed her
-will to leave the convent and travel for a year. This proposition well
-suited the views of her guardian, as it obviated the awkward necessity
-of leaving her in the convent, or the impolitic alternative of
-introducing her into society, and gave him an admirable opportunity of
-pressing his suit, and even imposing upon her the inevitable propriety
-of accepting him.
-
-They made the tour of Europe together, journeying over the kindred soil
-of Old England, the “sunny land” of France, the old chivalric mountains
-of Spain, the classic plains of Italy and Greece, the Alpine precipices
-of Switzerland; along the forest, rock, and castle-shadowed rivers of
-Germany; over the snow-clad plains of Russia, and thence down amid the
-mosques and seraglios of Turkey. By Mr. Hardcastle’s position and
-connection in America, and his letters of presentation to our ministers
-abroad, he might have obtained introduction for himself and ward into
-the best society of every capital in Europe, but it did not suit his
-policy to do so. And even when her love of travel was somewhat sated,
-and Miss Seabright expressed a desire to enter the world of society, he
-put her off from time to time with various excuses. As her wish to
-mingle with the world was not very strong, she did not insist. And thus
-at the end of thirteen months’ travel in Europe Miss Seabright set out
-on her return home as “innocent of the knowledge” of the world as when
-she had left her convent walls. She had had the opportunity of studying
-deeply but one specimen of human nature, and him she had well
-learned—her guardian and traveling companion, Lionel Hardcastle.
-Repeatedly had he pressed his suit, and eloquently had he pleaded the
-passion with which his recent intimate association with the unique and
-beautiful girl had inspired him. And repeatedly, amid protestations of
-gratitude and friendship, had she lamented her utter inability to meet
-his love. He bided his time!
-
-It was in this relative position that the guardian and ward returned to
-Mount Calm early in the spring of 18—. Miss Seabright had indulged her
-love of luxury with the purchase of elegant furniture in France. These
-had been transported to Mount Calm, where the mansion house had been
-superbly fitted up for the reception of its young mistress.
-
-It was then a fine day in the month of March that Miss Seabright sat in
-her library, awaiting the arrival of her guardian.
-
-“Mr. Lionel Hardcastle!” announced a servant, throwing open the door.
-Miss Seabright seated herself before the library table, and Mr. Lionel
-Hardcastle entered the library, accompanied by old Mr. Hardcastle, his
-father, and a lawyer.
-
-A half hour was occupied in the reading and transferring of certain
-documents, of which the lawyer finally took charge.
-
-Then the gentlemen got up to take leave. Miss Seabright also arose, to
-dismiss them; but when she saw that Lionel Hardcastle was about to bow
-the others out with the purpose of remaining himself, she courteously
-advanced, and invited them all to remain and dine. A quick telegraphic
-look from Lionel Hardcastle to his father arrested the old gentleman’s
-intention of accepting, so that, excusing himself, he took leave and
-withdrew, followed by the lawyer. Miss Seabright also followed, with the
-intention of leaving the library, but Lionel Hardcastle intercepted her
-purpose by bowing the gentlemen out, and closing the door after them.
-Miss Seabright retreated to the library table, where she stood erect,
-with one hand resting upon the table, and with her fiery eyes
-concentrating all their rays into a burning focus in the gaze she fixed
-upon his face. Yet he winced not; but advancing calmly toward her, said:
-“That attitude and gaze, Miss Seabright, would remind me that my
-authority as your guardian ceases from this hour.”
-
-“Without referring to that circumstance, Mr. Hardcastle, I would only
-plead excessive weariness of this room, and to be excused for the
-remainder of the day.”
-
-“You do not look in the least fatigued; and just now you even invited my
-father and your lawyer to remain and dine with you.”
-
-“And extended the same invitation to yourself; which I now repeat. Will
-you now accept it, and excuse me for an hour’s repose until dinner
-time?” she asked calmly—calmly, yet he could see by those dark eyes,
-which blazed and darkened under their heavy lids like a flashing and
-expiring flame, that under that quiet exterior, volcanic passion
-stirred, threatening every instant to break out in destroying fury, and
-only restrained by the force of her own will and the power of her own
-moral sense.
-
-He folded his arms, and gazed on her; his look was resolved, his face
-was ashen pale, all the strength and fire of his nature seemed
-concentrated and burning in his eyes, and in the gaze he fixed upon her
-face. He answered, slowly, “No, Miss Seabright; there is no repose for
-me, shall be none for you, until you hear me. I will not leave this
-room, nor suffer you to leave it, until you hear me. Hitherto you have
-disregarded your benefactor’s expressed will and wishes, contemned my
-claims, despised my love.”
-
-“Your ‘love’? Is yours the language or the deportment of love?” she
-asked, in the deep, stern tone of suppressed indignation.
-
-His manner suddenly changed; and from insolent and threatening, became
-submissive and deprecating. He dashed his hands suddenly against his
-forehead, then threw himself at her feet, seized her hands and dropping
-his head upon them, almost wept, exclaiming: “No, no, Garnet! mine were
-not the words or acts of love, but of ‘love to frenzy driven.’ I
-forswear them. Pardon me, pardon me. Garnet, I love you! I adore you! I
-worship you! Not that you have beauty, grace, genius—all these I have
-seen in other women, with an undisturbed heart—but there is a unique
-power in your look that draws me to you; there is a fire in your soul
-and in your eyes that draws me to you as the sun attracts the earth.
-Daughter of the sun you are indeed, with all his reddish rays
-concentrated in your being, as in the burning gem, your family namesake.
-Garnet, oh, Garnet, I rave still, and more insanely than before. Garnet,
-restore peace, calmness, self-possession, and reason to my soul! Give
-your peerless self to me! Be my salvation! Speak to me! Answer me! Say
-something, oh, dear Garnet!”
-
-Her lightning anger, quick to subside as to flash forth, had died away.
-As he held her hands, kissing them and almost weeping over them, she
-answered, in a low voice: “Alas! Mr. Hardcastle, what shall I say? What
-can I say, that I have not said with pain before this? I feel honored by
-your esteem; I feel grateful for your love; I feel humbled that I cannot
-return it. It is no disparagement to you—it is a misfortune, perhaps, to
-me—that I cannot do so. One cannot always admire what may be admirable,
-or esteem what may be estimable, still less can they always love what is
-lovable. Yet I am disposed to entertain a profound friendship for you.
-My dear guardian, cease then to torment yourself and me farther with
-this question. I cannot marry,” she said, gently but firmly, as she sank
-into the chair behind her.
-
-“Cannot marry!” he repeated, rising and throwing himself upon a sofa
-near her. “Cannot marry! Have you then made a vow of celibacy? Has your
-convent education imbued you with that notion?”
-
-“No; Heaven forbid! I have formed no resolution of leading a single
-life. I should not be happy in such a destiny, should not even if I were
-already blessed with father and mother, sisters and brothers, cousins
-and friends—how could I possibly expect to be, standing perfectly alone
-as I do? I have a sisterly affection for you—not love! There be many
-affections; but only one love! only one—marriage.”
-
-He had restrained himself as long as it was possible to do so. He now
-started from the sofa where he had reclined, watching her with pale
-cheeks and burning gaze, and, starting toward her with clenched fist, he
-exclaimed:
-
-“Yes, haughty girl, you speak truth; there is but one marriage—for you!
-You are compelled to marry me! The world expects it of you. Is not the
-will of your benefactor known? Are we not generally supposed to be
-betrothed? Did we not make the tour of Europe alone together? The world
-expects you to marry me. And you will forever lose the respect of the
-world by failing to do so.”
-
-Her brow crimsoned, her eyes blazed. She arose to her feet and answered
-slowly:
-
-“And I would rather lose the respect of the world by rejecting you than
-deserve to lose it by accepting you.”
-
-“Fool! Have you no regard for your reputation?”
-
-“Yes; but think it wrong to secure good reputation at the expense of
-good character.”
-
-“What paradox, what nonsense is that?”
-
-“Oh! they are not synonymous terms, character and reputation; on earth
-they never have been, on earth they never will be. Often they are
-antagonistic words. Many of the heroes and martyrs of history, the
-demigods of our adoration, were men of the best characters, with—while
-they lived—the worst reputations.”
-
-“Then you have no respect for the good opinion of the world?”
-
-“Yes! my aspiring heart! too much, I fear, for my soul’s good; and I
-know, I know by all the glorious gifts of Heaven to me, I know by all my
-mighty power for good or ill, by all my absolute unswerving will to
-good, I know that I have a right and title, Heaven-patented, not to the
-passive good opinion, but to the honor, the co-operation of the world.”
-
-“And I tell you, haughty woman, as you stand here a very goddess of
-pride, I tell you as you stand here beneath these halls, where you
-should never have stood, invested with all this power, that you should
-never have possessed, armed with the might of vast wealth and of high
-talent, arrayed in the magic charms of young womanhood and perfect
-beauty—I tell you, that you are now—naught that you will be, unless you
-marry me—a suspected, proscribed, banned, outcast woman!” He expected
-this to overwhelm her. But she turned her large, dark, solemn eyes,
-solemn now with prophetic inspiration, upon him, and inquired calmly:
-
-“Why?”
-
-“Listen, girl. You are ambitious, arrogant, scornful. Yet a few words
-from me will subdue all that, by showing you that you are obliged to
-marry me. Attend! we made the tour of Europe alone together, putting up
-at the same hotels, having a common parlor, a common table, a common
-carriage——”
-
-“Well, sir! That is easily understood in guardian and ward.”
-
-“Not when the guardian is a man of thirty-seven and the ward a girl of
-twenty; not when
-
- “‘Both are young and one is beautiful,’”
-
-he added sneeringly. “Often, you know it, we were mistaken for a married
-pair——”
-
-“And for brother and sister,” she added, the blood mounting to her brow.
-
-“Which we were not. Now attend! All that familiarity may be understood
-in a guardian and ward, who are, besides, known to be betrothed to each
-other, and who keep their tacit promise to society by marriage. Now,
-listen! if you should not consent to marry me——”
-
-“If I do not! I will not. There is no if.”
-
-“Then all your beauty, wealth, and talent, with all the power they give
-you, avail you nothing. You are an outcast!”
-
-She dropped into her chair again, she paled even to her lips, the fire
-died out of her eyes, and even from every lurid ring of her dark, bright
-hair. He gazed at her ironically, saying slowly:
-
-“Ah! you do not care for the opinion of the world.”
-
-“Do I not?” she exclaimed, with sudden and impassioned energy, “do I not
-aspire to the honor of all the world? Do I not know and feel by all that
-I am and have, and by all that I purpose to do and to be, that I have a
-God-given patent to such honor? Has not my soul prophesied it?”
-
-“And I repeat to you, haughty woman, that unless you marry me, you will
-not have it. Your powers are all paralyzed.”
-
-She dropped her hands upon her lap, her head upon her bosom, in the
-collapse of despair.
-
-“Ha! trapped, palsied, helpless!” he exclaimed exultingly. “Where is now
-your vaunted independence? your pride? your scorn? Gone! quite gone!
-Why, so much the better. You will make the better wife for the loss of
-that. Come, Garnet, I love you; could worship your beauty, sometimes,
-only that it seems to spoil you; come, I love you. Let us cease this
-absurd quarrel and be friends. Come, do not look so despairingly. Harsh
-and stern as I may be when threatened with your loss, I shall not make
-such a bad husband. And for the rest—bless me, girl, you know my family
-and my standing—shall I be such a very ill match for General Garnet’s——”
-
-He paused, and she raised her deathlike brow, and, wiping the cold drops
-of sweat from its pallid surface, said slowly, and with profound
-sadness:
-
-“Oh-h-h! You miserably misconceive my grief. It is this that overwhelms
-me; it is the thought of your——”
-
-“Villainy! Speak out, I will relieve you!” he said sarcastically.
-
-“I did not mean to use the word.”
-
-“Policy, then! for it was no more nor less; only finish.”
-
-“It is this, then, that crushes me with sorrow—the knowledge that you,
-my only protector, who should have warned my inexperience against the
-least social mistake, and shielded my good name from the slightest
-chance of injury; that you, my guardian, having perfect authority over
-me, and indisputable control of all my actions; that you, my friend,
-having my perfect confidence and affection, that you should have abused
-that authority, betrayed that confidence, and wounded that affection by
-leading me into a course of conduct pre-calculated, pre-contrived, to
-fetter my choice in woman’s dearest privilege, or to blast my fair fame
-and palsy my powers of usefulness forever!”
-
-“Rave on! be abusive, scornful, insulting as you please. But I tell you,
-arrogant woman, that he whom you abuse, insult, and scorn will be your
-husband yet.”
-
-“And I tell you, insolent man!” she exclaimed, starting to her feet with
-all the fire of her nature burning in her cheeks, and blazing in her
-eyes, “I tell you that, wronged, suspected, proscribed, outcast as I may
-be; and add to that, poor, friendless, ill, persecuted, desolate as I
-may be, I could not fall so low as to become the wife of the wretch you
-are. I repel your pretensions with scorn and loathing. Begone!”
-
-He gazed at her in speechless amazement. Was this incarnate storm, his
-ward? the dignified, self-restraining, self-governing Miss Seabright?
-Yes, the violent passions of her nature, restrained for many years, had
-now burst the bonds of moral power. The volcanic tide of fire that had
-ebbed and flowed, and been repressed through all this scene, had now
-broken forth in appalling power. Her form was erect—her nostrils
-dilated—her brow was crimson, her eyes blazed and darkened, and blazed
-and darkened with terrific rapidity.
-
-“Begone!” she thundered; “out of my sight, or by the Heaven that made
-me, I will summon my slaves and have you thrust forth with contumely
-from my gates!” Her hand was on the bell, her insane purpose was
-indubitable.
-
-With a gesture of desperation he rushed from the room.
-
-She gazed after him until he had closed the door. She stood motionless a
-long, long time, while the tide of fire ebbed; then, sinking with the
-reaction of the exhaustion and self-reproach, she covered her face with
-her hands, murmuring in heart-broken tones, “God pity me! God forgive
-me! What a nature is mine! With a heart and bosom torn, tortured,
-convulsed by storms of ferocious anger, scorn, and pride, yet with a
-spirit brooding highly, calmly over all—as above the clouds, and
-thunder, and lightning of the earth shine the holy stars of heaven.”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVI.
- LIGHT ON THE ISLAND.
-
- Her wretched brain gave way,
- And she became a wreck at random driven,
- Without one glimpse of reason or of Heaven.
-
-
-Long remained Miss Seabright with her head bowed upon her hand in bitter
-thought. Twice a servant came and announced dinner without her seeing or
-hearing him. The third time, when he approached and spoke close to her
-ear, she raised her head languidly and said:
-
-“Ask Miss Joe to dine without me.”
-
-And when Miss Joe herself came in with anxious inquiries about her
-health, and affectionate offers of tea and toast and jellies, she
-answered, with a bitter smile:
-
-“Oh, be easy, dear friend; a little fasting will not hurt my flesh and
-blood!”
-
-Day waned, and still she maintained her silent and thoughtful posture.
-Night came, and a servant entered with candles. The glare of light
-aroused her, and, looking up, she saw the dark face of the man turned
-ashen gray with fear. “What is the matter, Cæsar?”
-
-“Light on de island, miss; you kin see it plain as star a-shinin’!”
-
-“Light on the island? Well, I will go and see myself. Where can this
-light be seen from?”
-
-“From the garret window, miss, sure as you’re born.”
-
-“Go on before me,” she said, rising from her recumbent posture, and
-following the man up the several flight of stairs to the attic.
-
-Arrived there, in the very front room where Elsie had been a prisoner on
-the last night of her stay at Mount Calm, they paused.
-
-Miss Seabright advanced to the window, threw it up, and looked out at
-the clear, brilliant, starlight night. There was not a breath of wind
-stirring. The air was still and cold. The rolling hills and plains white
-with snow, and intersected only by the belt of forest around the foot of
-Mount Calm, reached silently on to the dark boundary of the sea.
-
-“Why, I see no light at sea; none anywhere except the myriad lights of
-stars in heaven!” said Miss Seabright, letting down the window.
-
-“Bress your soul, miss, no more you can’t; leastwise you puts out de
-candle and looks t’rough the spyglass!”
-
-“Why, here’s a fellow who, not having causes of trouble enough near him,
-must put out the light and take a telescope to find out distant ones!
-Well, set the candle outside the door, and give me the glass.” And
-taking the telescope she went again to the window and hoisted it. “Yes,”
-she said, after taking sight, “yes, there is a light shining still and
-clear, and apparently fixed near the ruins of the old lodge!”
-
-“Oh, it can be seen plain as possible from the village,” said Miss Joe,
-who now entered, followed by other members of the household.
-
-Miss Seabright closed the window, and, turning to the assembled group,
-said, with her singular smile:
-
-“Well, now, this is really a very small affair for conjecture, and could
-interest none but a country family in the depth of winter. Let us go
-downstairs. It is probably some poor, lone soul, who, having no shelter,
-has put together the ruins of the old lodge and lives there and supports
-himself by fishing and shooting.”
-
-“Yes,” said Miss Joe, “that might be well enough, and nobody thinks
-nothing of it, only you see, honey, the folks from the village have been
-over on the island in the broad daytime searching, and they can’t find
-the leastest signs of human habitations; the poor, dear old lodge is
-more tumble-downder than ever, as in course it must naturally be every
-winter, with no one to keep the dear, old crippled thing on its legs.
-Lord, child, the neighbors from Huttontown found all so desolute that
-the very stars of heaven were shining down into the water collected in
-the cellar. No roof, no chimneys, no floors even; nothing but the
-lonesome, desolute walls and the stagnant cellar. They didn’t find
-anybody, nor any sign of anybody, though they searched all over the
-island—but, mind, that was at sunset, and that night about dark the
-light blazed up there as bright as ever!”
-
-“Why did not the neighbors go and search then?”
-
-“They did. They got into the boats and rowed straight back, watching the
-ghostly light all the time, and just afore they landed it was out.”
-
-“Did they carry a light in their boats?”
-
-“Certain.”
-
-“Then the great problem is solved. It was some fugitive slave, a refugee
-on the island, who, seeing the approach of the boats by the lights they
-carried, extinguished his light and concealed himself.”
-
-“As if he could. Lor’, child, where could he hide away on that island?
-All plain and bare, and bleak as it is; no bit o’ woods, no hollow;
-nothing but the outside walls o’ the old lodge, with its cellar full o’
-water, and the lonesome, bare trees standin’ far apart like ghosts.”
-
-“True, very true; there is not a hiding place possible on the island.
-But I cling to the thought of the fugitive refugee, who, seeing the
-invaders, probably extinguished his light and took boat for the open
-sea.”
-
-“No, honey, that w’a’nt it. Bless you, they thought of that at once, and
-lit more pine knots, and separated, and run all around the coast of the
-little islet, and flashed their lights about, and couldn’t see sign of a
-boat on the waters.”
-
-“Then I am at the end of conjecture. Come, let us go down. It is cold up
-here. Take up the candle, Cæsar,” said Miss Seabright, turning to go
-from the room.
-
-“Yes, let’s go down; it is so cold up here. And supper’s ready in the
-little red parlor. That’s what I come to tell you, when these niggers
-all followed me. I told Milly, long as you hadn’t eat any dinner, and
-felt sort o’ low spirited, to get supper airly, and br’il a pair of
-pa’tridges. A cup o’ good, strong Young Hyson tea, with light biscuits
-and br’iled pa’tridges, is very good for lowness o’ spirits. I knows it,
-’cause I’ve tried it myself.”
-
-They hurried through the bleak passages, and downstairs.
-
-Miss Seabright, preceded by the servant bearing the candle, and followed
-by the old lady, entered the parlor. The comfortable little parlor, with
-its thick carpet, heavy curtains, soft sofa, bright fire, and elegant
-tea-table, was certainly a specific for mere low spirits. The old lady
-bustled past Garnet, and set the urn upon the table, burning her fingers
-slightly, and rubbing them, while she exclaimed cheerily:
-
-“There now, sit down. As there’s no one here but you and me, you know,
-you can draw the end of the sofy to the table and loll on that, while I
-pour out your tea and butter you a biscuit. Cæsar, you cut up that
-pa’tridge for your young mist’ess—not that one, you stupid creetur!
-t’other one, it’s the plumpest. Now you see, honey, the maids have got
-through their day’s work, for a wonder, and I have got time to stay in
-the parlor and enjoy myself ’long o’ you. And so we’ll have a jolly good
-evening; you can loll on the sofa and enjoy yourself with your low
-spirits and cologne bottle—only don’t waste it—and I can sit here and
-patch my old gown, and talk about old times.”
-
-Garnet looked at the good-natured face of the old lady, and felt
-compunction for the answer she was about to make.
-
-“I am sorry to spoil the plan of your evening’s entertainment, Miss Joe,
-but I am going to explore Hutton’s Island to-night.”
-
-“Going to explore Hutton’s Island to-night!” exclaimed Miss Joe,
-dropping knife and fork, and staring at her.
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“You!”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“The Lord have mercy upon her! I’ve been havin’ of my misgivin’s all
-this time, but now I know she’s a little deranged!” said Miss Joe to
-herself. Then speaking aloud, in something of the tone one would take in
-addressing a sick and delirious child, “No, no, honey, don’t think of
-it! You’re sick, you know, and it is cold and dark and dangerous. Then,
-it isn’t proper for a young lady to do such a thing, anyhow!”
-
-Miss Seabright smiled a queer smile, as she replied:
-
-“For the first objections, my good old friend, cowardice is not one of
-my weaknesses; for the last”—she paused and her smile deepened in
-meaning—“I made a start in life by quite innocently perpetrating a
-heinous, a fatal—crime? no, impropriety! I broke no law of God or man;
-yet I am told that for all that I shall be banished from society unless
-I do commit a sin, in open day, in the face of society; who will then
-forgive me!”
-
-“Mad! mad!” said Miss Joe to herself, gazing at the ironical girl.
-
-“Well!
-
- “‘What’s _banished_ but yet free?’
-
-I will do whatever I please—conventional or unconventional! I will break
-no law of God’s or man’s, and after that is said, all is said for me.
-For the rest, I will do whatever my spirit impels me to do, whether the
-world likes it or not!” said Garnet, speaking more to herself than to
-another, and rising and ringing the bell.
-
-“Mad! mad! mad! and getting worse every minute,” said Miss Joe, hurrying
-out, and hastening into the front hall, where Cæsar was lighting the
-lamp.
-
-“Cæsar, come here to me, quick—close. Hush! don’t say anything. Go as
-hard as you can to Hemlock Hollow, and tell Mr. Lionel Hardcastle how he
-must come as fast as possible here; how he’s wanted badly, very badly.
-Hurry—mount a fast horse, and go as quick as ever you can!”
-
-The man, with his eyes staring wide, ran to obey. Miss Joe then returned
-to the parlor, where she found Garnet giving directions to a servant to
-have two horses saddled, and prepare himself to attend her down to the
-shore. Miss Seabright was giving her orders with so much calmness and
-precision that the old lady thought she had a lucid interval in her
-madness, and that this afforded her an excellent opportunity for
-argument; so, as soon as the man retired, she said coaxingly:
-
-“My dear child, think of it!”
-
-“I do, Miss Joe; and the more I think of it the more I want to go. I am
-determined to vary the tedious monotony of my days with a little
-adventure!”
-
-“My dear child, you have heard of the fate of Agnes! How she was either
-murdered or carried off from that island by unknown ruffians!”
-
-“I heard long ago of her mysterious disappearance, Miss Joe, and I
-always thought, and think now, that in her deep despair for the sudden
-loss of her husband she drowned herself. I think so the more that never
-before or since that strange occurrence, has any outrage been attempted
-on the island. Think of the years we lived there alone with nothing to
-disturb our quiet. Why, often in the fond superstition of my childhood,
-when I have waked up in the night, have I risen and gone out into the
-starlight, and rambled all over the isle in the hope of surprising the
-fairies at their midnight revels! Well, if I never found them, I never
-found anything worse. No, Miss Joe, there is no danger. If there were, I
-do not know the fear of it. That solitary light on the isle belongs to
-some solitary wretch, poorer and more friendless even than we were; one
-whose misfortunes or crimes make him dread and shun the approach of his
-fellow-men; one whom I do not fear to seek; one whom, if I find, I shall
-try to relieve. And I will tell you, if that will ease your kind anxiety
-upon my account, I will direct Pompey to take a pair of pistols.”
-
-As she finished speaking a servant appeared at the door, and announced
-that the horses were ready.
-
-She left the parlor, and soon returned prepared for her ride, and
-immediately set out.
-
-Miss Joe fidgeted up and down the hall in great disturbance of mind. In
-about ten minutes after Miss Seabright had left the house the quick
-trampling of horses announced the arrival of Lionel Hardcastle. He
-hurried into the house, booted and spurred as he was, and asked rapidly:
-
-“Where is Miss Seabright? Has she sent for me?”
-
-“No, sir; no. It was me that sent for you. Come here—here in the parlor,
-sir. I have got something terrible to tell you. Shut the door.”
-
-He followed her into the parlor, closing the door as requested, and
-stared with astonishment at the old lady’s excited countenance, while
-with rapid enunciation she related all that had happened just before and
-since his visit in the forenoon. Miss Seabright’s excited manner, her
-mad resolution of going that night to Hutton’s Island to find out about
-the light, and above all her “real crazy” talking about committing a sin
-before the world in order “to keep in long o’ the world.” Mr. Hardcastle
-listened with a sarcastic smile until he heard of her night expedition;
-then his sinister face lighted up with demoniac joy, to conceal which he
-quickly averted his head.
-
-“Ha! with only one attendant, say you?”
-
-“With no one, sir, but Pomp—sure as you’re born.”
-
-“I must instantly go after her then.”
-
-“Oh, do, sir! do hurry!” said Miss Joe, and in five minutes more Lionel
-Hardcastle, with the dark and lowering brow of a fiend hidden by the
-night, was galloping swiftly toward the coast, muttering in his heart:
-“Now, scornful girl, shall my love and vengeance both be sated!”
-
-In the meantime Garnet had reached the shore at which the Mount Calm
-fleet of boats were chained—boats of all sizes, from the long skiff to
-the twelve-oared canoe and the sail-boat. She entered the smallest of
-the skiffs, followed by Pompey, who immediately unlocked the chain, took
-the single oar, and pushed off from the sandy beach. The bay was
-perfectly smooth, and reflected the dark, resplendent sky, with its
-myriads beyond myriads of shining lights so distinctly that the little
-skiff seemed to glide among the stars as it sped over the waters. Soon
-before then lay Hutton’s Island, like a darker line upon the sea. And
-there, like a single star, shone the solitary light! Yet so much deeper
-was Garnet’s love of nature than of adventure, that she delivered
-herself up to intense enjoyment of the starlight night on the waters,
-forgetful of her errand, until the slight shock of the skiff, touching
-upon the strand of the island, aroused her from her trance. Then, when
-she looked up, the light on the isle was gone.
-
-“That is very provoking! Now who would have thought that darkly and
-silently as we came we should have been perceived? However, light your
-pine knot, Pompey, and come along.”
-
-Pompey had been selected as her attendant in this expedition by Miss
-Seabright, as being the least superstitious and cowardly of all her men,
-yet now the namesake of “The Invincible” shrank back in dread,
-muttering:
-
-“Indeed, indeed, miss, you’d better not!”
-
-“Pompey! whoever the dweller on this isle is, it is some poor wretch,
-more worthy of our pity than of our fear; weak and timid, since it
-watches and hides from even such harmless visitors as we. Come along!”
-
-“’Deed—’deed, miss, that aint good reasonin’! ’Deed, ’fore my Heavenly
-Marster, aint, miss. ’Deed—’deed—’deed—’deed——” muttered Pompey, his
-teeth chattering, until he lost his voice.
-
-“Give me the torch then, Pompey; I will go before. You may follow me as
-distantly as you please, and run at the first alarm!”
-
-“I think that would be the mos’ safes’, miss; caze dey wouldn’t be so
-apt to shoot a young lady, miss, as they would to shoot a colored gemman
-ob my siteration in deciety.”
-
-Without hearing Pompey’s compromise with his cowardice and his
-conscience, Miss Seabright, torch in hand, walked up the gradually
-ascending rise of ground to the ruins of the old lodge. From being so
-long out in the night her eyes had become accustomed to it, so that now,
-under the brilliant starlight, the scene was distinctly, though darkly,
-before her—the ruin, the isle, and the sea. No sign of fence or outhouse
-could be seen as she approached the ruined lodge, whose skeleton walls
-stood up square around what seemed a deep, stagnant pond, whose
-stillness was drearily broken by the plunge of some toad, snake, or
-other loathsome reptile. Blinded or scared by the glare of the torch,
-bats flitted to and fro about the ruined walls, water rats ran in and
-out among the broken stones, and plunged into the stagnant waters, and
-lastly, a huge screech-owl took flight from the blasted tree by the
-fallen chimney, “making night hideous” with his yells. Profoundly
-saddened by seeing the beloved home of her wild childhood so desolate,
-Garnet turned silently away, and passing mournfully over the bleak
-ground, reached the strand. Then passing slowly all around the beach,
-she looked out upon the waters in search of any stray boat that might
-contain the supposed fugitive of the isle. As far as the eye could reach
-no sign of a boat could be seen. She then turned inland—if the tiny isle
-could be said to have an inland—and searched carefully about, walking
-around every specterlike tree standing far apart on the bare, bleak
-island, and quite incapable after all of concealing the smallest
-possible fugitive in the human shape. But she looked around and up into
-them, as I have seen men look under candlesticks and into tiny drawers
-for their missing hats, umbrellas, and boot-jacks! After her thorough
-search was quite over she turned to her attendant, and said:
-
-“Well, I am disappointed. There is positively no one here, and the
-mystery of the island light is still unsolved.”
-
-Her attendant did not answer. Thinking that he was still under the
-influence of fear, she said:
-
-“Why, Pompey, we are as safe and as quiet here as I was when I lived
-here with Aunt Joe and Hugh.”
-
-Still her follower did not speak, but rather lingered behind her, and
-she herself relapsed into silence, and fell into a reverie, until she
-arrived at the farthest extremity of the isle, opposite to that on which
-she had landed. This was the northwestern point of the island, and the
-same beach upon which she and the sole companion of her childhood, Hugh,
-used to pick maninosies. Here, as she walked about watching the starlit
-waves break gently on the beach, noting the numerous perforations, where
-the maninosies had buried themselves in the sand, the tide of memory
-rolled back, overwhelming the apprehension of the present. She saw
-herself, a tiny, sprite-like child, stealing out on starlight nights,
-and sitting on the pile of rocks, on this very spot, watching in fond
-faith for the swimming of the nereids, and mistaking the reflection of
-some purple cloud, high up in the heavens, for the royal robe of
-Amphytrite in the “deep, deep sea.” She saw herself again in the
-daytime, when the setting sun, like Macbeth’s blood-crimsoned hand,
-would
-
- “The multitudinous seas incarnadine,
- Making the green one red!”
-
-she saw herself well shod and warmly clothed, and Hugh, the manly boy,
-barefooted, bareheaded, and coarsely clad, yet grandly handsome “as
-Hercules ere his first labor!” Hugh, with his noble look and noble
-nature; and she smiled to think of the high faith, and hope, and love
-that irradiated his fine countenance, as he confidently promised to make
-a fortune for her, his sister; to get wealth, rank, honor for her! And
-the tears rolled down Garnet’s cheeks, as she thought of the glorious
-boy, and thought how many, many years it had been since she had even
-inquired his residence or his destiny.
-
-“He thought,” she said, speaking to herself in a low self-communing
-voice, “he thought to have made a fortune before me—to have conferred
-wealth, rank, honor upon me! The case might be reversed—it might! oh! I
-wish it could! There is only one way in which it could, and that is not
-impossible, though remote. This dream that I have enshrined within my
-heart—this ideal of goodness and greatness with which only I will
-unite—this I owe to Hugh. And oh! if he has fulfilled in his manhood the
-glorious promise of his boyhood, whatever his external fate may be, if
-he has fulfilled in himself the promise of matured goodness and
-greatness—then——”
-
-“What then?” said a deep voice at her elbow.
-
-She started slightly, and exclaimed:
-
-“My guardian!”
-
-“Yes, Miss Seabright, your guardian; who never found you more in need of
-his guardianship than at present.”
-
-“Sir! why have you followed me here?—where is my servant?”
-
-“Having come upon him, cowering, several yards behind you, I took the
-liberty of sending him back to the mainland, by the boat in which you
-came!”
-
-Garnet’s eyes began to blaze and darken with fearful rapidity. Yet
-repressing the mounting fire of anger, she strove to ask calmly:
-
-“And why did you ‘take the liberty’ of sending my servant away, sir? And
-why have you further presumed to break upon my privacy?”
-
-“One question at a time, if you please, Miss Seabright. I sent your
-servant away that I might have the pleasure of a private interview. I
-break upon your solitude for the furtherance of the same purpose.”
-
-“And your object, sir?”
-
-“To come to a full and final reckoning with you!” he said, his manner
-suddenly becoming threatening.
-
-Garnet pressed both hands upon her bosom, to restrain its violent
-throbbings, and answered slowly:
-
-“I thought, sir, that our last interview, of only this morning, had
-finally settled all between us? Upon that occasion I told you some harsh
-truths—and with some violence, which I regret; feeling sorry that the
-honest verdict of my head and heart should not have been delivered with
-more temperance.”
-
-“And which you shall more deeply regret before we part, scornful girl.”
-
-Her eyes blazed wide and full, like sudden meteors, and then fell into
-darkness, as she replied, with constrained calmness:
-
-“I pray you, sir, do not provoke me. I am subject to anger, as other
-people are to ague and fever.”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha! Is that meant for an appeal or for a threat? If for an
-appeal, I am not subject to magnanimity, as other people are to
-insanity!—if for a threat, how ridiculous! Be angry—furious—violent!
-What can you do now? Why, thou foolish girl, thou art completely in my
-power.”
-
-“In your power! Not so, insolent creature, ‘whom it were base flattery
-to call a man’; there are no circumstances whatever that could put me in
-your power.”
-
-“Why, you absurd woman! look around you. Deep and silent night hangs
-over the world. You stand alone with me upon a barren, uninhabited,
-sea-girt isle. How far off do you suppose the nearest human being is
-from us? How loud a shriek from this lone spot could raise the distant
-sleepers of the mainland from their beds?”
-
-Garnet raised her proud head to give some indignant answer, but meeting
-the gaze of her companion, the burning, scathing anger of her reply
-froze in horror ere it passed her lips—for never did night lower over a
-countenance darker, more dreadful with demoniacal malignity of purpose.
-Garnet turned her eyes from the baleful glare of Hardcastle to throw
-them over the lone and desert isle on which they stood, and for the
-first time a sense of the appalling danger of her situation swam in upon
-her brain, and for a moment nearly overwhelmed her. His countenance
-lighted up with a fiendish triumph. He continued:
-
-“Yes, Miss Seabright. Yes, Garnet. You have read my look and purpose
-aright. This night must you and I come to a reckoning. This hour,
-haughty girl, shall your pride be humbled. To-day you rejected my hand
-with scorn. To-morrow shall you sue for it as for life. Ha! already my
-triumph begins. You grow pale, lady.”
-
-“No!—pale? If my cheek did so belie my soul as to grow pale before a
-wretch like you, by my soul, I would paint it black for the rest of my
-life, and sell myself to base servitude as being too low for any other
-sphere. Oh, sir! the sudden revelation of your enormous wickedness
-shocked me for a single instant, as if I had unexpectedly been
-confronted with the foul fiend—that was all! And now I tell you that
-even on this lone sea isle I do not feel myself to be in your power. I
-am not the least afraid of you! Afraid of you? I am afraid of nothing. I
-do not know the word. I never did know it; and it is not likely that you
-can teach it to me.”
-
-“By Heaven, she defies me even here!” exclaimed Hardcastle, pale with
-rage, and striding toward her.
-
-“Yes,” said Garnet, recoiling a step or two, and standing upon the
-fragment of rock where she had so often sat in childhood; “yes,” she
-said, reverently raising her eyes and hand, “by Heaven, I do defy you!
-Under the protection of Heaven, in the name of Heaven, I do defy you!”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Thou fool! Why, what shall hinder me now from
-refuting you and taking my revenge?” he said, again striding toward her.
-
-“Off! A parley, I say! Listen to me a moment. God! myself! yourself
-shall hinder you. Mr. Hardcastle, I have this hour conquered a greater
-and stronger adversary than yourself—even mine own spirit! I have
-overcome my anger; I have the lion of my temper chained beneath my feet.
-And now, to put you down will be a much lighter task—much easier
-victory. And I tell you now, in coolness, what I told you before in
-heat, that I am not afraid of you. Nor shall you falsely take the tone
-toward me of one who has the advantage. I know you, Mr. Hardcastle. And
-I know your present evil scheme by your former revealed treachery.
-Heaven purify my soul from the sin of the knowledge! I know that you now
-think you have me at your mercy, and intend to terrify me into making
-conditions with you.”
-
-“In the fiend’s name, young woman, what do you mean?”
-
-“This, to be explicit: You think to fright me, Garnet Seabright, into
-the promise to become your wife, and endow you with the broad lands of
-Mount Calm, upon condition of your sparing me, showing mercy to me, and
-taking me safely home to Mount Calm.”
-
-“By all the demons, girl! I wonder that you should dare to give breath
-to that fear!”
-
-“Not fear!”
-
-“To that suspicion, then. I am amazed that you should venture to place
-these conditions before me.”
-
-“That I should detect and pluck the villainous scheme from your heart,
-and hold it up before you. Well, I will go further in my defiance of
-you, Mr. Hardcastle, and tell you that, threaten what you may, I will
-never, under any circumstances, promise to be your wife. Now, you see
-that I know I am not at your mercy.”
-
-“By Satan, Miss Seabright, I am thunderstruck at your audacity! Girl,
-you would be but a sparrow in my grasp! Who could rescue you?”
-
-“I thank you for the word you used in illustration of my weakness. It
-recalls in good time the words of a favorite old volume of mine—a book,
-perchance, with which you have not chanced to meet. Listen! ‘Are not two
-sparrows sold for a farthing? Verily, I say unto you, not one of these
-shall fall to the ground without your Father. Are ye not of more value
-than many sparrows?’ Heaven pardon me! I should not have quoted
-Scripture here, Mr. Hardcastle. Nevertheless, it helps to make me
-fearless now. Sir, I will tell you once for all why I do not fear you.
-First, because I trust in God. Next, because I trust in myself. Finally,
-because I can somewhat trust in you! Cut off as we now are from all
-communion with our fellow-creatures—alone, defenseless, unprotected, and
-at your mercy as I seem—you dare not harm me, and I know and feel it!
-You are not mad or intoxicated; therefore, you will not. You are not of
-a passionate, impetuous nature, therefore you will not. You are a
-cold-blooded, clear-headed, calculating, forecasting schemer—therefore
-you will not dare to do me an injury that will end in ruin to yourself.
-You are a gentleman by birth, education, and position. You are a
-gentleman—however undeserving of the name—and you will not exchange the
-title for that of—felon! I am under the protection of God and of the
-laws! Lay but your hand in insult on me, and by the Heaven that watches
-over us, as soon as I reach the mainland, cost what it may to my woman’s
-heart, for the sake of sacred right will I denounce you! Murder me—sink
-my body in the sea!—the crime would still be traced to yourself. We were
-known to have been left here alone.”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! We were known to be left here
-alone together! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! By none but the negro, and a negro’s
-evidence is not received in any court of law! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha!” he
-laughed, in fiendish triumph. “I have allowed you to spring from my
-hands, and I have listened to your talking, only to make game of you.
-Only as a cat lets a mouse run before finally seizing it. But this has
-lasted long enough!” he exclaimed, ferociously springing toward her,
-seizing and hurling her from the rock.
-
-Summoning all her great strength the intrepid girl, with a mighty
-effort, threw him from her, and before he could spring upon his prey
-again the fragment of rock near them rolled down the slope to the
-beach—a sudden light glared upon the scene, and a tall woman, wildly
-clad, and waving a torch above her head, emerged, and stood before them.
-The sudden irruption of this human being from the bosom of the earth did
-not astonish Garnet as did the look of Lionel Hardcastle. Struck pale as
-death, and statue-still, but for the universal tremor that shook his
-frame, he stood and gazed with stony eyes and chattering teeth upon the
-apparition. At last:
-
-“Agnes!” he gasped, shaking as with an ague fit.
-
-“Yes, pirate!—Agnes!” said the woman, approaching him slowly, holding
-the torch above her head; then stooping, fixing her eyes intently upon
-him, and thus creeping toward him, as a lioness preparing for a couch
-and spring. She paused before him, and still glaring on his face, said
-very slowly: “So, pirate! we meet again, at last! We meet upon the spot
-of that outrage which first separated me from home and country, friends
-and kindred, holiness and heaven! We meet upon this spot that you would
-again desecrate with crime! We meet in an hour of retribution! For this
-have I lived! For now that at last I see my mortal foe, never will I
-lose sight of you again until I have put you in the hands of justice!
-Never will I cease to pursue you, until I hunt you to the scaffold!
-Never can I die, until I see you dead before me by the death of a
-felon!”
-
-While she spoke with such slow tones of settled hatred and determined
-vengeance he held his hand in his bosom. As she ceased speaking:
-
-“False prophetess! You die now!” he thundered, leveling the pistol he
-held at her head.
-
-She sprang forward, seized his arm, turning the weapon aside. They
-struggled violently for a moment, and then the pistol was discharged,
-and Lionel Hardcastle fell, shot through the chest.
-
-Frozen with horror Garnet Seabright drew near, and stooped over the
-fallen man. Agnes also bent over her prostrate foe for a moment, then
-turning to Garnet, and throwing her wild hair back, she said:
-
-“I did not kill him, madam, though if I had ’twould have been but just.”
-
-The eyes of the dying man flared open once, and fixed upon the face of
-Garnet. Raising himself upon his elbow, he said, in low and broken
-tones:
-
-“Forgive me, Garnet—and—believe this!—whatever were the hidden sins of
-my youth—neither piracy nor bloodshed were among them! I was a—prisoner
-among them! Ship—wreck—plank—waves—picked up—oh, God, forgive me!” His
-head fell back—he rolled over in a mortal struggle, and then grew still
-in death.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVII.
- THE BEEHIVE.
-
- A cottage where domestic love
- And truth breathe simple kindness to the heart,
- Where white-armed children twine the neck of age,
- Where hospitable cares light up the hearth,
- Cheering the lonely traveler on his way.
- _—Gilman._
-
-
-“The Beehive” was the name that had been given by Elsie to her first
-backwoods home, and afterward transferred by her to the substantial home
-of hewn rock that had replaced the log cabin.
-
-It is late in the afternoon of a blustering March day that I shall again
-introduce you into the household of Dr. Hardcastle. And it is a large
-and interesting family for which the doctor is now responsible.
-
-First, there is himself, as glorious a type of manhood as ever stood in
-the exposed outer circle of existence, interposing his own body between
-the storms and cares of life and the cowering forms of women and
-children.
-
-Then, there was his pupil, Hugh Hutton—
-
- “As tall, as sinewy, and as strong
- As earth’s first kings—the Argo’s gallant sailors;
- Heroes in history, and gods in song,”
-
-and bearing, in that genial dignity of form, countenance, and manner
-which was the natural expression of great conscious power and goodness,
-a general resemblance to his master.
-
-There was Mrs. Garnet, in her simple widow’s dress of black silk, with
-surplice bosom, inside handkerchief, and little lace cap—somewhat jaded,
-yet with her graceful form, fair complexion, delicate features, and
-pensive thoughtfulness of expression, presenting a pleasing image of the
-“intellectual system of beauty.” In charming contrast to her was her
-daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle, in the full bloom of perfectly developed
-vital beauty, revealing that marriage and maternity had been to her
-healthful, sanguine, and joyous organization, what they should be to all
-women, a continuous accession of new life, health, and happiness.
-
-She had made no mistake in the calculation of her future. Active,
-bustling, often very laborious her lot had been indeed, but suited to
-her strong and cheerful nature. Her life had been guided, besides, by
-almost unerring intelligence, sustained by undying love, and cheered by
-unfailing hope. Anxieties had come, indeed, but these had not been
-suffered to grow into corroding cares. Sorrow had visited them, too, but
-this had not been permitted to crush them with despair, or even bow them
-long in despondency. In the second year of their married life the Angel
-of Death had entered their dwelling and lifted their only child from its
-mother’s bosom. Yes, the firstling of their little flock—the first-born
-of their youthful love, the strong and beautiful child, so full of
-glorious promise, whose health and life seemed so secure, who was,
-besides, so watched and tended—that idolized child was borne away from
-their arms, and the hearts of the parents long writhed in the anguish of
-bereavement before they could understand and receive the divine message
-in the infant’s little life and death. They had been so independent, so
-confiding, so happy in their earthly lot, so absorbed in their worldly
-plans, that they might never even have lifted their eyes to Heaven but
-for gazing after the soaring wing of their cherub; might never have
-lifted their hearts to Heaven, but for yearning after the ascended and
-glorified child; for “where the treasure is, there will the heart be
-also.”
-
-They had now been married eleven years, and six other children claimed
-their love and care; six children—boys and girls—with their ages ranging
-from one year old to nine. They were not rich. They owned the homestead,
-farm, and improvements upon the latter, but beyond this they did not
-possess a thousand dollars. Dr. Hardcastle’s practice was very
-extensive, and very profitable to—his patients; not very enriching to
-himself. With a large and growing family, with a strong and sympathetic
-nature, generous heart, and open hand and purse, how could Magnus
-Hardcastle grow rich? Indeed he must have been much poorer than he was
-but for the efficient aid of his “woman-kind.”
-
-Mrs. Garnet had gradually assumed to herself the responsibility of the
-needlework of the family.
-
-Elsie did all the housework.
-
-Hugh Hutton constituted himself hewer of wood and drawer of water,
-stock-driver and feeder, gardener, assistant nurse and tutor, doctor’s
-boy, big brother, and helper-in-general to the establishment.
-
-And he found time, besides, for the systematic and assiduous study of
-medicine, so that within the last year he had been dubbed by the
-neighbors the young doctor of the professional firm.
-
-For the last two years Hugh had spent the winters in an Eastern city,
-attending lectures at the Medical College. Upon these occasions he
-usually left home upon the 1st of December and returned upon the 1st of
-March. This was the last winter of his purposed migrations East, and his
-friends at home were expecting his return with unusual impatience. The
-1st of March had come, however, and he had not yet arrived. A letter
-from him had informed his friends that he remained in the city for the
-purpose of presenting himself before the medical board of examination as
-a candidate for a diploma.
-
-The family were now in daily expectation either of his arrival or of
-another letter. It was upon the evening of the 7th of March, then, that
-the commodious family room of the house was occupied by Mrs. Garnet and
-six children of Elsie’s. This room was well warmed and lighted by a
-large fire of pine logs in the chimney, and a couple of lighted candles
-upon the mantelpiece. The supper-table was set, and supper was ready to
-be served as soon as the doctor should get in from his rounds. It had
-not long to wait; for soon Dr. Hardcastle was seen to ride into the
-yard, dismount, and take off his saddle-bags and booted spurs, and,
-great coated as he was, came into the house. As soon as he set foot
-within the room the children swarmed upon him like bees upon a sunflower
-stalk, or the Lilliputians upon Gulliver; and he lifted and kissed them
-one by one, but looking around impatiently the while for one he loved
-even more than all these little ones—to wit, the mother. At last:
-
-“Where is Elsie, Mrs. Garnet?” he asked.
-
-“Gone again; I do wish, Magnus, you would prevent her. She makes herself
-a slave to these poor neighbors of hers. I do really think that she has
-family cares and toils enough; and that when she has performed her
-household duties as well as she always does, she might consider herself
-discharged from other social obligations. I do wish you would talk to
-her very seriously about it. Now to-day she has had a very fatiguing
-time indeed; she was ironing all the forenoon, and this afternoon
-baking. And yet this evening, as soon as she had got supper and set the
-table, she placed the children all in my care, and against my advice,
-high as the wind is, and deep as the snow is drifted, she took a basket
-and filled it with provisions, and started to carry it to those poor
-Millers on the mountain. Indeed, I wish, Magnus, you would tell her not
-to do it.”
-
-“Me tell Elsie to do or not to do! Whew! Do you know, my dear
-lady-mother, what is the highest, the very highest boon of God to man?
-Free will—the blessed liberty of going even to the old Nick if they
-please. There are those so fond of ‘freedom,’ that they would prefer
-going to perdition by the exercise of their free will to being
-arbitrarily predestined to heaven!”
-
-“Perhaps so; but Elsie is not one of those, Dr. Hardcastle. If you were
-but to hint to your wife that you disapprove and dislike her thus
-exposing herself, she would stop it at once; she would think it her duty
-to do so.”
-
-“I know it; and therefore I have to be more chary in meddling with her
-docile spirit than if she had the self-will and temper of Xantippe. But,
-ah! do you think it does not make my heart ache to see her expose
-herself to wind and snow, and to think that I have not yet provided a
-carriage for her, and to see her work from early morning till night,
-doing all the housework of the family, and think that I have not yet got
-a servant for her? And now having brought her to all this, shall I
-fetter her will? No, by my soul!” said Dr. Hardcastle, with strong
-emotion.
-
-Mrs. Garnet arose and went to his side, and stood there, and drew his
-arm over her shoulder caressingly, as she said:
-
-“Magnus, you have made Elsie completely, divinely happy; I mean, as a
-mortal woman can be! No man can do more for his wife, very few can do so
-much. As for her privations and toils, it is I, only I, whose weakness
-caused all that! It was I who disinherited her! I!”
-
-“Hush! hush! a truce to self-criminations! Elsie is the only consistent,
-rational, equable one in the family, now Hugh is gone. And here she
-comes, the darling! and without her cloak, as I live. Come, Mrs. Garnet,
-we will both scold her for that. Let’s open upon her as soon as she gets
-in.”
-
-He kissed Alice’s hand and hastened to meet his wife.
-
-Here she came, cold as the weather was, actually without her cloak.
-
-He opened the door quickly, and received her in his arms, pressing her
-cold hands under his chin, to his bosom, to warm them, and drawing her
-on toward the fire.
-
-“Now where have you been, facing the wind, and plunging through the
-snowdrifts?”
-
-“I have been on the mountain,” said Elsie, untying her bonnet, and
-giving it to one child, and throwing her shawl upon the arms of another.
-“I have been on the mountain to see those poor Millers. Their little
-girl, almost barefooted, came over here this afternoon for me to go to
-her mother, who is confined. I knew they were suffering, and so I filled
-the basket and went home with the little one.”
-
-“But your cloak, dear! What in the world have you done with your cloak?”
-
-“Oh! I laid it over Susan Miller and her babe, until I could come home,
-and send them a blanket. Oh, now don’t look so shocked! I am warmly
-clothed without the cloak; besides, the distance was short, and I ran
-along fast. Nonsense, now! How is it that children are half their time
-out running and romping in the cold, without being wrapped up, and only
-grow more robust by the exposure?” said Elsie, laughing, as she arose,
-pushed her curls back from her blooming face, and went and lifted her
-crowing babe from the cradle.
-
-Then she sat down and nursed it, while Mrs. Garnet, assisted by the
-eldest child, a little girl of nine years old, began to arrange the
-supper upon the table.
-
-As Elsie sat and nursed the child, her blooming, joyous face softened
-into sadness, tears gathered in her eyes, and she sighed deeply, bowing
-her head over the babe. Magnus was watching her. He was accustomed to
-her occasional moods of sorrowful tenderness, which, he said, compared
-with her usual bright, cheerful temper as a general, steaming thaw
-contrasts with a fine, clear, frosty morning. He stooped over the back
-of her chair, and, bending his head close to hers, asked:
-
-“Of what are you thinking so sadly, Elsie?”
-
-A slight flush warmed her cheek, and she replied, meekly, without
-raising her head:
-
-“An unworthy thought, dearest; at least, ungrateful and presumptuous. I
-was thinking of that poor family, of the little good that I was able to
-do them, and the great pleasure it gave me to do even that. I will
-confess to you all the egotism of my thought—then I thought how generous
-I really was by nature, and how I should delight in doing a great deal
-of good, if I had the means; and then an emotion of discontent, and a
-disposition to murmur, came upon me, and I thought what a pity it was
-that I, so really liberal by nature, should be compelled to repress so
-many generous impulses—that I should not have a fortune to spend—and I
-sighed from self-pity. I am ashamed that such ungrateful emotions should
-have disturbed my heart, and I speak of them now with shame, for now I
-feel how presumptuous they really were; for why, indeed, should I have a
-fortune, or anything else that we have not gained by our own toil? I,
-who am already so happy in the wealth of family affections, Magnus.”
-
-“Dear Elsie, if the material and temporal good of mankind were first to
-be thought of, doubtless then it were better that wealth should be in
-the hands of the benevolent and philanthropic. But such is not the case.
-It is the spiritual and eternal welfare both of the individual and of
-the race that is provided for; and hence each individual is placed in
-circumstances, not where he can do the most seeming good, but where he
-can best develop his moral and spiritual nature. Thus, you have
-benevolence. You do not need to have that virtue cultivated by the
-contrast of your own wealth with another’s want, and by the exercise of
-almsgiving; hence, you are not schooled in prosperity and the duty of
-beneficence. But, Elsie, as you are not perfect, perhaps there are other
-virtues you lack, and which can be developed only in poverty. But I did
-not mean to preach you a little sermon, darling. And now, in requital of
-prosing, I will tell you two pieces of good news—first, that as this is
-the last year in which we shall be put to any expense for Hugh’s college
-course of lectures, we shall have a hundred or so dollars over our
-annual expenditures; half of this sum you shall disburse in judicious
-alms. That is my first piece of glad tidings, and my second is like unto
-it—Hugh himself will be home to-night.”
-
-“Hugh home to-night? Oh, you don’t say so!”
-
-“Yes; this afternoon, in post office, I got a letter that arrived
-yesterday. And this letter announces the arrival of Hugh this very
-evening.”
-
-“Hugh coming home this evening? Oh, I am so glad! Children, children,
-did you hear? Brother Hugh is coming home this evening.”
-
-“Brother Hugh is come!” said a pleasant voice, as the door opened, and
-Hugh Hutton stood among them.
-
-All arose, and Magnus and Elsie hastened to meet him.
-
-“Dear friends,” he said, shaking hands right and left, “I could not
-resist the desire I felt to go to the window and look in upon you while
-you were all at your quiet evening occupations. I have been watching you
-for the last two minutes.”
-
-“You rogue! But come to the fire, come to the fire. Supper is just
-ready,” said Dr. Hardcastle, while Hugh threw off his great-coat, and
-laid it aside with his hat. “Oh, Hugh, we are so glad to see you! Had
-you a pleasant journey? What time did you get to the village? You have
-traveled day and night, I am afraid? And then you have walked from the
-village here?”
-
-“Yes; I couldn’t have got a horse for two or three hours; and I really
-couldn’t wait, I was so eager to get home.”
-
-“Dear Hugh, you must be so tired and hungry! Here, sit down in this
-chair near the fire,” said Elsie, pushing a chair forward with one hand,
-while she held the child with the other arm.
-
-Hugh threw himself into the chair, and mechanically stretched out his
-arms and took the crowing, laughing infant from its mother, and set it
-upon his knee, playing with it all the time he talked to others.
-
-“Oh, have you got your diploma, Hugh? Let’s see the document with our
-own eyes,” said Dr. Hardcastle, coming forward.
-
-“Yes; here it is,” said Hugh, rooting in his pocket with one hand, while
-he hugged the baby up with the other. “Here it is. I took it out of my
-trunk to bring along as a sort of credential that your years of kindness
-have not been thrown away upon me, my best friend;” and Hugh produced
-the parchment, and laid it on the table.
-
-“Good! good! Here it is, Elsie! Come, look! Here is Dr. Hutton’s warrant
-to kill and cure, secundum artem. Here is the diploma. Here is the prize
-for which he has toiled so hard—the good of his race.”
-
-“No; not the good, but the great starting place. Is it not so, Hugh?”
-said Elsie, coming forward.
-
-“Yes, true, the starting point. She is worthier than I. The starting
-point, my boy. And now for a brilliant career. Aim high, Hugh. He who
-aims at the sun may not bring it down, but his arrow will fly highest.
-You must be more successful than I have been, Hugh. I am a useful—if you
-please—an extensively useful member of my profession, and of society.
-You must be a distinguished honor to the faculty and the world. Oh! I
-have a grand ambition for you, Hugh, my son!”
-
-“My dear friend! my best friend! all that I am and have I owe to you, to
-your patient, disinterested teaching of many years. Oh, yes! and all
-that I may become or may possess I shall still owe to you! Ah, Dr.
-Hardcastle! I speak of a debt! I shall never be able to pay the debt I
-owe to you.”
-
-“Why, Hugh!” replied Dr. Hardcastle, throwing his arm affectionately
-over the shoulder of his young friend, and speaking in a voice as
-harmonious and gentle as a woman’s. “Why, Hugh! never let me hear
-another word of owing anything but brotherly love to me. You who have
-been my second self in all my labors and professional cares; a son to
-me, except that you have given me no anxiety, but much ease. My brother,
-companion, confidant! Why, whatever could I have done without you, Hugh?
-What could any of us have done without you? Mrs. Garnet! how could you
-have got along without your son, Hugh? Elsie! how could you have managed
-to conduct your domestic and business affairs without Hugh? Children!
-little ones, I say! what would you take for ‘big brother’?”
-
-The last-named little shareholders in the Hugh Hutton property swarmed
-around him, some with gentle, some with vociferous demonstrations of
-affection. And their mother laid her hands affectionately on his
-shoulders, and, looking up in his face, said:
-
-“Dear Hugh! No! no one could possibly have supplied your place to us,
-since we have known you. You have been, indeed, like a younger brother,
-or an elder son of the family, only that, as the doctor says, instead of
-giving us trouble, you have relieved us of it. Oh, Hugh! our dear boy!
-only be half as eminent as we hope you will be, and we shall be so proud
-and happy in your success!”
-
-“Come, come, Elsie, a truce to sentiment! Supper waits, and a man who
-has staged night and day for a week, and walked three miles to-night,
-must have a good appetite for his supper, and a strong disposition to
-his bed. Come; give the babe to his sister, there, and draw your chair
-up. The children have been suffered to sit up in honor of your arrival,
-Hugh. They are usually in bed at this hour. Come,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-seating himself at the table, when all the others were seated, “let’s
-see! What have we here to tempt a traveler’s appetite? Mocha coffee—some
-of that which you sent us by the wagon, Hugh—and cream and butter, such
-as Elsie only can make. Here are some buckwheat cakes; just try one. Our
-buckwheat has surpassed itself this year. There, I don’t think you ever
-met with buckwheat cake like that in the city. Indeed, I don’t think
-people east of the mountains know what good buckwheat really is. Take
-honey with your cake. There’s honey for you. The comb clear and clean
-like amber and frost. Our bees have distinguished themselves this
-season. There are venison steaks before you. Use the currant jelly with
-them, Hugh, it is better than the grape. That is the finest venison that
-I have seen this winter. Ah, Hugh, you should have been with me when I
-brought that stag down—shot him on the Bushy Ridge. Great fellow!—eight
-antlers—five inches of fat in the brisket!—weighing—how much did he
-weigh, Elsie? No matter. You are laughing, Hugh. What at, sir, pray?”
-
-“At you, and myself, and stag-hunting, and deerstalking, and
-story-tellings. The truth is, I never hear of stags and antlers, but I
-think of a fine, bragging tale I was cut short in while telling to my
-fellow-students at a little farewell supper given by them to me when I
-was coming away. I was trying to persuade some of them to come out here,
-and boasting of the country. I was launched into the midst of a
-grandiloquent eulogium. ‘Glorious country, sir!’ said I, ‘glorious
-country! sublime mountains, piercing the clouds! mag-nif-i-cent forests
-stretching five hundred miles westward! splendid trees, sir, standing
-but two feet apart, their trunks measuring three yards in circumference!
-their luxurious branches inextricably intertwined! and game, sir! superb
-deer, with antlers six feet apart, bounding through those forests——’
-‘Where the trees grow but two feet apart, and their branches are
-inextricably entwined, how the very deuce do they manage to get through
-them, Hutton?’ asked my friend, bringing my magniloquence to a sudden
-stand. I never was so disconcerted in my life. I knew I had been telling
-the truth, yet had made it sound like a fiction. At last I answered, ‘By
-Dian, sir, that is their business, not mine, nor yours!’”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha! Yes, pretty good! Yet, Hugh, you are not romancing. There
-are parts of the forest where the great trees grow in such thickets as
-you have described; but they are as impassable to the deer as to us, of
-course; and then there is superb game in the forest, which may never
-approach within miles of such thickets. Take another cup of coffee?”
-
-“No, no, not any more,” said Hugh, pushing up his plate and cup.
-
-Mrs. Hardcastle gave the signal, and they arose from the table. The
-children had also finished their milk and bread, and their mother took
-them upstairs to be put to bed, while Mrs. Garnet washed up the tea
-things and Dr. Hardcastle replenished the fire.
-
-When the table was cleared away, and Elsie had returned, and they were
-all gathered around the evening fireside, deeply engaged in telling and
-in hearing all that had happened to each during the winter’s separation,
-Hugh suddenly clapped his hand to his pocket, with a “Lord bless my
-soul!”
-
-“What’s the matter?”
-
-“Oh, was ever such absence of mind!”
-
-“Never in the world, of course. Only what’s it about?” laughed Dr.
-Hardcastle.
-
-“Why, a letter—a letter that came in the same stage with myself—a letter
-from Huttontown, for you. I took it out of the office, and—indeed, I
-hope I have not lost it,” continued Hugh, fumbling first in one pocket
-and then in another. “Oh, here it is,” he exclaimed, producing the
-letter, and handing it to the doctor.
-
-“The superscription is in a strange hand, to begin with—a lady’s hand.
-Whom can it be from?” said Dr. Hardcastle, breaking the seal. “Dated
-‘Mount Calm.’”
-
-“Mount Calm!” exclaimed all three of his hearers, in a breath.
-
-“Yes, dated ‘Mount Calm,’ and signed ‘Garnet Seabright.’”
-
-“Garnet Seabright?” exclaimed Mrs. Garnet, in a tone of surprise and
-displeasure.
-
-“My little sister Nettie,” said Hugh, bending forward with interest.
-
-“Can you read it aloud, doctor?” inquired Elsie, in a low voice.
-
-“Yes, dear,” replied Dr. Hardcastle, stooping to pick up a second
-letter, that had fallen out of the first, and retaining the one in his
-hand while he read the other, as follows:
-
- “MOUNT CALM, March 1, 18—.
-
- “DR. HARDCASTLE.
-
- “DEAR SIR: Will you do me the favor of transmitting the inclosed
- letter to Dr. Hugh Hutton, of whose address I am entirely ignorant?
- Pray, pardon me for urging your prompt attention to my request, as its
- subject is of the utmost importance to Dr. Hutton, and requires his
- instant action.
-
- “Very respectfully,
- “GARNET SEABRIGHT.”
-
-“Here, Hugh, after all, the matter concerned only you. Here is your
-letter,” said Dr. Hardcastle, handing over the inclosed epistle to Hugh,
-who took it with a look of amazed interest, tore it open, and read it in
-silence. Suddenly he sprung up, overturning the chair, and dropping the
-letter, as he exclaimed vehemently:
-
-“Your horse! Your horse, doctor! Can I have your horse to-night?”
-
-“‘A horse! A horse! my kingdom for a horse!’ Why, what the deuce is the
-matter now? Who’s killed? Who’s wounded?”
-
-“Oh, doctor, no jesting. This is serious—this is terrible.
-Only—quick!—can I have your horse?”
-
-“Certainly, certainly, Hugh. But tell me, in one word, what’s the
-matter?”
-
-“My mother, my long-lost mother, is found, and at Mount Calm, but ill
-and dying, I fear. There! read Nettie’s letter, while I saddle the
-horse. I must ride at once to the village—the mail stage starts from
-there at ten o’clock. I must go in it,” said Hugh, hastening out.
-
-Mrs. Garnet and Elsie gathered around Dr. Hardcastle, while he read the
-following letter:
-
- “MOUNT CALM, March 1, 18—.
-
- “DEAREST HUGH: Wherever you are, and whatever may be your engagements,
- drop them at once, and hasten to Mount Calm. Your long-lost mother is
- found—she is here with me, but very, very ill of brain fever. Hasten.
- There are other things, too, dear Hugh, of which I cannot write now,
- but of which you will hear when you come. I write in haste and
- agitation, but, indeed, I am, as much as ever,
-
- “Your affectionate sister,
- “NETTIE.”
-
-“Strange! most strange!” said Mrs. Garnet.
-
-“And most unsatisfactory,” observed Elsie.
-
-“We shall know no more, however, until Hugh writes us from Mount Calm.
-Here he comes! How quick he has been!” said the doctor, going to meet
-Hugh as he entered.
-
-“You know, Hugh, how much I feel with you about this. Let me know now if
-in any way I can be of service to you.”
-
-“Oh, my friend, I know all your goodness. But do you know how much my
-secret heart has ever been filled with the desire of finding my mother?
-I could never hope to find her, but still, from my boyhood, the thought
-of seeing her has haunted me like the dream of an impossible good; and
-now she is found, but——”
-
-Hugh’s voice broke down, and he covered his face with his hands.
-
-“Hope for the best, Hugh. You used to be hopeful. And, oh, Hugh, be sure
-that we feel your trouble as if it were our own. It is our own,” said
-Elsie, laying her hand gently upon him.
-
-“My horse is ready. I only run in to say good-by; good-by, dear friends.
-Good-by, Mrs. Garnet—pray that I may not be too late! Good-by, Mrs.
-Hardcastle—give my love to the dear children when they ask for me
-to-morrow. Good-by, Dr. Hardcastle, my best friend. I will write to you
-from Mount Calm,” said Hugh, shaking and squeezing hands right and left,
-and then preparing to hasten out.
-
-“Aint you going to take your great-coat?” asked the doctor, holding it
-up.
-
-“Yes, yes; I had forgotten it. I haven’t time to put it on. I can throw
-it upon the horse,” exclaimed Hugh, hurriedly throwing the garment over
-his arm. “Once more, good-by to all.”
-
-“If I had a second horse, or had time to borrow one, I would go with
-you, Hugh,” said Dr. Hardcastle, attending him from the house.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXVIII.
- HUGH AND GARNET.
-
- When friends do meet in sorrow’s hour
- ’Tis like a sun-glimpse through a shower,
- A watery ray, an instant seen,
- The darkly closing clouds between.
- _—Scott._
-
-
-The full moon was shining broadly and brightly over the snow-clad hills
-and plains around Mount Calm, when Hugh Hutton rode up to the front
-entrance of the mansion in a full gallop. He threw himself from his
-horse, flung the reins to a servant in attendance, ran up the marble
-stairs, and, without stopping to ring, pushed at once into the house.
-
-A large hanging-lamp lighted up the hall, and its rays fell upon the
-form of a majestic and beautiful girl, whose presence immediately
-arrested the impetuous hurry of the visitor. Pausing, he bowed with
-deference, saying:
-
-“Miss Seabright?”
-
-He had always thought of her as Nettie; until he saw her he purposed to
-have called her Nettie; but this was not to be thought of now, in the
-presence of this imperial-looking girl, with whom he would no more have
-ventured upon familiarity than he would have dared to make free with an
-empress. She, too, had thought of her childhood’s companion as plain
-Hugh, had addressed him as dear Hugh in her letter; but now, when she
-saw before her this stately and reserved man, she blushed to think of
-it. And when, with deferential suavity, he repeated his question:
-
-“I presume—Miss Seabright?”
-
-She answered: “Yes, Dr. Hutton;” and added, with mournful gentleness,
-“Under happier circumstances I should say that I am very glad to see
-you, sir; but now I can only tell you truly that you are very, very
-welcome to Mount Calm.” And she offered him her hand.
-
-“My mother? Miss Seabright! How is my mother?” he inquired, alarmed at
-the sorrowful manner of his young hostess.
-
-“Come into the parlor, Dr. Hutton; there is a fire there, and you are
-chilled,” said Garnet, sadly evading the question, and leading the way.
-
-“My mother?” again inquired the guest, when she had conducted him into
-the drawing room.
-
-“Sit down, pray, sit down; you look so weary—here, near the fire,” said
-his hostess, drawing a chair to the hearth. He dropped into the seat—his
-prophetic heart already prepared for the words she was about to utter.
-
-“Your mother, Dr. Hutton, is above all pain and grief now.”
-
-“Dead! dead!” exclaimed Hugh, dropping his head upon his open hands.
-
-Garnet bent over the side of his chair, and laid her hand gently on his
-shoulder, and bowed her head until tears fell upon his hands, but said
-nothing.
-
-At last: “How long since?” he asked, raising his head.
-
-She seated herself by his side, and with her hand gently laid upon his,
-she replied:
-
-“Your mother was ill but three days, Dr. Hutton. Upon the first day I
-wrote to you—upon the third she passed away. It is four days since, so
-that, you see, you could not have reached here, even by the utmost
-speed; and so you have nothing to blame yourself for.”
-
-“Dead! really dead! dead four days!” he exclaimed, burying his face in
-his hands.
-
-“No, not dead—living in heaven! You know that—try to feel it also,” she
-said tenderly.
-
-He did not reply, nor did he speak again for some time, nor did she
-break upon the sacred silence of his grief by any ill-judged attempt at
-consolation.
-
-At last he broke forth in bitter lamentation.
-
-“Oh, that she had but lived! Oh, that my poor mother had but lived! That
-her son might have atoned in the last half of her life for the sorrows
-of her youth! Oh, that my mother had but lived!”
-
-“Ah! do not mourn so; believe me, it is far better as it is. There are
-some lives so wronged, so broken, that nothing but death can set them
-right. Such a life was hers. There are some sorrows so deep that nothing
-but heaven can cure them. Such sorrows were hers. Oh! believe me, by all
-the loving-kindness of the Father, it is better as it is,” said Garnet,
-kindly pressing the hand she held.
-
-“If I could have seen her but once! Oh, Miss Seabright! I thought but
-little about her in my boyhood, but as I grew to man’s estate the one
-secret, cherished hope of my heart was to find my mother—to devote my
-life to her. Oh, that I could have found her; oh, that I could have
-reached here in time to have seen her living face but once, so as to
-have known and remembered it.”
-
-“Again I say it is better as it is. The tender mercy of God spared you
-the trial. Would you have carried away in your heart the picture of a
-countenance transiently distorted by delirium, as the only impression of
-your mother’s face? Oh, no! Think of her only as she has been described
-to you in her youthful beauty, or think of her as she is now, in her
-immortal beauty. She has always been shrined in your heart as a
-beautiful and sacred memory and hope. Let it be so still, and let the
-hope be immortal.”
-
-She ceased speaking, and both relapsed into silence, that lasted until
-the door opened and a servant entered, bringing coffee and other
-refreshments upon a waiter.
-
-“Wheel the table forward here, and set the waiter upon it, and then you
-may go, Pompey,” said Miss Seabright, in a low voice.
-
-When they were alone together again Miss Seabright poured out a cup of
-coffee, and offered it to her guest. He thanked her, but declined it,
-and dropped his head again upon his hands, and fell into silence and
-despondency.
-
-Miss Seabright put the cup of coffee down and came and sat by his side,
-and laid her hand upon him again, and said softly:
-
-“I feel how you suffer, Dr. Hutton; and I can imagine that when we have
-lost a dear friend or dear relative, especially a parent, we should
-think it almost a sin to take comfort in any way, and selfishness even
-to refresh the wasted, wearied frame with needful food and sleep. It is
-so natural to feel so. Fasting and vigil are first compelled by anxiety
-and grief, and afterward, when all is over, and when nature has
-reasserted her claims, and made us feel the need of food and rest—still
-often the heart’s fond superstition will not yield, and fasting and
-vigil are offered as a tribute to the memory of the lost. It is so
-natural—but so wrong, Dr. Hutton—the rent garments, and the torn hair,
-and the ashes sprinkled on the head, and the inordinate worship of
-grief, belong to pagan bereavement, which is ‘without hope, and without
-God’—not to Christian sorrow, which should be calmed by resignation and
-cheered by faith. My friend, you are very weary and depressed—you need
-refreshment. Come, Hugh, lift up your head; take this coffee from my
-hand—Nettie’s hand.”
-
-As she stooped over him, offering the cup, the ends of her soft ringlets
-touched his brow, and her breath fanned his cheek. He raised his head,
-received the refreshment, and gratefully pressed the gentle hand that
-gave it. When he had drained the cup and set it down, he said:
-
-“Miss Seabright, how much I thank you for your sympathy and kindness
-none can know but God. Dear and gentle comforter, tell me, now, the
-facts of this sad discovery. When did my mother return, and under what
-circumstances?”
-
-“Had you not better defer hearing the story for the present, Dr. Hutton?
-You look so tired. Retire early, and sleep well to-night, and to-morrow
-morning I will tell you everything you desire to know.”
-
-“Miss Seabright, I have not slept since I received your letter telling
-me of my mother’s advent and illness. I shall never be able to sleep
-until I have heard all you have to tell me of that mother’s history and
-sorrows. But, Miss Seabright, I beg your pardon—you are so good, that
-your very goodness has made me selfish, and forgetful of the trouble I
-may give you. You are doubtless fatigued, and should not be longer
-harassed by the presence of an exacting egotist like me. If so, let me
-bid you good-night,” said Dr. Hutton, rising.
-
-“Oh, no; sit down; besides, I cannot let you go to-night. You are to
-remain with us, certainly, to-night—and as many more days and nights as
-your convenience will permit. Sit down; I am not the least wearied, and
-if, indeed, you think you will rest better after having heard the story
-I have to tell you, why, of course, I will willingly tell it. Yes, and
-upon second thought, I feel that it is better you should hear it
-to-night. To-night let the grave close in faith over the sad past.
-To-morrow you will arise with new hope for the future.”
-
-They both resumed their seats. And Miss Seabright related to him the
-story of the nightly light seen on Hutton’s Isle; her visit there, to
-ascertain the cause; her guardian’s unexpected arrival; the sudden
-apparition of Agnes; the encounter and the death of Lionel Hardcastle by
-the accidental discharge of the pistol. Having reached this point of her
-story, she went on to say:
-
-“At the first appearance of your mother I saw by her wild look and
-frenzied manner that reason had fled. But instantly after the fall of
-Lionel Hardcastle the sudden change, the quiet manner with which she
-exculpated herself from the suspicion of blood-guiltiness deceived me so
-that I mistook for sanity that mood which was only the reaction of
-frenzy—or, at best, a lucid interval of madness. As soon as I had
-ascertained the victim to be quite dead, and had collected my thoughts
-for action, I determined to return to the mainland and rouse the
-magistrate, Judge Wylie. The unhappy woman was sitting upon the ground,
-with her head bowed upon her hands, and her wild hair streaming all
-around her, like a veil. I spoke to her, and told her my purpose, and
-asked her to accompany me. She gave me no reply. I spent a long time in
-trying to persuade her to get up and go with me—but I could not get a
-word or gesture from her. I made no more impression on her than if she
-had been a statue. Finally I was obliged to leave her for the purpose of
-procuring assistance. I went down to the beach, got into the skiff, took
-the paddle, and rowed swiftly to the landing at Point Pleasant. I found
-all the family there still up, owing to the decease of old Mrs. Wylie,
-who had just expired. Judge Wylie, with his usual promptitude, gave me
-all the help that was needful. I returned with the party to Hutton Isle,
-where we found the unfortunate woman in the same posture in which we had
-left her. I spoke to her again, and with no more success than before.
-Finding it impossible to make any impression upon her, I requested Mr.
-Ulysses Roebuck, who had command of the party, to lift her up gently and
-convey her to the boat. He attempted to do so, but on being raised she
-broke into sudden frenzy. Dr. Hutton, spare me and yourself the details
-of this illness—it is over now. It is sufficient to say that she was
-brought hither, that she had the best medical attendance and the best
-nursing that could be procured. She recovered her reason about an hour
-before her death, and asked to see a clergyman. Mr. Wilson, the
-Methodist preacher, attended her. Of the circumstances of her forcible
-abduction, and the misfortunes that ensued to her, she refused to make
-any revelations, saying that the dying should not drop a fire-brand into
-the circle they were leaving. When told that she had a son, she blessed
-you, and left this message for you, that ‘Forgiveness is the only remedy
-for some wrongs’; and of herself she said that ‘Death was the only
-rectifier of some lives.’ She died at set of sun—calmly and hopefully.
-At some future day I will show you where they have laid her. As for the
-unhappy man who met his death so suddenly—the coroner’s jury sat upon
-his case before his remains were permitted to be removed from the Isle.
-The body was then conveyed to Hemlock Hollow for burial. Old Mr.
-Hardcastle has not been able to leave his bed since the shock of his
-son’s sudden death threw him upon it. It is supposed that he cannot
-recover.” This Miss Seabright added with the purpose of partially
-diverting the mind of her guest from dwelling too intently upon the
-circumstances of his mother’s death.
-
-At the close of her recital Dr. Hutton remained silent for a few
-minutes, and then, taking and pressing her hand, he thanked her, with
-much emotion, for the care she had bestowed upon his mother.
-
-Miss Seabright rang for night-lamps, and when they were brought directed
-the servant to attend Dr. Hutton’s leisure, and when he felt inclined to
-retire to show him to his chamber. Then bidding her guest good-night,
-she left the room.
-
-The next morning Dr. Hutton came down very early and found Miss
-Seabright already in the drawing room. She advanced to meet him, holding
-out her hand. After the usual courteous inquiries about health, etc.,
-Dr. Hutton said:
-
-“Miss Seabright, I scarcely know how to pardon myself for my
-forgetfulness of an aged and worthy relative last evening; but pray tell
-me now, how is my old aunt?”
-
-“Miss Joe! oh, very well, indeed. The only mark of infirmity I can
-perceive in her is her wish to go to bed earlier now than heretofore.
-She had retired before you arrived last night, and I would not have her
-disturbed. She is in the breakfast room superintending breakfast. She
-knows that you are here, but does not know that you have risen. Shall I
-send for her?”
-
-“If you please, Miss Seabright. I have not seen my aunt for two years. I
-have generally made it a point to come and see her every year or two
-since I first left her, and should have visited her this spring even,
-had not your letter summoned me now. Ah! here she comes.”
-
-Miss Joe came in smiling and weeping, and drying her eyes, and wiping
-her spectacles with her check apron, and as soon as she saw her nephew
-she ran to him and fell in his arms, laughing and crying and talking all
-at once, and not regaining self-possession until she became alarmed for
-the propriety of her cap and kerchief, when she extricated herself,
-smoothing down her apron and exclaiming:
-
-“There, Hugh! There, Neffy! You’re not a baby now; don’t tumble my cap
-and my handkerchief—there’s no sense in it;” though, dear old soul, the
-fault lay all the while in her own fondling—not Hugh’s. “There, come to
-breakfast now. It is all on the table waiting, and will get cold.”
-
-Dr. Hutton offered his arm to Miss Seabright, and they went in to
-breakfast.
-
-After the meal was over Dr. Hutton made a motion to depart, but Miss Joe
-vigorously opposed his purpose, supplicating him to remain at Mount Calm
-for only a few days, if not longer. Miss Seabright joined her invitation
-to the old lady’s entreaties, and Dr. Hutton finally consented to stay,
-and retired to his room to write letters to his friends in the West.
-
-The few days of Dr. Hutton’s projected stay at Mount Calm grew into a
-week, and the week was stretching into a month, and still Hugh Hutton
-found it daily more difficult to tear himself away from Garnet
-Seabright, for every time he would make an attempt to go she would say:
-
-“Not yet, Dr. Hutton. Not just yet! Stay till to-morrow;” and she would
-think, “Why does he not speak? He loves me! He stays here at my bidding.
-He must know that I love him, too! Why does he not speak? Will he go
-away without an explanation? Can it be that my fortune and his own lack
-of wealth hinders him? There are some men so proud that they will not
-marry an heiress, lest it be said of them that they owe all they have to
-their wives. But such a thought would never enter the head of my noble
-Hugh! He would not elevate money on one side or the other into
-importance enough to divide two hearts that love. Yet there is some
-reason, and some good reason, why, when his eyes and tones and gestures
-tell me every hour that he loves and esteems me, his words never do.”
-And then sometimes when alone she would break forth impatiently, thus:
-“Indeed, I won’t bear this much longer! No, that I won’t! I shan’t have
-Hugh’s heart and my own tormented in this way to no good purpose! I will
-make him tell me what it all means! Feeling very sure he loves me he
-shall tell me what all this hesitation means.”
-
-Such would be her impatient resolve, but Garnet never could bring
-herself to lead her lover on to any explanation, until one night when
-Hugh for the dozenth time made known that he should leave Mount Calm the
-next morning. It was after supper when Miss Joe retired, and they were
-playing a game of backgammon together. Miss Seabright looked up from her
-dice and said:
-
-“Well, Dr. Hutton, since you are going to-morrow, and I feel that we
-cannot justly keep you from your business any longer, I wish, before you
-depart, to ask your advice—I——”
-
-“Well, Miss Seabright?”
-
-“I—you know that my social position is a very singular one.”
-
-“It is, indeed, Miss Seabright.”
-
-“Responsible as I am for the faithful stewardship of a very large
-fortune——”
-
-“It is indeed, in your case especially, a very heavy responsibility.”
-
-“Yes; and I have neither father nor brother to aid and counsel me.”
-
-“My poor counsel is at your command always, Miss Seabright.”
-
-“Thank you! It is in relation to the stewardship of Heaven’s goods
-intrusted to me that I wish your advice. One should not live for
-themselves alone, you know.”
-
-“Assuredly not,” said Dr. Hutton, giving her his close attention.
-
-Miss Seabright then related at length certain very judicious and
-extensive schemes of benevolence, and desired his opinion upon them.
-
-“Your plans of usefulness and beneficence would be both wise and good,
-reflecting honor on your head and heart, but that they lack the proper
-foundation of all schemes of action.”
-
-“What is that?”
-
-“Justice.”
-
-“Justice?”
-
-“Justice!”
-
-“I do not understand you in the least!”
-
-“Miss Seabright, have you ever learned how it was that you came into
-possession of all this estate?”
-
-“My dear godfather gave it to me.”
-
-“Do you know why he conveyed it to you in his life rather than bequeath
-it to you at his death?”
-
-“No.”
-
-“Because, had he merely bequeathed it to you, his will would have been
-set aside by our courts of justice in favor of his wife and child.”
-
-“Well, he did convey it to me! It is mine, at all events!” said Garnet,
-with a flushed cheek and brow.
-
-“And yet he had a wife and daughter whom he beggared to enrich you. Was
-this right?”
-
-“Right! Yes, it was right! He cut off a fugitive wife and a rebellious
-daughter! Right! Yes, it was right! He did it, and he could have done no
-wrong! Therefore it was right! Right! Yes, it was right! Who dares to
-gainsay it?” she exclaimed, with her bosom heaving and her color rising.
-
-“Ah! Miss Seabright, it is an ungracious task indeed to unveil before
-you the true character and hidden motives of your benefactor, of one
-whom you have always looked upon with affection and respect——”
-
-“Stop!” exclaimed Garnet breathlessly, and pressing both hands upon her
-bosom, as was her custom when trying to repress an eruption of anger.
-“Stop! If you are about to breathe a syllable reflecting upon the memory
-of my godfather—hold! I will not hear a breath, believe me! A word that
-should wound his good name would transfix my own heart.”
-
-“For your dear sake, Miss Seabright, I will respect the name of General
-Garnet; but for the dearer sake of justice I will plead the cause of his
-widow and daughter.”
-
-“Of his widow and daughter! I am not—the Lord knows it!—ungrateful,
-ungenerous, or cruel. I will largely dower them both.”
-
-“You will do no such thing, Miss Seabright! I trust there is too much
-latent nobility in your character to permit you to add such ‘insult’ to
-their ‘injury.’”
-
-“Then what is it that you wish me to do?”
-
-“What your conscience shall, after you understand the matter, dictate to
-be done. He who gave you the Mount Calm estate had no just right to do
-so. The whole of the estate came by his wife, and should descend to her
-daughter. It was held by her family, the Chesters, for two hundred
-years.”
-
-“Well, I think two centuries quite long enough for any one family to
-hold any one landed estate. I think it quite time the property had
-passed into other hands,” said Miss Seabright firmly. Then she added:
-“Besides, my godfather must have had a legal right to the property, else
-he could not have conveyed it to me.”
-
-“Miss Seabright, if you will permit me, for justice’s sake, I will tell
-you the whole history of the transaction by which General Garnet became
-legally possessed of the Mount Calm estate. It is right—it is necessary
-that you should know it.”
-
-“Say on, sir.”
-
-Dr. Hutton began, and, softening as much as possible, for her sake, the
-conduct of General Garnet, related the atrocious history of his life and
-actions—first, how, aided by her father, he sundered the engagement
-existing between Alice Chester and Milton Sinclair and forcibly married
-the heart-broken child; their wedded life of tyranny on his side and
-suffrance on hers; the separation of the mother and daughter; in after
-years his betrothal of Elsie and Magnus; his subsequent attempt to break
-their engagement from mercenary motives; his furious anger at their
-marriage; the arts by which he gained from his wife a deed of the Mount
-Calm estate; his revenge in disinheriting his daughter; the taunts and
-cruelties by which he had nearly caused the death of his wife, and had
-finally driven her from him; and lastly, the legal acumen with which,
-for the sake of more surely impoverishing his wife and child, he had
-conveyed the estate, instead of bequeathing it, knowing that the will,
-upon account of its crying injustice, would have been set aside by the
-courts in favor of the widow and daughter.
-
-“There, Miss Seabright, that is the way in which your godfather first,
-and you after him, came into possession of the Mount Calm property.”
-
-Garnet Seabright had not listened patiently to this recital. Many times
-her large, heavily-fringed eyes blazed and darkened; her cheeks
-crimsoned and faded; and, though she pressed both hands to her chest,
-her bosom heaved and fell like the waves of the sea. Many times she
-interrupted him, and nothing, perhaps, but the felt law of justice
-enabled Dr. Hutton to persevere to the close of his ungracious and
-unwelcome narrative.
-
-When he had closed by revealing the hypocrisy, treachery, and revenge of
-General Garnet, all the color was suddenly struck out from her face, as
-though she had been blasted by a stroke of lightning, so white, so
-still, and aghast was her aspect. Dr. Hutton hastened to her side and
-took her hand. At the touch she rose in trepidation, and, scarcely
-heeding what she said, exclaimed:
-
-“Not now! Not one single word now! I must be alone, or die!
-To-morrow!—to-morrow I will hear you!” and hurried, or rather reeled,
-from the room.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XXXIX.
- THE STRUGGLE OF LOVE AND AMBITION.
-
- Her passion-tortured soul,
- Like a ship dashed by fierce encountering tides,
- And of her pilot spoiled, drives round and round,
- The sport of wind and wave.
-
-
-The next morning she appeared at the breakfast table with a face so pale
-and stern as almost to awe the good Miss Joe from making an inquiry as
-to her health. And when at last the old lady asked her if she were not
-well, she replied curtly:
-
-“An ill night’s rest!” and the questioning ceased.
-
-When she had retired to the drawing room Dr. Hutton followed her
-thither. He found her standing on the rug and resting her forehead
-against the mantelpiece. Her long ringlets, hanging low, concealed her
-face from his view, until she turned around and said, in a very low
-voice:
-
-“Dr. Hutton, you are not going away this morning, are you?”
-
-“No, Miss Seabright!—no, Garnet. I did not rouse a war in your soul to
-leave you until peace should be restored.”
-
-“I do not know why you should say there is a war,” said Garnet, in a
-deep voice.
-
-“I can see it. That fiery blood that has left your brow and cheeks and
-very lips of a gray paleness has mustered somewhere. Besides, I know
-you, Garnet. You were always very transparent to me. I know that in your
-soul the powers of good and evil are drawn out in battle array against
-each other.”
-
-With an adjuring gesture she left her position, and, crossing the room,
-threw herself into a chair. He watched her some few minutes where she
-sat, with her pale brow resting on one hand and the other hanging
-listlessly down, and then he slowly crossed the room, and, dropping upon
-one knee by her side, raised her hand to his bosom, and said, in a voice
-deep with passion:
-
-“Miss Seabright!—Nettie, my dear sister!—my wife, if you will bless me
-so!—I wish—I do wish I had a kingdom to offer you to replace this Mount
-Calm. As it is, I have only myself, and an affection, an affection,
-Nettie, that—oh, I cannot tell you in a few words, a few seconds, that
-love which it will take all the years we live together to express, to
-live out!”
-
-“Oh, Hugh!” she said, in broken accents, “if you knew where this rack
-screws and strains my heart-strings most. To think that one whom I
-always loved and honored with a passionate enthusiasm as the very first
-in human excellence—but no more of that! Not my lips shall breathe one
-word of blame, though all earth and heaven cry shame on his memory!”
-said Garnet, as her dark eyes smoldered and flashed and sank again, as
-she breathed, in heart-broken tones: “No more of that! Oh, God, that I
-could say to my thoughts, as to my tongue, ‘No more of that’!”
-
-And, scarcely heeding her lover, she arose, threw back her falling hair,
-pressed both hands upon her bosom, and passed out of the room.
-
-It was late in the evening before he saw her again. He went into the
-library after the lamps were lighted and found her sitting at one of the
-reading tables, with her head bowed down upon her folded hands. He went
-and sat by her, saying:
-
-“Garnet, dearest, do not keep your thoughts and troubles all to
-yourself; let me share them. Come, come,” he continued, caressing her,
-“this is unkind! I have had a very solitary day.”
-
-“A solitary day! I wish you joy of it! Mine has been ‘peopled with the
-furies.’ Oh, Hugh, even in my wild infancy I was such an ambitious
-child! Though, Heaven knows, there was nothing around me to foster
-ambition, unless it were the want of everything, and the study of fairy
-tales! Oh, Hugh! if the little wild water-witch of the isle was
-ambitious——”
-
-“‘The woman, gifted with beauty, talent, wealth, and largest liberty, is
-a hundred times more so,’ you would say,” said Hugh. “But, Garnet, do
-you know there is an ambition more noble than all others—that of moral
-greatness! Garnet, you have the opportunity granted to few—the
-opportunity of moral heroism!”
-
-“Oh, Hugh, before I saw you I had great schemes! great schemes!”
-
-“I know it, dear Garnet; but they did not demand the great moral force
-required of you to-day.”
-
-“But since you came, Hugh——” Here her voice broke down and she dropped
-her head upon the table for a few minutes. Then, lifting it up again,
-she held her veil of ringlets back, and said: “But since you came, Hugh,
-all schemes have given place to one. I had been living in such a golden
-dream, dear Hugh! Oh, listen! You know when we were two poor children,
-obliged to pick our frugal meal of maninosies from the beach, and I,
-inspired by the ‘Arabian Nights’ Entertainments,’ would be talking my
-wild, childish talk about sudden riches and fairy grandmothers, you said
-you had a fairy in your head who could convert the sand and clay into
-gold-dust and precious gems.”
-
-“Yes, I remember. It was when I dreamed of being an agriculturist.”
-
-“And you promised you would make a fortune for me; confer rank, and
-wealth, and honor upon me?” she asked, smiling very sadly.
-
-“Yes—yes, Nettie!” he answered solemnly. “Yes, and I hold myself bound
-to redeem that boyish pledge. Doubly bound now, Nettie, for I must repay
-you for all you lose.”
-
-“Oh, stop! Hear me out. Well—heigho! I thought if Hugh could give Garnet
-a fortune he might also take one from her—take one with her. Oh, Hugh! I
-knew I could not confer upon you rank or honor; you must make them for
-both of us; but I dreamed that I could give you wealth to aid in doing
-it. Hugh, listen! I heard you say that you would like to travel, and
-spend some time in London, Paris, and at some of the German cities, for
-the sake of perfecting your medical knowledge. I then heard you regret
-that necessity which urged your immediate settlement in some Western
-neighborhood, to commence practice. Well, Hugh, I dreamed that necessity
-would be obviated. I dreamed, Hugh, that we would make a bridal tour to
-Europe, and sojourn in all these capitals, while you pursued your
-studies at your ease. Now my dream is over—over!”
-
-“God bless you for saying that, Garnet! God bless you for saying that!
-The dream is over!—the dream is over!—the battle is over, and your moral
-sense has nobly conquered; you will yield up this property?”
-
-“Over!—the battle? The doubt over! No! no! no! no! I did not say that,
-either!” exclaimed Miss Seabright, her whole aspect changing. Suddenly
-rising, with flashing eyes and burning cheeks, and pacing the room with
-rapid steps: “Over! No! man! man! Is it a flower, a ring, an orange you
-ask me for, that I should give it up without a struggle—as a matter of
-course? Give up this estate! Why, I should be insane, frantic, frenzied!
-Nothing short of ranting mad! Why, Hugh, is there a man, woman, or child
-now living on this earth who would voluntarily yield up an estate which
-they might keep—an estate of two millions of dollars—for—what?—a point
-of conscience! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Come, answer me!” she
-exclaimed, throwing herself into a chair with a strange, unnatural air
-of audacity. “Say! is there a man, woman, or child living who would do
-this?”
-
-“Yes. Any child would do it. There is one man I know who would do it.
-There is one woman who will do it.”
-
-“Me?”
-
-“You!”
-
-“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Why, Dr. Hutton, anyone, if they were
-wealthy, might give up a thousand—ten thousand dollars, for conscience’
-sake; but two millions! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Why, Dr. Hutton! I
-am a human being, subject to like passions and foibles with other
-people. I rather like wealth, handsome houses and furniture, and dress
-and jewels, and servants and equipages, and traveling, sight-seeing, and
-change of scene. And if there were nothing to be given up but these, how
-great would be the sacrifice. But then, I have magnificent plans of
-extensive philanthropy; glorious prospects of social distinction. And to
-renounce these! How tremendous the renunciation!”
-
-“Ah, Nettie! with your usual perfect openness you have revealed the very
-death-throes of your expiring selfishness. For your selfishness—will
-die! Conscience will conquer it. The cup of earthly prosperity is
-brimful, and at your lips, but you will put it, untasted, away. I know
-you will! I have perfect faith in you!”
-
-“Hugh, you kill me! You madden me! Have you no pity? I believe you think
-you will make me do it!” she exclaimed, starting up and pacing the floor
-rapidly. “I do believe you fancy that you will make me give up this
-estate by asserting confidently that I will do it.”
-
-“I think your true nobility of soul will constrain you to it.”
-
-Suddenly she stopped, threw both hands to her breast, and turned so
-ghastly pale that Dr. Hutton sprang to her side, exclaiming:
-
-“Garnet, you are ill! Is it possible that this struggle produces such an
-effect upon you?”
-
-She dropped her hands from her bosom, her color returned, and, smiling
-strangely, she said:
-
-“Why, Hugh, do you fancy that I am such a spoiled child as to grow ill
-because I want to have my own way in all things? No! But as I hurried up
-and down the room in such a heat I was arrested suddenly by a quick,
-sharp pang; a deathly pang, that caught away my breath. It seemed to me
-as if another movement would have been fatal; it seemed as if in the
-very flow of my high tide of life and audacity the skeleton fingers of
-death had closed around my heart and squeezed it. It is gone now. Nay,
-now, nonsense, Hugh! Do not look at me with such a death-warrant in your
-eyes. If you look at your patients that way you will frighten them to
-death!” she said, laughing.
-
-“Garnet, sit down. There—give me your wrist. Did you ever experience
-this symptom before?”
-
-“Symptom! Bless you, Dr. Hutton, it is not a symptom. Dr. Hutton, if you
-are out of practice and wish to get your hand in again, I refer you to
-all the hypochondriacal old men and women on the plantation, who will
-delight your professional heart with ‘symptoms’ for any length of time.”
-
-“Garnet, you have been too much agitated to-day, for one of your
-excitable temperament. Go to rest.”
-
-“I will. I feel, for the first time in my life, a little exhausted,” she
-replied, rising and extending her hand.
-
-He drew her unresisting to his bosom, pressed a kiss upon her brow, and
-led her to the door.
-
-He did not see her again until the next day at dinner, when she appeared
-in full dress, and looking grandly beautiful, joyous, and decided. He
-congratulated her. She smiled exultingly, and said:
-
-“I feel well, very well, because I have come to a decision.”
-
-When dinner was over she challenged him for a walk on the terrace around
-the roof of the house. When they had reached this elevated site she
-advanced to the front of the balustrade, and, stretching one hand out
-toward the magnificent prospect, she said:
-
-“Look, Hugh! Saw you ever a fairer scene?”
-
-“It is indeed a sublime and beautiful prospect.”
-
-“And has it no more interest than that? Listen, Hugh! All these waving
-forests and rolling hills and plains; all these fields and barns and
-granaries; all these orchards, vineyards, and gardens; these terraces,
-with their statues, fountains, and conservatories; this mansion house,
-with its stately chambers, halls, and saloons—is ours—is our beautiful,
-our superb home, if you will take it—when you take me,” she said,
-turning to him.
-
-“Nettie, when Satan wished to tempt Christ he took Him up into a very
-high mountain, and showed Him the kingdoms of the earth and the glory
-thereof, and said: ‘All these will I give Thee, if Thou wilt fall down
-and worship me.’”
-
-“Upon my soul, I thank you for the parallel you have chosen to run
-between me and Satan!” exclaimed Miss Seabright, with a burning cheek.
-
-“You misconstrue me, dearest Garnet. You do not tempt me. I am not
-tempted. It is the Christ in you—the angel in you—the good in you that
-is tempted by Ambition.”
-
-“Hugh! Hugh! It is not for myself now so much as for you that I am
-ambitious. With the power this fortune would give, when joined to your
-talents, you could become so distinguished.”
-
-“Again, Garnet: When Satan tempted Christ it was not through any puerile
-idea, but through the grandest passion of the human soul—the passion by
-which the great archangel fell—Ambition. But, I tell you, Garnet, that
-if ambition be the most glorious of human passions, remorse is the most
-terrible. And, too often one follows the other as surely as night
-follows day.”
-
-She did not reply, and both remained silent for a few minutes, when,
-taking her hand, he said impressively:
-
-“Do not think me ungrateful, dearest Garnet. Very deeply do I feel the
-blessing of your sweet love; very highly do I estimate the honor of your
-ambition for me. But listen, dearest. In erecting your edifice of
-earthly happiness, it would be well to lay the basement sure. You might
-possess and inhabit a princely palace, luxuriously furnished, yet you
-would not glory in its splendor, or even enjoy a moment’s repose under
-its roof, if you knew its foundation to be insecure; that at any instant
-in the midst of enjoyment it might suddenly fall and crush you under its
-magnificent ruins. Garnet, such an insecure dwelling-place, such a
-transient phantasmagoria, is any plan of earthly happiness not based
-upon the principles of justice. Such, Garnet, is your edifice of
-enjoyment; for you will feel that death, which hangs over us all at all
-times, may at any moment summon you from its possession to place you at
-the bar of Eternal Justice, to answer for the sin of your soul. And your
-ill-gotten splendors here will be your condemnation hereafter. Oh,
-believe me, dear Garnet, to say nothing of the sublime beauty of faith
-displayed in the sacrifice of earthly interests to heavenly prospects—of
-temporal pleasures to eternal joys—there is great good sense in seeking
-‘first the Kingdom of God and His righteousness’; for, look you; I may
-gain wealth and renown, but if my fortune is ill-gotten I cannot fully
-enjoy it, for knowing that at any time my soul may be snatched from its
-possessions to the bar of God, and, stained with falsehood and injustice
-as it is, be hurled thence to perdition. But, on the other hand, if my
-fortune is founded upon righteousness, and built up with the blessing of
-God, then I may be as rich and as great as I please, and yet enjoy this
-world with a surer joy for knowing that it leads to a better and an
-eternal one. Life, dear Garnet, is a journey to the Judgment Seat. In
-all your plans, therefore, of life’s journey, look to its end. If you
-set out upon a road that you knew was leading you to misery—no matter
-how fine the carriage in which you traveled, how soft the cushions on
-which you sat, how beautiful the country through which you passed—you
-could not enjoy it; for every mile that should draw you nearer to its
-close would increase your uneasiness, for you would know its end to be
-misery. Such a journey, dear Garnet, will be your life if you set out
-upon it with ill-gotten riches. Now, look on the other side of the
-question. If you should start upon a journey that you know will bring
-you finally to a haven of rest and honor—no matter how common your
-vehicle, how rough your road, how ordinary the landscape, how full of
-unpleasant accidents—you will endure it, and at every stage with more
-cheerfulness, for knowing that it brings you nearer to its end, and that
-its end is repose and happiness. And, if your journey should be
-pleasant, its very pleasures will be enhanced by the knowledge that its
-goal is rest, honor, and joy. Such a journey will our lives be, dearest
-love. You will resign this estate. We will marry, and, feeling the smile
-and blessing of God upon us, we will go forth strongly and hopefully and
-labor for our living. We shall have some early struggles, but God will
-be with us. He will bless our sacrifice, and we shall finally prosper.
-And while weeks are slipping into months, and months gliding into years,
-we shall really enjoy the very making of a fortune, taste prosperity
-piecemeal, and get the good of every morsel. Every little comfort that
-we may be able to add to our daily domestic life will be relished the
-more that we have felt the want of it, and blessed the more that it has
-come to us from God. And for our future years I hope highly, but may not
-prophesy. They are in the hands of God,” he said, raising his hat with
-profound reverence. Then, his tone changing to one of deep tenderness,
-he stretched forth his arms, and said: “Come, Nettie! Come, my darling
-wife. You will give up all this ill-starred wealth, and trust in God to
-restore you a hundredfold.”
-
-Pale and drooping with excess of feeling she sank upon his bosom,
-murmuring:
-
-“Oh, God bless you, Hugh! Large and full heart, God bless you! Where
-could I find my life but in you? But, oh, dear Hugh, do not be a martyr
-at this rational age of the world! Take my fortune with me.”
-
-“Never, Nettie! Never, so strengthen me Heaven! When I take you I will
-take no sin with you.”
-
-She started, burst from his embrace, and broke forth with passionate
-vehemence:
-
-“Silence! I will not hear you. I will never give up my privileges. I
-will not be a fanatic to please you. Oh! look at me, Hugh; and do not
-think I speak from vanity, but from a war of conflicting passions, that
-rends my soul in twain. Do I look like one to be condemned to poverty,
-and privation, and domestic toil, and drudgery? I will speak out, though
-in your eyes I convict myself of vanity and presumption. You never
-called me beautiful in words, but you have said so with your eyes a
-thousand times. Oh, Hugh, I valued my beauty as I did my wealth, for
-your sake. But should I be beautiful in poverty? You know that I know
-what poverty is! Look at my hair, Hugh. Yesterday you took the whole
-mass up in your hand and looked at it as at a treasure, so proudly; then
-you singled out a ringlet and examined it as a strange beauty, so
-curiously. Now look at the ringlets again. Do you think it requires no
-care to keep them so soft and glossy, and in such full curl? Why, a
-rose-bush will not bloom in full glory unless it is cared for and
-tended; neither will my beauty. Hugh, I do not know why I may not
-venture to speak before you what I dare to think before God. I know that
-my soul’s habitation is beautiful; and it seems to me fit that it should
-be so, and that its beauty should be enhanced by rich drapery, and
-preserved from all uses. How could that be done in bitter poverty?”
-
-“Garnet,” he answered solemnly, “the soul is greater than its temple.
-Would you preserve the temple sacred from all uses, yet degrade the
-greater deity within it? Would you preserve the delicacy of your beauty,
-and clothe your form in gorgeous apparel by an action that would stain
-your soul with foul dishonesty?”
-
-“Don’t talk to me any more. You will drive me frantic. Dishonesty! That
-is the low vice of ignorant and debased natures, for which they are
-sometimes sent to the State’s prison.”
-
-“And yet which is more excusable ‘in ignorant and debased natures’ than
-in intelligent and exalted ones,” said he sternly.
-
-“Dishonesty! What have I to do with that? This estate is legally mine.
-To keep it is not even injustice. Why do you talk to me so?” she
-exclaimed, tearing at her bosom, as she wildly walked up and down the
-terrace, as if to pluck away the burning pain there. “Why do you
-torture—exasperate—madden me so?”
-
-“It is not I, Garnet. No mere words that I could speak could disturb
-your bosom’s peace. It is the awful conscience there that refuses to be
-silent,” said Hugh solemnly.
-
-She paused before him, trembling all over; clenching her chest with her
-spread hands, as though to clutch the passion there; her eyes burning in
-their intense lurid fire, in fearful contrast with the ghastly paleness
-of her brow and cheeks, and gasped between her white lips:
-
-“You are an incendiary, sent here to convulse my soul with war, until
-Reason herself is hurled from her throne! Man! man! You know what civil
-war in a nation is. Do you know—can you guess what the internal conflict
-of a divided soul is? No, you do not. Your well-balanced mind, like a
-well-governed State, is always quiet. But mine! Oh, you have raised an
-insurrection in my soul that can never, never be suppressed! Oh, man!
-man! it is a grievous wrong that you have done me. I was so highly happy
-in my glorious hopes and prospects until you came. You have killed all
-my joy. But do not think,” she exclaimed, with another violent outburst
-of passion; “do not think that you have succeeded! Do not! Never suppose
-that to please your fanaticism I will give up my estate—never! never!”
-
-“No, Garnet. Not to please my fanaticism, as you call it, will you do
-so, but in obedience to your awakened and aroused conscience will you do
-so.”
-
-“What! Never! What! resign all my great plans of usefulness, of
-benevolence, of wide philanthropy? Renounce all my glorious prospects of
-world honor—perhaps renown? Man! do you know what you ask of me? They
-are worth my soul’s price. Give up my fortune! Do you know its amount?
-Why, my income is almost a queen’s revenue. Do you know, as I do, with
-what power it clothes me?”
-
-“I know the vast amount and great power of your wealth, Garnet. And I
-know the great good that you, with your wonderful beauty, talent, and
-enterprise could do with it; the great distinction you could gain by it.
-I know your pride, your ambition, your burning aspiration after worldly
-glory, and I feel the stupendous force of the temptation that is upon
-you.”
-
-“I tell you, my power, my plans and prospects are worth almost my soul’s
-price!” she exclaimed vehemently.
-
-“‘Almost’ not quite. There is a surplus value and weight about the soul
-that will weigh down the scale, and toss the fortune up.”
-
-“Never, I tell you. Never!” she repeated passionately.
-
-Dr. Hutton regarded her fixedly for some moments, then he asked coldly:
-
-“And this, then, is your final decision, Miss Seabright?”
-
-“Yes; please Heaven, it is.”
-
-“But it will not please Heaven, Miss Seabright. I only waited for your
-decision. I have it, and I shall leave here to-morrow. Had your
-conclusion been otherwise—but no more of that. And now,” said he
-sternly, “listen to me! You will go forth into the world. Your wondrous
-beauty, genius, and your riches will draw around you the mighty in
-intellect, wealth, and position. Yet, queen of that court as you will
-be, you will take no joy on your throne; you will know you have usurped
-the seat of another. Your graces of mind and of person will be the theme
-of every tongue, yet you will know that they clothe a soul spotted with
-dishonesty. Your extensive philanthropy will be the admiration of sages
-and statesmen, yet their praises will reproach you with the thought that
-your munificence is at the expense of another. Your benevolence will be
-the sustaining hope and comfort of all the poor and wretched around you,
-yet their very blessings will curse you with the thought that you have
-relieved them with means falsely taken and falsely kept from a widow.
-You will dwell in lordly mansions, yet their magnificence will oppress
-you with the consciousness that they belong in justice to another. You
-will be arrayed in costly garments, yet you will be scarcely able to
-bear the glare of their splendor, for you will know they cover a woman
-degraded from her pristine nobility by base ambition, and stained with
-foul injustice. You will be adorned with priceless gems, yet the diamond
-tiara on your brow will burn and sear your brain like a diadem of flame;
-the diamond necklace on your bosom will scorch and eat into your heart
-like a circlet of fire.”
-
-“Hugh! Hugh! spare me! I tell you you will drive me mad!” she cried,
-clasping her temples.
-
-“At last you will cap the climax of your hopes by marrying some grand
-magnate of the land, yet you will bear within your bosom all the while a
-false, a widowed, and a lonely heart, for you will know that your
-husband is not your true mate; for you will know—you do know, oh,
-Garnet!—you feel by all the instincts of your nature that it was to
-this—this bosom that God wedded you from the first!” he said, dropping
-his voice to a gentle tone, and drawing her toward him.
-
-She dropped her face upon his shoulder, and wept and sobbed as if her
-heart would break. Such convulsions of sobs; such a deluge of tears!
-Gasping all the while:
-
-“Oh, I do! I know it, Hugh. Then, why will you cast me from you because
-I happen to be burdened with a fortune? Is not that a strange, new
-reason for leaving the girl that you love?”
-
-“Garnet! darling Nettie!” said Hugh tenderly; “if you were suddenly
-bereft of your enchanting beauty, my love would be strong enough to bear
-the change; for the heart and soul that I loved most would live for me
-unaltered. But smirch not the fairness of your soul, Garnet, for I will
-not wed moral deformity.”
-
-“This is weakness! This is miserable driveling!” exclaimed Miss
-Seabright, starting from her resting-place upon his bosom, and dashing
-the tears from her flashing eyes. “I am no mendicant for your love, sir!
-No! nor will I purchase it at too high a price, either!” she added
-bitterly, throwing off his deprecating hand, and hurrying from him into
-the house.
-
-Hugh looked after her in deep thought; then said to himself:
-
-“The flow and ebb of ocean’s tide is nothing to the waving forth and
-back of her mind in its present phase. How strong—how terrible is the
-death-agony of her ambition! If the contest were simply between ambition
-and love, ambition would triumph in a high, proud nature like hers; but
-justice sides with love, and together they are invincible. I would the
-battle were over, though.”
-
-He did not see her again during the day. She did not appear even at the
-supper-table.
-
-I have no time to tell you how Garnet Seabright spent that night, how
-the battle in her soul was fought and won. I have only time left for
-results.
-
-In the gray of the morning Hugh Hutton came downstairs, booted,
-great-coated, and laden with his saddle-bags, preparatory to mounting
-his horse to set forth on his journey. He found Garnet Seabright in the
-great hall, apparently waiting for him. She stood at the foot of the
-stairs and leaned for support against the balustrades. She was looking
-very haggard, as from loss of rest and anxiety; yet, through all the
-physical weariness there radiated the light of a calm joy. He lifted his
-hat and bowed, intending to pass her, when she raised her hand, and by
-an adjuring gesture, stayed him, murmuring very low:
-
-“Dr. Hutton, was it really your intention to leave me this morning?”
-
-“It was, Miss Seabright,” he replied, in a deep, constrained voice.
-
-“‘It was,’ and is it?” she added, in a low tone, gently moving from her
-position.
-
-“It was, and is, Miss Seabright, unless you give me the only good reason
-for staying.”
-
-She advanced toward him, slowly, slowly, with averted face and deeply
-blushing cheek, laid both her hands in both of his, and murmured almost
-timidly:
-
-“Stay, then, Dr. Hutton; I give up the estate.”
-
-Hugh Hutton dropped his saddle-bags, drew her to his bosom and pressed
-her there, but spoke no word as yet.
-
-“Yes, take me, Dr. Hutton! I am not worth much, bereft of all my glory,
-shorn,” she smiled faintly; “quite shorn of all my beams; but such as I
-am, you may have me, Dr. Hutton,” she murmured, dropping her head on his
-shoulder. Then, as he strained her to his bosom, the passion-fraught
-heart of the man found expression for its fullness of emotion in one
-“great heart-word”:
-
-“My wife!”
-
-“Yes, your wife,” she whispered, very softly, hiding her glowing face on
-his bosom. “Your wife! no more nor less than simply that cheerful toiler
-by your side. I thought to have conferred wealth on you! It was a proud,
-presuming thought—it is past now.”
-
-“My wife! my wife! you have! you do——” ejaculated Hugh Hutton, with his
-full heart gushing in every tone, until it choked his utterance, and he
-stopped.
-
-Through all their painful struggle he had not broken down until now; and
-now—but she was talking again, murmuring in her sweet, deep tones again,
-and he bent to listen, to hear her whisper:
-
-“Oh, Hugh! such a night as I have passed; such resistance of the demon,
-before he would flee from me. But the war is over now—quite over! The
-estate, the projects are all resigned, and not regretted—for, oh, Hugh!
-where could I find such richness and fullness of life and joy as——” Her
-low voice died away with her breath along his cheek and chestnut hair.
-But it was Garnet’s nature or her present mood to pour forth the
-fullness of her heart in words. She spoke again: “Oh, Hugh, I am so
-glad, so comforted and strengthened, so proud of you, that you did not
-yield one jot or tittle of the right, even for my love. Oh, Hugh! oh,
-Hugh! my guide and guard! be always good, and great, and strong, that I
-may have full life and joy in loving you. And when you have drawn your
-Nettie up to your own high moral level, soar you higher still, that,
-though rising herself, she may see you ever above her, and honor you as
-now! as now!”
-
-“Oh, God, have I deserved this!” exclaimed Hugh Hutton, raising his eyes
-in grateful adoration an instant, and then bending them with unutterable
-love on Garnet, as he ejaculated in earnest, fervent, broken language:
-“Nettie! Nettie! not Heaven, not Heaven could give me a higher incentive
-to high resolve than He has given me in your faith—in your faith!”
-
-He pressed his lips to hers, and from that first burning kiss the tide
-of eloquence found way. He snatched her up in his arms, hurried into the
-parlor, set her in a chair, sank down by her side, and, folding his arms
-adoringly around her form, poured forth, in words of fire, the
-long-pent, great passion of his heart.
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XL.
- ELSIE’S FORTUNES.
-
- You shall be blessed as once you were with friends, and home, and all
- That in the exulting joy of love your own you fondly call;
- Beloved and loving faces that you’ve known so long as well;
- The dear familiar places where your childish footsteps fell.
-
-
-It was Saturday night, and Dr. Hardcastle had not yet returned home to
-supper. The family, except Elsie, had all retired to bed. Elsie had had
-a very fatiguing day, as most industrious housekeepers must have in
-bringing the week’s work to a conclusion. Elsie’s work, however, was not
-yet fully completed, though the family clock was on the stroke of nine,
-for having gotten through with all the heavy household labor, cleared up
-the supper-table, put the children to bed, and persuaded her mother to
-retire to rest, she set the coffee pot and a covered plate and dish to
-keep hot for Magnus, replenished the fire, drew a little table up before
-it, and sat down with a large basket of stockings to darn—a couple of
-dozen of little hose and half a dozen pair of large ones—all to be
-looked over, and half to be mended. And Elsie, with her usually happy
-alchemy of turning everything into a subject of congratulation, said to
-herself that it was very fortunate she had so many stockings to darn, as
-it made the time pass so much quicker while waiting for Magnus. Yet
-Elsie was very weary; very well prepared to appreciate the blessings of
-the Sabbath that makes cessation from work a positive duty. Yes, she was
-very weary, though the only signs of fatigue she showed were in the
-deeper flush of her cheek, the brighter light of her eyes, and the
-clammy moisture of her fair forehead that half uncurled the golden
-ringlets. The last little stocking was drawn upon her hand, and the
-bright needle swiftly gliding in and out among the meshes of the last
-rent, when the quick gallop of a horse into the yard apprised her that
-her husband had come, and in an instant more the door was thrown open
-and Dr. Hardcastle entered. Elsie was about to rise and receive him,
-when something strange and novel in his air and manner arrested her
-attention, as he said:
-
-“No, do not stir! Sit still, dear Elsie! I want to look at you just as
-you are a moment.” He threw off his great-coat, drew a chair to her
-side, seated himself by her, and gazed at her for the space of half a
-minute. Then he took her hand into his palm, pressed it, and, opening
-his hand, watched the rosy tide ebb and flow through her still beautiful
-fingers. “Elsie,” said he, “how long have we been married, dear wife?”
-
-“Eleven years and more,” replied she, looking up inquiringly.
-
-“Do you remember, dear, Judge Wylie’s ball given in honor of your return
-from school? Do you remember that we had just heard of my changed
-prospects, and that we knew if we should marry we would have to go forth
-to a life of toil and self-denial—and do you remember that I took this
-hand into mine with fear and trembling for its destiny as it lay in my
-broad, brown palm, a tiny snow-white thing, sparkling with diamonds like
-icicles on snow, a fairy hand—an ideal hand?”
-
-“Yes, I remember you talked a great deal of poetry about my hand, dear
-Magnus—and I remember that seeing you loved its beauty so much, I made a
-rash promise to keep it always beautiful for your sake. I could not do
-it, dear Magnus. It is not so fair and elegant now as it was then,” said
-Elsie, smiling, and holding it up.
-
-“But, oh! how much dearer! how much more beloved! Then it was an ideal
-hand—now it is a human hand, a mother’s hand,” he said, taking it again
-and pressing it to his lips and bosom, and gazing fondly on her. Then,
-after a little, he spoke again, saying: “Elsie, dearest, there was
-another promise which you made, but in my name, and which I tacitly
-indorsed, yet have failed to perform.”
-
-“Well, dear Magnus?”
-
-“Do you remember the dress you wore upon the memorable occasion of that
-ball? I do perfectly. I do not know the material of which it was made,
-but it floated around you as you moved—a soft and radiant mist. And when
-I spoke of it, bemoaning the fate that would change it for a plain garb
-such as befitted a poor young doctor’s wife—you smiled hopefully, and
-promised that in ten years, when I should have ‘achieved greatness,’ you
-would wear a much richer dress, which should still befit my station—and
-I indorsed the promise; yet ten years have passed, and I have failed to
-redeem it. My Elsie still wears coarse clothing, and works from morning
-till night.”
-
-“Your Elsie is happy, dearest Magnus. And the Princess Charlotte
-herself, the idol lady of all England, could not say any more. Young
-people, especially where youth is brightened by such sanguine blood as
-mine, have too many extravagant hopes—make too many rash promises; I say
-again, your Elsie is happy, dear Magnus, and if she had the world she
-could not say more.”
-
-He gazed on her in fond admiration for a little while, and then said:
-
-“Elsie, dearest, there is one thing at least in which we did not promise
-or expect too much—in which we have not failed to keep our promise—to
-love each other more and more every year we should live.”
-
-She raised her eyes to his, and he read her answer in their loving
-glance.
-
-“Well, Elsie,” he said, at last, “you are happy; yet it is not now the
-hope of better days to come that makes you happy—for more than ten years
-have passed, and I have not laid by a thousand dollars. So you can
-scarcely expect now that I shall ever make a fortune by my profession.”
-
-“Well, we make a comfortable living, and shall continue to do so; and as
-for our dear children, we must educate them to work, as we have done.
-Let me give you your supper now, Magnus.”
-
-“No—not just yet,” he said, smiling on her hand and pressing it.
-
-“Well, then, let go my hand a minute, till I finish darning little
-Elsie’s stocking.”
-
-“No! no more work to-night, Elsie,” he said firmly.
-
-“Oh! just let me finish this last stocking; it completes the whole job.”
-
-“No! no more work to-night! No more work ever more for you. The long,
-long trial you have borne so patiently, so nobly, is over. Elsie!
-dearest Elsie! fortune has come to us at last.”
-
-Elsie stared at her husband with a look so blank that you could not have
-told whether she had heard good or bad news—an instant, and then a
-sudden joy broke over her countenance, and she exclaimed, in a voice of
-wonder and gladness:
-
-“Fortune! You tell me so, Magnus, and it must be true.”
-
-“Yes, fortune—yet it has come to us through such solemn, not to say
-tragic, circumstances that our prosperity must be received with a
-chastened spirit. Listen, dearest Elsie—this evening, as I returned
-home, I called at the post office and found a letter from Reynolds, who
-used to do all my Uncle Hardcastle’s law business. By his letter I
-learned that about five weeks since my unhappy cousin, Lionel, who had
-just returned from making the tour of Europe with his ward, was
-instantly killed on Hutton’s Island by the accidental discharge of a
-pistol. My uncle never recovered from the shock of his death, and he
-sank gradually until about five days since, when he died, leaving me
-sole heir to all his property and executor of his will.”
-
-“Alas! Magnus, is it not a sad and grave thought, that no property which
-we do not make by our own toil ever comes to us except through the death
-or the misfortunes of others! Alas! Magnus, our prosperity should indeed
-be received with a very chastened spirit.”
-
-“Yes, sudden riches should be always received with fear and trembling;
-and when they come by sudden death—with awe!”
-
-Elsie looked down thoughtfully upon her clasped hands and then, after a
-little while, inquired:
-
-“Well, Magnus! what will be your first movement under these new
-circumstances?”
-
-“I shall proceed at once to Hemlock Hollow to settle up affairs, and
-prepare the old hall for the reception of you and the children. And by
-the time those arrangements are completed the weather will be
-sufficiently settled to remove them. The only point of difficulty is in
-the temporary disposition of my professional business. I scarcely know
-what to do with my patients. I wish Hugh would return and take charge of
-the practice for a few weeks during my absence, or until the people
-could get another physician to settle among them.”
-
-“It is quite time that we had heard from Hugh. But, dear Magnus, has
-this sudden news quite deprived you of your appetite?” said Elsie,
-rising and putting away her basket of work.
-
-“No—oh, no, dearest! Give me my supper.”
-
-Elsie’s nimble hands quickly laid the cloth, and spread the little
-supper. Magnus drew up his chair, and Elsie had just poured out his
-coffee when the quick gallop of a horse up to the house, followed by a
-loud knocking at the door, arrested their attention. Magnus went to
-answer the summons, and in another instant Hugh Hutton entered. “Why,
-Hugh!” exclaimed Dr. Hardcastle and his wife in one breath.
-
-“Come in! Come in! We are so glad to see you! But where on earth did you
-come from? How did you come? You did not come by the stage this
-afternoon, for I was at the stage office myself when it came in,” said
-Dr. Hardcastle.
-
-“No; I missed the coach at the last station, and had to hire a horse to
-bring me hither. But how do you all do?” said Hugh, shaking hands with
-both.
-
-“Well, very well! But you, Hugh, how is it with you?” asked Dr.
-Hardcastle, glancing at his black suit.
-
-“I may reply in your own words—‘Well, very well!’ You got my letter?”
-
-“Yes.”
-
-“Well, friends, it was a bitter blow to me, but I believe now it was
-dealt in mercy to her. You have heard from Hemlock Hollow.”
-
-“Yes—but only this evening.”
-
-“And what do you intend to do?”
-
-“To go on there immediately and prepare for the removal of my family as
-soon as the weather permits. But, come, Hugh—come, here is supper. See,
-Elsie has already set your plate and knife and fork and poured out your
-coffee.”
-
-“What! have you really not supped yet?”
-
-“I have not! Draw up.”
-
-The conversation at supper turned upon the affairs of Hemlock Hollow,
-Point Pleasant, Huttontown, and its neighborhood. Yet there was a
-studious avoidance of the subject of Mount Calm and Garnet Seabright,
-until the cloth was removed, and Dr. Hardcastle arose with the evident
-intention of showing his guest to his chamber.
-
-Then Hugh made a sign to his host to take his seat, and resumed his own,
-saying: “Well, my dear friends, you have inquired after everybody in our
-old neighborhood except my fair young hostess, Miss Seabright of Mount
-Calm; and yet one would think that she would interest you more than
-all.”
-
-Hugh paused for a reply, and looked at them both. Elsie’s brow
-crimsoned, and she turned away. Dr. Hardcastle looked very grave, and
-remained silent.
-
-“If you knew Miss Seabright personally you would admire her very much.
-She is the most superbly beautiful woman I ever saw—of the brunette
-order, I mean,” he added, bowing and smiling toward Mrs. Hardcastle, who
-averted her face with a heightened color. “Yes, she is certainly the
-most splendidly beautiful brunette I ever saw—and with a soul, too, more
-beautiful than its shrine.”
-
-Still Elsie averted her head, and Dr. Hardcastle continued gravely
-silent.
-
-“You do not answer me,” said Hugh perseveringly.
-
-“Hugh, my dear boy, Elsie and myself love and admire you sufficiently.
-Do not insist upon our loving and admiring your friend, Miss Seabright.
-Under all the circumstances it is quite too great a task for human
-nature.”
-
-“Yet,” said Hugh—and his voice faltered, and the tears swam in his
-eyes—“yet last week I was the instrument in the hands of Providence in
-setting a far greater task than that to human nature, sir! And not to
-nature, well-disciplined human nature like yours, but to young, ardent,
-impetuous human nature—and I saw, through tears and groans, and
-writhings of the spirit, that task accomplished. What should you think
-of a young girl endowed with great wealth, peerless beauty, graces and
-accomplishments—fitted in every way to adorn the highest circles of
-society—a girl, besides, of high self-appreciation—of great ambition—of
-adventurous enterprise—whose head and heart were busy with a hundred
-grand and glorious plans of life—what, I ask you, should you think of
-such a girl, in such circumstances, giving up her wealth, her rank, her
-splendid plans and prospects, her soul’s most cherished expectations and
-desires for the sake of simple, abstract justice?”
-
-“I should think that such a noble girl was worthy of a king’s worship,
-or rather of a hero’s love. But it is impossible! No girl would ever do
-this,” said Dr. Hardcastle, turning and gazing at Hugh with wonder.
-
-“Will you please to look over these documents,” said Hugh, drawing a
-packet of papers from his great-coat pocket and laying them on the
-table.
-
-“The title deeds of Mount Calm, and legally conveyed to Alice Chester
-Garnet by Garnet Seabright!” exclaimed Dr. Hardcastle, examining them.
-Then he laid the documents down, squared himself round, placed his hands
-upon his knees, and, staring full into the face of Hugh, said: “Hugh!
-what the d——, I never swore in my life! Don’t make me begin now! But
-what the deuce does all this mean?”
-
-“You see what it means. Miss Seabright, having come of age, and feeling
-that she has no just right to the Mount Calm estate, conveys it to its
-original owner, Mrs. Garnet!”
-
-Elsie suddenly clasped her hands, and bent forward with flushed cheeks
-and open lips.
-
-Dr. Hardcastle continued his fixed, broad stare, until Hugh exclaimed:
-
-“God bless all our souls, Magnus Hardcastle, you are not the only noble
-specimen of God’s workmanship on earth. There are others capable of
-magnanimity besides Magnus—even the young girl, Garnet Seabright!”
-
-“Garnet! She is a diamond of the first water. Is it possible that this
-should be so? I can scarcely credit the testimony of my eyes and ears!
-That Miss Seabright, as soon as she reached her majority, should have
-given up her estate. Oh! it must have been a mere impulse of youthful
-enthusiasm. She could not have known the value of money and
-property—and, besides, you must have used great powers of persuasion
-with her.”
-
-“No—you are wrong in every point. It was not enthusiasm. All her
-enthusiasm was enlisted on the other side, in favor of social
-distinction, for which she considered wealth indispensable. Nor was she
-ignorant of the value of money. No, enlightened by experiences in the
-extremes of, first poverty and afterward wealth, this girl of twenty-one
-had as accurate a knowledge of the value of money and property as any
-miser, beggar, or banker of forty-two. Nor was it without a struggle she
-resigned the estate. Most terrible indeed was the battle in her soul
-before Justice subdued Ambition. Nor was it through my persuasion that
-she made this glorious sacrifice to right. No; no mere words of mine
-could have subdued that towering pride, governed that aspiring ambition.
-No; I simply set the truth before her, and then let it work its way. No;
-I set the truth before her, and then I might have gone to Patagonia or
-Bering Strait, and the result would have been the same. She would never
-have known an hour’s peace until she had restored the property, at
-whatever sacrifice to her pride and ambition.”
-
-Here Elsie broke forth, exclaiming:
-
-“Oh! what a noble girl! Oh! I love and admire her so much. I do think if
-I were in mother’s place now I should be Quixotic enough to convey the
-whole estate back again to her. At least, I know I would make her take
-back half of it. My heart burns toward that noble girl, and I feel half
-ashamed that we should benefit by her magnanimity. I feel as if by her
-giving and our receiving so much that she is more noble than we are.”
-
-“Yes, yes! She is indeed a noble, a wonderful girl!” exclaimed Dr.
-Hardcastle.
-
-“And this noble, this wonderful girl,” said Hugh, with his cheeks and
-eyes kindling with pride and joy—“this glorious girl is going to be my
-wife! Congratulate me, dear friends!” he suddenly exclaimed, impulsively
-thrusting out a hand to each.
-
-“Going to be your wife? I am so glad,” exclaimed Elsie, pressing his
-left hand.
-
-“Going to be your wife? Why, then, dear Hugh, this great sacrifice is
-fully as much yours as hers—since what was hers would have been yours,”
-said Dr. Hardcastle, shaking his right hand.
-
-“Never mind that; only wish me joy.”
-
-“We do! We do! with all our hearts,” said Elsie, clasping his hand
-again. “But when are you going to be married, Hugh?”
-
-“Next Thursday four weeks. Having deprived Nettie of all her wealth I
-must take her as soon as possible under my legal protection, unsettled
-as I am, and trust God with the result. Yes, next Thursday four weeks;
-that will give you time to prepare to come to Mount Calm, which, having
-been just handsomely fitted up for the reception of Miss Seabright, on
-her return from Europe, is in a proper condition to receive your family.
-Miss Seabright will remain at Mount Calm until our marriage, which will
-take place there. We wish you to arrive at or before our wedding day,
-that when we leave the mansion house we may leave you in possession.”
-
-“Hugh, we are not, of course, authorized to promise anything in the name
-of Mrs. Garnet, who is at this moment ignorant of Miss Seabright’s
-magnanimity; but—I would she were here to answer for herself.”
-
-Here the clock struck twelve, and Dr. Hardcastle, lighting another
-candle, said:
-
-“Friends, it is Sunday morning. Let us waive the discussion of worldly
-matters for to-day. Hugh, you know your chamber. Good-night!”
-
-
-
-
- CHAPTER XLI.
- THE SECRET REVEALED.
-
- And in her lineaments they trace
- Some features of her father’s face.
- _—Byron._
-
-
-In the meantime Miss Seabright was preparing to resign her state. Few
-can estimate the terrible trial it was to this just but ambitious girl
-to abdicate her elevated social position and step down upon the common
-level to labor with the common herd. You have already seen how, in the
-fearful struggle which had ensued—in that dread bosom tempest—all the
-latent selfishness which marred that noble nature was thrown up and
-exposed upon the crest of the tossing waves of passion. But if, in this
-soul-storm, her hidden evil was cast up to view, it was also cast off.
-And then, when the waves of her heart subsided, and the clouds on her
-brain dispersed, and the sun of right shone out clear and bright,
-illuminating her soul, and revealing her to herself—then she saw that
-there was something in her own nature greater than all her adventitious
-surroundings. Now she would not have said to Hugh what she had said
-before, “I am not much, shorn of my beams.” No, indeed, there was
-consolidating in her heart a noble, steadfast self-appreciation that
-would no more falsify itself by factitious humility than degrade itself
-by unjust action. And having once made the sacrifice, and turned her
-back upon the splendors of her past fortune, there was no regret, no
-looking back, like Lot’s wife; her face was set to her forward path—her
-strong, impetuous soul already rushing on to realize her future of
-loving and hopeful toil with Hugh for her companion and guide. With
-Hugh! How, the recurring of his very name, the tide of emotion, like the
-rushing of a mighty river, would roll over her, overwhelming and
-confusing her soul with a sort of lost, delirious joy! Within this month
-of sacrifice, how much stronger and more concentrated had become her
-love for Hugh! And if the Judge of all hearts had demanded a reason for
-the mighty love that was in her, she would have been constrained to
-answer, “It is his moral integrity that has mastered my heart. It is his
-moral integrity that would not waver, for love or for ambition—those two
-mightiest passions of the human soul. I loved him before, I loved him
-well enough to have given him myself and all my wealth, but when I found
-in him a moral rectitude that would not bend for love of me, or hope of
-grandeur, I was drawn up to adore him. Yes, that is why I would rather
-follow him barefoot over all the earth, if necessary, and serve him as
-the Indian woman serves her lord, than be myself the object of worship
-to all the world.”
-
-Yes, there was a man to love through life and unto death; there was a
-man to repose upon in all weakness, to confide in in all emergencies;
-whom the combined power of love and ambition, beauty, wealth, and the
-usages of society that would have justified him, could never move from
-his uprightness. There was a pillar of strength to cling to in a storm.
-It was with as much high-born pride and joy as love that Garnet thought
-of her betrothed.
-
-The month and her preparations drew near their close. She was daily
-expecting to hear of the arrival of the family of Dr. Hardcastle at
-Hemlock Hollow. Dr. Hutton, who had not yet returned, was to come with
-them. She was looking for them by every stage, and hourly she added some
-new attraction to the preparations she was making to receive them. The
-ancients were accustomed to adorn a sacrifice before offering it up, and
-the same instinct impelled Miss Seabright daily to walk through her
-halls and chambers, designing, with her artistic taste, new improvements
-and embellishments for the palace home she was about to resign.
-
-The wedding day arrived. It was a bright and beautiful day in May. Upon
-the evening previous Dr. Hardcastle, with his family, had arrived at
-Hemlock Hollow. Therefore, there had been no time or opportunity for a
-meeting between them and Miss Seabright previous to the marriage day.
-Dr. Hutton was a guest at the Hollow, and a note from him to Miss
-Seabright informed her that they would all be at Mount Calm at an early
-hour of the morning. Owing to the rather recent deaths in the family,
-and the peculiarity of the circumstances, it had been arranged that the
-marriage ceremony should be performed quietly at eight o’clock in the
-morning in the saloon of Mount Calm, in the presence of few witnesses,
-and that immediately after the ceremony and breakfast the young couple
-should depart to seek their Western home, leaving Mrs. Garnet in
-possession of the mansion house and the estate. The only guests invited
-were the Hardcastles, with Mrs. Garnet, Judge Wylie and Miss Wylie, and
-their old friend, the Rev. Mr. Wilson, with his wife and young sister.
-The marriage ceremony was to be performed after the Episcopal ritual by
-the recently installed pastor of the New Church.
-
-At seven o’clock in the morning, therefore, the few privileged friends,
-with the exception of the Hardcastles, who had not yet arrived, were
-assembled in the saloon of Mount Calm, awaiting the entree of the bridal
-party.
-
-At last the carriage containing the family from Hemlock Hollow drove up
-and paused before the main entrance of the mansion, and Dr. Hardcastle
-alighted, followed by Dr. Hutton, who then handed out Mrs. Garnet and
-Mrs. Hardcastle. They passed up the marble stairs and into the hall,
-where they paused until Mrs. Garnet had sent up a servant to the bride,
-to request the favor of being received by her before she should come
-down into the saloon, and obtained an answer that Miss Seabright would
-be pleased to see Mrs. Garnet and Mrs. Hardcastle in her own apartment.
-
-The servant who brought back the message bowed and offered to show the
-ladies up. Mrs. Garnet and her daughter followed him up the broad
-staircase into the upper hall, and through a door into an elegant front
-dressing room, which Alice recognized with a smile as having been her
-own bedchamber.
-
-The room, when they entered, was vacant of other occupants, but they had
-scarcely seated themselves at the front windows when the opposite
-folding doors opened and Miss Seabright appeared before them.
-
-A novice, when she is about to renounce forever the pomps and vanities
-of the world and take the black veil of the nun, arrays herself for the
-last time in costly apparel. So Miss Seabright, when about to resign
-forever all pretensions to splendor, arrayed her glorious form with
-almost regal magnificence. Her bridal costume was a rich Mechlin lace
-over white and silver brocaded satin, and festooned with bouquets of
-pearls and diamonds, a fine and ample lace veil confined above her and
-ringlets by a wreath of the same priceless gems.
-
-Mrs. Garnet raised her eyes to look upon the bride. She had never seen
-Miss Seabright before, and now, at the first sight of her magnificently
-beautiful form and face, Alice started violently: all the blood suddenly
-left her cheeks for an instant, and then rushed back again, crimsoning
-her face to the very edges of her hair—so startling, so strong, so
-painful was the resemblance of Miss Seabright to the late General
-Garnet. Yes, there was the same majesty and sweetness of mien, the same
-regal turn of head and neck, the same fiery, dark hair, the same
-smoldering and flashing eyes, the same beautiful lips, the same
-bewildering smile. The only difference was that in place of the latent
-diabolism under General Garnet’s countenance all heaven shone from Miss
-Seabright’s. Alice felt that she looked upon her late husband’s face,
-only with its beauty idealized, elevated, made divine. The vague,
-half-formed suspicions concerning the paternity of Garnet Seabright that
-had occasionally floated through her mind now became painfully
-confirmed. As she gazed chills and heats alternately shook her frame,
-and then a strong, yearning compassion mingled with the high admiration
-she had hitherto felt for the noble-souled girl, and she said to
-herself: “I wonder if she knows it?” Then, looking at her more
-attentively, she exclaimed inwardly: “No, no! she does not know or
-suspect it! My soul upon it, she does not know or suspect it! No; there
-is a high self-appreciation, a grandeur in her mien and air, a majesty
-seated on that pure and lofty brow, unconscious of shame—unconscious of
-the very possibility of shame! God shield her from the knowledge! for,
-oh! as I look upon her noble presence now, I feel too surely that the
-knowledge of her shame would kill her with a stroke swift, sharp, and
-sure! God shield her from the knowledge! It were sacrilege to discrown
-that imperial brow of its diadem of unsullied honor, and brand it with
-shame instead. God shield the innocent from the knowledge of guilt which
-is infamy! God shield her! Oh, I can now forgive my dead husband for
-having cheated me out of this beautiful daughter, when I think he had
-the grace to keep her innocent of the knowledge of her parentage and his
-guilt. Yet how he must have loved her! Oh, doubtless many times when his
-brow was overcast with gloom and sullenness, it was with the thought of
-this child. He never confided his sins or his troubles to me. Would he
-had! I could have been as much of a friend as a wife to him. Would he
-had had faith enough in me, when the poor little one was orphaned, to
-have laid her on my bosom instead of exiling her to that bleak isle! I
-would have brought her up as my own. Did he dream that I would have been
-otherwise than good to a little child? But he would not trust me. He
-could tyrannize over me in a thousand useless ways, yet never could
-venture to bring the motherless child to my arms. No; he could never
-tell me until that night, when drunken both with brandy and bad
-passions—he taunted me with the fact.”
-
-All these thoughts of Garnet’s parentage passed with the rapidity of
-lightning through the mind of Mrs. Garnet, while Miss Seabright, with
-outstretched hands and radiant countenance, was advancing toward her.
-
-“No; she must never know it! That pure, bright brow must never be
-smirched and darkened by the burning, blackening smite of shame! Yet
-shall she be another daughter to me,” concluded Alice, as she arose to
-meet the bride. As Miss Seabright, being the taller of the two, bent to
-welcome Mrs. Garnet, Alice threw one arm caressingly over her shoulder,
-and saying:
-
-“We must not meet as strangers, my love,” kissed her cheek.
-
-Miss Seabright looked down with proud gravity upon the gentle lady for
-an instant, and then said:
-
-“I have great pleasure in welcoming you back to your native halls, Mrs.
-Garnet. Long may you live in the enjoyment of them!”
-
-“The enjoyment of which I owe to you, noble girl.”
-
-“Nay, madam; the long deprivation of which you owed to me,
-unfortunately. The repossession of which now you owe to nobody—nothing.
-It is simple justice.”
-
-“But it is not justice, thou noble girl, that thou, who wast brought up
-in affluence——”
-
-“Nay, madam—I have known penury, too!” interrupted Miss Seabright, with
-a sort of proud humility, if the phrase be admissible.
-
-Without noticing the interruption Mrs. Garnet resumed:
-
-“It is not justice that one educated in luxury, and in the prospect of
-nearly boundless wealth, should be suddenly bereft of everything and
-reduced to a position for which she is totally unfit.”
-
-“Oh, madam! pardon me. Had I not an example before me? Did not your own
-admirable daughter resign wealth and station and go forth to a life of
-toil and privation to preserve intact the integrity of her heart?” said
-Garnet Seabright, with gentle dignity, waving her hand toward Mrs.
-Hardcastle, who had withdrawn to a distant window during this colloquy.
-
-“Yes, to preserve the dignity of her heart, and the love of her
-heart—which latter gave her strength to do as she did. Yes, and that was
-scarcely a trial to Elsie, who possessed a cheerful, loving, and active
-temperament, and was, besides, without your aspiring ambition. No, Miss
-Seabright—nature, even more than education, has quite unfitted you for
-the life of active household toil and privation, voluntarily assumed for
-long years by Mrs. Hardcastle. No, Miss Seabright—justice, as well as
-your own magnanimous conduct, has imposed this duty on me.” Miss Garnet
-paused and, drawing from her pocket a roll of parchment, placed it in
-the hands of the bride.
-
-“What is this?” asked Miss Seabright.
-
-“It is a deed of conveyance of property to the amount of one-tenth the
-Mount Calm estate. Receive it, with my love, as a marriage portion.”
-
-“I cannot, madam,” said Miss Seabright, returning the deed.
-
-“Nay, take it—take it then as a mark of the high esteem—the honor I bear
-you!” persisted Mrs. Garnet, tendering the packet.
-
-“No, I cannot take it, madam.”
-
-“Receive it, then, as your right, proud girl! Education and expectation
-have given you a right to this Take it.”
-
-“Indeed, believe me, I cannot, madam; though from my soul I thank you,”
-said Miss Seabright, with emotion.
-
-Mrs. Garnet looked discouraged for an instant, and then, as her glance
-fell upon the bright and joyous form of Elsie, as she stood looking out
-from the front window upon the spring scene, her eyes lighted up, and
-she called to her:
-
-“Elsie, my love, come here. You have a gift of persuasion that I, with
-all my good-will, never possessed.”
-
-Elsie came smiling forward.
-
-“Miss Seabright, this is my daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle.” (Ah, Heaven! if
-they knew they were sisters!)
-
-As Miss Seabright bowed Mrs. Hardcastle threw her arm around her neck,
-and kissed her heartily, exclaiming simply:
-
-“Oh, I wished to meet you so much! I shall be so glad to know you well!”
-
-“I called you here, my love, to aid me in persuading Miss Seabright to
-suffer me to do her justice. You know——”
-
-“Yes, I know!” said Elsie, interposing her cheerful voice. “I know all
-about it. See here, Miss Seabright! I never was crowned with
-magnanimity, sublimity, enthusiasm, or the rest of the Godlike virtues
-and frenzies! But I am gifted with some sound, good sense, which is ever
-at the service of my friends, and I offer you a sample of it now.
-Magnanimity is Godlike, until it is distorted into fanaticism, when it
-is fool-like! It was magnanimous in you to give up the whole of this
-estate. It would be fanatical to refuse to take the tenth of it when it
-is offered to you.”
-
-The aptness of this argument seemed to strike Miss Seabright, for,
-smiling, she replied:
-
-“I refer you to Dr. Hutton. I underwent such a course of lessons from
-him upon the love of lucre, as opposed to the love of justice, that I
-shall not forget it soon. Ha! I am not sure that, should I go to the
-altar with a deed of any portion of this estate in my pocket, he would
-not think I had backslidden in principles, and reject me even there!”
-
-Here Miss Joe, who, unperceived, had entered the room and came up to
-them, interposed her voice, saying:
-
-“I wish he wouldn’t—I just do! I shouldn’t like to see Hugh make such a
-fool of himself as that!” Then, patting Miss Seabright affectionately
-upon the shoulder, she whispered, in a knowing, confidential tone: “You
-take it yourself, honey. Who has got a better right to some o’ General
-Garnet’s property than you? Sure, you’re his own flesh and blood! and
-the image of him, too! You’re his own flesh and blood, honey. I know all
-about it. It’s all in the little yellow hair trunk among the letters.
-You take it, honey. You’re his own flesh and blood!”
-
-“Oh! Miss Joe, your rash words have destroyed—have blasted her!”
-exclaimed Alice, in a voice of agony, as the old lady, having fired this
-magazine, hurried out of the room quite heedless, because quite
-unsuspicious of the impending ruin.
-
-And ruined indeed looked Miss Seabright, with every vestige of color
-blasted from her marble-like face. Still as a statue of despair, she
-stood with her dilated eyes immovably fixed upon the receding figure of
-the old woman, until it had disappeared from the room.
-
-Then tossing back her bridal veil and springing forward she grasped the
-hand of Mrs. Garnet, and, darting her wild gaze piercingly into the
-lady’s gentle eyes, she asked hurriedly:
-
-“Did I—did I hear aright? What did she say?”
-
-“Nothing; do not mind her, Miss Seabright,” replied the lady, with a
-flushed brow.
-
-“What did she say?” repeated Garnet.
-
-“Nothing! Nothing worth telling, my dear.”
-
-“Oh! I implore you, tell me what did she say?”
-
-“My dearest girl! nothing that it is well you should hear.”
-
-“Nay, then! I adjure you to tell me! By your soul’s truth, I adjure you
-to tell me!” she persisted wildly.
-
-“She told you, dearest Garnet, that you were the daughter of my late
-husband; but——”
-
-“Stay! am I so?” interrupted Garnet, in a voice of indescribable
-anguish.
-
-“Yes—I believe so,” replied Alice gently.
-
-She dropped the hand she had grasped with such strength, and stood as if
-suddenly turned to stone, for an instant—and then springing forward with
-the wild energy of desperation, she exclaimed:
-
-“Unsay those words—or see me die before you.”
-
-Alice suddenly threw her arms around the form of the stricken girl, and,
-catching her wild eyes, gazed into them deeply and tenderly as though
-she would have transfused all her own sweet love and resignation into
-that rampant soul, and said:
-
-“Dearest child! She told you only what we knew, and still loved you.
-Dearest child! you are my husband’s daughter, and Elsie’s younger
-sister—and we love you.”
-
-“The child of your husband and not your child! The younger sister of
-your daughter, and you living!” exclaimed the wretched girl, sinking,
-withering, shriveling as it were before the fell blast of this burning
-and consuming revelation. At last she groaned forth in tones of
-unutterable sorrow: “Oh! oh! was it right, Heaven! was it well, Heaven!
-just as I had made a great sacrifice to duty, and achieved a great moral
-victory; was it well to strike me in my pride of place, and bring me
-down so low! so low!” Then with another spasmodic outbreak of energy,
-she exclaimed: “Unsay those words! Unsay them, or see me die before you!
-Take all I have—wealth, rank, prospects, hopes! all, all! but, for the
-love of God, unsay those words! Take all, all! but leave me my honorable
-name! Take all, all! but let me go an honored, if an humble bride, to my
-husband’s home! Oh, for the pity of God!”
-
-Again Mrs. Garnet threw her arms around the cowering form of the
-wretched girl, as though she would envelop, sustain, save her in this
-trying moment, by the might of love; and saying:
-
-“My dearest Garnet! my love! my love! you shall go an honorable and an
-honored bride to your husband’s home. One whom I will take to my bosom
-thus—is a worthy match for any man. You should have been my own
-daughter, Garnet, but that I was cheated out of you; but I claim you
-now. You are my husband’s child, and the express image of his person;
-therefore you should have been my child; therefore I claim you now to be
-my child of right! I loved your father, Garnet! I love you! Believe me!
-Do not cover your face, and turn it from me. Let me kiss you. Do not
-grieve so.”
-
-“Grieve!” exclaimed the sinking girl, in a voice of anguish; “I do not
-grieve, lady! I die! Grieve! Oh, look you, madam! If I had suffered the
-loss of friends by death, or what is worse, by treachery; if I were
-miserably poor, ill, and abandoned; if I were dying of disease, want,
-and neglect; if I were misjudged, slandered, and persecuted; if I were
-unjustly charged, falsely imprisoned, and innocently doomed to death; if
-I were suffering any other anguish of mind, or agony of body, then I
-might grieve—but now! now! that I know myself a living, breathing
-monument of guilt!” A terrible shudder shook her frame and arrested her
-speech—her form collapsed and sank more than before—and it was in a
-dying voice she resumed: “Now that I know myself infected by worse than
-leprosy”—she paused and looked at herself from head to foot; she
-stretched forth her beautiful brown arm, frosted with pearls and
-diamonds, and surveyed it; she gathered up the lurid ringlets of her
-dark hair and gazed on them; then, dropping her arms wearily, she
-continued—“I was not so vain as grateful for my beauty. But now! oh,
-God! to think that every atom of flesh, and every drop of blood, and
-every nerve and vein to my heart’s core is pervaded, permeated with sin
-and reproach! sin and reproach! Oh, God! oh, God, quickly take back the
-soul Thou didst send into this shape of sin!”
-
-Once more her form cowered, crushed beneath the overwhelming weight of
-ignominy. She tottered and must have fallen to the floor, but that Elsie
-sprang and aided her mother in supporting her to a sofa near.
-
-“I declare,” exclaimed Elsie, in her positive manner, “there should have
-been no concealment; she should have grown up with the knowledge of her
-parentage!”
-
-“Oh-h-h! doubtless,” murmured the nearly dying girl, “oh, doubtless they
-should have told me of my birth! And then my soul would have grown up
-familiarized with infamy, until it became as base as its proscribed
-dwelling-place!”
-
-“But,” said Elsie, in her calm way, “is it possible you never suspected
-this? Is it possible that, when you came home from school, with all your
-faculties alive and keen, you could have looked upon my father’s
-portrait, and looked upon your own reflection in the glass, and not be
-struck by the resemblance, the identity of the two faces? Is it possible
-that you did not suspect?”
-
-“Suspect this! suspect my birth! suspect my shame! Oh, woman, woman! you
-found me proud and joyous! how could I have suspected this? You found me
-living! how could I have suspected this and lived?” she exclaimed, in a
-voice of indescribable grief and reproach, and then her form subsided,
-as it were, prostrate, among the cushions. And so it was throughout the
-scene; frequent convulsive outbreaks of anguish would be instantly
-followed by the prostration of all strength. And then she lay with her
-hands pressed upon her face a long time perfectly still, but for an
-occasional start and shudder. She lay there, with Elsie sitting by her
-side, until the clock struck eight—the marriage hour. Mrs. Garnet then
-approached, and, kneeling by her, embraced and kissed her, saying:
-
-“My dear girl, my daughter, rouse yourself. The bitter trial of this
-needless revelation has shocked you nearly to death. But it will pass
-away, as all trials must, my love. Garnet, I, too, have had trials in my
-time, heart-crushing disappointments and sorrows, from which I thought I
-never could recover. But I have recovered, you see. My sorrows are gone,
-long ago; gone down the stream of the past, and I have been happy for
-years. So it will be with you. We all think our first sorrow is to kill
-us, but it does not. We live and recover. So you will find it. This
-sudden revelation has overwhelmed you, but you will get over it. We will
-make you forget it. You will be an honorable and honored wife. You will
-be loved and happy. Come, rouse yourself! Your marriage hour has struck.
-Your husband waits you even now; come! Give me your hand! Garnet!”
-
-“My marriage hour has struck! My husband waits me now! Oh, madam, do you
-then believe me base in soul as in birth?” exclaimed the miserable girl,
-with bitterness.
-
-“In the name of Heaven, what mean you?”
-
-“Do you think that I, stripped of all other possessions, will carry my
-dower of shame to my husband’s home?”
-
-“In the name of mercy, what do you mean?” asked Alice, in alarm.
-
-“Oh, merely this, that this marriage must not and shall not proceed! Oh,
-no! Dr. Hutton must never blush for his wife’s parentage!”
-
-Mrs. Garnet glanced at Elsie in despair. Elsie here interposed her
-blooming face and hopeful voice, saying:
-
-“Miss Seabright, as I told you before, I have no grand sentiments, but I
-have some good sense, and it seems to me, as it takes two to make an
-engagement, it takes two to break it, honestly; I think, as you have
-plighted your troth to Hugh Hutton, you might consult him before
-breaking faith with him, for such a cause, at the very last moment.”
-
-“Consult him!” said the poor girl, as the blood crimsoned her ashen
-brow. “How can I consult him? And if I could, I know his self-immolating
-generosity. I know, besides, that he loves me so, he would hold me to my
-word; he loves me so, he would take the shame with me. Consult him! No,
-no! for many reasons. But without consulting him, I will break with him;
-since in breaking faith I shall wrong him less than in keeping it!”
-
-“Ah, Miss Seabright, that is sophistry! And sophistry is ingenious, but
-it deceives no one. Duty is very simple, and it never can be mistaken.
-But I hear the bridegroom and his friends approaching the door. Come,
-rise! let me re-arrange your hair and wreath.”
-
-Mrs. Garnet opened the door, and admitted Dr. Hardcastle and Hugh
-Hutton. Dr. Hardcastle went up to his wife, who drew him off to a
-distant window, while Hugh Hutton, seeing his bride reclining, pale and
-disordered, upon the sofa, hastened to her, stooped over, took her hand,
-and gazed anxiously upon her, inquiring:
-
-“My dearest Garnet, what is the matter? Are you ill again?”
-
-She turned her face, whitened and sharpened with anguish, upon him,
-gazed intently in his countenance, but said nothing for a full
-minute—then, as by a new and sudden impulse, she exclaimed:
-
-“Hugh! I know my birth. Do you?”
-
-Dr. Hutton dropped her hand, frowned, and compressed his lips.
-
-Garnet’s features convulsed with a spasm of anguish, and she covered her
-face with her hands.
-
-When Hugh Hutton saw that he dropped upon his knees at her side, removed
-her hands, and kissed her pallid brow, saying:
-
-“I know that God created you a beautiful and high-souled woman. I know
-that by no act of your life have you ever marred His creation. I seek to
-know”—he broke forth with sudden energy—“I consent to know no more.”
-
-“Hugh,” she said, looking at him piteously, “an evil covered up is not
-an evil cured. Hugh, this marriage must not go on.”
-
-“Nettie, you are insane!”
-
-“No, never more soberly, sadly sane than now.”
-
-“What! would you break your engagement to me—and at the last moment?”
-
-“Yes; for a sufficient reason.”
-
-“But I will not consent to it.”
-
-“I do not ask your consent. I break it.”
-
-“Nettie!”
-
-“Hugh! stoop down here! nearer—there. Hugh!” she said tenderly, running
-her pale fingers through the dark waves of hair each side his massive
-forehead, and holding his head between her hands as she gazed fondly in
-his face—“Hugh! I know you love me. I have never doubted it one single
-moment. And I do love you. So much—so much, Hugh, I love you so much
-that, to save my own immortal soul I would not marry you.”
-
-“You dare not refuse me. I claim your plighted faith. I claim you for my
-wife,” exclaimed Hugh Hutton passionately.
-
-“To save you I dare refuse you. To save you I dare break my plighted
-faith, and take the sin upon my own soul. Hugh! dear Hugh! in one great
-contest I yielded to you, because high principle was on your side. But
-this is a different matter; I am as inexorable as Death.”
-
-“Nettie! Nettie! I am strong; but your loss would paralyze me. But oh!
-it cannot be. I will never, never leave you nor forsake you. If I do,
-may God abandon my own soul!”
-
-Her features were convulsed again, and for a moment she concealed them
-with her hands; then laying her hands tenderly upon the head of her
-kneeling companion, she said:
-
-“It does not matter much for me, for I think that death is upon me—but
-for you, Hugh—oh, it is hard, it is hard for you. It is hard for you, so
-good and true, so noble as you are, to be so grievously wronged by
-disappointment. Oh! it shakes one’s faith in goodness, in Heaven. But I
-love you so—I love you so that I will pray God, living or dying, I will
-pray God to give you another love, another wife, who shall be worthy of
-you.”
-
-“By Heaven! I will have no other wife but you. And you will I have!”
-exclaimed Hugh Hutton, forgetting the presence of others, and speaking
-so loud as to startle Mrs. Garnet, who came forward and said:
-
-“Oh, Hugh! my dear friend, is not this a trouble? What shall we do to
-persuade her?”
-
-“Dear friend, leave me alone with her for a little while. God has
-deputed to me some power over His self-willed child—this noble but
-stubborn girl. Leave me with her.”
-
-Mrs. Garnet turned to go, but was met near the door by Miss Joe, who
-bustled in, and, nudging the lady’s elbow, whispered to her, saying:
-
-“I say! aint it time for them all to walk down? The parson—Parson
-Sinclair—has been come for half an hour, and the company downstairs is
-getting out o’ patience. Besides, if the ceremony don’t make haste and
-get performed, the breakfast will get spoiled—the coffee will boil all
-its strength away, and the batter for the rice waffles will rise so much
-it will turn sour. What are they all waiting for?”
-
-“Nothing. And I do not know that there will be any marriage,” replied
-Mrs. Garnet sternly and bitterly.
-
-“Hugh, what is the matter?” exclaimed Miss Joe, looking around in
-surprise. Then, perceiving the recumbent form of Miss Seabright, with
-Dr. Hutton still kneeling by her, she inquired: “Dear me! What ails
-Garnet?”
-
-“You have ruined her peace forever,” indignantly exclaimed Mrs. Garnet,
-unable to forbear reproaches. “You have killed her with your
-uncalled-for revelations.”
-
-“Me! ruined what? killed which?” exclaimed the innocent old lady, in
-perplexity.
-
-“Garnet Seabright. I say you have killed her.”
-
-“Killed her! why I haint even tetched her. I haint done a thing to her;
-I haint harmed a hair of her head. I haint been a-nigh her. She was well
-enough when I come through here with the napkins.”
-
-“Words kill! You told her the secret of her birth. You told her she was
-General Garnet’s child, and the shock and the shame have overwhelmed,
-have killed her.”
-
-The old lady listened with her eyes starting out of her head, and her
-mouth wide open with unmeasured astonishment, and then exclaimed:
-
-“Me! Me tell her she was General Garnet’s child! Why, I didn’t do no
-such thing! Who says I did?”
-
-“I! I heard you with my own ears.”
-
-“Why, you didn’t hear any such a thing! High! how could I tell such a
-lie as that, when it wa’n’t the truth?”
-
-Mrs. Garnet, in her turn, stared with such unbounded astonishment and
-incredulity, that the old lady took high offense, and exclaimed:
-
-“Well! upon my word! Next time it lightens, I shouldn’t wonder if you
-accused me of setting the clouds afire. Come! if you don’t b’lieve me,
-there’s the young gal herself. Go ask her now. She aint dying neither,
-no more ’an I am. She looks gashly as a corpse, to be sure, but Lord!
-I’ve seen her look that way afore, when she’d get into her tantrums long
-o’ her guardian or Hugh. Come! I’ll go;” and the old lady waddled
-precipitately across the room to the sofa, exclaiming wrathfully, “Miss
-Seabright! Garnet Seabright, I say! Now, did ever I tell you such a
-falsity as that you were General Garnet’s child?”
-
-Dr. Hutton started up from his kneeling posture, and stood staring at
-the excited old lady. Garnet sprang up from the cushions, and gazed at
-her face with all her soul in her eyes.
-
-“My goodness, child; don’t stare at me so wild! You’ll give me the fever
-‘n’ ague. Answer my question.”
-
-Here Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle were attracted to the scene of action.
-
-“Can’t you speak? Did ever I say you were General Garnet’s child?”
-
-“Did—you—not—say—so?” asked Miss Seabright, with life and death
-struggling in her bosom.
-
-“No! I did not say so. How could I tell such a lie, when it wasn’t the
-truth?”
-
-“And—he—was—not—my—father?”
-
-“I wish people wouldn’t be slandering of your poor, dear mother! poor,
-little, wild thing. She was distantly connected with myself.”
-
-“But,” said Elsie, interposing, “no one raised a doubt but yourself,
-Miss Joe, and we would like to hear you explain your words, that gave
-rise to all this trouble.”
-
-“Words! what words?”
-
-“The words you whispered to Miss Seabright when you passed through the
-room an hour ago.”
-
-“Oh! yes. Why, I telled her she might well have a share o’ the property,
-seein’ how she was General Garnet’s granddaughter.”
-
-“General Garnet’s granddaughter!” exclaimed everyone.
-
-“Yes. Don’t all talk to me at the same time, you ’fuse my head. I
-declare, if my heart aint as big as a batch of light dough, and my head
-goes round like a coffee-mill! That ’minds me of the breakfast—’deed it
-will get spoiled.”
-
-“But you did not tell her that she was General Garnet’s granddaughter.
-It was something else you told her,” said Elsie.
-
-“I—don’t ’fuse my mind. I don’t ’member what the words were, but that’s
-what the meaning was.”
-
-“I remember what the words were exactly,” said Elsie; “she said she was
-‘his own flesh and blood.’”
-
-“To be sure I did; that’s just what I did say. It’s all in the little
-yellow hair trunk—her mother’s little yellow hair trunk. I never knowed
-anything about it until I come here to live, because I never had no
-chance to fool my time away ransacking of old papers afore. If you’ll
-all stop talking to me, I’ll tell you all about it, and you can read the
-rest. You see, General Garnet, when he was a boy about seventeen or
-eighteen years old, he falls in love long of a poor gal, and marries her
-secretly. In about a year arter this, the poor gal she died, leaving of
-a young infant son. Then General Garnet—he was Mr. Garnet then—he being
-a wild young man, and not wanting to be bothered with children, he puts
-this child out to nurse, and goes off and forgets all about it. But the
-boy, as he grew up, he knew, somehow, who his father was, and sort o’
-always had a hankering arter finding him. Well, he didn’t meet his
-father till he listed in the wars, when he was no more than fourteen
-years of age; and he served under him the whole length of the war; and
-though General Garnet—he was Captain Garnet then—being a handsome,
-dashing, gay young officer, would not acknowledge or even notice this
-son, yet the boy seemed to worship the very earth his father walked on.
-He seemed to live but for one thing in the world—to love and serve his
-handsome but unnatural father. He watched over the safety of his life
-and his honor. Twice he saved his father’s honor at the loss of his own
-reputation; and that was the reason why he never got to be anything
-better ’an a corporal all the time he sarved in the war. I’ll tell you
-all about it some time, or else you can read it all in the old letters
-in the little yellow hair trunk. Well, and at last he saved his father’s
-life, at the expense of a dreadful wound, that, arter years of illness,
-caused his death. Well, this boy—though his father didn’t set any store
-to him, and his comrades didn’t vally him as they ought to ’a done—was
-thought a heap on by my wild little cousin. And so, when he come from
-the wars, wounded, and feeble, and broken-hearted, she stole away to
-him, and they were married. She said she could work for both, and she
-did work for both till he died. Well, arter the poor misfortunate young
-man was dead and gone, I suppose General Garnet’s conscience, as had
-been stone dead long before, had a resurrection, or else the ghost of
-his murdered conscience haunted him, for he paid a visit to the young
-widow, and found her grieving herself to death. Well, he made a whole
-parcel o’ splendid promises as he never fulfilled. And when the poor
-young thing died, leaving her little darter in his care, he jest passed
-her over to me as a great favor, and that was the very last I ever saw
-or heard of him or his promises till he quarreled long o’ his own
-darter, and then he comed over and ’dopted Nettie. You see, God never
-could prevail with him to do anything, but the devil could make him do
-as he pleased.”
-
-“There, there, Miss Joe, that will do,” interrupted Mrs. Garnet, to whom
-these severe reflections were deeply painful. “Never, Miss Joe, cast
-unnecessary reproach upon the memory of the dumb, defenseless dead.”
-
-“I won’t. I am sure if the Lord pardons him, we can. I won’t say any
-more. Only if you want to know all the particulars, you see, you can
-read the letters in the little yellow hair trunk. And that’s the end of
-the story; and now I know the coffee is spoiled.”
-
-“Garnet, you have a right to blush for your parentage—but let it be a
-blush of enthusiasm, for never have I heard of two such disinterested
-souls,” said Dr. Hardcastle, shaking her hand with cordial sympathy.
-
-Hugh Hutton said nothing as yet, but stood by her, pouring all his
-earnest, loving soul through the gaze he fixed upon her face. And
-she—down her cheeks the tears had poured like rain. But now that copious
-and refreshing shower was over and the sun of gladness shone out again,
-Garnet smiled brightly, while yet the tears sparkled like rain-drops on
-her ringlets. Mrs. Hardcastle, with her cheerful blooming expression,
-was standing behind her quietly rearranging the disordered wreath and
-veil. Mrs. Garnet went to the door of the adjoining room, and beckoned
-the two young ladies who were to act as bridesmaids. Dr. Hardcastle
-opened the hall door and admitted the groomsmen, who entered and gave
-their arms to the young bridesmaids. Hugh Hutton took the hand of
-Garnet, and, when she arose, Elsie arranged the folds of her robe, and
-whispered:
-
-“Never mind if you are very pale and agitated, dear; it is not so
-unbefitting a bride—besides, your veil is down, you know.”
-
-The bridal party moved onward downstairs. As Dr. Hardcastle followed
-with his wife, he turned to her with an arch look, and whispered:
-
-“My dear Elsie, there is an old acquaintance of yours below stairs.”
-
-“Many of them, I suspect.”
-
-“Yes, but this one is an uninvited, unexpected, but most welcome guest.”
-
-“Whom?”
-
-“The Honorable Ulysses Roebuck!”
-
-“‘The Honorable Ulysses Roebuck!’ I remember ‘Marse Useless,’ as the
-negroes used to call him; but how on earth became he ‘Honorable’?”
-
-Dr. Hardcastle shrugged his shoulders, elevated his eyebrows with a
-queer smile, and answered:
-
-“I really suppose just as more of our Honorables become so. He failed at
-everything useful, went to a distant part of the State, took to
-politics, made stump-speeches ‘full of sound and fury, signifying
-nothing’ and got himself sent to Congress. After an absence of ten years
-he has just now revisited his native neighborhood. He reached Point
-Pleasant by the early boat this morning, and, finding that the family
-were all here, he followed them, and is here also.”
-
-“And his old ladylove, who jilted him to marry my father, and lost both,
-and who must be now near twenty-eight years of age—how did she receive
-him? I should like to have seen that meeting!”
-
-“I saw it. When he first entered the saloon he was caught in the arms of
-Judge Jacky, who ran to him and rapturously embraced him, overwhelming
-him with welcomes. Then, when released from the old gentleman’s arms, he
-shook hands with all his friends and acquaintances, looking uneasily
-around the room all the while, as if in search of someone else. At last
-his flying glances alighted on the distant form of Ambrosia, standing
-near the fireplace. He made her a formal bow, which she acknowledged by
-a cold courtesy!”
-
-“After a lover’s quarrel and a separation of ten years! That is a
-first-rate sign, Magnus; I should not wonder if he had cherished her
-image in his heart through all those years.”
-
-“Well, they had not even spoken when I came away.”
-
-“Better and better! I shall not be surprised if he propose for her
-before the day is over.”
-
-They had now reached the saloon where the bridal party were already
-ranging themselves before the clergyman, who was no other than our
-oldest friend, the Rev. Milton Sinclair.
-
-“See!” whispered Dr. Hardcastle, pointing to where Miss Wylie sat
-gloomily at one end of the room, and Mr. Roebuck morosely at the other;
-“see! I do not believe they have spoken yet.”
-
-“I believe they’ll be married in a week!” laughed Elsie.
-
-But the clergyman had opened his book, the ceremony was about to
-commence, and all became silent and profoundly attentive while it
-progressed. It was over, and friends crowded around to offer their
-congratulations to the newly-married pair. In the crowd Ulysses Roebuck,
-Mrs. Hardcastle, and Ambrosia Wylie got pressed together.
-
-“I declare!” exclaimed Elsie, with her cheerful, ringing tones, “if here
-are not two of my old, old playmates!” And seizing a hand of each, she
-shook them heartily; then joining those two hands in hers, she said,
-“Let me be the mediator. Be friends, as you long to be!” and slipped
-away, leaving them together.
-
-“Shall we be friends? Shall we be more to each other, Ambrosia?” said
-Ulysses, pressing her hand.
-
-“Yes; if you can forgive the infidelity caused by ambition, and expiated
-by whole years of suffering!”
-
-“I have waited for you ten years, Ambrosia. I should think that an
-answer. Come! let’s go to the bay window and talk over old times!”
-
-“Not now; the company are going in to breakfast,” replied Ambrosia,
-taking his arm; and they followed in the wake of the foremost. Mrs.
-Garnet approached the clergyman, who still lingered as if lost in
-abstraction.
-
-“Mr. Sinclair,” she said, “it gives me great happiness to see you back
-here and settled in our parish. I am much pleased, also, to welcome you
-to our house. The company have gone in to breakfast; will you come?” Mr.
-Sinclair bowed in grave silence, gave the lady his arm, and they
-followed the others.
-
-Breakfast was over. The traveling carriage of Mount Calm was packed and
-at the door to convey the newly-married couple to the stage office at
-Huttontown, whence they were to start for the West. The family party,
-consisting of Mrs. Garnet, Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle, and the bride and
-groom, were grouped for a last leave-taking in the passage, when Miss
-Joe suddenly appeared among them, in her poke bonnet and brown shawl,
-with a bandbox in one hand and a basket in the other, and followed by a
-negro man, bending under the weight of a great trunk. When the little
-party stared with surprise, she exclaimed:
-
-“Well, now, you needn’t look so queer, all of you, cause I couldn’t help
-of it! I’ve been a-struggling and a-struggling with my feelings, and I
-couldn’t help of it! I’m gwine long o’ Hugh and Nettie. They’re like my
-own children, ’cause I took care of them when they were little! And I’m
-gwine long o’ them. Besides, long as they’re poor, they’ll want somebody
-to help them work. It aint much I can do now, seeing I’m nigh on to
-seventy years old. But, leastways, I can mend their clothes, and darn
-the children’s stockings, and mind the baby, and so on.”
-
-There was no time for much argument now; but to all that Mrs. Garnet and
-the Hardcastles could say to prevail on her to remain at Mount Calm the
-old lady turned a deaf ear. She was set to go with Hugh and Nettie,
-because they were like her own children, and because they were poor.
-
-“But they are not poor,” said Mrs. Garnet; “and, oh! that reminds me—I
-have the deed of gift yet,” continued the lady, producing the deed from
-her pocket, and placing it in the hands of Dr. Hutton.
-
-“What is this, madam?” he asked, examining the parchment.
-
-“It is merely a dower with your bride,” said the lady.
-
-“It is a deed of conveyance, Hugh, investing me with properties to the
-amount of one-tenth the great Mount Calm estate. Can I take it?”
-
-“No, dearest—no, you cannot!” replied Dr. Hutton, pressing her hand;
-then, turning to the lady, he said: “Mrs. Garnet, we sincerely thank
-you. This generosity is so like yourself that we are not surprised at
-it, while we must gratefully decline it.”
-
-As no arguments could move Hugh Hutton from his resolution, the effort
-was at last abandoned.
-
-The carriage, into which Miss Joe was packed, drew up nearer to the
-door. Garnet embraced her friends successively. Hugh Hutton shook hands
-with them in turn, and handed his bride into the carriage. The steps
-were put up, the door closed, and the carriage rolled away.
-
- * * * * *
-
-Mrs. Garnet continued to reside at Mount Calm, happy in her vocation of
-“Lady Bountiful” to the neighborhood—happy, that is to say, as long as
-the fine weather of spring, summer, and autumn last, during which, in
-her missions of usefulness or benevolence, she could walk, ride, or
-drive through the most beautiful country in the world; but, when winter
-came, with its wind and rain, and hail and snowstorms, its impassable
-roads, and its long spells of tempestuous or intensely cold weather, and
-its longer seasons of enforced confinement within-doors, the lonely lady
-of Mount Calm found the solitary grandeur of her mansion house dreary
-enough. The minister had been her coadjutor, and often her companion, in
-her labors of beneficence, during the preceding eight or ten months; and
-now, in the stormy winter weather, he was her willing representative and
-almoner among the sick, the poor, and the suffering. No fury of tempest
-overhead, or depth of snow, or quagmire under foot, could interrupt the
-weekly visits of the pastor to the lady. The solitary lady knew this;
-and so, even in the most frightful weather, during the darkest,
-dreariest, and loneliest seasons, there was one day in the week to which
-she could look forward with certainty of enjoyment—namely, to Wednesday,
-when, let the wind and the rain, the hail and the snow, do what it might
-to prevent him, the minister was sure to present himself at Mount Calm.
-Each Wednesday evening it became more painful for these two friends to
-part, and the parting was protracted to a later hour. One very stormy
-night in February, when he had lingered by her fireside later than ever
-before, and had at last risen to take leave, he detained her hand in his
-a long time in silence, and then faltered: “Alice, are we never to be
-more to each other than now?” The lady shook her head in mournful
-negation, and there was a “soul’s tragedy” in the tone wherewith she
-answered simply: “We are old, now!” The timid proposition was not
-renewed then; the shyness of age, worse than the shyness of youth,
-silenced the lips of the minister. The proposal probably never would
-have been renewed, but for the intervention of the cordial-hearted
-Elsie—that happy, healthful, sworn foe to all morbid scruples and
-needless suffering. She had been made acquainted with her mother’s early
-history, and for years past she had watched over the delicate lady with
-more care and tenderness than over any of her own robust and blooming
-babies. Now that she was divided from her, she felt increased solicitude
-for the welfare of the fragile, sensitive recluse. It was toward the
-spring that she was awakened to a knowledge of the attachment existing
-between the lady and the pastor; and, after taking observation for a few
-days, she one day said to her mother: “Mother, why don’t you marry the
-minister?”
-
-“Dear Elsie, what could suggest such an absurd thing to your mind? What
-would the neighbors say? At our age, too!”
-
-“Dearest mother, they may wonder a little; but, upon the whole, they
-will be well pleased. Besides, shall their wonder prevent you being
-comfortable? You need each other’s society—you and the minister. You are
-both so lonely—you in your mansion, he in his lodgings; you need each
-other. Come! accept him, mother. Magnus and I will give you our
-blessing,” laughed Elsie; and then, immediately regretting her
-involuntary levity, she said seriously: “Dear mother, think of this. You
-have reached the summit-point of life; before you lies the descent into
-the vale of years; your old friend stands on the same ground, with the
-same road before him. Give your hand to your dear old friend, and go ye
-down the vale together.”
-
-Elsie was successful in her efforts. Before another winter the lady and
-the minister were married; and thenceforward the serene and beautiful
-life of the pair gave a poetic fitness to the name of their homestead,
-“Mount Calm.”
-
-Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle made Hemlock Hollow their place of permanent
-residence. They erected an elegant mansion, and improved and adorned the
-grounds with such artistic taste that it was considered one of the most
-beautiful seats in old St. Mary’s.
-
-The Honorable Ulysses and Mrs. Roebuck spent their summers at Point
-Pleasant, and their winters in the metropolis, until the Honorable
-Ulysses grew weary of political life and careless of popularity, and
-lost his election, when they took up their permanent abode at the Point,
-with Judge Jacky Wylie.
-
-And the families of Hemlock Hollow, Mount Calm, and Point Pleasant
-formed an intimate social circle, and kept up their agreeable relations
-after the St. Mary’s fashion of family dinner-parties, social
-tea-drinkings, fish feasts upon the coast, fox-hunts among the
-gentlemen, neighborhood dances, etc.; while the gentle, but powerful
-influence emanating from Mount Calm spread the spirit of religion over
-all.
-
-Dr. and Mrs. Hutton eventually settled in a Southern State. Miss Joe
-Cotter remained with them to the end of her long life. Consistent in her
-economy to the very last, she devoted the remaining years of her life to
-“laying up treasures in heaven.” Dr. Hutton became one of the most
-celebrated physicians in the country, and amassed a large fortune. Mrs.
-Hutton became one of the brightest stars in the great Southern
-constellation of beauty, genius, and fashion. Their home is a beautiful
-edifice on the banks of a Southern lake, within easy distance of the
-city. For elegance, taste, and luxury it is scarcely excelled by the
-far-famed palaces of the Old World. From his present affluent ease Dr.
-Hutton delights to look back upon his early struggles, and he repeats
-now, with more emphasis than before, that, “A young American should
-never permit himself to depend upon the accidents of fortune for success
-in life; for in our prosperous country a man of good health and good
-habits need never fail to make an independence for himself and family,
-and to win the blessing of God.”
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- Grosset & Dunlap’s Popular
- Series of Standard Books
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-A series of 12mos of distinctive character and appearance, comprising
-judiciously selected titles, indorsed by the foremost critics, and
-approved by generations of readers. Beautifully printed on fine book
-paper, and handsomely bound in cloth with strikingly artistic cover
-designs.
-
- * * * * *
-
- Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.
-
- * * * * *
-
- AESOP’S FABLES
-
- ANDERSEN, HANS CHRISTIAN
- Fairy Tales and Stories
-
- BARRIE, J. M.
- The Little Minister
-
- BELL, J. J.
- Wee Macgreegor
-
- BESANT AND RICE
- All Sorts and Conditions of Man
-
- BRONTE, CHARLOTTE
- Jane Eyre
-
- BULWER-LYTTON
- The Last Days of Pompeii
-
- BUNYAN, JOHN
- Pilgrim’s Progress
-
- CAREY, ROSA NOUCHETTE
- Aunt Diana
- Averil
- Merle’s Crusade
- Not Like Other Girls
- Only the Governess
-
- CARROLL, LEWIS
- Alice in Wonderland and Through the Looking Glass. The two volumes
- in one
-
- CONNOR, RALPH
- Black Rock
-
- COOPER, J. FENIMORE
- The Deerslayer
- The Last of the Mohicans
- The Pathfinder
- The Pioneers
- The Prairie
- The Spy
-
- CUMMINS, MARIA S.
- The Lamplighter
-
-
- CORELLI, MARIE
- Thelma
- A Romance of Two Worlds
-
- DEFOE, DANIEL
- Robinson Crusoe
-
- DICKENS, CHARLES
- A Tale of Two Cities
- The Christmas Stories
-
- DODGE, MARY MAPES
- Hans Brinker
-
- DOYLE, A. CONAN
- Tales of Sherlock Holmes
-
- DUMAS, ALEXANDER
- Twenty Years After
- The Three Guardsmen
-
- ELIOT, GEORGE
- Silas Marner
-
- ELLIS, EDWARD S.
- Life of Kit Carson
-
- EMERSON, RALPH WALDO
- Essays (1st and 2nd Series in one volume)
-
- EVANS, AUGUSTA J.
- Beulah
- Inez
- Macaria
- St. Elmo (Special Ed.)
-
- FOTHERGILL, JESSIE
- The First Violin
-
- GASKELL, MRS.
- Cranford
-
- GRIMM, THE BROTHERS
- Grimm’s Fairy Tales
-
- HABBERTON, JOHN
- Helen’s Babies
-
- HARRIS, MIRIAM COLES
- Rutledge
-
-
- HAWTHORNE, NATHANIEL
- The Marble Faun
- The Scarlet Letter
-
- HOLLAND, J. G.
- Bitter Sweet
-
- HOLLEY, MARIETTA
- Samantha at Saratoga
-
- HOLMES, OLIVER WENDELL
- Elsie Venner
-
- HUGHES, THOMAS
- Tom Brown’s School Days
- Tom Brown at Oxford
-
- INGRAHAM, REV. J. H.
- The Prince of the House of David
- The Pillar of Fire
- The Throne of David
-
- IRVING, WASHINGTON
- The Sketch Book
-
- LAMB, CHARLES AND MARY
- Tales from Shakespeare
-
- LANG, ANDREW
- The Blue Fairy Book
- The Green Fairy Book
- My Own Fairy Book
- The Red Fairy Book
- The Yellow Fairy Book
-
- LONGFELLOW, HENRY W.
- Evangeline
- Hiawatha
- The Courtship of Miles Standish
-
- MARLITT, EUGENIE
- Gold Elsie
-
- MEREDITH, OWEN
- Lucile
-
-
- MULOCK, MISS
- The Little Lame Prince
- Mulock’s Fairy Tales
-
- OUIDA
- Under Two Flags
-
- PRENTISS, ELIZABETH PAYSON
- Stepping Heavenward
-
- READE, CHARLES
- The Cloister and the Hearth
-
- REID, CAPT. MAYNE
- The Rifle Rangers
-
- SCOTT, SIR WALTER
- Ivanhoe (with notes)
- Kenilworth (with notes)
-
- SEWELL, ANNA
- Black Beauty
-
- SHELDON, REV. CHARLES M.
- Crucifixion of Philip Strong
- In His Steps
- Robert Hardy’s Seven Days
-
- STEVENSON, R. L.
- Treasure Island
-
- STOWE, HARRIET BEECHER
- Uncle Tom’s Cabin
-
- THOMPSON, D. P.
- Green Mountain Boys
-
- WAGNER, CHARLES
- The Simple Life
-
- WARNER, SUSAN
- The Wide, Wide World
-
- WOOD, MRS. HENRY
- East Lynne
-
- WYSS, JOHANN RUDOLF
- Swiss Family Robinson
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- The Southworth Series
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-Comprising ten of the most popular works of Mrs. E. D. E. N. Southworth.
-Many mothers can remember with what pleasure they pored over the
-captivating novels of Mrs. Southworth when they were girls, and how
-impatiently they waited from week to week for the instalments of their
-favorite stories. They are read with the same eagerness by the daughters
-of to-day, and will be as eagerly read by their children’s children.
-They are splendid stories of American life, manners, customs and
-institutions.
-
-Attractively bound in cloth, with colored picture inlay on cover. Coated
-paper wrapper, printed in colors.
-
- * * * * *
-
- Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.
-
- * * * * *
-
- THE CHANGED BRIDES; Or, Winning Her Way.
- THE BRIDE’S FATE; Sequel to “The Changed Brides.”
- CRUEL AS THE GRAVE.
- TRIED FOR HER LIFE; Sequel to “Cruel as the Grave.”
- THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER; Or, The Children of the Isle.
- THE HIDDEN HAND; Complete in one volume.
- ISHMAEL; Or, In the Depths.
- SELF-RAISED; Or, From the Depths. Sequel to “Ishmael.”
- THE MISSING BRIDE; Or, Miriam, the Avenger.
- VIVIA; Or, The Secret of Power.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- The L. T. Meade Series
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-The popularity of these charming tales for girls increases as the years
-go by, and the present edition we believe to be the best ever offered at
-a moderate price. Thirty-nine titles—many of them copyrighted.
-
-12 mo. Handsomely bound in cloth of bright colors with beautiful picture
-inlay in full color on front cover. Coated paper wrapper, printed in
-colors.
-
- * * * * *
-
- Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.
-
- Bad Little Hannah
- Bashful Fifteen
- Betty: A Schoolgirl
- Betty of the Rectory
- Bevy of Girls, A
- Bunch of Cherries, A
- Children of Wilton Chase
- Children’s Pilgrimage, The
- Daddy’s Girl
- Deb and the Duchess
- Four On An Island
- Gay Charmer, A
- Girl in Ten Thousand, A
- Girls, New and Old
- Girls of Mrs. Pritchard’s School
- Girls of St. Wodes, The
- Girls of the True Blue
- Good Luck
- In Time of Roses
- Light o’ the Morning
- Little Mother to the Others, A
- Madcap, A
- Manor School, The
- Merry Girls of England
- Miss Nonentity
- Modern Tom Boy, A
- Out of the Fashion
- Palace Beautiful, The
- Polly: A New Fashioned Girl
- Rebellion of Lil Carrington, The
- Red Rose and Tiger Lily
- Ring of Rubies, A
- Sweet Girl Graduate, A
- Temptation of Olive Latimer, The
- Turquoise and Ruby
- Very Naughty Girl, A
- Wild Kitty
- World of Girls, A
- Young Mutineer, A
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- The Popular Novels of
- MARY J. HOLMES
-
-
- * * * * *
-
-A new edition of the favorite works of this extremely popular novelist,
-printed from new large type plates, on fine book paper, and attractively
-bound in cloth. With colored picture inlay on cover. Coated paper
-wrapper, printed in colors.
-
- * * * * *
-
- Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.
-
- * * * * *
-
- TEMPEST AND SUNSHINE
- LENA RIVERS
- THE ENGLISH ORPHANS
- HOMESTEAD ON THE HILLSIDE
- MAGGIE MILLER
- DORA DEANE
- ROSAMOND
- COUSIN MAUDE
- MEADOW BROOK
- DARKNESS AND DAYLIGHT
- ETHELYN’S MISTAKE
- BAD HUGH
- ROSE MATHER
- MARIAN GREY
- MILLBANK
- EDITH LYLE’S SECRET
- FAMILY PRIDE
- AIKENSIDE
- MILDRED
- THE LEIGHTON HOMESTEAD
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- A FEW OF
- GROSSET & DUNLAP’S
- Great Books at Little Prices
-
-
- * * * * *
-
- CY WHITTAKER’S PLACE. By Joseph C. Lincoln. Illustrated by Wallace
- Morgan.
-
-A Cape Cod story describing the amusing efforts of an elderly bachelor
-and his two cronies to rear and educate a little girl. Full of honest
-fun—a rural drama.
-
- THE FORGE IN THE FOREST. By Charles G. D. Roberts. Illustrated by H.
- Sandham.
-
-A story of the conflict in Acadia after its conquest by the British. A
-dramatic picture that lives and shines with the indefinable charm of
-poetic romance.
-
- A SISTER TO EVANGELINE. By Charles G. D. Roberts. Illustrated by E.
- McConnell.
-
-Being the story of Yvonne de Lamourie, and how she went into exile with
-the villagers of Grand Prè. Swift action, fresh atmosphere, wholesome
-purity, deep passion and searching analysis characterize this strong
-novel.
-
- THE OPENED SHUTTERS. By Clara Louise Burnham. Frontispiece by Harrison
- Fisher.
-
-A summer haunt on an island in Casco Bay is the background for this
-romance. A beautiful woman, at discord with life, is brought to realize,
-by her new friends, that she may open the shutters of her soul to the
-blessed sunlight of joy by casting aside vanity and self love. A
-delicately humorous work with a lofty motive underlying it all.
-
- THE RIGHT PRINCESS. By Clara Louise Burnham.
-
-An amusing story, opening at a fashionable Long Island resort, where a
-stately Englishwoman employs a forcible New England housekeeper to serve
-in her interesting home. How types so widely apart react on each others’
-lives, all to ultimate good, makes a story both humorous and rich in
-sentiment.
-
- THE LEAVEN OF LOVE. By Clara Louise Burnham. Frontispiece by Harrison
- Fisher.
-
-At a Southern California resort a world-weary woman, young and beautiful
-but disillusioned, meets a girl who has learned the art of living—of
-tasting life in all its richness, opulence and joy. The story hinges
-upon the change wrought in the soul of the blasé woman by this glimpse
-into a cheery life.
-
- QUINCY ADAMS SAWYER. A Picture of New England Home Life. With
- illustrations by C. W. Reed, and Scenes Reproduced from the Play.
-
-One of the best New England stories ever written. It is full of homely
-human interest * * * there is a wealth of New England village character,
-scenes and incidents * * * forcibly, vividly and truthfully drawn. Few
-books have enjoyed a greater sale and popularity. Dramatized, it made
-the greatest rural play of recent times.
-
- THE FURTHER ADVENTURES OF QUINCY ADAMS SAWYER. By Charles Felton
- Pidgin. Illustrated by Henry Roth.
-
-All who love honest sentiment, quaint and sunny humor, and homespun
-philosophy will find these “Further Adventures” a book after their own
-heart.
-
- HALF A CHANCE. By Frederic S. Isham. Illustrated by Herman Pfeifer.
-
-The thrill of excitement will keep the reader in a state of suspense,
-and he will become personally concerned from the start, as to the
-central character, a very real man who suffers, dares—and achieves!
-
- VIRGINIA OF THE AIR LANES. By Herbert Quick. Illustrated by William R.
- Leigh.
-
-The author has seized the romantic moment for the airship novel, and
-created the pretty story of “a lover and his lass” contending with an
-elderly relative for the monopoly of the skies. An exciting tale of
-adventure in midair.
-
- THE GAME AND THE CANDLE. By Eleanor M. Ingram. Illustrated by P. D.
- Johnson.
-
-The hero is a young American, who, to save his family from poverty,
-deliberately commits a felony. Then follow his capture and imprisonment,
-and his rescue by a Russian Grand Duke. A stirring story, rich in
-sentiment.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- A FEW OF
- GROSSET & DUNLAP’S
- Great Books at Little Prices
- NEW, CLEVER, ENTERTAINING.
-
-
- * * * * *
-
- GRET: The Story of a Pagan. By Beatrice Mantle. Illustrated by C. M.
- Relyea.
-
-The wild free life of an Oregon lumber camp furnishes the setting for
-this strong original story. Gret is the daughter of the camp and is
-utterly content with the wild life—until love comes. A fine book,
-unmarred by convention.
-
- OLD CHESTER TALES. By Margaret Deland. Illustrated by Howard Pyle.
-
-A vivid yet delicate portrayal of characters in an old New England town.
-
-Dr. Lavendar’s fine, kindly wisdom is brought to bear upon the lives of
-all, permeating the whole volume like the pungent odor of pine,
-healthful and life giving. “Old Chester Tales” will surely be among the
-books that abide.
-
- THE MEMOIRS OF A BABY. By Josephine Daskam. Illustrated by F. Y. Cory.
-
-The dawning intelligence of the baby was grappled with by its great
-aunt, an elderly maiden, whose book knowledge of babies was something at
-which even the infant himself winked. A delicious bit of humor.
-
- REBECCA MARY. By Annie Hamilton Donnell. Illustrated by Elizabeth
- Shippen Green.
-
-The heart tragedies of this little girl with no one near to share them,
-are told with a delicate art, a keen appreciation of the needs of the
-childish heart and a humorous knowledge of the workings of the childish
-mind.
-
- THE FLY ON THE WHEEL. By Katherine Cecil Thurston. Frontispiece by
- Harrison Fisher.
-
-An Irish story of real power, perfect in development and showing a true
-conception of the spirited Hibernian character as displayed in the
-tragic as well as the tender phases of life.
-
- THE MAN FROM BRODNEY’S. By George Barr McCutcheon. Illustrated by
- Harrison Fisher.
-
-An island in the South Sea is the setting for this entertaining tale,
-and an all-conquering hero and a beautiful princess figure in a most
-complicated plot. One of Mr. McCutcheon’s best books.
-
- TOLD BY UNCLE REMUS. By Joel Chandler Harris. Illustrated by A. B.
- Frost, J. M. Conde and Frank Verbeck.
-
-Again Uncle Remus enters the fields of childhood, and leads another
-little boy to that non-locatable land called “Brer Rabbit’s Laughing
-Place,” and again the quaint animals spring into active life and play
-their parts, for the edification of a small but appreciative audience.
-
- THE CLIMBER. By E. F. Benson. With frontispiece.
-
-An unsparing analysis of an ambitious woman’s soul—a woman who believed
-that in social supremacy she would find happiness, and who finds instead
-the utter despair of one who has chosen the things that pass away.
-
- LYNCH’S DAUGHTER. By Leonard Merrick. Illustrated by Geo. Brehm.
-
-A story of to-day, telling how a rich girl acquires ideals of beautiful
-and simple living, and of men and love, quite apart from the teachings
-of her father, “Old Man Lynch” of Wall St. True to life, clever in
-treatment.
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- GROSSET & DUNLAP’S
- DRAMATIZED NOVELS
- A Few that are Making Theatrical History
-
-
- * * * * *
-
- MARY JANE’S PA. By Norman Way. Illustrated with scenes from the play.
-
-Delightful, irresponsible “Mary Jane’s Pa” awakes one morning to find
-himself famous, and, genius being ill adapted to domestic joys, he
-wanders from home to work out his own unique destiny. One of the most
-humorous bits of recent fiction.
-
- CHERUB DEVINE. By Sewell Ford.
-
-“Cherub,” a good hearted but not over refined young man is brought in
-touch with the aristocracy. Of sprightly wit, he is sometimes a
-merciless analyst, but he proves in the end that manhood counts for more
-than ancient lineage by winning the love of the fairest girl in the
-flock.
-
- A WOMAN’S WAY. By Charles Somerville. Illustrated with scenes from the
- play.
-
-A story in which a woman’s wit and self-sacrificing love save her
-husband from the toils of an adventuress, and change an apparently
-tragic situation into one of delicious comedy.
-
- THE CLIMAX. By George C. Jenks.
-
-With ambition luring her on, a young choir soprano leaves the little
-village where she was born and the limited audience of St. Jude’s to
-train for the opera in New York. She leaves love behind her and meets
-love more ardent but not more sincere in her new environment. How she
-works, how she studies, how she suffers, are vividly portrayed.
-
- A FOOL THERE WAS. By Porter Emerson Browne. Illustrated by Edmund
- Magrath and W. W. Fawcett.
-
-A relentless portrayal of the career of a man who comes under the
-influence of a beautiful but evil woman; how she lures him on and on,
-how he struggles, falls and rises, only to fall again into her net, make
-a story of unflinching realism.
-
- THE SQUAW MAN. By Julie Opp Faversham and Edwin Milton Royle.
- Illustrated with scenes from the play.
-
-A glowing story, rapid in action, bright in dialogue with a fine
-courageous hero and a beautiful English heroine.
-
- THE GIRL IN WAITING. By Archibald Fyre. Illustrated with scenes from
- the play.
-
-A droll little comedy of misunderstandings, told with a light touch, a
-venturesome spirit and an eye for human oddities.
-
- The Scarlet Pimpernel. By Baroness Orczy. Illustrated with scenes from
- the play.
-
-A realistic story of the days of the French Revolution, abounding in
-dramatic incident, with a young English soldier of fortune, daring,
-mysterious as the hero.
-
- * * * * *
-
- GROSSET & DUNLAP, 526 WEST 26TH ST., NEW YORK
-
-------------------------------------------------------------------------
-
-
-
-
- TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES
-
-
- 1. Silently corrected obvious typographical errors and variations in
- spelling.
- 2. Retained archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings as printed.
- 3. Enclosed italics font in _underscores_.
-
-*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER ***
-
-Updated editions will replace the previous one--the old editions will
-be renamed.
-
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the
-United States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG-tm
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away--you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-
-START: FULL LICENSE
-
-THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE
-PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK
-
-To protect the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg"), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg-tm License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the
-person or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph
-1.E.8.
-
-1.B. "Project Gutenberg" is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation ("the
-Foundation" or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg-tm mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg-tm
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg-tm name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg-tm License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg-tm work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg-tm License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg-tm work (any work
-on which the phrase "Project Gutenberg" appears, or with which the
-phrase "Project Gutenberg" is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
- most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no
- restrictions whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it
- under the terms of the Project Gutenberg License included with this
- eBook or online at www.gutenberg.org. If you are not located in the
- United States, you will have to check the laws of the country where
- you are located before using this eBook.
-
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase "Project
-Gutenberg" associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg-tm
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg-tm electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg-tm License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg-tm
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg-tm.
-
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm License.
-
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg-tm work in a format
-other than "Plain Vanilla ASCII" or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg-tm website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original "Plain
-Vanilla ASCII" or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg-tm License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg-tm works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-provided that:
-
-* You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg-tm works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, "Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation."
-
-* You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg-tm
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg-tm
- works.
-
-* You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
-
-* You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm works.
-
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg-tm trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-
-1.F.
-
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg-tm collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain "Defects," such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the "Right
-of Replacement or Refund" described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg-tm electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you 'AS-IS', WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg-tm
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg-tm work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg-tm work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg-tm
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg-tm's
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg-tm collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg-tm and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at
-www.gutenberg.org
-
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation
-
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation's EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state's laws.
-
-The Foundation's business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation's website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg
-Literary Archive Foundation
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm depends upon and cannot survive without
-widespread public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular
-state visit www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg-tm electronic works
-
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg-tm concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-
-Project Gutenberg-tm eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: www.gutenberg.org
-
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg-tm,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
diff --git a/old/69714-0.zip b/old/69714-0.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index dc9ff67..0000000
--- a/old/69714-0.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69714-h.zip b/old/69714-h.zip
deleted file mode 100644
index e92c677..0000000
--- a/old/69714-h.zip
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69714-h/69714-h.htm b/old/69714-h/69714-h.htm
deleted file mode 100644
index 753fcf6..0000000
--- a/old/69714-h/69714-h.htm
+++ /dev/null
@@ -1,16913 +0,0 @@
-<!DOCTYPE html>
-<html lang="en">
- <head>
- <meta charset="UTF-8">
- <title>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The discarded daughter by Mrs. E. D. E. N. Southworth</title>
- <link rel="icon" href="images/cover.jpg" type="image/x-cover">
- <style>
- body { margin-left: 8%; margin-right: 10%; }
- h1 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large; }
- h2 { text-align: center; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; }
- .pageno { right: 1%; font-size: x-small; background-color: inherit; color: silver;
- text-indent: 0em; text-align: right; position: absolute;
- border: thin solid silver; padding: .1em .2em; font-style: normal;
- font-variant: normal; font-weight: normal; text-decoration: none; }
- p { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; text-align: justify; }
- .sc { font-variant: small-caps; }
- .large { font-size: large; }
- .xlarge { font-size: x-large; }
- .small { font-size: small; }
- .lg-container-b { text-align: center; }
- .x-ebookmaker .lg-container-b { clear: both; }
- .lg-container-l { text-align: justify; }
- .x-ebookmaker .lg-container-l { clear: both; }
- .lg-container-r { text-align: right; }
- .x-ebookmaker .lg-container-r { clear: both; }
- .linegroup { display: inline-block; text-align: justify; }
- .x-ebookmaker .linegroup { display: block; margin-left: 1.5em; }
- .linegroup .group { margin: 1em auto; }
- .linegroup .line { text-indent: -3em; padding-left: 3em; }
- div.linegroup > :first-child { margin-top: 0; }
- .linegroup .in12 { padding-left: 9.0em; }
- .linegroup .in14 { padding-left: 10.0em; }
- .linegroup .in16 { padding-left: 11.0em; }
- .linegroup .in2 { padding-left: 4.0em; }
- .linegroup .in20 { padding-left: 13.0em; }
- .linegroup .in24 { padding-left: 15.0em; }
- .linegroup .in26 { padding-left: 16.0em; }
- .linegroup .in28 { padding-left: 17.0em; }
- .linegroup .in30 { padding-left: 18.0em; }
- .linegroup .in32 { padding-left: 19.0em; }
- .linegroup .in34 { padding-left: 20.0em; }
- .linegroup .in36 { padding-left: 21.0em; }
- .linegroup .in38 { padding-left: 22.0em; }
- .linegroup .in4 { padding-left: 5.0em; }
- .linegroup .in40 { padding-left: 23.0em; }
- .linegroup .in41 { padding-left: 23.5em; }
- .linegroup .in42 { padding-left: 24.0em; }
- .linegroup .in44 { padding-left: 25.0em; }
- .linegroup .in46 { padding-left: 26.0em; }
- .linegroup .in48 { padding-left: 27.0em; }
- .linegroup .in6 { padding-left: 6.0em; }
- .linegroup .in8 { padding-left: 7.0em; }
- .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: -1em; }
- ol.ol_1 {padding-left: 0; margin-left: 2.78%; margin-top: .5em;
- margin-bottom: .5em; list-style-type: decimal; }
- div.pbb { page-break-before: always; }
- hr.pb { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 1em; }
- .x-ebookmaker hr.pb { display: none; }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .figcenter { clear: both; max-width: 100%; margin: 2em auto; text-align: center; }
- .figcenter img { max-width: 100%; height: auto; }
- .id001 { width:10%; }
- .x-ebookmaker .id001 { margin-left:45%; width:10%; }
- .ig001 { width:100%; }
- .table0 { margin: auto; margin-top: 2em; }
- .nf-center { text-align: center; }
- .nf-center-c0 { text-align: justify; margin: 0.5em 0; }
- .c000 { margin-top: 0.5em; margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- .c001 { page-break-before: always; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c002 { margin-top: 2em; }
- .c003 { margin-top: 1em; }
- .c004 { page-break-before:auto; margin-top: 4em; }
- .c005 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c006 { vertical-align: top; text-align: justify; text-indent: -1em;
- padding-left: 1em; padding-right: 1em; }
- .c007 { vertical-align: top; text-align: right; }
- .c008 { margin-top: 2em; font-size: .9em; }
- .c009 { margin-top: 2em; text-indent: 1em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c010 { text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c011 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-top: 0.8em;
- margin-bottom: 0.8em; margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; }
- .c012 { margin-top: 4em; }
- .c013 { margin-top: 1em; font-size: .9em; }
- .c014 { text-indent: 0; margin-top: 0.25em; margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c015 { font-size: .9em; }
- .c016 { font-size: .9em; text-indent: 1em; margin-top: 0.25em;
- margin-bottom: 0.25em; }
- .c017 { font-size: .9em; text-align: right; }
- .c018 { border: none; border-bottom: thin solid; margin-bottom: 0.8em;
- margin-left: 35%; margin-right: 35%; width: 30%; margin-top: 2em; }
- .c019 { margin-left: 8.33%; text-indent: -5.56%; margin-top: 0.5em;
- margin-bottom: 0.5em; }
- div.tnotes { padding-left:1em;padding-right:1em;background-color:#E3E4FA;
- border:thin solid silver; margin:2em 10% 0 10%; font-family: Georgia, serif;
- clear: both; }
- .covernote { visibility: hidden; display: none; }
- div.tnotes p { text-align: justify; }
- .x-ebookmaker .covernote { visibility: visible; display: block; }
- .figcenter {font-size: .9em; page-break-inside: avoid; max-width: 100%; }
- .x-ebookmaker img {max-height: 30em; max-width: 100%; }
- .chapter { clear: both; page-break-before: always; }
- .ol_1 li {font-size: .9em; }
- .x-ebookmaker .ol_1 li {padding-left: 1em; text-indent: 0em; }
- body {font-family: Georgia, serif; text-align: justify; }
- table {font-size: .9em; padding: 1.5em .5em 1em; page-break-inside: avoid;
- clear: both; }
- div.titlepage {text-align: center; page-break-before: always;
- page-break-after: always; }
- div.titlepage p {text-align: center; text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold;
- line-height: 1.5; margin-top: 3em; }
- .ph1 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: xx-large;
- margin: .67em auto; page-break-before: always; }
- .ph2 { text-indent: 0em; font-weight: bold; font-size: x-large; margin: .75em auto;
- page-break-before: always; }
- .x-ebookmaker p.dropcap:first-letter { float: left; }
-</style>
- </head>
- <body>
-<p style='text-align:center; font-size:1.2em; font-weight:bold'>The Project Gutenberg eBook of The discarded daughter, by Emma Dorothy Eliza Nevitte Southworth</p>
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and
-most other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
-whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
-of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
-at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
-are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws of the
-country where you are located before using this eBook.
-</div>
-
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Title: The discarded daughter</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-left:2em; text-indent:0; margin-top:0; margin-bottom:1em;'>Or the children of the isle</p>
-<p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em'>Author: Emma Dorothy Eliza Nevitte Southworth</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Release Date: January 5, 2023 [eBook #69714]</p>
-<p style='display:block; text-indent:0; margin:1em 0'>Language: English</p>
- <p style='display:block; margin-top:1em; margin-bottom:0; margin-left:2em; text-indent:-2em; text-align:left'>Produced by: Richard Tonsing and the Online Distributed Proofreading Team at https://www.pgdp.net (This file was produced from images generously made available by The Internet Archive)</p>
-<div style='margin-top:2em; margin-bottom:4em'>*** START OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER ***</div>
-
-<div class='tnotes covernote'>
-
-<p class='c000'><strong>Transcriber’s Note:</strong></p>
-
-<p class='c000'>The cover image was created by the transcriber and is placed in the public domain.</p>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='titlepage'>
-
-<div>
- <h1 class='c001'><span class='sc'>The Discarded Daughter</span><br> <span class='small'>OR</span><br> <span class='xlarge'>The Children of the Isle</span></h1>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c002'>
- <div>BY</div>
- <div class='c003'><span class='large'>MRS. E. D. E. N. SOUTHWORTH</span></div>
- <div class='c003'><span class='small'>Author of “Ishmael,” “The Hidden Hand,” “The Bride’s Fate,” “The Changed Brides,” etc.</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='figcenter id001'>
-<img src='images/i_title.jpg' alt='' class='ig001'>
-</div>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>GROSSET &#38; DUNLAP</div>
- <div>PUBLISHERS: NEW YORK</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_iii'>iii</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CONTENTS.</h2>
-</div>
-
-<table class='table0'>
- <tr>
- <th class='c005'><span class='small'>CHAPTER</span></th>
- <th class='c006'>&#160;</th>
- <th class='c007'><span class='small'>PAGE</span></th>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>&#160;</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Introductory—St. Clara’s Isle</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_v'>v</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>I.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Mount Calm</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_1'>1</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>II.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The New Suitor</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_3'>3</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>III.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Father’s Tyranny</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_7'>7</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>IV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Subjection of Alice</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_12'>12</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>V.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Husband’s Authority</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_14'>14</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Country Neighbors</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_16'>16</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Hutton of the Isles</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_20'>20</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>VIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Bride of the Isles</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_24'>24</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>IX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Hutton Lodge</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_28'>28</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>X.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Patience of Alice</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_33'>33</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Alice’s Visit to Hutton Isle</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_41'>41</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Child of the Wreck</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_45'>45</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Desolate House</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_51'>51</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Vanishing of Agnes</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_55'>55</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Elfin Girl</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_59'>59</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Elsie</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_66'>66</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Ball—The Unexpected Guest</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_75'>75</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The New-Found Heir</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_83'>83</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Devotion of Love</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_86'>86</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Elsie in the Attic</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_97'>97</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Cruelty—A Chamber Scene</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_103'>103</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Marriage</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_108'>108</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Heart Overtasked</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_118'>118</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Wife’s Trust</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_128'>128</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'><span class='pageno' id='Page_iv'>iv</span>XXV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Life’s Storm and Soul’s Shelter</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_133'>133</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Day After the Wedding</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_143'>143</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Deep Dell—Country Tavern</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_150'>150</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Vault</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_155'>155</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Children of the Isle</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_168'>168</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Night Visit</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_172'>172</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Nettie in the Mansion</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_180'>180</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Interview</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_187'>187</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Elsie in the Log Cabin</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_198'>198</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>What Came Next</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_207'>207</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXV.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Flight of Time</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_217'>217</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Light on the Island</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_227'>227</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Beehive</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_242'>242</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXVIII.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Hugh and Garnet</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_256'>256</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XXXIX.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Struggle of Love and Ambition</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_267'>267</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XL.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>Elsie’s Fortunes</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_282'>282</a></td>
- </tr>
- <tr>
- <td class='c005'>XLI.</td>
- <td class='c006'><span class='sc'>The Secret Revealed</span>,</td>
- <td class='c007'><a href='#Page_291'>291</a></td>
- </tr>
-</table>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_v'>v</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>INTRODUCTORY.<br> <span class='large'>ST. CLARA’S ISLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in6'>The Island lies nine leagues away.</div>
- <div class='line in8'>Along its solitary shore</div>
- <div class='line in6'>Of craggy rock and sandy bay,</div>
- <div class='line in8'>No sound but ocean’s roar,</div>
- <div class='line'>Save where the bold, wild sea-bird makes her home,</div>
- <div class='line'>Her shrill cry coming through the sparkling foam.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—R. H. Dana.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The scenes of our story lie along the Western shore
-of Maryland, near the mouth of the Potomac River, and
-among the islets of the Chesapeake Bay.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nothing can be more beautiful, grand, and inspiring
-than the scenery of this region.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The great Potomac, a mighty and invincible monarch
-of rivers, even from her first stormy conquest, in which
-she rent apart the everlasting mountains, and forced herself
-a passage to the sea—widens and broadens her channel,
-extending the area of her empire continually as she
-goes on her irresistible way in a vast, calm, majestic flow
-of waters to the ocean.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the mouth of the river on the north, or Maryland
-side, is Point Lookout; on the south, or Virginia side, is
-Smith’s Point, with an expanse of water twenty miles
-in width between them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The shore on the Maryland side is broken by the most
-beautiful creeks and inlets, and dotted by the most beautiful
-islets that imagination can depict—creeks whose
-crystal-clear waters reflect every undulating hill and
-vale, every shadowy tree and bright flower lying upon
-their banks, and every soft and dark, or sun-gilded and
-glorious cloud floating in the skies above their bosoms;
-islets whose dewy, fresh and green luxuriance of vegetation,
-darksome trees and profound solitude, tempt one
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_vi'>vi</span>into poetic dreams of an ideal hermitage. The beauty
-and interest of this shore is enhanced by the occasional
-glimpses of rural homes—magnificent, or simply picturesque—seen
-indistinctly through the trees, at the
-head of some creek, on the summit of some distant hill,
-or in the shades of some thick grove.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nothing can surpass the pleasure of the opposite but
-delightfully blended emotions inspired by this scene.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the one hand the near shore, with its inlets and
-islands, its sunny hills and shadowy dells, its old forests,
-its cornfields, and its sweet, sequestered homes, yields
-that dear sense of safety and repose which the most adventurous
-never like to lose entirely.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>On the other hand, looking out to the sea, the broad
-expanse of waters, the free and unobstructed pathway
-to all parts of the world, fills and dilates the heart with
-an exultant sense of boundless freedom!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I said that the islets of the Potomac were fertile, verdant,
-and luxurious in vegetation. This is because their
-sandy soil is mixed freely with clay and marl; because
-it is enriched with the deposits of the vast flocks of water-fowl
-that hover upon them for safe repose; and finally,
-because, unlike the worn-out lands of the peninsula, the
-soil is a virgin one, where for ages vegetation has
-budded, bloomed, and decayed, and returned to the
-earth to fertilize it. (And here let me be pardoned for
-saying that it is a matter of surprise to me that the attention
-of enterprising men has never been turned to
-these islands as a source of agricultural wealth; for, besides
-the rich fertility of the soil, the salubrity of the air,
-and the beauty and grandeur of the land and water
-scenery, these islands are rich in shoals of fish, crabs,
-and oysters, and in vast flocks of water-fowl. But we
-ever overlook and leave the near to seek the far-off goal.)</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Beyond the mouth of the river, however, and up the
-coast of the bay, the islands are sandy and poor—nearly
-unproductive, or entirely barren.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Anyone who will turn to the map of Maryland will
-see that the Chesapeake Bay is interspersed with numerous
-islands of all sizes, from the largest—Kent Island—to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_vii'>vii</span>the smallest, nameless sand bank; that the eastern and
-western shores of Maryland are beautifully diversified
-with every modification of land and water scenery; that
-the inlets and islands of the coast form the most charming
-features of the landscape.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>Some distance above Point Lookout, at the mouth of
-the Potomac River, up the western shore of Maryland,
-there is a beautiful inlet, or small bay, making up about
-three miles into the land, called St. Clara’s Bay by one
-of the early Roman Catholic settlers. At the headwaters
-of this inlet is a small, very old hamlet, the site of one
-of the first settlements of the State, intended once, no
-doubt, for a great colonial seaport, and christened by
-the same sponsor St. Clarasville. With its fine harbor
-and great commercial facilities, whatever could have arrested
-its growth and withered it in its prime I do not
-know—possibly the very abundance of other good harbors
-on the coast—probably the frequent and violent
-dissensions between the pre-emption freebooters of the
-Bay Isles and the legal proprietors and settlers of the
-mainland. Lying two miles off the mouth of this inlet,
-and stretching across in front of it, is an oblong, sandy,
-and nearly barren island—rich, however, in fish, crabs,
-oysters, and water-fowl, and upon this account a great
-resort in early colonial times, and baptized by the same
-devout claimant of the bay and town St. Clara’s Isle, in
-honor of his patron saint.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But there was another claimant of the island, inlet, and
-township; a freebooter, who, believing in and acknowledging
-no greater personage than himself, had named
-the isle, the bay, and town also, when it was laid out,
-after himself. So they were first and most frequently
-called Hutton’s Island, Bay, and Town.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter ph1'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<div>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_1'>1</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER I.<br> <span class='large'>MOUNT CALM.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A proud, aristocratic hall it seems,</div>
- <div class='line'>Not courting, but discouraging approach.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Moultrie.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Let me introduce you to Mount Calm, the seat of
-General Aaron Garnet. Even from the bay you can see
-the mansion house, with its broad white front, as it
-crowns the highest of a distant range of hills. After passing
-through the village of Hutton, and going up and
-down the grassy hills that rise one above the other beyond
-it, you enter a deep hollow, thickly grown with
-woods, and passing through it, begin to ascend by a
-heavily shaded forest road, the last and highest hill of
-the range—Mount Calm. When about halfway up this
-hill you come to the brick walls inclosing the private
-grounds, and passing through the porter’s gate you
-enter a heavily-shaded carriage drive, that, sweeping
-around in an ascending half-circle, brings you up before
-the mansion house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Behind the house was a green slope and a thick grove
-that concealed from view the extensive outbuildings connected
-with the establishment. Extensive fields of corn,
-wheat, rye, oats, tobacco, etc., spread all over the undulatory
-land. The estate itself comprised several thousands
-of the best acres in old St. Mary’s County, and there
-were several hundred of them under the best cultivation
-and in the richest state of productiveness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This princely estate had remained in the possession of
-the Chesters since the first settlement of the county, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_2'>2</span>unlike the usual fate of old Maryland plantations, the
-property had not only been carefully preserved, but had
-steadily increased in value up to the time of the Revolution,
-when it had reached its highest importance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The estate was then in the hands of Charles Chester,
-Esq., Justice of the Peace and Associate Judge of the
-Provincial Court. His family consisted of a wife, two
-sons, and a daughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the breaking out of the Revolution Judge Chester
-and his two stalwart boys took the field among the first,
-and at the triumphant close of the war Colonel Chester
-set out on his return home with a pair of epaulettes,
-minus his pair of goodly sons, who were left not only
-dead upon the field of glory, but buried with all the
-honors of victorious war upon the immortal plains of
-Yorktown. And thus it happened that the heirship of the
-heavy estate, with all its burden of onerous responsibilities,
-fell upon the frail shoulders of young Alice Chester—a
-fair-skinned, golden-haired, blue-eyed girl of seventeen,
-the fairest, gentlest, and most fragile being that ever
-owed life to a stern and warlike sire. Alice, living at
-home with her simple-hearted, domestic mother, had
-been very little noticed by her father, or even by anyone
-else, until, by the death of his sons, she became the sole
-heiress of the vast estate, which was to prove the greatest
-misfortune of her life.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The long, long bleak winters were passed in almost
-inviolable seclusion, cheered only by an occasional letter
-from the army, and an occasional ride to church, if the
-road happened to be passable, which was seldom the case.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>This life lasted until Alice was fifteen years of age,
-when an event occurred such as would make no stir at
-all in a city, but which will throw a quiet country neighborhood
-into convulsions, namely, a change of ministry—not
-national, but parochial! The old parson, compelled
-by declining health, had departed to take charge of a
-congregation farther south, and a young parson had
-come in his stead. The Rev. Milton Sinclair was handsome,
-graceful, and accomplished.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>By the invitation of Mrs. Chester the young minister
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_3'>3</span>became the temporary inmate of Mount Calm, and very
-much he entertained and instructed, cheered and sustained
-the secluded mother and daughter. He became
-the almoner of the lady to the poor around. He directed
-and superintended the reading of Alice; introducing
-gradually, as her opening mind could bear, all
-the beauties and glories of science, history, philosophy,
-and poetry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the days fled, Alice and Milton Sinclair grew to
-love each other, and one day the minister told his great
-love and was made happy by Alice confessing that she
-returned his affection. Mrs. Chester, too, approved of
-the match, and she set her maids to work carding, spinning,
-knitting, weaving, and sewing, that Alice might
-have a full supply of every description of household
-cloth and linen. The bride’s trousseau was the last
-thing thought of, and there was time enough, she
-thought, for that when her father should arrive. She did
-not know when that would be, but it was well to have
-everything that took a great deal of time and labor, such
-as the house and furniture and the household stuff, ready—as
-for the wedding dresses and other minor preparations,
-of course they must be deferred until Colonel
-Chester’s arrival, and then they could be speedily got up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was in the midst of this domestic happiness, this
-great tense joy and hope, that the thunderbolt fell!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER II.<br> <span class='large'>THE NEW SUITOR.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>How! Will she none? Doth she not give us thanks?</div>
- <div class='line'>Is she not proud? Doth she not count her blessed,</div>
- <div class='line'>Unworthy as she is, that we have wrought</div>
- <div class='line'>So worthy a gentleman to be her bridegroom?</div>
- <div class='line in38'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>First came the news of the glorious victory of Yorktown—the
-final and signal triumph of the American
-arms. There were no railroads and telegraphic wires in
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_4'>4</span>those days, and very few newspapers. The report, the
-re-echo of this splendid victory, rolled on toward their
-quiet neighborhood like a storm; in clouds of doubt, in
-thunder and lightning of astonishment, joy, and mad triumph.
-The most delirious rejoicing convulsed the whole
-village and neighborhood for days, before any newspaper
-arrived with an account of the battle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the same mail that brought the newspaper,
-with a long account of the battle, headed in great capital
-letters line below line, brought also a letter sealed
-with black that sped like a bullet through the foreboding
-heart of Mrs. Chester, a letter from Colonel Chester, announcing
-the glorious death of his two brave sons upon
-the field of victory.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Chester was overwhelmed with grief by the twofold
-bereavement, the fall of both her gallant sons, of
-whom she was as proud as fond.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She did not dream of the calamity, worse than death,
-that had befallen Alice, in the disguise of a princely inheritance,
-destined to darken her whole life with sorrow,
-while it mocked her in the face of the world with
-its unreal light and splendor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But there was one who was not so forgetful—Colonel
-Chester. He was still with the army, but another letter
-was received from him, announcing his speedy return
-home, accompanied by his friend and companion in
-arms, General Garnet, a young officer, who, though but
-thirty years of age, had risen to the highest rank in the
-army, and won an immortal fame.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Colonel Chester came at length, accompanied by General
-Garnet. He met Alice with great empressement—for
-it was scarcely great affection—praised her growth
-and her beauty, introduced General Garnet, and, excusing
-himself for a few moments, passed to the sick-chamber
-of his wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Left alone with her guest Alice examined him shyly,
-with the curiosity of a woman and the bashfulness of a
-country girl. General Garnet was what young ladies call
-a fine, military-looking man. He certainly had a fine,
-martial figure and bearing, or that which is our ideal of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_5'>5</span>it—a tall and elegantly proportioned figure, a calm,
-majestic carriage, yet withal suggestive of great reposing
-strength and fire. His voice was perfect harmony
-itself. His manner was dignified and imposing, or graceful,
-earnest, and seductive. Yet, sometimes, one in a sudden,
-vague astonishment, would feel that he was a man
-who could unite the utmost inflexibility, and even cruelty
-of purpose, with the most graceful and gracious urbanity
-of manner. With all his marvelous powers of fascination
-he was a man to darken, chill, repel a bright-spirited,
-warm-souled, pure-hearted girl like Alice. Yet
-she did the honors of her father’s house to her father’s
-guest until that guest merged into the lover, and then
-Alice felt and betrayed the utmost soul-sickened repugnance
-to him and his suit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was now that the object of Colonel Chester in inviting
-this distinguished visitor to Mount Calm became
-evident—that of bestowing the hand of his daughter and
-heiress upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After a conversation with General Garnet he sent for
-Alice, and, without any preface at all, bade her make
-up her mind to a speedy marriage with the husband he
-had chosen for her, his distinguished and dear friend,
-General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice passed from the room, mechanically pressing her
-hands to her temples, trying to awake as from a heart-sickening
-dream. And so she passed to her now frequent
-post of duty, her declining mother’s darkened
-room and sick-bed. The senses, or the intuitions, or the
-instincts of those on the confines of the unseen world are
-sometimes preternaturally acute. There was that in the
-falling footstep, in the very form and bearing, of Alice, as
-she glided through the shadows of that dark room, that
-revealed to the mother the existence of some heavy cloud
-teeming with sorrow, that was ready to burst upon the
-devoted head of her child.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She called Alice to her bedside, took her hand in her
-gentle grasp, looked with wondering sadness into her
-eyes—her eyes set in the stare of blank stupor—and murmured
-tenderly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_6'>6</span>“What is the matter, Alice? Tell your mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her mother’s loving voice and touch unsealed the
-spellbound founts of tears and speech.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, mother! mother! I am ruined! ruined!” she
-wildly gasped, and, sinking down upon the floor,
-dropped her head upon the bed with hysterical sobs and
-gasps, and inarticulate wailings.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her mother laid her gentle hand upon her child’s
-burning and throbbing head, and raised her tender eyes
-in silent prayer for her, while this storm raged, and until
-it passed, and Alice, exhausted, but calm, was able to
-rise, sit by her side, and while she held her hand, tell her
-what had happened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will speak to him, Alice,” she then said. “I will
-tell him how you and Sinclair love each other—as you
-could not tell him, my child. I will show him how vain—oh,
-how vain! are wealth, and rank, and honor, and
-glory, in the hour of grief, by the bed of death, in the
-presence of God! how love, and truth, and faith are all
-in all! Yes! and I will make him feel it, too. And,
-though he should not realize it as I do, yet he will never
-refuse me a request now!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the next morning, directly after breakfast, Colonel
-Chester received a message from his wife, requesting
-him to come to her room for a few minutes, if convenient,
-as she wished to speak with him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Colonel Chester went. What passed at that interview
-no one knew more than what might be guessed from
-what followed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Colonel Chester came out of the room, banging the
-door after him, with a half-uttered imprecation upon
-“sickly fancies,” “irritable nerves,” and “foolish
-women.” But immediately after this interview Mrs.
-Chester became much worse; her fever rose to delirium,
-and she was alarmingly ill for several days. Milton Sinclair
-heard of her state, and, little suspecting the cause,
-came to see her. He was met by Colonel Chester, who
-informed him that his wife was too ill to receive even
-her pastor, and requested him to walk into the library.
-There Colonel Chester informed him that circumstances
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_7'>7</span>had occurred which made it his painful duty to beg that
-Mr. Sinclair would temporarily suspend his visits to
-Mount Calm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice!” exclaimed the young man. That name contained
-everything, and rendered a full explanation indispensable.
-It was given.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Deadly pale, Sinclair walked up and down the floor,
-pressing his head tightly between his two palms and
-groaning—groaning the name, the prayer, that in the
-bitterest agony of the soul starts to every lip:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My God! oh, my God! have pity on me! God have
-mercy on me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The heart-broken tone of these words touched even
-that hard man of the world, Colonel Chester.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, come, Sinclair; you must have been prepared
-for this for some months past. I did not violently and
-at once separate you from Alice when I first came home,
-although you must have known that all our plans were
-changed. I gave you time to wean yourself gradually
-off. In other circumstances, indeed, I should have felt
-myself most honored, most happy in the alliance; but we
-do not control our own destinies. Good-day, Sinclair.
-You will forget Alice.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER III.<br> <span class='large'>THE FATHER’S TYRANNY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>An thou be mine, I’ll give thee to my friend!</div>
- <div class='line'>An thou be not, hang, beg, starve, die i’ the streets,</div>
- <div class='line'>Nor what is mine shall ever do thee good,</div>
- <div class='line'>Trust to it, bethink you! I’ll not be forsworn!</div>
- <div class='line in41'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sinclair! Sinclair! Where in the world was he?
-Where had he been so many days? Why did he not
-come? Alice could have given the world to have seen
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She did not know that he had been forbidden the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_8'>8</span>house. She was totally ignorant of everything that had
-passed between her father and himself. She walked
-wildly about the house and grounds, instinctively avoiding
-her feeble mother’s room, lest in her present distracted
-state she should kill her with agitation; afraid of
-meeting her father, and doubly afraid of encountering
-General Garnet, and wishing and praying—oh! praying,
-as if for dear life, that she might meet Sinclair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>One afternoon she wrote a wild letter to him, illegible
-and unintelligible every way except in this—that he
-must “come to Mount Calm immediately.” She sent
-the letter off, and walked up and down her chamber, trying
-to get calm enough to go and see her mother. While
-thus employed a message reached her from her mother,
-desiring her to come to her room. Alice went immediately.
-As she entered the dark chamber Mrs. Chester
-called her up to the side of her bed; she saw that her
-mother’s countenance had changed fearfully since the
-morning, and now a new terror and remorse seized her
-heart; she was about to speak, when Mrs. Chester said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice, you look frightfully pale and haggard, my
-dear child. Alice, we were foiled this morning. Your
-father has been here, and told me all about it—the projected
-marriage in a week, and all; but do not fear, my
-dear child, you shall not be sacrificed; it is not right. I
-have sent a message to Mr. Sinclair to come here this
-evening. He has not been here for some time, and when
-he comes I must have a talk with him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this moment a servant entered the chamber, to
-whom Mrs. Chester turned, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Milly, mix a teaspoonful of ether with a little water,
-and hand it to Miss Alice. She is not well. You must
-take it, Alice, dear; you are really very ill, and it will
-compose your nerves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Sinclair is downstairs, madam, and wants to
-know if he may come up,” said the girl, as she handed
-the glass to Alice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice dropped the glass, untasted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is General Garnet?” said Mrs. Chester.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the library, writing, madam.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_9'>9</span>“Where is Colonel Chester?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gone out riding, madam.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thank Heaven! Yes, request Mr. Sinclair to come
-up, Milly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After the departure of the girl the mother and daughter
-remained in silent expectation. At last the light,
-quick footstep of Sinclair was heard upon the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go and meet him, Alice, my darling,” said the
-mother, with a smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice arose, and as he opened the door and advanced
-into the room, started forward and threw herself weeping
-into his arms. What could he do but press her to his
-bosom? Then he led her back to her mother’s bedside—stooped
-over the sick lady, taking her hand, and inquiring
-tenderly, respectfully, after her health of body and
-soul. While she was making her gentle, patient reply,
-the attention of all three was arrested by the noise of
-heavy, hurried footsteps hastening up the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is your father, Alice! Oh, God, save us!” exclaimed
-Mrs. Chester, just as Colonel Chester, with one
-violent kick of his boot, burst open the door, and, purple
-and convulsed with rage, stood among them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Who admitted this man? Who sent for him?” he
-demanded, in a furious voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I did. I sent for him,” said the mother, pale with
-fear and feebleness, but wishing to shield her daughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I did! I wrote him a note,” murmured the daughter,
-in a dying voice, sick with terror, but wishing to save her
-mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Traitors! Shameless household traitors! so there are
-a pair of you! a desirable wife and daughter! a very
-suitable mother and daughter! But I’ll find a way to
-punish you both. I’ll——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here he was interrupted by Sinclair, who, turning to
-him, said, in a composed but stern voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Colonel Chester, visit your anger and reproaches
-upon me, who knew of your prohibition, not upon those
-who possibly knew nothing about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have the insolence to tell me, sir, to remind me,
-that you knew of my prohibition to cross my threshold!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_10'>10</span>while standing here in my house, in the very heart of
-my house, my wife’s bedchamber!” exclaimed Colonel
-Chester furiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In your wife’s sick-chamber, sir, where, as a Christian
-minister, it is my bounden duty sometimes to come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And, d—— you, from whence I’ll put you out!”
-exclaimed the infuriated man.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will go. Good-evening, Mrs. Chester; good-evening,
-Alice. I leave you in the care of Heaven,” said
-Sinclair, wishing, by all means, to avoid the disgrace of
-a struggle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go! what, go quietly like an honored guest dismissed?
-No, d—— you, you came surreptitiously, and
-you shall depart involuntarily. No, d—— you, I will
-put you out!” vociferated the maniac, in an ungovernable
-fury, springing upon Sinclair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A violent struggle ensued. Sinclair acted entirely
-upon the defensive, saying, continually, as he could
-make himself heard:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Colonel Chester, let me go! I will leave quietly; I
-would have done so at first.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And now the deathly grip and struggle went on in
-silence, interrupted only by the short, curt, hissing exclamations
-of the enraged man through his now whitened
-lip and clenched teeth. Sinclair was half the age
-and double the weight and strength of his opponent, and
-could easily have mastered him, but did not want the
-odium of doing it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>While wrestling desperately on the defensive, he expostulated
-once more:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Colonel Chester—not for my sake, but for your own—for
-your family’s, for honor’s sake, let me depart in
-peace!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, villain!” exclaimed the madman, finding his
-strength failing, and suddenly drawing a pistol, he
-pointed it at Sinclair’s temple and fired. Sinclair suddenly
-started, and the bullet went through the window,
-shattering the glass. Chester now raised the spent pistol
-and aimed with it a violent blow upon Sinclair’s head.
-Sinclair quickly caught his descending hand, when——</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_11'>11</span>A power more awful than the judge’s baton, the monarch’s
-scepter, or the priest’s elevated crucifix arrested
-the combat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Death stood in their presence! A cry of mortal anguish
-from Alice caused both to turn and look—both to
-drop their hold—and stand like conscience-stricken
-culprits!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There lay Mrs. Chester, the gentle, patient, long-suffering
-woman, stricken down, dying in her daughter’s
-arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Colonel Chester came to his senses at once, feeling all
-the horror and remorse of a murderer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Sinclair repented from his soul that he had not
-permitted himself to be expelled from the house with
-every species of ignominy rather than to have seen this.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That ashen brow—those fixed eyes—that silent tongue,
-and quick, gasping breath! that face of the dying! it
-would never depart from his memory. Oh! any personal
-indignity rather than this memory! if he could but save
-her! but she was beyond all help now, for—even as full
-of sorrow and remorse he gazed—with a long, deep sigh,
-as for the pilgrims she left behind on earth, her spirit
-passed to God.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sinclair bore Alice, fainting, from the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Colonel Chester fell down on his knees, dropping his
-head upon the bed, and throwing his arms over his dead
-wife in a paroxysm of remorse and despair, ungovernable
-as his rage had been, and, alas! nearly as transient!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_12'>12</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER IV.<br> <span class='large'>THE SUBJECTION OF ALICE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh! bid me leap, rather than marry Paris,</div>
- <div class='line'>From off the battlements of yonder tower.</div>
- <div class='line in36'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Now see that noble and most sovereign reason</div>
- <div class='line'>Like sweet bells jangled out of tune and harsh!</div>
- <div class='line'>That unmatched form and feature of blown youth</div>
- <div class='line'>Blasted with ecstasy!</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Ibid.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>After this terrible family storm, in which poor Mrs.
-Chester’s vital powers had suddenly failed, the peace
-stern death enforces reigned through the house. Alice,
-her heart and brain overturned by endurance, lay exhausted,
-almost insensible, upon her bed within her
-chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet had taken himself off to the village
-tavern, whence he had been invited to pass a week or
-two, at Point Yocomoco, the seat of Judge Wylie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mr. Sinclair, in the disinterested kindness of his heart,
-remained at the house, superintending and directing
-everything, unquestioned by Colonel Chester, who, when
-he met, recognized him with a sigh or a groan. He remained
-until the funeral was over, and the house restored
-to its former order, and departed without seeing
-Alice, who, still prostrated, had not left her room. And
-after this, as Colonel Chester had not revoked his prohibition,
-he came to the house no more.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As days glided into weeks Alice recovered a portion of
-her strength, left the chamber, and mournfully went
-about her customary occupations.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Poor Alice! her spirit was very willing, but her nerves
-were very weak. So it was with a pang of fear that
-Alice heard her father at the breakfast table one morning
-announce the expected arrival of General Garnet
-that evening. Yes, Colonel Chester, thinking that now
-perhaps sufficient time had elapsed since her mother’s
-death—and sufficient strength and cheerfulness had returned
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_13'>13</span>to his daughter—had recalled her suitor. Alice
-was trembling violently—she dared not look up. She
-had been taught to love and venerate her father above all
-earthly beings, and next to God. She loved and venerated
-him still, and kept her thoughts reverently away
-from investigating his motive and judging his conduct.
-She had been taught to bow with implicit and reverential
-obedience to his will. To oppose him had not been easy
-in her thought—it was terrible in practice. It would
-have been terrible to her had her father been a man of
-moderate temper and self-control; but he was a man of
-violent and ungovernable passion; and Alice was in an
-agony of terror when she faltered out:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, if General Garnet comes here only as your
-guest, I will welcome him with every possible attention;
-I will try to make him feel at home, and endeavor to
-render his sojourn with us in every other way agreeable;
-but if he comes here as my suitor——” Here her voice
-died away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It is impossible to convey the short, curt, galvanic
-strength and abruptness with which he jerked, as it
-were, this syllable out, and brought Alice up. It was like
-throwing the lasso suddenly around her neck, and jerking
-her up face to face with him. And such a face! It
-is impossible to paint the grim determination of the
-locked jaws, armed with the wiry stubble beard, bristled
-up with fierceness, and the ferocity of the darkly-gathered
-frown that screwed his glance upon her pallid
-face, that screwed it into her very brain. Alice turned
-deadly sick, her eyes filmed over, and she sank back in
-her chair. She did not faint or lose consciousness, for
-the next instant she felt her father’s iron hand upon her
-fragile shoulder, and her father’s awful voice in that low,
-deep, suppressed tone of fierce, immutable determination,
-saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Chester, it is not as your suitor, but as your
-husband, that General Garnet will come this evening. I
-command you to receive him as such.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And he left her.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_14'>14</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER V.<br> <span class='large'>THE HUSBAND’S AUTHORITY.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Yet haply there will come a weary day,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>When overtasked at length,</div>
- <div class='line'>Both Love and Hope beneath the weight give way;</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Then with a statue’s smile, a statue’s strength,</div>
- <div class='line'>Stands the mute sister, Patience, nothing loth,</div>
- <div class='line'>And both supporting does the work of both.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Coleridge.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Let us hasten over the next few hideous weeks.
-Alice had a serious illness, from which she recovered
-slowly; her spirit utterly broken; her heart utterly
-crushed; her very brain clouded. Her whole being
-bowed down by the storm of sorrow, yet with no one to
-support, comfort, sympathize with her. Sinclair, that
-only living being who could have saved her, was absent,
-forbidden to approach her. She was left alone, almost
-imbecile, and so quite defenseless in the terrible power
-of her father.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And what words are these to write! and what a position
-was hers when that divinely appointed parental authority—that
-protective and beneficent power—was perverted
-by pride, ambition, and selfishness into an engine
-of mighty torture, inflicting a fatal and life long calamity!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yet the father verily believed that he was disinterestedly
-serving his daughter’s best interests. There is
-no more profoundly mournful illustration of the ruined
-archangel than that of any perverted love.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With the support of her feeble mother, had she lived—with
-the support of Sinclair, had his piety been less
-æscetic, more hopeful—Alice might have successfully resisted
-the fate impending over her; but she was alone,
-reduced by sorrow and illness to a state of imbecility of
-mind and body, and she succumbed to her destiny.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So, in just three months from the death of her mother
-Alice Chester, pallid, cold, nearly lifeless, whiter than the
-pearls in her pale hair, stood in bridal array before God’s
-holy altar, to vow in the hearing of men and angels to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_15'>15</span>love and honor one whom she found it difficult not to
-hate and despise.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Immediately after the marriage they set out upon a
-bridal tour through the North. They were absent all
-summer. Early in autumn they returned to Mount
-Calm, where, at the earnest desire of Colonel Chester,
-they took up their residence. Alice would have preferred
-it otherwise.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After their marriage, and during their long and varied
-bridal tour, she had, as it were, lost her identity, seeming
-to herself to be someone else. The varied scenes of her
-journey—the stage-offices, turnpike roads, country taverns,
-great cities with their masses of brick and mortar,
-public edifices, forests of shipping, gay shops, theaters,
-concerts, balls, illuminations, dancings, splendid attire,
-stage pageantry, the ranting and the after silence, land
-journeys, water journeys—all haunted by one painful
-presence—had passed before her like a phantasmagoria;
-like a continuation of her brain fever, with its nervous
-delirium and grotesque or hideous visions and hallucinations.
-So all had seemed to her, while she seemed to all
-a pale, pretty, silent girl.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There is a point of suffering beyond which sorrow destroys
-itself—is not felt as real—just as there is a crisis
-at which physical agony superinduces insensibility. So
-it had been with Alice, until she re-entered her native
-State, and memory and association were at work again,</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in6'>“And the accustomed train</div>
- <div class='line'>Of things grew round her brain again”;</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>then it was with the shrinking dread with which a
-burned child would approach fire that Alice drew near
-her home. She would have preferred to remain away
-for ever, amid the kaleidoscopic changes of her new,
-wandering, unreal life, rather than have awakened from
-the strange, painful, but very vague dream; rather than
-have consciousness forced upon her by the dear, old familiar
-scenes and associations of her home—her once
-peaceful, hopeful, happy home, as by</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Some monstrous torture-engine’s whole</div>
- <div class='line'>Strength.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_16'>16</span>The day of their arrival at home a large company had
-been invited to meet them at dinner. The days that followed
-were filled up with dinner parties. At length,
-late in the fall, they were quietly settled, and the monotonous
-routine of daily country life commenced. One
-thing Alice dreaded and avoided—appearing at church
-again under her new position and name. But Sinclair
-had accepted a “call” to a church in the West, which
-opened to him a new field of labor and usefulness. His
-departure followed; and this was a great relief to Alice,
-who, with the “sigh of a great deliverance, tried to leave
-the past with all its gloom and terror,” and turn to the
-future with some hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Two events of great domestic importance occurred in
-the second year of their marriage; one was the death of
-Colonel Chester, who died, as all their neighbors said,
-of nothing more than his diabolical temper; as their
-physician said, of congestion of the brain, brought on by
-excitement. And what do you think was the cause of
-this fatal excitement? That the child of Alice happened
-to be a girl instead of a boy, which he had set his heart
-upon.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VI.<br> <span class='large'>COUNTRY NEIGHBORS.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Blest those abodes where want and pain repair</div>
- <div class='line'>And every stranger finds a ready chair;</div>
- <div class='line'>Blest be those feasts, with joyous plenty crowned,</div>
- <div class='line'>Where all the blooming family around,</div>
- <div class='line'>Laugh at the jests or pranks that never fail,</div>
- <div class='line'>Or sigh with pity at some mournful tale,</div>
- <div class='line'>Or press the weary traveler to his food,</div>
- <div class='line'>And feel the luxury of doing good.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Goldsmith.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Alice was almost in solitary confinement in the cold,
-stern prison of her home, for General Garnet discouraged
-association with old friends, who at least suggested
-the past, if they did not openly refer to it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_17'>17</span>But there was one family, and that family the very
-warmest and most steadfast among the few friends of
-Sinclair, from whom General Garnet had not the will to
-separate his young wife—the Wylies of Yocomoco, or
-Point Pleasant, as their seat was more frequently called
-by their delighted visitors. Who, indeed, had the will
-or the power to do aught to annoy the delightful host
-of Point Pleasant?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Who in all the South has not heard of Judge Jacky
-Wylie, still called judge because he had once sat upon
-the bench, though not finding the seat comfortable, he
-had abandoned it, affirming that he had “not the heart”
-for the business? That was a favorite phrase of the
-judge, who was always asserting that he “hadn’t the
-heart,” when everyone knew that he had the largest
-heart in all old Maryland.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And there was his mother, a gentlewoman of the old
-school, without any state about her, a Lady Bountiful of
-the neighborhood, without any pretensions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Who did not know and love old Mrs. Wylie?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>How she was adored by the large, miscellaneous family
-Jack had gathered together! To be sure, all Jacky’s
-unprovided nieces and nephews were her grandchildren,
-and it was partly for love of her, to please her, to let
-her gather all her second brood under her wing, that her
-son Jacky collected them. Yes, she was adored by all
-that household of laughing girls and roystering boys,
-the tide of whose love and fondness for her was so great
-that it sometimes overflowed the barriers of veneration—just
-as Jacky’s confidence in God sometimes swamped
-his reverence!—but most of all was she idolized by the
-adopted son of Judge Jacky, Ulysses Roebuck.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Next to his grandmother Ulysses loved his smallest
-cousin, little Ambrosia, the only child of Judge Jacky,
-and the little goddess of the whole household of
-grown-up and growing young men and maidens. Little
-Ambrosia, named after her Uncle Ambrose, who had
-been the elder and only brother of Jacky, and the favorite
-of his mother, but who had died in youth. And
-it was to please his mother that Jacky, having no son,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_18'>18</span>called his little daughter after his brother. And it was
-a lovely name, too, he thought—a lovely, tempting, caressable
-name! really better than one could have hoped;
-for Ambrose was old-fashioned and ugly—low be it
-spoken.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I think the negroes must have conceived it to be a
-“tempting” name, too; for, with their inevitable fault of
-corrupting language, they called the little seraph, with
-her charming face and sunny hair, “Miss Ambush.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And “Marse Useless” and “Miss Ambush” were the
-prime favorites of the plantation, notwithstanding, or
-perhaps, because of, the dare-devil, don’t care-ishness of
-the former.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was with this family, then, that General and Mrs.
-Garnet interchanged frequent visits. Often the old lady,
-Mrs. Wylie, accompanied by little Ambrosia and a waiting-maid,
-would drive up to Mount Calm in their old-fashioned
-phaeton, to spend the day; or else two or three
-of the girls and young men would ride up to pass an
-evening, and return by starlight. And not unfrequently
-young Mrs. Garnet would go down with her little Alice
-and pass a day and night at Point Pleasant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was yet another family with whom the Garnets
-were upon terms of close intimacy and friendship—their
-next neighbors, the Hardcastles of Hemlock Hollow,
-whose estate joined Mount Calm, lying immediately behind
-and below it, and extending further inland. The
-family at the Hollow consisted of Lionel Hardcastle,
-High Sheriff of the State; his only son, Lionel, Jr., a
-youth of fifteen, and his nephew, Magnus, a boy of ten
-years old.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel Hardcastle was the only man in the county
-with whom General Garnet could be said to be on terms
-of close intimacy. Their estates, as I said, joined; their
-rank in life was upon a par, and their country interests
-almost identical. They were also of the same party in
-politics, of the same denomination in religion, and of
-like opinion upon all common and local questions; so
-that there was very little to differ about, while there was
-a great deal to attract them to each other in their very
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_19'>19</span>opposite temperaments and characters, experiences, and
-mental acquisitions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet had always been strongly attached to the
-family at the Hollow, and though there was no lady at
-the head of the establishment to receive her, she continued
-to accept the invitations to dinner extended to
-General Garnet and herself, and always accompanied
-him thither.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Mrs. Garnet had her favorite among the Hardcastles—this
-was young Magnus Hardcastle, the nephew,
-a fine, handsome, spirited, and generous boy, devotedly
-fond of his beautiful neighbor, and her sweet little girl.
-Very often would Mrs. Garnet take Magnus home with
-her to spend several days or weeks at Mount Calm. And
-when he was not staying there, still every day would
-the boy find his way to Mount Calm, with some little
-childish love-offering to its sweet mistress. In spring it
-would be a bunch of wood violets, or wild sweet-briar
-roses, gathered in the thicket, and of which Alice was
-very fond; in summer, a little flag-basket of wild strawberries
-or raspberries, which Alice loved better than hothouse
-or garden fruit; in autumn, a hat full of chestnuts
-and chinkapins, gathered in the forest, and hulled by
-himself; even in winter the little fellow might be seen
-trudging on, knee-deep in snow, with a bunch of snow-birds
-which he had caught in his trap for pretty Cousin
-Alice, as he called Mrs. Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very bright would grow Mrs. Garnet’s pleasant chamber
-when Magnus, with his sunny smile, would break in
-upon the pensive lady and the little child, and light up
-all the room with his gladness. Very often the lady
-would open her arms to receive the joyous boy, and fold
-him to her bosom in a most loving clasp, grateful for
-the new life and joy he ever brought her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet loved her own beautiful and gentle child,
-but it was with a profound, earnest, almost mournful
-and foreboding love.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Magnus was a perpetual day-spring of gladness
-and delight to her. She could not look upon the boy
-without a thrill of sympathetic joy and hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_20'>20</span>And so the years had passed, and Alice grew happy
-in their flight, until the second trial of her life approached.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VII.<br> <span class='large'>HUTTON OF THE ISLES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in2'>Thou art as tall, as sinewy, and as strong,</div>
- <div class='line'>As earth’s first kings—the Argo’s gallant sailors—</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Heroes in history, and gods in song.</div>
- <div class='line in44'><i>—Halleck.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The Huttons, proprietors by pre-emption right of St.
-Clara’s town, bay, and isle for more than two hundred
-years, had settled among the islets of the bay many
-years previous to the date of that patent by which
-James I. granted the province of Maryland to George
-Calvert.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the commencement of the American Revolution a
-certain Captain Hugh Hutton, the then representative
-and head of the family, fired with an enthusiastic passion
-for liberty, or—fighting! sold a great portion of his patrimony,
-and purchased, fitted out, and manned a privateer,
-and sailed against the British flag.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He served gallantly and with various success during
-the whole period of the war.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the glorious close of the revolutionary struggle,
-ruined in fortune and riddled with wounds, Captain
-Hugh Hutton, the sailor-patriot and martyr, retired to
-the last foothold of his once kingly estate, to the little
-island of St. Clara’s, otherwise called Hutton’s Island—there
-to die in obscurity.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A few days previous to his death he called his only
-son, Hugh, to his bedside, and enjoined him never to
-demand—never even to accept compensation from Congress
-for his services and his losses during the war.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My fortune, my labor, my life-blood were not sold,
-but given to the cause of liberty and of my country,” he
-said, and these were the last words of the sailor-patriot.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_21'>21</span>Hugh Hutton, the son, and now the sole representative
-of the family, was at this time about eighteen years
-old. Having lost his mother at an early age he had
-been taken by his father as a companion in all his sea
-voyages.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He had sailed with him in his first privateering expedition
-against the British ships. At first as a childish
-and innocent spectator, afterward as a youthful and enthusiastic
-actor, he had figured in all the sea-fights in
-which his father’s ships had been engaged during the
-whole course of the war.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Thus all education, except that exclusively of the sailor
-and soldier, had been denied him. And thus Hugh Hutton,
-though tall, strong, handsome, and gallant, like all
-his race, was yet rude, unschooled, and unpolished.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He was faithful to the dying injunctions of his father.
-With many claims upon his country’s remembrance and
-gratitude he set forth none.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Loving the ocean with the passionate enthusiasm of all
-his father’s nature, he took to it as his natural element.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>First he engaged in the humble capacity of mate on
-board the <i>Little Agnes</i>, a small schooner plying between
-Hutton Town and Baltimore or Alexandria, as the
-freight or market demanded.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After serving many years in this situation, an unexpected
-turn in the wheel of fortune gave him the means
-of purchasing a larger vessel of his own, and of extending
-the area of his trade and the length of his voyages.
-This was the death of the old ship-owner and captain
-with whom he had sailed for many years, and who,
-dying, left him all his moderate possessions on condition
-of his marrying his only daughter, then a mere child
-of fifteen years of age, and constituted him her guardian
-until the marriage. The heart of the brave young sailor
-had seldom or never turned on love or marriage—it was
-not the nature of his free, wild, adventurous race. But
-when he had buried his old captain in Baltimore, where
-he died, and taken the command of the little schooner
-to return home to Hutton Town to find his little ward
-and wife—then—ah! then all sorts of strange, sweet, solemn,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_22'>22</span>and tender thoughts of beauty, and love, and
-home, and repose swarmed about his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was late in the afternoon of a glorious October day
-that the schooner, with her crew, put into the harbor
-of Hutton’s Inlet. In striking contrast to the warm-hued,
-deep-toned, refulgent natural scenery was the cold,
-white front of a mansion house standing upon a distant
-hill against the western horizon, and girt around with its
-old ancestral trees. This was Mount Calm, the seat of
-General Aaron Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The little schooner, with its white sail, glided swiftly
-and smoothly into the inlet, and cast anchor near the
-hamlet. Leaving the vessel in charge of the mate, Captain
-Hutton took a boat and went on shore. A crowd of
-villagers, as usual, thronged the beach, anxious to hear
-and to tell the news, and hearty greetings and noisy
-questions met him as he stepped upon the strand, such
-questions as:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How is the old captain? How is old Seabright?
-Why don’t he come ashore?—though there is evil news
-enough to meet him when he does come! Where is the
-jolly old dog, then? I guess he’s wanting up at home
-there?” were some of the storm of words hailed upon
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Friends,” replied the young sailor, shaking hands
-right and left as he pushed on, “our old captain is outward
-bound to that distant seaport whence no voyager
-ever returns. Permit me now to go on and break the
-sad news to his child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stay! Poor old man, when did he die? What ailed
-him?” exclaimed two or three of the most persevering,
-detaining him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To-night, friends—to-night at the ‘Neptune and
-Pan,’ I will tell you all about it. Permit me now to
-pass on and take his last letter to his daughter,” said the
-skipper good-humoredly, elbowing and pushing his
-way through the crowd.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stop! What’s to become of the young girl—pretty
-Agnes Seabright? How did he leave his bit of property?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_23'>23</span>“To-night, comrades—to-night, at the ‘Neptune and
-Pan,’ I will meet you. You shall have a supper, and
-drink to the memory of the outward-bound while I tell
-you all about it. I must go now!” impatiently exclaimed
-the captain, shaking off the pertinacious, and hastening
-away up the straggling street of the hamlet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh Hutton, like all his fathers, was far above the
-usual height of men—indeed, all his characteristics were
-not only marked, but extravagant; thus he was very
-tall, broad-shouldered and deep-chested, very muscular
-and thin, with a very dark complexion, with black hair
-and eyes, and very high, commanding features. Honest,
-brave, and frank even to rashness, generous even to
-extravagance, unselfish to the degree that the worldly-wise
-would call fatuity; yet he had never known a
-mother’s care, a sister’s companionship, and his indifference
-to home joys was as profound as his ignorance
-of love and of woman. Brought up on a ship’s deck by
-a rough sailor father, he learned to love the ocean and
-wild liberty with a profound and passionate enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But now he had a little girl left to him. He must
-make a home for her, take care of her, and make her
-happy if he could. This was a very novel duty indeed,
-and set him very keenly to thinking. The first natural,
-strange, sweet fancies that had been awakened by the
-idea of this lovely living legacy had fallen asleep again,
-and left him to his normal, free, glad, but hard, unloving
-nature. And now the thought of pretty Agnes Seabright
-fretted him like a fetter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He pursued his walk up through the village, up over
-the hills rising one beyond the other, until he came to
-the arm of the forest stretching around the base of that
-tallest distant hill, upon which stood the white-fronted
-mansion house of Mount Calm. He pursued his walk
-on through this arm of the forest, ascending the hill
-until he came to a small cleared space, in which was a
-little cot inclosed within a narrow garden and nearly
-hidden with trees. He opened the small gate and passed
-up the narrow walk between rows of marigolds, crimson,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_24'>24</span>white, and yellow chrysanthemums, scarlet verbena
-and other bright fall flowers, to the little door at which
-he rapped.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER VIII.<br> <span class='large'>THE BRIDE OF THE ISLES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A beautiful and happy girl,</div>
- <div class='line'>With step as soft as summer air,</div>
- <div class='line'>And fresh young lips and brow of pearl</div>
- <div class='line'>Shadowed by many a careless curl</div>
- <div class='line'>Of unconfined and flowing hair;</div>
- <div class='line'>A seeming child in everything,</div>
- <div class='line'>Save thoughtful brow and ripening charms,</div>
- <div class='line'>As nature wears the smile of spring,</div>
- <div class='line'>When sinking into summer’s arms.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Whittier.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The door was opened by a beautiful girl between
-fourteen and fifteen years old, not tall for her age, but
-full-formed and exquisitely proportioned. Her features
-were regular, with the “sweet, low brow,” and straight
-nose and arched lips of the Grecian profile; her eyes
-were of dark and melting hue, and her dark, rich auburn
-hair, parted over a forehead of snowy fairness, dropped
-in a mass of irregular ringlets down cheeks of carnation
-dye. The idea she inspired was that of a richness
-and fullness of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She stood within the door with a smile, awaiting the
-pleasure of the stranger, whose knock had summoned
-her. Captain Hugh had never seen Agnes Seabright
-before, so that he handed her the letter, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think that this is for you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She took it, and was about in her haste to break the
-seal and possess herself of the contents, when her eyes
-alighted on these words, written on the corner: “To
-make my little girl acquainted with Mr. Hutton, my
-mate and good friend.” Then she raised her eyes from
-the letter in her hand to Hugh Hutton’s face. Then
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_25'>25</span>she offered her hand shyly but kindly, while she said,
-simply:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How do you do, Mr. Hutton? Will you walk in and
-sit down, and excuse me while I read father’s letter? I
-have not heard from him for so long,” she said, as they
-walked into the parlor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He sat down in a large flag-bottomed chair and began
-to draw figures on the sanded floor with a stick, while
-she retired to an end window to read her father’s farewell
-letter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Captain Hutton watched her growing pale and paler
-as she read the letter to its close—as she folded it and
-advanced trembling to his side—as she laid her hand
-heavy from faintness on his arm, and speaking in thick,
-faltering tones, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tell me! I don’t—I’m afraid to understand what
-this means! But, my father—where is he gone?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh took both her hands in his, while the folded
-letter fell to the ground, looked full, looked kindly and
-gravely into her set and anxious eyes, and answered
-slowly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To heaven, Agnes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He would have held her hands longer, gazed longer
-upon that beautiful but troubled countenance, as to impart
-his own strength and composure, but she withdrew
-her fingers, sank down upon a chair, and covered her
-face with her hands. Soon between the fingers copious
-tears flowed. Then she arose and slowly left the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>What was to be done with this young and beautiful
-girl? To be sure, there was Hugh’s own home on Hutton
-Island, and there was Miss Josephine Cotter, Hugh’s
-maiden aunt; but the home was so poor, and Miss Joe—so
-queer! There was no knowing how Miss Joe might
-receive this poor child, so much in need of love and sympathy
-and care just now. After ruminating a long time
-he could think of no better plan than to at least consult
-Miss Joe upon the subject. So, his hours for the evening
-being all pre-engaged, he determined to go home
-early the next morning to break the news to his aunt.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_26'>26</span>“You must perceive, Aunt Joe, that I’m in a serious
-dilemma.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, here! take this reel and wind off this
-hank o’ yarn, while I foot my stocking. People needn’t
-be idle while they’re talking. More idle time is spent
-talking than any other way—as if people’s hands and
-tongues would not go at the same time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh obeyed with a good-humored laugh. At last:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, aunt?” he said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, Hugh! Now begin, and tell me all over, all
-about it, for I don’t know as I understand it—quite!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh recapitulated the history of Captain Seabright’s
-illness and death, his last will and testament, and finally
-the embarrassment in which he found Agnes Seabright
-and the relation in which he stood toward her, concluding
-with:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, what am I to do with her, aunt?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Marry her, Hugh. There is no home open to the
-orphan but this—nor this, unless you marry her first.
-You promised to wed her—you mean to wed her—why
-not do it at once? Will the marriage rite hurt or inconvenience
-you? Just let the marriage ceremony,
-which gives you a lawful claim to her, and which gives
-her the right to live here in this house as its mistress,
-and which will shut the mouths of the gossips for ever—be
-performed. ‘An ounce of preventive is better than
-a pound of cure,’ even in matters of gossip. Then bring
-her here to me. I’ll be a mother to the child. I’ll do
-the best I can for her. I’ll make her feel at home, and
-make her happy, even on this lonesome island.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next morning Hugh spent with Agnes Seabright.
-And after that he visited her every day, until the orphan’s
-tears were nearly dried and the maiden’s heart
-won.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For the reception of the bride Miss Joe was making
-every preparation which she could make without spending,
-or, as she called it, “heaving away of” money.
-Hugh schemed “to draw all points to one,” so that the
-marriage should take place upon the very day on which
-he was to sail for Baltimore preparatory to a longer trip
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_27'>27</span>to the West Indies. So, very early on a glorious autumn
-morning, while the rising sun was shining splendidly
-into the chapel windows, the marriage ceremony was
-quietly performed in the village church by the village
-parson.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Immediately after the ceremony was concluded Hugh
-tucked Agnes under one arm and Miss Joe under the
-other, and hurried down to the beach to get them on
-board the boat. He lifted Agnes into the skiff, handed
-Miss Joe after her, and, entering himself, laid his hand
-vigorously to the oar, and they sped down the stream
-and over the bright waters.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was a golden morning—grand, exultant, inspiring!
-Out before them rolled the boundless, the magnificent
-sea, with its myriads beyond myriads of waves, leaping,
-flashing, sparkling, scintillating like fluid emeralds in the
-dazzling splendor of the morning sun.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As he looked upon this scene Hugh’s eyes kindled,
-blazed. He did not see how sad was the brow of his
-young bride. No! the sea-king had already risen above
-the lover.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the island lay before them like a line of gold.
-He rowed swiftly for it. Soon they landed on the glittering
-strand. It was here they parted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And—be kind to my little Agnes!” he whispered, as
-he took leave of the old lady.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, Agnes,” he said, as he folded her to his bosom
-and pressed his first and farewell kiss upon her lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then he sprang into the boat and struck out to sea in
-the direction of his vessel, riding at anchor at about a
-half league’s distance, and which was to sail with the
-tide.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Agnes,” said Miss Joe, kindly taking her arm
-to draw it within her own.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not yet—not just yet! And, if you please, just let
-me watch until the boat gets out of sight.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Honey, it will put your eyes out to try to look upon
-this sparkling sea. Come; breakfast is waiting for us,
-I know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wish he had only stayed to breakfast with us! I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_28'>28</span>could have parted with him better then, if I had known
-he had eaten a good, warm breakfast.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The tide wouldn’t wait, you know, child, and he will
-get his breakfast on board his vessel. Why, what’s the
-matter, Agnes? I do believe you like him already! I
-do believe you’re sorry he’s gone!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He was my only friend! Since father died I was
-getting used to him,” said Agnes, bursting into tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I declare to man, if it is not wonderful! All
-them Huttons had never seemed to value woman’s love—have
-every one of them always got more than they
-deserved. Come, Agnes; the boat is quite out of sight
-now; come home and take a cup of coffee, child; it will
-cheer you up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think he is safe on board of his vessel yet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes, of course! Come, a cup of coffee is first-rate
-for trouble—’cause, you see, I’ve tried it! Come,
-honey!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Miss Joe drew Agnes’ arm within her own and
-walked up the isle toward the cottage.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER IX.<br> <span class='large'>HUTTON LODGE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A snug thatch house; before the door a green;</div>
- <div class='line'>Hens in the middling; ducks and geese are seen;</div>
- <div class='line'>On this side stands a coop; on that a pen;</div>
- <div class='line'>A wood-pile joins.</div>
- <div class='line in36'><i>—Allan Ramsay.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Hutton Lodge, on Hutton’s Island, had been built in
-the palmy days of the family’s prosperity.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was to this lodge that Captain Hugh Hutton of
-Revolutionary memory had retired with his sole female
-relative, his sister-in-law, Miss Josephine Cotter. And
-here, after his death, had the good woman continued to
-live.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And here was Hugh Hutton’s home whenever his ship
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_29'>29</span>would be in port. And finally, it was to this lodge, or
-cottage, as he called it, that Miss Joe conducted her
-young charge, the widowed bride.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The days were all occupied with work—yes, hard
-work. All day long the whir of the flying shuttle, and
-the dull, monotonous clap-clap of the warp-rammer
-would be heard, as Miss Joe sat at her loom; and the
-hum of the great spinning-wheel as Agnes stood and
-spun. Agnes had no motive under the sun for her industry
-but Hugh’s interest and Hugh’s pleasure. To
-become an efficient help-meet for Hugh—to be an industrious
-and saving little housekeeper for Hugh’s profit.
-And when Miss Joe praised her docility and perseverance,
-poor girl, she felt as though she were receiving
-Hugh’s approval. Sometimes she would be tempted to
-think a little hardly of his having gone to sea so instantly
-after their marriage, but when this thought took the hue
-of blame she banished it at once. But—did he love her
-at all, when he could leave her so soon, and with so little
-emotion? She feared not. Would he ever love her as
-she loved him—as she wished to be loved? She knew
-herself to be beautiful and attractive. She would have
-been an idiot not to have known it. In her deep and
-secret heart, while never acknowledging her purpose to
-herself, she sought to adapt herself to her circumstances
-and duties, and fit herself to win Hugh’s approval and
-love. Such were her silent dreams and reveries by day,
-while her spinning-wheel whirled under her hand, and
-the incessant clap-clap of Miss Joe’s loom sounded on
-her ear from the other corner. And so November and
-the greater part of December passed, when a letter came
-from Hugh announcing his speedy return home.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At length the important day dawned; it was Christmas
-Eve. The snow was two feet deep on the ground,
-and crusted with a coat of ice thick enough to bear the
-heaviest footsteps without breaking through. The day
-was cold, crisp, but clear.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was nearly sunset when Agnes went up into her
-room for the fiftieth time that day to look at the sea
-for a sail. It was very cold, and there was no fire, so
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_30'>30</span>Agnes thought just to give one sweeping glance over
-the waters and then retire, when her eye alighted on a
-distant sail making toward the isle. She wrapped a
-large woolen shawl around herself and sat down to
-watch what might come. The vessel bore down rapidly
-upon the island. When within about a quarter of a mile
-and bearing away westward toward the mainland, she
-lowered a boat with two rowers, who pulled swiftly toward
-the island landing. Agnes recognized Hugh and
-one of his crew. She started and ran downstairs, exclaiming
-as she burst into the kitchen:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh is coming! Hugh is almost here, aunt! I saw
-him in the boat!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is he?” said the old lady quietly. “Well, then,
-honey, do you take some water upstairs in—in—in my—no,
-your room for him to wash, while I put up the supper,
-so that he needn’t wait.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Agnes complied, arranging everything neatly and conveniently,
-and then returned to the kitchen to assist Miss
-Joe in arranging the supper on the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had scarcely completed their task before a sharp
-rap was instantly followed by the pushing open of the
-door, and Hugh entered alone, vigorously stamping the
-snow off his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe looked at the snow and her soiled floor, and
-sighed heavily and shook her head before she even advanced
-to welcome her nephew.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That greeting over, Hugh extended his hand to his
-young wife with a “How do you do, Agnes, my dear?”
-and threw himself heavily into a great armchair by the
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes! it seemed but too true! The little love Agnes
-had inspired him with during their short acquaintance
-had all evaporated during the not much longer sea
-voyage!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Would he go to his room and change his dress?
-Would he have water? Everything was in readiness for
-him upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No! he would stay here in this armchair by the chimney
-corner until they should sit down to tea. He did
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_31'>31</span>not wish to give anybody any trouble. He begged that
-they would take none. Besides, he was so glad to see
-his good aunt and little Agnes that he did not wish to
-lose a single moment of their company for the little time
-that he had to stay with them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Miss Joe invited him, as soon as he should feel
-himself sufficiently rested, to take off his overcoat and
-sit down to supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Hugh arose, and Agnes quietly took his hat and
-Miss Joe drew off his overcoat and inducted him into
-his seat at the table. The supper was a feast. Besides
-the usual indispensables of coffee, rich cream, fresh
-butter and light bread, there were oysters and wild duck,
-stewed fruit, cakes, and so on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh asked Agnes how she liked her island home.
-This was the first question he had put to her since his
-return.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Agnes answered that she liked it very well. Did she
-not find it lonesome?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, indeed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Poor Agnes in her desire to be agreeable was totally
-unconscious of her falsehood.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Hugh turned to Miss Joe, inquiring kindly after
-her health.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Oh, her health was always good, and had never been
-better than at this moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When tea was over and the table cleared away they
-all drew around the fire. Miss Joe, with her reel and
-yarn, and Agnes sitting idle in compliment of Hugh’s
-return.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh, on his part, began to tell them of his voyage,
-of his success, of his happiness to find himself at home
-again; of a certain large and well-filled box which he
-hoped might be acceptable to his aunt and Agnes.
-Whereupon Miss Joe began an exordium on the sin of
-“heaving away” money, which was gently cut short by
-Hugh, who, rising up, announced that he really ought to
-have been back to his vessel an hour before, and that
-he must now take leave of them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When shall we see you again?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_32'>32</span>“To-morrow, about noon.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What! not before?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; I have to go to Huttontown.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, you’ll stay when you do come?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid I cannot promise you, indeed, aunt; but,
-at all events, I will see you every day, and make it a
-point to spend the whole of Christmas Day with you.
-Good-night, aunt! Good-night, Agnes, my dear!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A week passed, during which Hugh was for the most
-part at the cottage.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>New Year’s Day dawned. It was the last day he had
-to stay at home. They spent this holiday very much as
-they had spent Christmas Day—going to church at Huttontown
-in the forenoon and returning to the isle to dinner.
-After dinner Hugh took them to the mainland,
-where he hired a sleigh and gave them a long, fine run
-over the frozen snow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next morning Hugh came early—unknown to
-Aunt Joe, however, who was outdoors giving directions
-to Pontius Pilate about his day’s work. She had returned
-to the kitchen and was busily engaged, as usual,
-at her loom, when she was very much astounded by a
-noise on the stairs as of a man’s heavy footsteps, and
-the stair-door was pushed open and Hugh appeared,
-porter-like, with a great trunk—Agnes’ trunk—upon his
-shoulders, a basket in his hand, and a bandbox under
-his arm, and followed by Agnes herself, dressed in traveling
-gear, with another basket and a bundle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe stared in amazement, without being able to
-articulate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, what in the name of all the saints in heaven
-does all this here mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am going to take Agnes to sea with me,” said
-Hugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The old lady broke out into loud sobs for company.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh set his trunk, bandbox, and basket down upon
-the floor and set himself to the task of comforting and
-soothing both.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe was the first to recover.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come here, Aggy, my darling child! You have been
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_33'>33</span>like a darter to me, honey. Kiss me again. Since you
-will go, Aggy, God bless you, my child! God bless you!
-I shall comfort myself very well by weaving cloth and
-flannel, and making counterpanes for you against you
-come back. Good-by!” And she embraced Agnes
-fondly and lifted and placed in her hands the basket and
-bundle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh now came forward, and, for the second time,
-bade his aunt farewell; and, resuming his bundles, trunk,
-bandbox, basket, etc., set out for the beach.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I’d only known, I’d a’ had a cup of coffee ready
-for you,” said the old lady; and she looked really pitiable
-as she stood there in her solitude, watching them as they
-went down to the beach and embarked on board the little
-boat and sped toward the distant ship. Having with
-the aid of a spyglass seen them embark on board the
-ship, Miss Joe turned into her lonely home and began
-preparing her solitary meal.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER X.<br> <span class='large'>THE PATIENCE OF ALICE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Thou must endure, yet loving all the while,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Above, yet never separate from thy kind;</div>
- <div class='line'>Meet every frailty with the gentlest smile,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Though to no possible depth of evil blind,</div>
- <div class='line'>This is the riddle thou hast life to solve;</div>
- <div class='line in2'>But in the task thou shalt not work alone,</div>
- <div class='line'>For while the worlds about the sun revolve,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>God’s heart and mind are ever with His own.</div>
- <div class='line in26'><i>—J. Monckton Milnes.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It is now twelve years since the marriage of Alice
-Chester and General Garnet, and six months since the
-departure of Hugh Hutton and Agnes upon their sea
-voyage.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet is absent on an electioneering tour,
-but daily expected back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_34'>34</span>It is June, and the scene is the terrace in front of
-Mount Calm. There are four persons upon the terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice occupies a rustic seat under the shadow of a
-locust tree. She is still a most beautiful woman, very
-delicate, almost sylph-like, with her fair, blond beauty
-and airy, white muslin wrapper. She is calmly pursuing
-a piece of fine, white, knitting-work—that favorite busy
-idleness of all Maryland ladies. At her feet is a very
-small basket, containing her keys and the ball of lamb’s
-wool yarn from which she knits. Near her stands a
-young mulatto hand-maid of about ten years of age.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lower down upon a step of the terrace sits her
-daughter Alice, or Elsie, as she was called for distinction’s
-sake. Elsie is now a very beautiful child, promising
-to be much more beautiful than her mother had
-ever been. She strangely united the most beautiful features
-of both parents. She had the delicate, Grecian
-features, fair, roseate complexion, golden hair, and blue
-eyes of her mother, with the passionate, veiled gaze and
-bewildering smile of her father. She had a finer vital
-and sanguine temperament than either could have possessed;
-a more rounded form, more elastic motion, a
-more joyous expression, a more gladsome cadence in her
-speech and in her laughter. Elsie sat sketching an elm
-tree from nature—the tree stood before her, at some distance
-on the lawn. She was bending over her drawing-board,
-that rested on her lap, until her fair ringlets almost
-concealed her rosy cheeks. She, also, wore a simple
-white muslin dress that harmonized well with her
-blooming beauty. Behind her, bending over her, stood
-a youth of sixteen; but for height, for breadth of shoulders
-and depth of chest, and manly and athletic proportions
-generally he might have been taken for twenty
-years of age. He was a very handsome boy, with bright
-chestnut hair, waving around a massive brow and relieving
-and beautifying its heavy strength, gracefully as
-foliage shades rock. He seemed to have just returned
-from gunning, for he wore a dress of forest green, his
-cap lay at his feet, his pointers were near, and one hand
-rested upon a fowling-piece, while with the other he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_35'>35</span>pointed alternately to the elm tree and the drawing, giving
-Elsie some instruction in her work. His dark gray
-eyes, full of thought, truth, and affection, were fixed
-upon her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And while they pursued their work Alice, from her
-rustic seat, watched them. Alice, looking as serenely
-happy as though her heart had never been broken, her
-brain never been crazed by calamity, anguish, and despair
-verging upon madness; as healthful, amiable, and
-self-possessed as though she had never sworn in her
-frenzy that she could not survive the severance from
-Sinclair; that neither moral, intellectual, nor physical nature
-could stand the test—the misery of a life with
-Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Divine Providence is kind, and nature is full of
-remedial power. We have all strength given us according
-to our need. If our joys are greater in anticipation
-than in realization, so certainly are our sorrows.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice, in the terrible storm of passion that had temporarily
-dethroned her reason, believed that she could
-not outlive her marriage; yet she had lived twelve years,
-and was comparatively happy—possibly happier than
-many a girl who had married for love, or its semblance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It is true that from the hour she awoke from the
-strange torpor that immediately followed her marriage
-her religious principles had taught her to turn from the
-memory of Sinclair, whenever that memory recurred.
-She prayed against, she strove against it, wrenched her
-thoughts forcibly from it, and riveted them to something
-else. And her prayers and struggles had produced this
-happy effect. The image of Sinclair had faded away
-with the brightest visions of her girlhood. And now
-that that typhoon of youthful passion had long passed,
-and even its memory had almost faded away, her genial,
-affectionate, religious nature made her happy. With
-such a nature Alice could not live without forming attachments
-to those around her. He must have been a
-terrible brute who could not have been blessed with
-some portion of her affection by simply living in the
-house with her for twelve years. And General Garnet
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_36'>36</span>was not exactly a brute. He was very handsome, graceful,
-and accomplished and habitually polite. And now
-that time had long worn out his jealousy he had ceased
-all undignified and ungentlemanly interference with his
-wife’s specially feminine occupations and associations.
-Alice was happy with her housekeeping, her garden, her
-dairy, her country neighbors, her favorite Magnus, and
-her little daughter. Yet, had the Angel of Destiny whispered
-to her heart this alternative: “Your daughter! two
-fates await her—to die in her childhood, or live to be an
-unwilling bride—choose for her!” Alice would have answered
-with a shudder and without a moment’s hesitation:
-“Let her die in her childhood rather. Let her die
-now, rather!” And to have saved her from the misery
-of wedding one she could not love, Alice would have
-been content to lay her heart’s only treasure, her idolized
-child, in the grave.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But no such question of Destiny had yet called back
-the memory of the past, and Alice was happy as she
-drew out her knitting-needle and smiled at the boy and
-girl on the terrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the sketch was finished and Magnus pronounced
-it perfect, and threw his shoulders back with a
-yawn of relief, and brought his hands together with
-a ring, exclaiming, as he turned to Alice:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, cousin, let me order the horses and let us ride
-at once to the beach. Why, here’s Goliah come from the
-post office—with a letter, too!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is from the general, madam,” continued Magnus,
-receiving the letter from the boy and handing it to Alice.
-She opened and glanced through it. Then turning to
-the expectant child, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, your father will be home this evening. He
-will bring with him Judge Wylie, Mr. Ulysses Wylie,
-Mr. Hardcastle, and Mr. Lionel Hardcastle. He requests
-me to have supper ready for the party.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice was soon superintending the preparations for
-supper. She had a good deal of the pride of the housekeeper
-and the hostess about her. Every Maryland
-woman has.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_37'>37</span>And that evening General Garnet entertained his
-friends to his heart’s content. It was a sort of little
-political party, at which Mrs. Garnet was not expected
-to appear.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After supper Lionel and Ulysses left the grave conclave
-of politicians to the discussion of Congress and
-canvas-back ducks, and came out upon the green.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel was full of the new good fortune that had befallen
-him. The dearest wish of his life was gratified;
-his father had at last obtained for him a midshipman’s
-warrant and he was going to sea. Alice looked at the
-wild and willful youth with much anxiety, and wished in
-her heart that it might have been otherwise; that he
-might have been forced to stay under his father’s protection
-and surveillance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel also, in his frank, off-hand manner, informed
-his Cousin Magnus there before them all that his father
-had not forgotten him, either; that he had arranged with
-a celebrated physician of Baltimore to receive him as a
-student.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus received this news with feelings of blended
-pain and pleasure—pain at the thought of leaving his
-dear “Cousin Alice” and her beautiful child—pleasure
-at the idea of the opening prospect of study, improvement,
-and independence.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie never thought of the evil; she only thought of
-the good; she threw her arms around his neck and wished
-him joy and success.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Alice was much more depressed than the occasion
-seemed to warrant. Again she caught herself wishing
-that young people could possibly remain at home. All
-partings depressed her. The idea of these saddened her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Was the cloud on her beautiful face really sorrow at
-the certainty of losing her loving boy-friend, or was it
-the shadow of coming events? Alice sighed heavily as
-she watched the young people dance. And at an early
-hour she recalled them to the house, served them with
-refreshments, and, pleading great fatigue, dismissed
-them all to their several chambers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She then threw herself languidly into the great easy-chair
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_38'>38</span>to await the breaking up of the party and the appearance
-of General Garnet. She had scarcely had an
-opportunity of speaking to him since his return.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was not very long before she heard the gentle,
-cheerful bustle of the departing guests, and the ringing
-tones of Judge Wylie’s voice above all the rest, inviting
-everybody to Point Pleasant the next evening for
-the purpose of meeting everybody else.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When the last guest had departed General Garnet entered
-Alice’s parlor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Up yet, Mrs. Garnet! Have I been so unfortunate
-as to disturb your rest?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No—oh, no! I think you were very quiet for a party
-of gentlemen—not at all like the noisy parties Judge
-Wylie gathers. No; I had no opportunity of welcoming
-you home,” she said rising and offering her hand.
-“Have you had a pleasant journey?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A successful one, madam, which is better. I think
-that there can be no reasonable doubt that D—— will
-carry the majority of votes in the districts through which
-we traveled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her next question was a housekeeper’s query:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How did you like your supper, and were your guests
-pleased?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All was very well, Alice—and, could they be else
-than pleased after so triumphant a canvass?” said he,
-taking a seat and motioning Alice to do the same. “I
-have something to propose to you, Alice, in regard to
-our daughter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Our daughter!” repeated she, with a vague fear
-creeping over her heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, our girl. I scarcely approve the loose, irregular
-manner in which her education is conducted at
-home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It may appear to you so, because her occupations and
-amusements are so various; but, indeed, her habits—all
-habits, I mean, upon which health and improvement depend—are
-very regular; and for the rest, human nature
-itself—health, improvement—require some little irregularity.
-The rain does not fall and the sun shine upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_39'>39</span>set days. See what a bright, healthful, happy, intelligent
-child Elsie is! Part of that is owing to her habits.
-She rises very early, breakfasts early, rides with Magnus
-or one of the servants, returns and devotes three hours
-to her books.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, all that is very well, but there should be a systematic
-course of study, which, I fancy, you are not
-quite competent to direct.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Try me,” said Alice. “I have not been idle all my
-life, nor all my life occupied exclusively with the eating,
-drinking, and wearing interests of our family. I have
-found time to cultivate my mind, for Elsie’s sake. I
-have read and reflected much. I expected to be Elsie’s
-only teacher. I have been, hitherto. And I wish, above
-all things, to continue to be. Then I shall feel better
-assured of her best good; better assured that her affections
-will not run to waste while her intellect is cultivated.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘A little learning is a dangerous thing.’ It makes
-anyone conceited—especially, I think, a woman who has
-few opportunities of comparing her ignorance with other
-people’s knowledge,” muttered General Garnet to himself.
-Then slightly raising his voice, he said: “No,
-Alice, it will not do. Elsie cannot remain under your
-tuition. I have other and wiser plans for her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I suppose,” said Alice, in a low voice, “that you are
-thinking of employing a private governess or tutor.
-Well, if you think it best——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Alice, I have no faith in governesses, and I
-totally disapprove of private tutors for young ladies. My
-intention is to send Elsie to a boarding-school for the
-next six or seven years.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To boarding-school for seven years! Elsie, my darling,
-my only one, away from me for so long! She!—so
-young!—to go among total strangers for so long!
-No! you cannot mean it!” exclaimed Alice, rising and
-wringing her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sit down, Mrs. Garnet, and listen to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice sank into her seat again, and listened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There is no female academy of the first class in this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_40'>40</span>country, I am sorry to say; none, at least, at which I
-should like to place our only daughter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice’s hopes raised; she thought she might have misunderstood
-what he had said before—her mind was so
-confused. She hastened to say:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, then, you are thinking of some very accomplished
-woman, or some highly intellectual graduate of
-William and Mary, who, though not exactly an ordinary
-governess or tutor, may be induced to come and take
-charge of our little girl for a very liberal salary?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet waved his hand impatiently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hear me out, if you please, Mrs. Garnet. I have
-told you that I dislike private tutors and governesses! I
-dislike the idea of a stranger domesticated in the house
-very much. I said, besides, that there was no boarding-school
-in the country to which I could care to trust our
-daughter. I intend to send Elsie to England.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To England!” murmured Alice, in an inaudible
-voice, growing very pale and sinking back in her chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, to England. My friend, General A—— is going
-out there as minister. He takes all his family, of
-course. He expects to remain abroad many years. In
-talking over with me his prospects, among other things
-for which he congratulated himself was the opportunity
-that his residence abroad would afford giving his daughters
-a very superior education. While we conversed, I
-spoke of Alice, regretting the limited means of female
-education afforded by our country. Well, he proposed
-that I should commit my daughter to his charge, to go
-to England, and be put to school with his own. He
-pressed this favor very earnestly upon me. The opportunity
-was one not likely to occur again, and therefore
-not to be lightly thrown away. Finally I accepted his
-offer. It was all arranged between us. The embassy
-sails from Baltimore in two weeks, and before that time
-Elsie must be ready to join the family.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the course of the month their departure took place
-from the neighborhood.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie Garnet, with many tears, left for her English
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_41'>41</span>school under the protection of the American minister to
-the Court of St. James.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel Hardcastle sailed as midshipman aboard the
-United States ship <i>Falcon</i>.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Magnus Hardcastle, taking a most affectionate
-leave of his beautiful friend, Alice, and promising many
-letters, left for Baltimore to enter upon the study of
-medical science in the office of a distinguished physician.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XI.<br> <span class='large'>ALICE’S VISIT TO HUTTON ISLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in20'>“At eve a sail</div>
- <div class='line'>On the blue water with a freshening gale.”</div>
- <div class='line in36'><i>—Crabbe.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It was a bright evening near the last of October. The
-mail had just come in, and brought Alice letters to
-gladden her heart for many months. There was a letter
-from Magnus—that strong, confident, joyous Magnus,
-who always saw so much good and glory in the future.
-And there was one post-marked London, and ship-marked
-<i>Belle Agnes</i>, from Elsie—the healthful, hopeful,
-happy Elsie, who always made the best of everything,
-and was gladsome everywhere. No letter could be more
-replete with the tenderest filial affection than hers, yet
-there was not a word of home-sickness, or sorrow, or
-discontent in it. It was full of genial life, of happy love,
-and confident hope.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice kissed the loving letter again and again, and
-walked about, happy, restless, overjoyed. General Garnet
-was away from home again, as he was about half
-the time. And Alice, after she had read the welcome
-letter to all the confidential servants who loved Elsie,
-bethought herself—by way of expending some of the
-extra life she had received—of going over to see Miss
-Joe and telling the old lady that her nephew’s vessel was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_42'>42</span>in port, for that she had got letters by it. She had frequently
-gone on to Hutton’s Isle to cheer the lonely old
-woman, and she knew the old soul would also be delighted
-to hear from Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice told Diogenes, the colored servant, to get the
-one-horse chaise and take her over to Huttontown. The
-chaise was soon ready. Alice entered it and was driven
-by Diogenes over to the village. She left the chaise at
-the ‘Neptune and Pan,’ and, attended by Diogenes, went
-down to the beach. The afternoon was very clear and
-calm:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“The air was still and the water still,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>and she felt no uneasiness in trusting herself to the little
-skiff and the one oar to the old servant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As they glided over the silent waters the profound stillness
-of the air and water was vaguely disturbed by a
-distant, deep-toned, solemn moan, swelling on the horizon
-like the breeze upon a mammoth harp-string, and
-dying away in the deep of silence.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Did you hear that?” asked Alice of her attendant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, ma’am, I heard nothing, Miss Ally,” replied the
-obtuse negro.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Alice thought she was mistaken. The bay was
-perfectly smooth, yet it seemed to Alice that the vast
-body of water under them just perceptibly rose and fell,
-as though instinct with life and breath. The little skiff
-sped like an arrow across the bosom of the waters, and
-in something less than half an hour cleared the distance
-between the mainland and the isle. The old negro stuck
-his oar into the sand and shoved the boat up high and
-dry upon the beach, so that his mistress could step out
-dry-shod.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Does not the wind blow around this bleak island
-even when it is calm along the coast of the mainland?”
-asked Alice, as she gathered her flapping veil and shawl
-more closely around her and stepped out upon the
-strand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“La, no, Miss Ally, ma’am; it never doesn’t, of course;
-dough when der is a win’, it has more ’siderable of a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_43'>43</span>clean sweep here than anywhere else. No, Miss Ally, no,
-ma’am; but de win’ do seem for to be a-risin’.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, let us hurry on to the house, for really it is
-quite fresh,” said she, drawing her veil down over her
-face and under her shawl, and wrapping the latter more
-closely around her, and striking into the narrow path
-leading through the cornfield and up to the house. But
-when she had got about halfway up the hill the wind
-took her so fiercely, flapping her skirts about her feet,
-flapping her bonnet and veil about her face, that she was
-forced to turn around from the wind to recover her
-breath and strength.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can scarcely face this gale! How very suddenly it
-has sprung up!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, ma’am,” replied the old negro, looking uneasily
-at the sky; “I—I—mos’ wish us hadn’t a-ventured out!
-I—I—I do hope us aint a-gwine to have a squeeling,
-knocking storm afore us gits back!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, it is entirely too late in the season for an equinoctial
-storm,” replied Alice, following his glance to the
-sky. “The wind has blown a few straggling clouds up
-from the horizon, but it does not look at all threatening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, Miss Ally, you don’t know, honey! Der aint
-never no good in dem ar switchy mare’s tails!” replied
-Diogenes, pointing to the long, black, ragged clouds flying
-before the wind. Holding her head down, and hugging
-her shawl tightly about her, Alice pushed on toward
-the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Looking up as she reached the top of the hill she saw
-Miss Joe with her head far out of the gable end loft
-window, with an old spyglass in her hand, leveling it
-out to sea. Miss Joe lowered her glass for a moment and
-perceived Alice, and shouted to her above the blast:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How do you do, Mrs. Garnet? Hasn’t this here bluff
-of wind come up sudden? ’Taint a-going to be anything
-but a wind, though, I believe. Come up to the house,
-honey. I’ll be down from here about the time you get
-up. I have just been looking out after that there vessel
-down the bay, as I think must be Hugh’s, seeing I’m expecting
-him. I spied that there craft about two hours
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_44'>44</span>ago. She was making slow headway, because the tide
-was strong agin her. Now she seems farther off than
-before. I shouldn’t wonder if this gust of wind, with the
-current, didn’t blow her out to sea agin. I hope it aint
-nothing but a gust, though, that’ll soon be over. The
-wind bluffs around as if it were a-going to change too;
-then it’ll be fair for her, and she’ll scud along fast enough
-before it. Come up to the house, honey! I’m coming
-down.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice reached the garden gate just as Miss Joe opened
-the house door and came out to meet her, her clothes all
-blown aslant and flapping about as if they would go
-over her head, but looking so hardy, sturdy, storm-proof,
-with her shining face rubicund with joy and welcome,
-Alice laughed out to see her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Miss Joe! you look chirping as a frosty morning!
-It enlivens one to see you! I have heard of people
-who, going out for wool, returned shorn. I have
-come to cheer you, and shall go home gladdened! You
-look so chirp!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, honey! I have enough to chirrup me. I’m heern
-from Hugh and his wife. You saw that sloop in at Hutton’s
-Harbor? Well, that there sloop, she came from
-the port of Baltimore, where she spoke the <i>Belle Agnes</i>,
-jest in from Liverpool, and brought a letter from Captain
-Hutton, saying as he should run down here soon as
-ever he unloaded his cargo and took in some freight for
-this here port. His letter says how Agnes is going for
-to stay long o’ me now. ’Deed, I reckon she’s had
-enough o’ sea-faring, a’ready!” said Miss Joe, as she
-straddled on toward the gate and opened it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very soon the neat tea-table was set out and a repast,
-delicate and luxurious as any epicure could have desired,
-spread upon it. And Miss Joe arranged Alice in a comfortable
-seat at the side of the table near the fire, and
-as she poured out the fragrant tea she told all the story
-of the letter she had got from Hugh. How they had
-made such a prosperous voyage; how Hugh was going
-to stay home for three months; how Agnes was not going
-away again at all; and how she supposed Agnes was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_45'>45</span>cured of her curiosity to see the ocean. And through
-all her talk Alice saw how much family affection was in
-that old frost-bitten heart of hers.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XII.<br> <span class='large'>CHILD OF THE WRECK.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>The strife of fiends is on the battling clouds,</div>
- <div class='line'>The glare of hell is in the sulphurous lightnings.</div>
- <div class='line'>This is no earthly storm!</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Maturin’s Bertram.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The sun went down. The wind seemed to lull. Alice
-arose and put on her bonnet and shawl for a start. Old
-Diogenes buttoned his coat up to his chin, and took up
-his old felt hat to attend her. Miss Joe threw her check
-apron over her head to accompany them, and the little
-party opened the door and set out for the beach. The
-eyes of old Diogenes rolled</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“From heaven to earth, from earth to heaven,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>in a great trouble!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Though the sun had but just set, the sky was no
-longer blue, but of a lurid, metallic, coppery color, mottled
-over by leaden clouds, athwart which, and lower
-down, scudded huge, black, inky masses of vapor, driven
-wildly before the wind that had shifted and was again
-rising. Lower down and nearer the earth flew other
-clouds, flocks of wild sea fowl, screaming frightfully and
-dashing hither and thither, or settling upon the island
-as for shelter from the coming tempest. Such was the
-sky.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The look of the sea was still more terrible. The surface
-of the water was very rough, the waves breaking
-into foam as though frost were thrown up from the
-depths of the sea. The whole enormous mass of waters
-was rising with a vast, slow, mighty swell, as though
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_46'>46</span>some monstrous under-power were laboring to upheave
-the ocean from its bed and shatter it into precipices and
-caverns. And all around the lurid horizon boomed the
-low, deep, awful sound of the coming storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will never do to try to cross the water to-night,
-my dear child,” said Miss Joe, solemnly and fearfully.
-“We’re going to have an awful storm, and it may burst
-upon us at any minute.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed, Miss Ally, child, it’s wery unsafe—wery!
-Don’t let’s be a-tempting o’ Providence! Don’t!” said
-Diogenes, his teeth chattering with cold and terror.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Just then the voice of the wind wailed across the
-waters like the shriek of a lost spirit, and the salt spray
-of the sea was dashed in their faces. The sky seemed
-to be settling down over the isle, and the waters, black,
-heavy, and dark! The mighty sea was heaving, settling,
-rising to meet the lowered sky! The vapor of the clouds
-and waves seemed intermingling! The rising wind
-howled and shrieked!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, child, if you venter upon the water this evening,
-you’ll row to the Kingdom of Heaven,” said Miss
-Joe. “Turn—hurry back! We must get to the house
-as fast as possible, or the storm will be upon us! Child,
-alive! what are you standing looking out to sea for? I
-do believe you are more afraid of braving General Garnet’s
-anger than that of the wind and sea themselves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should not have come,” said Alice, turning shuddering,
-away from the beach.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, you should!” replied Miss Joe; “and now you
-should come back! Hurry! hurry! hurry! Look at that
-mass of black cloud rushing like a demon up the sky!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was now very dark, and they hastened on toward
-the house. They reached it as a furious blast of wind
-drove them against its walls. They went in the house.
-Shutters were closed, props were placed against the
-doors to assist the old locks in holding them against the
-fury of the storm. And as the room was now pitch dark,
-except by the lurid light of the smoldering fire, Miss
-Joe lit a candle and set it on the mantelpiece. Alice sat
-down in the chimney-corner armchair, very pale.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_47'>47</span>The storm raged, shrieked and howled around the
-house. Hourly its violence increased; tenfold the crash
-of falling trees, twisted off at the roots, the clatter of
-rattling tiles and shingles, reft off and rained down from
-the roof; the scream of the frightened water-fowl, the
-howl of the alarmed cattle, mingled with the shriek of
-the wind and the thunder of the waves in the grand
-diapason of nature’s wildest, most terrific harmony.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last came the awful crisis of the storm. The wind
-had</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Paused to gather its fearful breath.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>and now rushed upon the house with the invincible
-power of a storming battery, with a sound, a shock, as
-if two planets had met in fatal concussion. The earth
-trembled; the massive roof of the strong house was torn
-off and hurled aloft; heavy blocks of sandstone came
-clattering down from the topmost wall, and then the rain
-fell its vast sheets, as if “all heaven was opened.” And
-now came a sound more terrific than that of an advancing
-army!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The ocean was upon them in its might!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Speechless with awe, like those in the immediate presence
-of sudden death, Alice and Miss Joe remained
-locked in each other’s arms. The old negro ran wildly
-about, like one perfectly distracted, screaming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my God! my God! we shall be all drowned in
-this very house, like blind puppies in a tub! Oh, will
-nobody ’fess me o’ my sins? Oh, Lord! I ’fess to de
-breaking o’ all de ’mandments, rather dan miss absolushum
-for dem as I has broke!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so he ran about and raved, while Alice and Miss
-Joe remained motionless, waiting for death where they
-sat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The water that dashed against the wall was no longer
-the rain, but the sea—the sea cannonading the house!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An hour like an eternity passed, during which the
-waves, with deafening sounds, stormed the walls, and the
-inmates waited for death. Then the horrible tempest
-seemed to abate; the ocean seemed to be retiring.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_48'>48</span>Oh, were the waves indeed receding, or was it only
-one of those fatal pauses, during which the storm fiend
-gathered new strength for destruction?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice, fearful, hopeful, raised her head, doubtful of the
-reprieve from immediate death.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe clasped her closer in her arms, but listened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Diogenes stopped in his wild walk and began to praise
-all the saints.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, the ocean was certainly receding. They were
-saved! But now, amidst their joy, came a knell of doom!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The signal gun of a ship in distress!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No one knew how often that knell had pealed before.
-It could not have been heard, amid the deafening noise
-of the waves, any more than the report of a single cannon
-could have been distinguished in the thunder of a million
-others. The sound struck to the hearts of all
-present.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh!” said Miss Joe, “that ship! that ship! It is the
-very ship I spied—I know it is—I know it is! And,
-oh! it may be the ship of Hugh!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again the minute gun boomed over the sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Heaven, how I pity them! What can be the
-nature of their danger? The storm has almost ceased;
-if they could live through that terrific tempest, surely
-they can save themselves now. What can be the danger
-to which they are exposed now?” asked Alice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The ship, tossed about so in the horrible storm, must
-a’ sprung a leak. Oh, if it should be Hugh’s ship!” replied
-Miss Joe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again the minute gun wailed across the waters.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And, oh!” exclaimed Alice, wringing her hands, “if
-there is one thing worse than imminent danger or death
-to one’s own, it is to be in perfect safety and to hear,
-near by, the cry of others in extremity, and to be unable
-to give them aid!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Once more the minute gun wailed across the waters.
-It seemed the voice of a last appeal.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My God, I can scarcely stand this!” exclaimed Alice,
-shuddering, cowering, stopping her ears, while Miss Joe
-walked about, groaning, groaning, groaning!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_49'>49</span>But once more the minute gun wailed across the
-waters. It seemed the voice of a last reproach.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The two women and the old negro could do absolutely
-nothing to help the dying ship. They felt their own
-safety as a shame, and covered their heads to shut out
-the sound of death. They need not have done so.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The minute gun wailed no more across the waters.
-The voice was silenced for ever!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my God! my God! she is gone down! she is
-gone down!” screamed Miss Joe, wrought up to an
-agony of terror and grief beyond all self-control.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The dread silence that followed was more insufferable
-than the terrific storm in its utmost fury had been—than
-the awful voice of the minute gun, in its vain appeal,
-had been! It was long after midnight now. Miss Joe,
-unable longer to bear the awful pause of fate, went and
-pulled open the door and looked out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The wind had lulled, the rain had ceased, the waves
-had gone down, the storm was nearly over. Yet in the
-deep darkness she could only guess the wild ruin that
-had been wrought around. The sky hung over the
-waters black as a pall, yet by the phosphoric light of the
-sea that still moved and sparkled she discovered a dark
-object, like the hulk of a huge vessel, disappear under
-the waves.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And, hush! What sound is that, low and distinct, in
-the deep silence of the awful night? The sound of approaching
-footsteps and voices hurrying on, and now
-very near.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Light another candle, for God’s sake! some people
-are coming. God send it may be Hugh and his men!
-Light another candle, quick! and thrust it into a lantern!”
-exclaimed Miss Joe, hastening into the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And before the light of the other candle blazed, the
-room was filled with sailors, storm-beaten, dripping wet,
-two of the foremost of whom bore the body of a fainting
-woman in their arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was Agnes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is Hugh—where is your captain? My God!
-where is Hugh?” exclaimed Miss Joe, as her eyes
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_50'>50</span>roamed over this wild party in the vain quest of her
-nephew.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We left the captain on the deck of his vessel. He
-refused to leave it while a man remained on board. We
-are going back for him, and half a dozen others,” said
-the mate, looking about in haste for a place to lay Agnes;
-then, putting her in the arms of old Dodgy, he turned,
-with three others of the men, and left the house for the
-beach.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Too late! too late! I saw the ship go down myself!”
-exclaimed Miss Joe, beside herself with grief.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What must I do with this here young ’oman, Miss
-Ally?” inquired Diogenes of his mistress.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Take her upstairs, Diogenes, and I will go up and
-attend to her,” said Alice. And leaving Miss Joe and
-the shipwrecked sailors below, Alice followed the old
-negro with his burden upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But there a scene of ruin met her startled gaze. The
-roof had been reft from the house in the storm; the rain
-had poured through the ceiling of the loft and drenched
-the bed-chambers. One of the beds, however, being in
-a more protected angle of the room, was comparatively
-dry. This Alice turned over, and upon this the old negro
-was directed to lay his insensible burden.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>While Alice was rubbing and chafing the cold, cold
-hands and feet of the shipwrecked girl, a loud cry of
-despair came up from below.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She hastened downstairs to know the cause.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The mate had returned from a fruitless errand. The
-<i>Belle Agnes</i> had gone down with all left on board, and
-among them the brave and generous Captain Hugh
-Hutton!</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>Within the next three dreadful hours, “in night and
-storm and darkness,” a man-child was born—son of the
-storm and the wreck—heir of a desert and a ruin!</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_51'>51</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIII.<br> <span class='large'>THE DESOLATE HOUSE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in14'>Alas! It desolately stands</div>
- <div class='line'>Without a roof, the gates fallen from their band,</div>
- <div class='line'>The casements all broke down, no chimney left!</div>
- <div class='line in34'><i>—Allan Ramsay.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The sun rose next morning upon a scene of ruin that
-defies description.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The house was almost a wreck. The roof, the chimneys,
-and the shutters of the upper story were gone.
-The windows were shattered and driven in.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The grounds also were literally laid waste. All traces
-of field, and garden, and flower yard were washed away.
-Trees were torn up by the roots, fences were leveled,
-outbuildings blown down, and all swept away by the
-flood. Cattle and poultry were drowned, and their
-bodies carried off by the sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes! the isle was indeed a desert, and the house was
-a ruin, with the exception of the lower story, which, having
-been built of stronger material, and being less exposed
-to the violence of the wind, had remained entire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>If the scene without was wretched, the scene within
-was scarcely less so.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The shipwrecked sailors had gone down to the beach
-for the purpose of searching for the bodies of the
-drowned men, if, perchance, they might have been
-thrown up, and of hailing any boat that might pass
-within hail.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Agnes and her child had been removed from the open
-and exposed upper chamber to the lower one, which was
-more comfortable. Alice, forgetful of her own fears and
-cares, bestowed upon the unfortunate young woman the
-most affectionate attention. Miss Joe, broken-hearted
-and half crazy, yet still governed by her inveterate habits
-of order and industry, went about putting things to
-rights, groaning, wringing her hands, and getting breakfast.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_52'>52</span>Diogenes brought wood and water, and stood
-shivering and waiting orders without the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very soon after sunrise General Garnet, with two of
-his servants, arrived from the mainland. The wild ruin
-that reigned around, the deep distress that prevailed
-within the house, arrested all speech of blame upon his
-lips. He kissed Alice, expressing his gratitude to
-Heaven that she was saved. He condoled with Miss
-Joe, said that he would send over workmen to repair the
-house, offered any other assistance in his power, and requested
-to know in what manner he could serve her.
-But Miss Joe shook her head dolefully, said that she had
-always lived without alms, and that she could not receive
-any now; that she had not very long to live, but
-hoped she should not die a pauper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After breakfast General Garnet took Alice home.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For many days nothing was talked of but the storm
-and the wreck. And every day brought in news of some
-disaster that had been wrought by the tempest.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>One day, as Alice sat sewing in her room, General
-Garnet entered with a cloud upon his brow, and the
-newly arrived Norfolk <i>Signal</i> in his hand. To his wife’s
-startled look and anxious question, he answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A heavy misfortune has befallen our neighbor Hardcastle.
-His son Lionel was lost in the storm of the
-28th.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Heaven!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, fearful as the wind was here, it was even more
-terrific farther down the coast. The <i>Falcon</i>, homeward
-bound, was about entering Hampton Roads when overtaken
-by that horrible and disastrous tempest. The <i>Falcon</i>
-suffered frightfully. In the midst of the storm several
-of the crew and one of the midshipmen were washed
-overboard. Here is the full account in the leading column
-of the <i>Signal</i>. Read it. I must go over and see
-poor Hardcastle. By the way, Alice, this makes a very
-great change in the prospects of your young friend,
-Magnus. Hardcastle had no other child but Lionel, and
-has no near relation but his nephew Magnus, has he?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_53'>53</span>“No,” said Alice, looking surprised at such a question
-at such a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hum-m-me! then, indeed, this ‘ill wind’ has blown
-a great inheritance to Magnus. I suppose that after his
-uncle has somewhat recovered the shock of his bereavement
-he will recall Magnus. He will scarcely permit
-him to pursue the study of medicine now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think that Magnus will prefer the study of some
-profession. I am sure that he wishes to live an earnest
-and useful life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I do not know a more earnest purpose, or a
-more useful life, than that lived through in the proper
-administration of a large estate. By the way, Alice, I
-hope you have not, with your usual indifference in all
-things and to all persons, neglected to write to the poor
-boy during his banishment among total strangers in
-Baltimore?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I write to him every week.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is right; perfectly right. I am very glad to
-hear it. Apropos, Alice, were not Magnus and Elsie very
-great friends?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They were very much attached to each other,” replied
-Alice, with her innocent eyes still dilating with
-wonder at these queries.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘Very much attached to each other.’ Hum-m-me!
-Mount Calm and Hemlock Hollow would form one very
-magnificent estate, joining as they do—about ten thousand
-acres, would they not be?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Alice abstractedly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, certainly, that is it. Let us see—how old is this
-youth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“About seventeen, I believe.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, and he will marry very early, if he can find a
-wife to suit him. He will settle very soon to serious,
-practical life. He is just the young man to do it. Alice,
-when he returns I hope you will not permit him quite
-to forget old friends. Stay—our Elsie is—twelve years
-of age?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not quite.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, nearly twelve—then thirteen, fourteen, fifteen,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_54'>54</span>sixteen—four years. Four years will quickly pass away;
-and our young gentleman can wait that long. At the
-end of four years I shall bring Elsie home from school.
-She will then be sixteen years of age. You were but a
-year older when you were married, Alice. Say, answer
-me—you were but seventeen when you were married,
-were you not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I was but seventeen,” replied Alice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And here the conference ended.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet found Mr. Hardcastle in the extremity
-of grief. He had only received the dire intelligence of
-the loss of his only and well-beloved son, in a letter of
-condolence from the captain of the ship. He had nothing
-new, therefore, to learn from General Garnet, but
-thanked him for his visit and his sympathy. General
-Garnet remained with him all day and until a late hour
-of the night, when he took his leave.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Days, weeks elapsed, before Mr. Hardcastle found
-courage to summon Magnus to Hemlock Hollow, though
-in the meantime Magnus had written often, expressing
-his heartfelt sorrow and his earnest sympathy, and entreating
-permission to come home and see his uncle. At
-last Mr. Hardcastle wrote and recalled him. Magnus
-came and remained over Christmas. Then, his uncle
-being restored to his usual state of composure and cheerfulness,
-and being engaged in his customary occupations
-of agriculture and politics, hunting, fishing, and company,
-Magnus begged leave to return to his studies.
-His uncle opposed the proposition. What was the use of
-his studying a profession now? Could he not be contented
-to stay at home and keep a childless old man
-company?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Magnus wished to be busy again.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, could he not be busy enough overseeing the
-overseer, and keeping the plantation in order?” queried
-the old man testily.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Magnus was very much in earnest, and persisted
-in his purpose. Finally, the old man angrily threatened
-to disown him, and let him go. And Magnus, preferring
-his profession to any inheritance, departed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_55'>55</span>But let the reader rest assured that the old gentleman
-had not the slightest intention of discarding the fine boy,
-whom he loved as a second son.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIV.<br> <span class='large'>VANISHING OF AGNES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>They sought her that night and they sought her next day,</div>
- <div class='line'>They sought her in vain ‘till a week passed away;</div>
- <div class='line'>The highest, the lowest, the loneliest spot;</div>
- <div class='line'>Her neighbors sought wildly, but found her not.</div>
- <div class='line in36'><i>—Mistletoe Bough.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Days and weeks passed on, and brought Christmas,
-when an event occurred of so startling and inexplicable
-a nature as to fill the whole neighborhood with wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe’s preparations for Christmas were all made,
-with the exception of the turkey and the materials for
-the plum-pudding. Miss Joe’s turkeys had all been
-drowned in the great flood. Now, to have a roast turkey
-and a plum-pudding at Christmas was Miss Joe’s eleventh
-commandment of the Lord and fortieth article of the
-Episcopal faith. So she took two pairs of men’s woolen
-socks that she had just completed, donned her antiquated
-bonnet and shawl, and, taking Pontius Pilate as
-her negro body-servant, prepared to start for Huttontown
-to exchange her work with the village shopkeeper
-for raisins, currants, and spice, and money to purchase
-a turkey. Snow clouds were slowly condensing in the
-sky, but Miss Joe assured Agnes that she would be back
-long before it came on to snow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then, full of cheerful energy and anticipation, she
-set out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Agnes remained in her usual apathetic mood, unheeding
-the flight of time, until the sudden rising of the
-wind and the sudden hustling of hail-stones against the
-windows told her that a furious storm was coming up.
-She arose and closed the window-shutters with some difficulty,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_56'>56</span>and lighted a candle, when she found, to her surprise,
-that it was already seven o’clock. It was high
-time for Miss Joe to be at home. And now it occurred
-to the kind heart of Agnes that the good old lady, coming
-in from the storm, might relish a cup of hot tea. So
-she threw more wood upon the fire (Miss Joe’s forethought
-had supplied her with a pile of wood by the
-chimney corner), and filled the tea-kettle and hung it
-over the blaze. But Agnes knew that if Miss Joe did not
-come almost immediately, if she had not already landed
-on the island, she would not come that night. Agnes
-set the table and made the tea.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An hour passed by and Miss Joe had not returned,
-and Agnes gave her up for the night.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At about midnight the storm abated, the clouds broke
-up, and a few stars looked shyly out as if reconnoitering
-the darkness. The night was very dark. Agnes, who
-felt lonely and nervous, and could not sleep, opened the
-window-shutters to look out, but could scarcely discern
-the line where the dark waters met the snow-covered
-beach. The sky hung like a black pall over the island.
-The deep darkness, the deep silence, the deep solitude
-oppressed her with gloom and fear. Her form was
-shrunk, and her eyes dilated by terror.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly, while she gazed, the whole scene was
-brightly illuminated. Several torches blazed along the
-beach, lighting up the whole line of coast, and revealing
-the forms of three boats already landed, and the figures
-of several men passing back and forth.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the same instant that Agnes perceived them, she
-felt that she herself must have been seen in the strong
-glare of the lighted window at which she sat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She started up with the wish to extinguish her candle,
-when she saw several of the men with torches approaching
-the house; and, overpowered with terror, she fell in
-a swoon.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the meantime Miss Joe had very reluctantly been
-detained at Huttontown by the utter impossibility of
-getting through the snowstorm to the isle. She had
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_57'>57</span>passed the night with Mr. Fig’s—the grocer’s—family,
-bemoaning the necessity, and lamenting that “that poor
-young thing would feel so lonesome, staying by herself
-on the island all night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very “bright and early” the next morning Miss Joe,
-with a fine fat hen-turkey, living, and tied by the legs,
-and several packages of raisins, currants, and spices, entered
-her boat and set out on her return home.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When she reached the lodge the scene of confusion
-that met her eyes nearly transfixed her. Both doors,
-front and back, were wide open, and the air was rushing
-through the room. The fire had gone out; the great logs
-of wood had burned in two and fallen apart, and the
-charred and blackened ends were sticking up. The candle
-had expired in melted grease, which was now spread,
-cold, all over the candlestick, and down upon the nice
-white-oak table. The bed had not been slept in, for
-there it was perfectly smooth as Miss Joe had left it,
-with her own peculiar folds and twists about it. And
-there lay the baby in the cradle, screaming its little life
-away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the name o’ God A’mighty, Pont, what has been
-a-happening?” asked Miss Joe, lifting up the child, and
-sinking with it into a chair, pale as death.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Pontius Pilate stood there with the screeching and
-struggling turkey in one hand and the bundle of groceries
-in the other—looking like a statue of dismay,
-carved in ebony.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the name of Heaven, Pont, what has been a-takin’
-place?” repeated Miss Joe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gor A’mighty knows, mist’ess; but I does werily
-b’lieve how de Britishers is been landen’ ag’in, or else
-Bonnypart. Chris’ de Lor’ be praised, ole mist’, dat I
-an’ you wa’nt home when dey come. See, now, how
-ebery ting turn out for de bes’. S’pose dat snowstorm
-hadn’t a come up, where you an’ I been? Good Lor’!
-poor Miss Aggy! Wonder what’s come o’ her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, what, my Lord! Pont,” said Miss Joe, who
-never in any emergency was known to neglect the plain
-practical duty of the moment, “go and get the tinderbox,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_58'>58</span>and light a fire quickly, and heat some milk and
-water for this child. He is almost frozen and almost
-starved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Pontius Pilate put down his burdens and did as
-he was bid. And Miss Joe made the infant perfectly
-comfortable, and put him to sleep, before she joined
-Pont in his vain search around the island for Agnes, or
-some clew to her fate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When she ascertained that Agnes was certainly not on
-the island, she dispatched Pontius Pilate to the mainland
-to rouse up the people of Huttontown to prosecute
-the search.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the people were aroused indeed to a state of nine
-days’ wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>What could have become of her? How could she have
-left her sea-girt isle without a boat? Would she have
-forsaken her child at all?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No; Miss Joe was certain she would not; she was too
-fond of him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Had she possibly drowned herself?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No; Miss Joe was sure not; she was too much afraid
-of dying and leaving her babe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Had she been carried off, then? and by whom?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes. It was finally concluded that she must have been
-carried off; but by whom? That was still the problem
-unsolved. Inquiries were made up and down the coast
-and in every direction. Advertisements were inserted
-in the papers, and large rewards offered for her discovery
-by General Garnet, Judge Wylie, and other benevolent
-neighbors. For to this sort of assistance Miss Joe
-made no objection. She considered the recovery of Agnes
-quite an affair of general interest, as indeed it was.
-Nothing, however, was heard of her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As months passed, the mystery deepened, and people
-grew weary of conjecture.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_59'>59</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XV.<br> <span class='large'>THE ELFIN GIRL.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>But who is this? What thing of sea or land!</div>
- <div class='line'>Female of sex it seems.</div>
- <div class='line in28'><i>—Samson Agonistes.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>For a time Miss Joe had grieved immoderately over
-the untimely and mysterious fate of her niece, and the
-loneliness of her own lot, and the prospect of a poor and
-solitary old age before her; but soon, in the native kindness
-and disinterestedness of her heart, she turned to the
-child thus thrown upon her exclusive protection, and
-only hoped that she might be spared long enough to
-raise him, and see him able to take his own part; for,
-after all, small and helpless, and abandoned as he was,
-he was the last Hutton of the Isles, and the heir of—the
-little sand bank in the bay, yclept St. Clara’s Isle or
-Hutton’s Isle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very strange was the lot and life of the lonely recluse
-of the sea-girt isle and her little protégé. Their only
-possessions were the nearly barren islet, the dilapidated
-lodge, a cow, a sheep or two, a little poultry and a dog.
-No cart or horse had they, nor even any use for either.
-The small skiff conveyed them to the mainland whenever,
-for the purpose of laying in a few groceries or dry
-goods, or of attending divine service, they found it
-necessary or agreeable to go. Their faithful old servant,
-Pontius Pilate, whose duty it was to till the land, row
-the boat, fish the weir, rake the oyster bed, and cut and
-bring wood from the mainland, was their only companion.
-The soil immediately around the house being mixed
-with clay and marl, still yielded, with careful cultivation,
-corn and wheat enough for the small consumption of
-the little family. And Pontius Pilate saved money by
-grinding this in a hand-mill. The little garden produced
-vegetables enough for their table. And the two sheep
-yielded wool enough for their winter socks and mits—carded,
-spun, and woven by the indefatigable fingers of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_60'>60</span>Miss Joe. And so time passed on, until Miss Joe, not
-having trouble enough on her hands already, was induced
-to assume the responsibility of rearing another
-child, a little wild elf-like girl, whose advent was almost
-as great a subject of gossiping speculation as the disappearance
-of Agnes had been. And the name of this
-elfin child was Garnet Seabright.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The history of Garnet Seabright, as it was understood
-in the neighborhood, was very briefly this:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When Hugh was about six years of age Miss Joe
-received a letter from a distant relation living in Calvert
-County, beseeching her, for the Redeemer’s sake,
-to lose no time in hastening to the sick-bed of the writer,
-who was most anxious to see her before she died.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe had to rub her organ of eventuality before
-she could recognize in the writer a cousin, a wild young
-girl of exceeding beauty and willfulness, who had, years
-before, eloped with a soldier, a certain George Seabright,
-a distant relation of Captain Seabright.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe never slighted any appeal to her benevolence.
-She shut up house, left the island in care of Pontius
-Pilate, took Hugh to Huttontown and left him in charge
-of Mrs. Fig, the grocer’s wife, borrowed a mule, and set
-out for Calvert County.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The house of her cousin she heard upon inquiry was
-a miserably poor cottage, with scarcely any cleared
-ground around it, and situated in the midst of a deep,
-dark forest. It was approached for miles only by a narrow
-bridle path. It was near nightfall when Miss Joe
-entered this lonesome path; it was quite dark before she
-got near the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, good Lord! this is a great deal more lonesomer
-and more wilder than my sea-girt island they make such
-a fuss about; for there, at least, I could see an enemy a
-long ways off. But here! Lord, there might be an Injun,
-or a bandit, or more likely still, a runaway nigger,
-behind every tree. Get up, Jinny! Hark! Lord deliver
-us! what was that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Highe! cheep! th-sh-sh-e-e-e-e!”
-laughed, screamed, chirped, chirruped a sharp,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_61'>61</span>shrill voice, high up in the trees, or somewhere between
-them and the blinking stars.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Lord save us, what was that?” ejaculated Miss Joe,
-looking up at the branches overhead, in the direction of
-the eerie voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And there she saw, in the dark, bright starlight, in the
-highest branches of the trees, among the green and glistening
-leaves, a little elfin face, with glittering eyes, and
-gleaming teeth and streaming hair, mopping and mowing
-at her—chattering, gibing, laughing, and screaming
-at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“St. John and all the Holy Evangelists! St. Mary
-and all the Holy Virgins!—what’s that? It’s—it’s—a
-fairy—it’s—it’s—a brownie!” exclaimed Miss Joe, bursting
-out into a profuse perspiration.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe was neither cowardly nor superstitious, yet
-when the little elf, with its wild eyes and streaming hair,
-glided down the tree with the swiftness and celerity of
-a monkey down a mainmast, and leaped, with a yell of
-malice and delight, upon the mule, behind her, Miss Joe
-opened her throat with a prolonged shriek, that might
-have waked the dead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And at the same time the mule dashed, plunging and
-kicking, forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The elf stuck its little hands into Miss Joe’s fat sides,
-and, as the good lady herself afterward said, clung there
-like a craw-fish or a crab. The mule plunged madly on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe, delirious with terrors, real and imaginary,
-lost all power of controlling the animal, dropped the reins,
-and must have fallen off, had not the bit been seized by a
-strong hand, and the mule forced back upon her haunches.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s Godfather!” cried the elf, in human words
-and tones, and Miss Joe, looking up, recognized in her
-deliverer General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The sprite leaped from the saddle to the bosom of
-General Garnet, and clung there in her crab-like fashion,
-her little head rubbed, rooted, under his chin, her little
-arms around his neck, and her little figure almost veiled
-by her long hair, screaming with her inarticulate tones
-of affection and delight.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_62'>62</span>Miss Joe dismounted from the now stationary mule,
-and began in an eager voice to pour forth her surprise,
-gratitude, and wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, with a look of vexation, tinged with
-amusement, tried to shake off his little encumbrance.
-But it was like trying to get rid of a chestnut burr; for
-if he succeeded in pulling her off from one place, she
-would stick at another, screaming with wild delight and
-elfish perversity, clinging to him, rooting her little head
-into him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Netty! Come, come! this will not do; release
-me. Goodness, child, are your hands and feet furnished
-with claws?” exclaimed General Garnet, trying to tear
-off the little human bramble.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Chip! Chip! Chee-ee-ee! H-sh-sh-sh! Whip!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It is impossible to convey in words the saucy, defiant,
-chirping, inarticulate cry of the sprite, as it rammed
-its head again into the bosom of its victim. Presently
-the elf sprang away of itself, and perched upon the back
-of the mule.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How is your mother, Netty?” then asked General
-Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Waiting for you and the old woman, too. She sent
-me after you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And now Miss Joe and the general looked at each
-other in astonishment, as if mutually inquiring, “You,
-too?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, putting his hand upon the shoulder
-of the elf, and giving her a slight shake, put her upon
-the ground, took her hand, and walked up to the dark
-forest path, drawing her after him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe took the bridle, and leading her mule, followed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A little way up the path was a horse standing perfectly
-still, saddled and bridled, and with a portmanteau
-on the crupper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet remounted this horse, and, taking the
-wood-sprite before him, rode on up the path.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe, not wishing to be left behind, tumbled up
-into her old saddle, and urged old Jenny to her best
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_63'>63</span>speed. They soon came to a little clearing in the forest,
-and paused before the humble door of a log house. The
-elf sprang down from her seat, and, darting into the
-door, cried:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They’ve come, Minny! Godfather and the old
-body, both.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Poke up the fire, and let them both come in, Netty!”
-was the answer; and presently the sprite pulled open
-the door with a bang, and stood there with her glittering
-eyes and streaming hair and naked legs, to admit them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They entered and found the room occupied by two
-persons; a young woman, who sat propped up in an
-armchair by the fire; and an old negress, who seemed
-to be her servant or nurse. The young woman bore a
-singular resemblance to the elf-like child; but her dark
-eyes were burning, and her face was bathed with the
-fatal fires of consumption. She held out an emaciated
-hand to welcome her visitors, while the old negress set
-rude stools for their accommodation. The young invalid,
-pressing the hand of Miss Joe, thanked her many
-times for her kindness in taking this journey, and
-begged her to sit down quite close to her, for that she
-could not raise her voice much. Miss Joe drew the stool
-to the side of the invalid and begged to be informed how
-she could serve her, expressing at the same time her
-perfect willingness to do so. Then the young woman, in a
-feeble voice, interrupted by frequent fits of coughing,
-said that she felt she had but little time to live,—that her
-days, nay, her very hours were numbered,—that after
-her death she wished Miss Joe to take charge of her
-orphan child; that General Garnet, who considered himself
-under great obligations to her late husband, would be
-at the costs of its rearing and education, and would, besides,
-liberally repay Miss Joe for the trouble she might
-be put to in taking care of it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet was there to indorse her promises.
-He approached them; and taking the feverish hand of
-the invalid, and turning to Miss Joe, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The husband of this young woman was a soldier
-under my command; he fought under me during the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_64'>64</span>whole course of the war. Once he saved me from death.
-Once he saved me from dishonor. He received his
-death-wound—for, years after, it caused his death—in
-the same battle in which I won my present military rank.
-I am under eternal obligations to him; and while I have
-an acre of ground, or a dollar at my banker’s, I will
-never see this child want!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The invalid died the next morning, immediately after
-being placed in her chair, where she had insisted upon
-sitting.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet arrived within an hour after, and took
-the direction of the humble funeral.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Within four days from this Miss Joe found herself
-at home with her grandnephew, little Hugh, her ward,
-Garnet Seabright, the old negress, who had fallen to
-little Garnet’s possession, along with the personal effects
-of her mother, and, lastly, with old Pontius Pilate, who
-had complained of great loneliness during his mistress’
-absence.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Little Hugh Hutton was a proud and happy little man
-the day of Netty’s arrival. He tried to multiply himself
-into a train of attendants to wait upon the little girl.
-He first proposed to give up his cot bed, his chair, and
-his little chest for her use. He brought her all his playthings,
-his bows and arrows, and guns and traps, and
-hammered all day at what he fondly supposed to be a
-boat, that he was making for her benefit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When General Garnet had taken leave of Miss Joe at
-Huttontown, just as she was about to cross over to her
-island, he had begged her to apply to him in any emergency,
-and to call on him for anything her young charge
-might want. The child of the soldier who had served
-under him throughout the Revolutionary war, who had
-once interposed his body to save his life, should never
-suffer for the necessaries or comforts of existence while
-that life was spared. And this he had said with that
-earnest and fervent tone, and with that benign and beautiful
-smile that never failed to fascinate the love and
-trust of all who heard and saw him. And Miss Joe felt
-assured and comfortable.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_65'>65</span>But now, as days slid into weeks, and weeks grew into
-months, Miss Joe heard no more of General Garnet and
-his promises, nor did she like to take him at his word
-and apply to him. He ought to prevent that and save
-her feelings, she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As years passed away, however, Miss Joe occasionally
-wrote to General Garnet in behalf of her little protégée.
-For the most part, her letters would remain unanswered,
-but when one did elicit a reply, General Garnet’s epistle
-would be full of kindness, blessing, encouragement, good
-advice, and—nothing else.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last, during a bitter winter, their main dependence,
-their faithful servant, poor old Pontius Pilate,
-caught the pleurisy and died. In the midst of this trouble
-Miss Joe wrote again to General Garnet, and once
-more, and for the last time, invoked his promised assistance.
-After the lapse of several days she received a
-letter from the benignant general, full of condolence,
-sympathy, and exhortation to hope and patience, and—nothing
-else! The letter concluded with the assurance
-that she had nothing to fear—that God never made a
-mouth for which he had not also provided food. To
-this letter the long-suffering old lady was exasperated
-to reply—that though it was true God had made both
-the mouths and the food, yet the mouths had fallen to
-her lot, and the food to his.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The general never replied to this last letter, and here
-the correspondence ceased.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_66'>66</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVI.<br> <span class='large'>ELSIE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in24'>Oh! the words</div>
- <div class='line'>Laugh on her lips; the motion of her smiles</div>
- <div class='line'>Showers beauty, as the air-caressed spray</div>
- <div class='line'>The dews of morning.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Milman.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in26'>But ever still,</div>
- <div class='line'>As a sweet tone delighteth her, the smile</div>
- <div class='line'>Goes melting into sadness, and the lash</div>
- <div class='line'>Droops gently to her eye, as if she knew</div>
- <div class='line'>Affection was too deep a thing for mirth.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Willis.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>General Garnet was certainly not a parsimonious
-man; perhaps his interest in his little godchild had died
-with her mother; perchance, being a very wealthy man,
-he could not appreciate the strait to which poor Miss
-Joe and her little family were reduced; possibly, he did
-not wish to give his personal attention to little Garnet’s
-necessities; probably, he intended that Miss Joe should
-get what was needed at the village store, upon his account;
-certainly, if Miss Joe had liberally interpreted his
-letters, and done so, he would, without demur, have settled
-the bill. But Miss Joe was far too cautious to put
-a doubtful construction on his letters, and run in debt.
-I never clearly comprehended the difficulty between
-them, but I believe they each misunderstood the other,
-and so General Garnet remained with the stigma of
-cruelty and ingratitude resting upon him, when, perhaps,
-he could be justly accused of indifference only.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Just about the time of Miss Joe’s last application also,
-General Garnet, like Martha, was troubled with many
-things. He was a candidate for the Senate, and all his
-thoughts engaged in the secret, intriguing, vexatious,
-multifarious business of electioneering; or if he had a
-thought or a moment to spare, it was divided between
-the negotiation with his neighbor, Mr. Hardcastle, of a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_67'>67</span>marriage between Magnus Hardcastle and Elsie Garnet,
-or in preparations for the return of his daughter—having
-his house repapered, repainted, and newly furnished.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus Hardcastle had obtained his diploma, and was
-getting into some little practice, despite the grumbling,
-growling, and swearing objections of his uncle, who
-could see no necessity for his nephew “making a slave
-of himself for nothing.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, absolutely for nothing! Let Magnus show a dollar
-that he had ever earned by all his practicing of medicine.
-Let him show even a dollar that he had ever got
-back for the medicines that he had dispensed along with
-his attention and advice!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was true, Magnus’ receipt-book, if he owned one,
-was an unwritten volume. His practice was mostly
-among poor people, who had no dollars to spare.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Well, then, what did he do it for? What good did it
-do him? There he was, rapped up out of his warm bed
-in the middle of the winter’s night, in the midst of a
-snowstorm, to ride five or six miles to some old woman
-in a cramp colic, or some child with the croup! What
-good did it do? And this was not the case once or
-twice, but five or six times in a month. And what good
-did it do him?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lives were saved!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, but what did he get for his trouble? Thanks,
-maybe. Pooh! he knew very well that half the time he
-got nothing but ingratitude and coarse abuse. He had
-better remember that Irishwoman, with an inflammatory
-fever, who took her powders every hour in a gill of
-whisky, and, being near death, swore the d—— doctor’s
-stuff had murdered her. He had better remember how
-the other woman cursed him for cutting off her husband’s
-mortified leg to the saving of his life. Pooh!
-Let him give up the dirty profession. He did not adopt
-him, did not intend to give him a fortune for the sole
-purpose of enabling him to be a poor doctor without even
-parish pay!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Sometimes Magnus would answer to this effect:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_68'>68</span>“Nonsense, my good uncle! If I can do any good in
-my day and generation, let me do it. Though I do sometimes
-get abuse from some poor, ignorant man, or, more
-frequently, a blowing up from some poor, nervous, overtasked
-woman, who, by the way, would defend me, to
-the death, the very next hour, if anyone else attacked
-me—why should I care? I am quite as well liked as I
-deserve to be. Most people are, in fact. Some day the
-people around here will send me to Congress in my own
-despite, I am so popular.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Send you to Congress! I expected that—I was only
-waiting for that. It only wanted that to complete my
-despair and your ruin.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear uncle, be easy—I shan’t go,” Magnus would reply,
-laughing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, Dr. Magnus Hardcastle was very popular, and
-could have carried as many votes as any man in the
-county. He was the constant companion of General Garnet,
-by what sort of attraction and association the reader
-cannot fail to know. Never was such a zealous partisan
-as Magnus! Never was such a stump orator,—earnest,
-eloquent, impassioned, large-souled, great-hearted,
-full of human sympathies,—he could sway a crowd to
-and fro in a manner that might have been amusing, if
-it had not been sublime in its exhibition of power. It
-was his personal appearance, as well as his temperament,
-that was the cause of much of this power over others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But it is time to give you some idea of Magnus Hardcastle
-at twenty-three. He was a fine illustration of the
-beauty of the vital system. He had the tall, athletic
-form that distinguishes the men of the Western Shore;
-a face rather square, by reason of the massive forehead
-and massive jaws, both indicating intellect and strength;
-but it was in the fullness of the beautifully rounded chin
-and cheeks, in the fullness of the large, but beautifully
-curved lips, that the fine, genial serenity, and joyous temperament
-was revealed; the line of the nose and forehead
-was nearly straight, and the eyes were clear blue,
-the complexion was clear and ruddy; and the face was
-surrounded by the darkest chestnut hair, and whiskers
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_69'>69</span>that met beneath the chin. The prevailing expression
-of this fine countenance was confidence and cheerfulness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus had been corresponding with Elsie for the
-last three years, and looked forward to her return with
-more of joyful anticipation than anyone else in the
-world, perhaps, except her mother. A year before this,
-two miniature portraits of Elsie, in her young womanhood,
-had been forwarded from England. One of them
-had been retained by her mother; the other was presented
-by General Garnet to Magnus. He wore it in
-his—vest pocket. It was his charm, his talisman, his
-abracadabra. When, if ever, he would become, for the
-instant, lazy, stupid, hopeless, or impatient, he would take
-that miniature out, touch the spring so that the case
-would fly open, and gaze upon that handsome, wholesome,
-happy face until energy, inspiration, hope, and
-patience came again; and he would close it, and replace
-it in his pocket with a joyous faith in his coming
-life, that not all the powers of evil could have shaken.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I told you that Magnus was the zealous, active, and
-most efficient partisan of General Garnet; he was also
-the dear friend and confidant of Mrs. Garnet. Many
-and long were the confidential talks they would have in
-Alice’s dressing room; and the subject of these conversations
-was Elsie—still Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>One day, after reading with Mrs. Garnet Elsie’s last
-delightful letter, and discussing with her Elsie’s expected
-arrival, he exclaimed joyfully: “This makes me gladdest
-of all!—that our fresh, dewy, charming Elsie will
-come at once to us. Well!—at once to me—that she
-will not have had, as most young ladies have, many
-other lovers; that the sun of the world will not have
-stolen the bloom and the dew from our beautiful Maryland
-rose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Magnus “reckoned” his future without destiny,
-his “host.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie had been withdrawn from school, indeed, and
-was quite ready and anxious to get home. She was to
-return with General A——’s family, who were soon expected
-to sail for the United States. But one circumstance
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_70'>70</span>following another, and connected with his diplomatic
-business, had deferred his departure from time
-to time, until six months passed away—during which
-time Miss Garnet had been presented at court, and was
-moving in the best society in London. Yes; and, though
-still impatient to come home, enjoying her happy self to
-the utmost, as every letter testified.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now, you would think that after having congratulated
-himself so upon the unsunned freshness of this
-beautiful Maryland rose, that Magnus would lament that
-she was blooming in the very blaze of the sun of fashion,
-in the very conservatory of a court.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>By no means; her letters reassured him, every one.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is well, very well, upon the whole,” he said. “She
-has now an opportunity of forming an acquaintance with
-one order of society that may never occur again—of getting
-an insight into one phase of human nature that
-nothing but this experience could afford her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And time sped on, and brought the day when a letter
-came to them, dated at Liverpool, and announcing that
-General A——, with his family, and Miss Garnet, would
-sail within a few days, in the ship <i>Amphytrite</i>, bound
-from that port to Norfolk. Therefore, it was expected
-that within a few days after, if not before the arrival of
-the letter, the <i>Amphytrite</i> would be in port.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, accompanied by Dr. Hardcastle, left
-Mount Calm immediately for Norfolk, to welcome his
-daughter, if the ship had come; to wait for her if it had
-not.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet remained at home to receive her, in fond,
-impatient expectation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She had Elsie’s bed chamber decorated, and a fire
-made in it every day, and the parlors lighted and
-warmed, and the tea table set for the whole party every
-evening.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last, one night,—a week after they had left home,—while
-she was standing before the parlor fire, trimming
-a lamp on the chimney-piece, and wondering sadly if
-she were not merely imagining that her long-lost daughter
-was expected home, a carriage drove rapidly up the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_71'>71</span>shaded avenue, steps were let down, people came, a little
-bustle ensued, hasty steps and joyous voices were heard.
-Alice ran out, and, in an instant, the mother, weeping,
-laughing, exclaiming, had caught, and was hugging her
-daughter laughing to her bosom. Yes, Elsie herself!—Elsie,
-warm, alive, real, and such an armful of bright,
-rosy, joyous life, and love and reality! I leave you to
-imagine the joy of the party around the tea-table that
-night, where all were too joyful to eat—or the late hour
-at which they separated for the night and retired to their
-several rooms, where each one was too happy to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next morning, happy, joyous Elsie had to hold
-a sort of levee for the benefit of the colored folks. Every
-negro in the house, or on the plantation, who had known
-her before she went away, had to come and shake hands
-with her, and welcome her back. And every little one
-that had grown from infancy to childhood during her
-absence, and to whom she was a sort of fabulous demigoddess,
-or, it might be, one of the angels, had to come
-and stare at her and be patted on the head, and get its
-paper of sugar-plums or its toy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then, later in the day, when her trunks and boxes
-arrived in the wagon, and were unpacked, she had to
-distribute her presents and tokens of remembrance to all
-and each of the colored people.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And in the course of the second day, when the news
-of her arrival began to be rumored about, the companions
-of her childhood, now grown up to be young men
-and women, flocked in to see her. And it was from their
-sly hints and innuendos that Elsie was taught that
-it was expected of her father to give a ball, and that,
-indeed, a great many people would be very greatly disappointed
-if he did not. And good-natured Elsie, in order
-to make so many young folks happy, named the matter
-to her father, and begged him, as a personal favor
-to herself, in consideration of her recent arrival home,
-to give a party. So General Garnet, willing to please his
-child, and believing, besides, that a large party might
-forward his electioneering prospects, gave his consent.
-He consulted Mrs. Garnet and Dr. Hardcastle, and fixed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_72'>72</span>the time of the ball for that day two weeks. Magnus
-was with Elsie every day. She perfectly understood,
-though she could scarcely have told why, for no one
-had as yet hinted the subject to her, that she was at no
-very distant period of time to be married to Magnus.
-She considered her marriage, like her leaving school,
-her presentation at court, and her coming-out ball, a
-part of the programme of her happy drama of life, and
-was content. She loved Magnus. During her absence
-in England, she had remembered and loved him as she
-had remembered and loved her father and mother—as
-one of the elements of her life’s joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When she returned, she had met him with the fond
-and free affection of a sister for an only brother.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And when she had been at home a week, and Magnus
-had found opportunity and courage, and led the beautiful
-and happy girl to a shady nook in the twilight parlor,
-and told her with the burning eloquence of passion
-how long, how deeply, how greatly he had loved her;
-how she had been at once his one memory and his one
-hope—his incentive, his dream, his inspiration, his guiding
-star, Elsie heard him with undisguised astonishment
-at his earnestness and enthusiasm, and wondered to herself
-where it all came from. And when he, full of doubt
-and fear, for her free and unembarrassed manner discouraged
-him, begged her to give him answer, she
-replied, without the slightest hesitation or embarrassment—nay,
-even in her native, gladsome, confident manner—that
-he need not have given himself so much anxiety;
-that of course everybody knew they were going
-to be married; didn’t their lands join? and, of course,
-she had never even thought of retreating.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Now you may think from that speech that Elsie was
-a sadly heartless and mercenary and calculating little
-baggage. She was as far as possible from being that.
-She was a fresh, innocent, totally inexperienced girl,
-who repeated, parrot-like, the sentiments of those around
-her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus knew that, and caught her, strained her to his
-bosom, pressed kisses on her brow, her cheeks, her lips,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_73'>73</span>in the delirious joy of “first and passionate love.” And
-Elsie broke from his arms and ran from the room suffused
-with blushes, trembling with a strange, painful,
-blissful tumult. All that evening Elsie wandered about
-upstairs, or sat dreaming, half in terror, half in joy,
-until her mother came in and asked of what she was
-thinking so deeply?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie started, and blushed violently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice took both her hands and gazed deeply into her
-face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At that earnest and tender mother’s gaze, the tears
-sprung into Elsie’s eyes, and then, as struck by something
-ludicrous in herself or her position, Elsie laughed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice pressed her hands, and released them, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is time to dress, my dear Elsie, your father expects
-you in the parlor. Let me fix your hair; it is in
-sad disorder.” And she smoothed and twined the rich
-ringlets around her fingers, letting them drop in long
-tendrils of golden auburn.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then she arranged her dress of purple cashmere,
-and they went below to the lighted parlor, where General
-Garnet and Magnus awaited them. The general
-and Magnus were engaged in a political discussion, but
-Magnus broke off and came at once to meet them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie, with a bright blush, turned away and walked to
-a distant table, where she ensconced herself with her
-tambour frame.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But from that day Elsie gradually changed. She kept
-out of the way of Magnus most sedulously. The courtship
-became a regular hunt. All Magnus’ ingenuity was
-employed in devising how he could circumvent Elsie’s
-arch and saucy prudery, and entrap her into a little
-lover’s talk or walk. And all Elsie’s tact was engaged in
-devising means to avoid without offending Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so days went on, until one day it fell like ice upon
-the warm heart of Magnus, that Elsie might not love him
-except as a brother; and oh! he thought of her first, free,
-fond, sisterly affection for him, until the evening upon
-which he first declared his passion, and then of her calm
-agreement to marry him because their lands joined, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_74'>74</span>her cold avoidance of him ever since. “Yes,” he said to
-himself, “it is too true. Elsie does not love me. I am
-wooing an unwilling bride. Shall I continue to do so?
-Shall I marry her and seal her misery? No, my God!
-No, though she is the first and last hope of my life, I will
-resign her if that will make her happy.” And so Magnus
-suddenly abandoned the pursuit of Elsie, and grew
-thoughtful, sorrowful, pale, and weary-looking.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then he absented himself from Mont Calm for several
-days. Elsie did not grow pale or thin; she was too sanguine
-for that; but she became uneasy, then anxious, then
-restless, and would walk about looking silently from the
-windows, particularly the back windows that overlooked
-the forest road leading down to the Hollow; or looking
-into her father’s or her mother’s face with an anxious,
-appealing look of silent inquiry. If the door-bell were
-rung, she would start violently, pause breathlessly, turn
-very pale, ask eagerly of the servant who returned, “who
-was that?” The answer, “Judge Jacky Wylie,” or
-“Marse Roebuck” caused her to sink back in her
-seat, disappointed and blushing with mortification. And
-yet only two or three days had passed; but then Magnus
-had been in the habit of coming twice a day, and
-staying over night; and two or three days seems to a
-young, impatient heart like two or three eternities.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last General Garnet, in the blackest rage and the
-brightest smile, put a pair of pistols in his pocket,
-mounted his magnificent black war-horse Death, and rode
-down to Hemlock Hollow, with the deliberate intention
-of courteously inquiring into Dr. Hardcastle’s motives of
-conduct, and blowing his brains out if the answer should
-not prove satisfactory. Not that he sympathized with
-Elsie, or believed in broken hearts, but that he had a
-saving faith in the junction of estates, and a high respect
-for the “honor of his house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He found Magnus looking sallow and haggard, and
-immediately surmised that he had been ill, reproached
-him in a polite, gentlemanly way for not having informed
-his friends of his indisposition, and finally hoped
-that he had recovered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_75'>75</span>Magnus pleaded guilty to illness, and much care and
-anxiety, and spoke of the pain that enforced absence from
-Elsie gave him. Not for the world would Magnus have
-hinted that Elsie’s coldness had driven him away, and
-that despair had made him ill; he knew too well that such
-a communication would be visited with great severity by
-her father upon the head of Elsie. And he judged
-rightly—General Garnet’s heart was set on the marriage
-of those two joining plantations. If Magnus had backed
-out, he would have shot him like a dog. If Elsie had retreated,
-he would have turned her out of doors. If both
-had broken off, by mutual consent, he would have—Satan
-only knows what he would not have done.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As it was now, he was perfectly satisfied with Magnus,
-insisted that he should come over the day of the ball,
-if not before, received his promise to do so, and took
-leave.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVII.<br> <span class='large'>THE BALL—THE UNEXPECTED GUEST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>There was a sound of revelry by night.</div>
- <div class='line in24'>... and bright</div>
- <div class='line'>The lamps shone o’er fair women and brave men;</div>
- <div class='line'>A thousand hearts beat happily, and when</div>
- <div class='line'>Music arose with its voluptuous swell,</div>
- <div class='line'>Soft eyes looked love to eyes that spoke again,</div>
- <div class='line'>And all went merry as a marriage bell!</div>
- <div class='line'>But hush! hark!</div>
- <div class='line in46'><i>—Byron.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The day of the ball arrived. People had been invited
-for twenty miles around. Apartments had been prepared
-for the guests who, coming from a distance, would be
-likely to remain all night. From an early hour in the
-afternoon carriages began to arrive, and the men-servants
-had enough to do in stabling the horses and putting
-away the vehicles; while the maid-servants were employed
-in showing the company to their dressing rooms,
-and attending upon them there.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_76'>76</span>Magnus came early in the afternoon, in order to have
-a private conversation with Mrs. Garnet, to whom he intended
-to open his heart fully.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He asked for her as soon as he arrived, and was immediately
-shown up into her bed chamber, into which
-both Alice and her daughter had been crowded by the
-incoming of their guests. As he entered, Alice came forward
-with a smile to meet him. Elsie started violently,
-colored brightly, and, ere anyone could prevent her, even
-if they had wished, flew from the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As she flew by him, Magnus fixed one passionate reproachful
-look upon her, and said, in a hurried voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fear nothing, Elsie! I will never trouble you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice, still smiling, pointed him to a chair. He sat
-down, dropped his forehead upon his hands for a moment,
-sighed heavily, looked up, and opened his story.
-He told Alice that he had discovered, to his eternal sorrow,
-that Elsie did not love him, that though to resign
-her was like resigning his hope of heaven, yet every
-principle of justice and honor obliged him to do so; he
-concluded by asking her opinion as to the best manner
-of breaking this affair to General Garnet, so as to shield
-Elsie from his indignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And so you wish to give Elsie up?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wish!” and Magnus dropped his forehead into his
-palms with a groan that might have started all the house,
-had they been listening. Then, lifting his head up again,
-he said sternly, almost fiercely:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Listen! If Elsie loved me, not all the power of earth
-or of hell—or—God forgive me!—I had nearly said of
-heaven—should sever her from me! not you—not her
-father—not herself—if only she loved me! But she does
-not, and it is all over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And who told you she did not love you?” inquired
-Alice, smiling at his vehemence, and sighing as her
-thoughts flew back to the past, when she was resigned in
-spite of herself. “Who told you that Elsie did not return
-your love?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With a gesture of despair Magnus recounted all that
-had passed between himself and Elsie, and ended, as he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_77'>77</span>had begun, with a groan, dropping his head upon his
-hands.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Puir human bodies are sic’ fules,</div>
- <div class='line'>Wi’ a’ their colleges and schules,</div>
- <div class='line'>That when nae real ills perplex ’em,</div>
- <div class='line'>They mak eno’ themsel’s to vex ’em,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>sang Alice; then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Magnus! with all your knowledge—with your
-classic, and mathematic, and philosophic, and metaphysic
-learning—with all your knowledge, not to know a young
-girl’s heart better than that! Oh, Magnus! ‘with all
-your getting, get wisdom, get understanding.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice, Cousin Alice! Do you mean to intimate what
-sometimes I have madly hoped—that I have been mistaken,
-that Elsie does——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That Elsie loves you a thousandfold more now,
-that she avoids you, than she did while she laughed,
-and talked, and romped with you. Oh, man! you should
-have found this out for yourself, and not have put me to
-the shame of betraying my child. And now, never let me
-hear another word of your self-sacrificing resignation of
-Elsie’s hand, or I shall take you at your word, as she
-would do now, for I don’t believe in it. I have more
-faith in the cruelest demonstrations of a downright, honest,
-sincere, human passion than in all the self-martyrizing
-resignation in the world!” said Alice, with a
-strange asperity, for her thoughts flew back again to the
-past. “Go, Magnus! You will find Elsie in the ballroom.
-Go, Magnus; I love you, or I never would have
-said all that I have said to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus seized the hand of Alice, pressed it to his
-heart, to his lips, and darted from the room in search of
-his betrothed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He found her in the large saloon, described in the beginning
-of this story as occupying the whole of the righthand
-wing of the house. She was standing at a table, arranging
-a large bouquet in a marble vase. He stole
-softly up behind her, and, restraining the impetuous force
-of his emotions, passed his arm gently around her waist,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_78'>78</span>and drew her—so gently!—to his heart. And Elsie’s
-head sank upon his shoulder. He raised her chin and
-kissed her—still so gently!—as fearing to startle her shy
-trust and again frighten her away. So gently, and
-trembling all over, for in his bosom he held a young tornado
-in check. At last she moved to withdraw herself
-from his arms; he pressed her once more to his bosom,
-printed one more kiss upon her lips, and let her go. So
-quiet and so silent was their reconciliation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He stood there where she left him in a happy trance,
-until the company began to drop in one by one, and in
-couples, and trios, and in small parties.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then he wandered on by himself. He strolled
-down the shaded avenue, and through the gate, and over
-the burnished hills, now brown with the sear wind of
-November, under the cold deep-blue starlit skies,
-wrapped in a blissful dream, until the sudden peal of
-music from the house awoke him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He turned to retrace his steps, and now saw the whole
-south wing blazing with light, and the sprite-like figures
-of the dancers as they flitted by the illuminated windows.
-He hastened back, entered the house, hurried to the little
-room always kept sacred to his use, arranged his toilet,
-and went below.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He entered the ballroom, which was resplendent and
-joyous with light, and music, and gay and brilliant company.
-Magnus slowly made his way through the crowd
-in search of his ladylove, but nodding, smiling, shaking
-hands, according to the degree of his acquaintance with
-the individuals that made up the company.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Judge Jacky was there in great force—superb in a
-blue velvet coat, white satin vest, and smallclothes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Ambrosia Wylie was there, too. Miss Ambush,
-as the colored folk perverted her pretty name. Oh, well
-named both ways, for she had grown up the most alluring
-<i><span lang="la">ignis-fatuus</span></i> that ever drew men on an elf chase
-through brambles and quagmires.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She had already drawn General Garnet on to ask her
-to dance! General Garnet, the proud, the stern, the majestic,
-the unbendable, is actually bending over her with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_79'>79</span>his most seraphic smile, and a gaze that might melt all
-the icebergs in the Northern Ocean—and she has raised
-her languishing eyes, with the look of a gratified angel,
-and she has given her hand, and he, still shining upon her
-with that sunlike smile, is leading her to the head of the
-cotillion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the meantime, Magnus found his ladylove. She
-was sitting at the farthest extremity of the room, the
-center of a circle of sprightly young people, who were
-eagerly engaged in asking her questions concerning her
-residence abroad, London, the court, the king, etc., etc.,
-and as eagerly listening to her replies. As Magnus
-gently broke through this circle, and approached her side,
-with a smile, her eyes fell and her color rose.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her young friends, with a smile, a laugh, or an arch
-glance, dropped off, one by one, leaving the lovers
-alone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And now Elsie’s eyes were dropped to the ground, and
-her color mounted to her temples.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the same moment a young gentleman came up and
-asked the pleasure of her hand in the next quadrille.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie, with a start, and a sigh of relief, suffered him to
-lead her forth to the head of the cotillion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I am sure Dr. Hardcastle was unconscious of the angry
-flush and fierce glance with which he followed the meanderings
-of the young couple through the mazes of the
-dance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Not so Elsie. With many a swift, furtive glance she
-detected the angry passion of her lover’s face, and felt
-self-reproach enough to bewilder her movements. Never
-had beautiful Elsie danced with less grace, and never had
-she been so glad when the set was over.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her partner led her to a seat, distant from the one he
-had taken her from, took his seat by the side of her, and
-held her in conversation that made her more fidgety than
-before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Poor Elsie was at length relieved by Judge Jacky, who,
-seeing her distress and embarrassment, came up, and
-taking my gentleman by the arm, and saying to him:
-“There is a very lovely woman who would not be averse
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_80'>80</span>to dancing the next set with you; come, let me introduce
-you to her,” marched him off to dance with a tall, thin
-young lady of sixty-five.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle now left his position across the room,
-and, walking leisurely, came up to Elsie, and dropped
-slowly into the seat just vacated.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And at that very instant, as if to try his patience to the
-utmost, up came Ulysses Roebuck, and holding out his
-hand, in quite a confident way, informed Elsie that he intended
-to confer upon her the glory and the joy of being
-his partner in the next set.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie glanced at Magnus, shook her head, and laughed
-lightly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Ulysses persisted, affirming that indeed he was in earnest,
-and did not mean to humbug her; that he really had
-reserved the honor and the pleasure of his hand in the
-next cotillion for her, and her alone. That his uncle had
-selected a very charming partner for him, whom he had
-declined, in consideration of her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie laughed a little, and told him she feared “the
-honor and the pleasure” was only offered to her in
-order to pique Ambrosia.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Whereupon Roebuck began to vow and protest, but in
-the midst of his vociferous asseverations, he happened to
-spy Ambrosia sitting down, quite exhausted, quite alone,
-apparently quite disengaged, for the first time during the
-evening, and Ulysses suddenly sped off toward her, in
-order to secure her at once—for the dance?—no, for a
-good, rousing quarrel.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why did you not dance with Ulysses?” inquired
-Magnus of Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She threw a swift glance to his face, then dropped her
-eyes, and replied, in a low tone:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I shall not dance again to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why?” he asked, taking her hand, and seeming to
-study its deep beauty. “Why will you not dance again
-to-night?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But she colored so deeply, and looked so distressed,
-that he desisted from questioning her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last Elsie of herself said, in a very low voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_81'>81</span>“Mother told me not to dance, unless it were to make
-up a set that could not otherwise be completed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But I do not understand why you should have been
-warned against your favorite amusement, Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, lest by filling up one place in the cotillion, I
-might keep some young lady from dancing,” replied she.
-But then, as though spurning disingenuousness, she
-added: “But that was not the only reason I refused
-Ulysses.” Then pausing, and making a great effort over
-herself, she added, in a very low and tremulous voice:
-“It was because you looked so annoyed while I was dancing
-with Mr. Brent.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The light of an unutterable joy shone on the face of
-Magnus. He caught her hand with a strong, almost
-crushing clasp—his bosom heaved—his eyes kindled and
-smoldered. He stooped his lips near Elsie’s ear to whisper
-something, but her cheek blazed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And just then a slight bustle at the other extremity of
-the room attracted their attention. Exclamations of astonishment,
-joy, and wonder were intermingled with
-many words of cordial greeting, and of hearty welcoming.
-Above all noises were heard the jocund tones of
-old Mr. Hardcastle. The bustle widened in the crowd,
-like eddies in the water where a stone had just been
-cast, and the crowd seemed to be swayed toward the
-place where our lovers sat. The center of this crowd
-was a young man of rather effeminate, but exceeding
-personal beauty, tall, and slightly, but elegantly proportioned,
-with Grecian features, a fair, roseate complexion,
-golden hair, and light, soft, hazel eyes. He was receiving,
-and gracefully and graciously acknowledging, the
-<i><span lang="fr">devoirs</span></i> of all around him, who were also moving with
-him towards Magnus and Elsie. As he drew near, they
-both simultaneously exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My Cousin Lionel!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Lionel Hardcastle!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And both eagerly started forward, holding out their
-hands, in joyful welcome, before even thinking of the
-miracle of his advent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel at first shook hands with Magnus, then, seeming
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_82'>82</span>to yield to a sudden and irresistible impulse, folded
-him to his heart in a close brotherly embrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He then took Elsie’s hand, bowed over it gracefully,
-raised it tenderly to his lips, when Elsie exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my dear old playmate, I am so glad! so glad!
-that you were not lost after all!” threw herself into his
-arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The youth’s eye and cheek kindled with a hectic flush,
-as he pressed the innocent, affectionate girl for an instant
-to his bosom, and released her to turn and see Magnus
-grasp her arm with no very gentle hand, and lead her
-away. To the many eager questions of “When did you
-arrive?” “Where from?” “How did you escape?”
-“Where have you been all this time?” put to him by the
-astonished crowd as soon as they recovered sufficient
-strength, Lionel replied:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To-morrow, to-morrow, I will tell you all about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That you shan’t! you shan’t tell for a week. It is
-enough, good Heaven, to have you among us. No more
-questions shall be asked or answered for a week!” exclaimed
-Judge Wylie, in a magisterial tone, and the company
-understood that they had been wearying a fatigued
-traveler, and desisted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was late when the ball broke up. And Judge Jacky,
-who seemed possessed with a spirit of jollity, resolved to
-follow up this party by one of his own. Accordingly,
-that very night, he improvised the “time, place, and circumstance”
-of a ball, and availed himself of the opportunity
-afforded by the presence of so many of his familiar
-friends, to give out rather informal verbal invitations.
-When all the company had departed, a cloud remained
-upon the brow of General Garnet. He spoke
-coldly to Magnus, in reply to his “good-night,” as the
-latter left the house. Alice looked deeply distressed.
-Elsie glanced from father to mother with a vague presentiment
-of impending evil.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_83'>83</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XVIII.<br> <span class='large'>THE NEW-FOUND HEIR.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><i>Ernest.</i>—Which is the bridegroom?</div>
- <div class='line'><i>Wilhelm.</i>—Marry! the heir.</div>
- <div class='line in26'><i>—Newman.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Magnus had returned home with his cousin. The
-next day the family from the Hollow dined at Mount
-Calm, by invitation. General Garnet was still cold and
-reserved to Magnus, but showed the most marked attention
-to Lionel. This at first surprised Dr. Hardcastle;
-but soon, with a haughty curl of the lip, he thought:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I see how it is; fortune has changed. I have lost an
-inheritance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After dinner Lionel told a tale of an Algerine cruiser,
-of a long captivity, of a hair-breadth escape, but left as
-vague an impression of reality upon the minds of his
-hearers as it leaves now upon the minds of my readers.
-They did not doubt his story, but they could not well connect
-the effeminate beauty of the man with any life of
-pirate-adventure and slavery hardships.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie was saddened for the first time in her life, and
-she scarcely knew wherefore. During the short estrangement
-between herself and her lover she had been nervous,
-anxious, excitable; now she was depressed. She
-loved her mother very tenderly; she loved her father passionately;
-and Magnus she loved—oh, how shall I say?—with
-an infinite future reservation. But now she saw
-a cloud—she was too guileless to know wherefore—settle
-and deepen, dark, cold, and chill, between her lover
-and her father; and the happy, buoyant Elsie grew pensive
-and thoughtful. General Garnet, with all his coldness,
-was studiously polite; and Magnus was self-possessed
-and social.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As this day passed—as far as the relative positions of
-some of the parties were concerned—so passed the
-weeks, and brought the day upon which Judge Wylie’s
-party was to be given.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_84'>84</span>There was a heavy cloud of thought and care upon the
-brow of General Garnet; and those who knew him well
-surmised that he was considering the best manner of
-transferring the hand of the heiress of Mount Calm from
-the poor doctor to the rich heir of Hemlock Hollow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus continued his visits, as usual, undisturbed by
-the freezing exterior of General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice always received him with affection; and Elsie’s
-manner to him was earnest, affectionate, deferential, as if
-she wished to make up for her father’s coldness. She
-was no longer shy and diffident. It seemed as if the
-presentiment of some impending misfortune, which
-she felt rather than understood, had thrown down the
-barriers of her reserve, and that she could not do too
-much, in her sweet, feminine way, to assure Magnus of
-her unchangeable affection and unswerving truth. Her
-eyes waited on him, shyly, all day long, for her maiden
-pride was self-subdued, but not her maidenly delicacy.
-Elsie had no suspicion of what her father really meant
-until the morning of the day upon which Judge Wylie’s
-ball was to be given. General Garnet called Elsie into
-his room, and having explained in his polite way—he
-was polite even to his child—that circumstances beyond
-all human calculation or control had rendered it expedient
-that a new adjustment of affairs should take place,
-and that she must no longer look upon Magnus Hardcastle
-in the light of a suitor for her hand, but must, on
-the contrary, prepare herself to think of, and accept,
-Lionel Hardcastle, to whom he had given permission to
-visit her—Elsie opened wide her eyes in undisguised
-astonishment, that her father, her revered father, should
-ask her to break her plighted faith; but without one atom
-of terror, and without an instant’s hesitation, she answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, father, being engaged to Magnus, with yours
-and mother’s consent, I would no more forsake him now
-than if I were already his wedded wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We shall see, Miss Garnet. I will give you time,”
-replied the General, in his soft, but sarcastic, manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father,” said Elsie, her cheek burning with shame
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_85'>85</span>and indignation, “if I should give you to suppose that
-any lapse of time could alter my determination, I should
-be a coward or a hypocrite. Father, I would not have
-engaged myself without your consent and my mother’s,
-for I should have felt that to be wrong; but having engaged
-myself with your consent and blessing, I will not
-break that engagement, come what may. I promised, with
-your approbation, to give my hand to Dr. Hardcastle on
-Thursday week, and Thursday week, father, I must do
-it. Dr. Hardcastle has lost an inheritance; an event
-which he rejoices in, since it gives his uncle back a
-dearly beloved and long-lost son. But he must not lose
-his wife, father; he shall not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet stood like one thunderstruck. His wife
-had never ventured to oppose his will, except</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“To plead, lament, and sue,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>to avert some cruel deed. His servants had ever trembled
-before him. His very neighbors and associates had
-fallen into the habit of yielding to his inflexible will;
-and here was a little girl of seventeen years of age, with
-positively her own notions of right and wrong, of faith
-and infidelity, of honor and dishonor—and telling him,
-with a high, unblanching cheek, and a clear, unfaltering
-voice, that she meant to abide by right, and eschew
-wrong! He turned pale with suppressed rage; his eyes
-gleamed with their sinister light; he clenched his fist,
-and made one step towards her, but retreated again, and
-dropped his hand. The polished “gentleman” asserted
-its supremacy of habit over the angry “man.” It would
-not be <i><span lang="fr">comme-il-faut</span></i> for “General Garnet” to give
-“Miss Garnet” a good drubbing with his fists; besides,
-there was a look of calm, healthful moral strength about
-the mere child that forcibly impressed him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, this thing came suddenly upon me, and surprised
-me out of my self-possession, and the respect that
-is due to you. I spoke hastily, and, I fear, irreverently.
-I earnestly repent it, and ask your pardon. Forgive
-me,” said Elsie; and she approached, and would have
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_86'>86</span>offered herself in his embrace; but General Garnet extended
-his hand, and waved her off.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do I understand you to say, Miss Garnet, that you
-repent your foolish decision? If so, I am sincerely rejoiced
-to hear it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, sir. Always, father, and in all else, I will be
-your submissive child. But for this, sir, you, yourself,
-laid on me this other duty, which I cannot shake off.
-Forgive me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet looked at her steadily, while gleamed
-that red light from his dark eyes, and slowly shook his
-head, as communing with himself. Then, turning suddenly,
-and muttering something that sounded very much
-like a threat to “break her will or break her heart,” he
-left the room; and Elsie sank down in her chair, and
-leaning upon the windowsill, raised her eyes to heaven,
-“full of thought and prayer.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XIX.<br> <span class='large'>THE DEVOTION OF LOVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh! sweeter far than wealth, than fame, than all,</div>
- <div class='line'>Is first and passionate love; it stands alone.</div>
- <div class='line in46'><i>—Byron.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>There was a much larger, but not so select, a company
-invited by the genial, social Judge Jacky than that assembled
-by the proud and reserved General Garnet. And
-by “early candle light”—the country hour for assembling
-for a ball—the whole house—parlors, chambers,
-family rooms, and saloon—were crowded to overflowing.
-The dining room only was kept shut up, for there the
-two long tables were to be set for supper. The saloon,
-or “big room,” as it is plainly called in old-fashioned
-country houses, was blazing with light and splendor, and
-pealing with music, and alive with young men and maidens
-in ball dresses, laughing, talking, wooing, flirting,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_87'>87</span>dancing. It was something like General Garnet’s ball
-on a larger and somewhat coarser scale, it must be confessed,
-but then it was such a joyous, jubilant, exultant
-scene! The young folks laughed, and talked, and
-danced, and jested with so much gladness and freedom!
-And Judge Jacky moved about laughing, talking, joking,
-gallanting all the ugly old maids, making love to all the
-low-spirited old widows, flattering and complimenting
-all the plain girls, encouraging all shamefaced young
-gentlemen, and electrifying into jocund life all the “flat,
-stale, and unprofitable” folks in the joyous company.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But it is not with the gay and thoughtless of that
-merry throng that we have to do, but with our great-hearted
-Magnus and our dear Elsie. You know at this
-moment, just as well as I do, that they both had too much
-on their minds to think of dancing. They had each come
-to the ball chiefly to meet the other and have a talk.
-General Garnet would willingly have kept Elsie away,
-but he did not think it polite to offend Judge Wylie by
-doing so. But one thing he had taken care to do—to
-send for Lionel Hardcastle to escort her there. And
-Lionel had ridden in the carriage alone with Elsie from
-Mount Calm to Point Pleasant, and had had every opportunity
-of pursuing a courtship that he had commenced
-almost from the first evening of his return. Elsie cut
-him short in the midst of one of his finest speeches by
-telling him that he was making love to his cousin’s wife—or
-to one who would be so on Thursday week! Yes,
-Elsie compelled herself to say exactly that to Lionel, to
-crush his hopes at once. On reaching the house at Point
-Pleasant, Elsie said aloud to Magnus, who came out to
-meet them:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dr. Hardcastle, help me to thank your cousin for
-the kind manner in which he has supplied your place in
-attending me here,” and, bowing courteously to Lionel,
-she took the arm of Magnus and entered the saloon.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were now seated at the farthest extremity of the
-vast saloon, within the bay window. Elsie was looking
-very beautiful this evening. She was dressed in a gossamer
-white crape, over white satin. Her snowy arms
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_88'>88</span>and neck were bare, and encircled by diamond bracelets
-and necklace. She was always beautiful, but now her
-usually happy, joyous face was softened and deepened
-into an expression of serious thought and feeling ineffably
-charming.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had been conversing. Elsie had told him all that
-had passed between herself and her father. And Magnus
-had recounted a similar scene that had taken place
-between himself and General Garnet. He had, as Elsie
-had, asserted his determination to abide by their betrothal.
-He repeated the same thing to Elsie now. It
-was this—this saving of her heart’s fondest hopes amid
-the crash of fortune—that made Elsie feel and look so
-very blessed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They were still conversing. He raised her hand—she
-had an exquisitely beautiful hand, elegantly shaped, and
-white as snow, and now diamond rings sparkled upon it;
-appropriate ornaments for it, as one may see. Well, he
-raised that small, white, jeweled hand, and looking tenderly,
-half-remorsefully upon it, said—and his voice was
-full-toned and melodious with love and sorrow:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This tiny, snow-white hand, sparkling with diamonds—this
-fresh, pure, delicate thing!—a jewel itself!—how
-can it be put to the uses to which my wife’s hand
-must be put, Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She looked at him with passionate devotion, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Take the jewels off and cast them from thee, Magnus—do!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And this slender wrist—you have such a beautiful
-arm, Elsie! What a round, full, graceful curve from
-the elbow to the forearm, and how elegantly it tapers off
-to the slender wrist! Ah! this arm, so pure and fresh,
-so well decked with this sparkling diamond bracelet—like
-icicles upon snow! How will it support labor?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The bracelet offends you, too? It was my father’s
-birthday gift; but I like it no longer—it offends you.
-Take it off and cast it from you. Press your thumb and
-finger around my arm instead. Press it tightly, so that
-you will leave a ring there. It will be a red bracelet—or
-even a black one; so that when I can no longer see you,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_89'>89</span>I may close my eyes, and, feeling the impress of your fingers,
-cheat my heart with the fancy that you still grasp
-my wrist with a sweet violence. It will be another dearer
-bracelet that I will wear in remembrance of you. Oh,
-don’t you know I understand now the enthusiasm of the
-saints?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dearest Elsie, let us go forth from here. The light,
-the glare, the crowd, the noise here is insufferable. Let us
-go forth in the fresh air under the light of the holy stars.
-Come, love! My heart hungers, faints, to press you to
-itself. Come, love!” And opening a leaf of the bay
-window, he led her forth. It was a mild, clear, beautiful
-starlight night for the season, yet the air was chill, and
-Elsie was lightly clad. He looked at her and glanced
-around. The lighted window of a sitting room in the
-angle of the building showed that apartment to be vacant.
-He led her there. It was one of those small, conical
-wainscoted parlors so common in old houses. A fine fire
-was burning in the chimney, and a little old-fashioned
-green settee drawn up on one side of the fireplace. The
-room had an air of delightful snugness, comfort, and repose.
-He led her to this sofa and seated himself beside
-her, opened his arms, and whispered: “Come to my
-bosom, my own soul’s love!” and folded her closely
-there. “Elsie, my pure, fresh, delicate, elegant Elsie,
-can you go with me indeed to share my lot of poverty and
-struggle? Oh, Elsie! if you do, will you never repent?
-Oh, Elsie! do you know what poverty is? Born and
-brought up in luxury and wealth, do you know what poverty
-is? Oh, Elsie, my little idealist, there is no poetry
-in poverty. Oh, Elsie, my little epicurienne, every sense
-is shocked and tortured in poverty. You see unsightly
-things, you hear discordant sounds, you come in contact
-with roughness, you partake of coarse food; oh, Elsie!
-ideality is wounded and saddened, sense is shocked, and
-love itself, perhaps, revolted!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never! oh, never!” she said fervently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Elsie! my bright, beautiful Elsie! my delicate,
-elegant Elsie! I am worse than an executioner to marry
-you. I feel it, and yet I shall do it. God knows that I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_90'>90</span>will have you, and let the future take care of itself!” he
-said, pressing her strongly to his bosom.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, have me, have me; let me be always with you.
-It will be bliss ineffable. I should die if you were to
-leave me. My heart would consume itself in its own
-fires. I do not care for wealth, or rank, or distinction,
-or for ease or luxury. I only care for the wealth and
-luxury of your affection, and your constant society. I
-do not fear to have ‘ideality wounded and saddened.’
-No, for the soul creates its own poetry. I do not fear
-to have every sense shocked. I do not fear to live amid
-unsightly objects and discordant sounds, and rough contacts;
-oh, no, for the soul creates its own heaven of
-beauty and harmony. I do not fear to have love revolted.
-Oh! no, no, no! I only fear a separation from
-you. My whole being trembling, tends toward you—so
-strong, as it would lose itself in you. Shut out the
-world, shut out light and sound, only let me feel your
-arms around me, pressing my bosom to your heart as
-now. All my life is compressed within my heart, and it
-is bursting to meet yours. I am blind, deaf, dead to all
-but you. I have scarcely self enough to say ‘I have no
-self.’ I love myself in you. Oh, my greater self! my
-larger life!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So the softly flushed and moist cheeks, the heavy,
-liquid eyes, and the palpitating bosom said, but no word
-escaped the parted and glowing lips. Nor could a word
-have escaped between the kisses that were pressed upon
-them. Then he released her, and they sat upon the old-fashioned
-sofa by the glowing hickory fire in the old
-wainscoted parlor, and, hand in hand, talked. Oh, how
-they talked! Sometimes with profound earnestness,
-sometimes with light and bantering gayety.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yet you have had many admirers, Elsie,” said Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have I?” she asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Elsie, you know that you have.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I try not to know it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, dearest?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because I wish I was an Eastern bride for you. Oh,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_91'>91</span>yes! I wish that I had been reared in conventual seclusion,
-that no man’s eye had seen me until my husband
-came to claim me; that, then, I could have gone apart
-from the world and seen only him. That would have
-been exquisite; that would have been blissful; for I do
-not want admiration; I want only your heart’s approval!
-There would be such intense and concentrated joy in
-knowing only you. My joy would be diluted if my heart
-were divided among many.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But your numerous admirers, dearest?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my numerous admirers! I did not finesse when
-I asked you if I really had any; for, in truth, my ‘admirers’
-never came near enough to me to breathe their
-admiration.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why was that? How was that? Tell me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look in my eyes, love, and read your answer there.
-Peruse my heart, love. It lies open to you as a book.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nay, tell me. I love to hear you talk. It delights
-me to listen to you. Tell me now. It is some sweet
-secret that will give me heaven to know. Come, love, be
-generous. Breathe the secret out upon my bosom,” he
-whispered softly, and drew her again to his heart.
-“Come, love——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I will. I will repress this feeling of reluctance,
-and tell you all my thoughts. Yes, for surely I feel you
-have a right to have an answer to any question you ask
-me, my higher self. Listen, then. Bend low, for I shall
-whisper very low, lest the air around should hear me.
-When you first drew me on to love you, when leaf by
-leaf my heart unfolded and developed under the life-giving
-warmth of your eyes, of your touch, just as a rose
-buds and blossoms under the rays of its sovereign, the
-sun—my heart, I mean, or something rising within it—taught
-me many mysteries that neither prophet, priest,
-nor sage could have taught me. Among other things,
-it revealed to me the knowledge of all that would please
-and all that would displease you in myself, and impelled
-me to follow the first and eschew the last. It made me
-wish to isolate myself for you. It killed the very first
-germ of vanity in my heart, and made me wish that none
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_92'>92</span>should come near enough to me to know whether I were
-beautiful or otherwise, far less so near as to tell me of it.
-It made me shrink from all those little gallantries from
-gentlemen which make up so large a portion of a belle’s
-life. I was so afraid of being found unworthy of you
-when you should take me. I should not have felt good
-enough for you if my hand, that awaited your hand, had
-been squeezed and kissed, and my waist, that awaited the
-dear girdle of this arm—fold it closer around me now—had
-been pressed, and I, your expectant bride, had been
-twined and whirled about in the giddy waltz. But none
-of these things have happened to me. I come to you
-almost an Oriental bride for exclusiveness, and that
-makes me so happy. I should have else been unhappy,
-should else have been unworthy of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All this was murmured slowly, softly, dreamily, as
-though the truth stole out of a slumbering heart, while
-she lay upon his bosom, and the last words were breathed
-forth in an almost inaudible sigh. But he answered with
-passionate vehemence, clasping her to his heart:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Unworthy of me! You! so beautiful! so good! so
-intellectual!—save when your highest intellect is
-whelmed in feeling!—yet, no—your highest intelligence—your
-spirit—is never so whelmed! You, the heiress
-of the haughtiest family in Maryland—and I—who
-am I?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My greater self! my life-giver!—by these titles only
-I know you. Does my rank and fortune offend you?
-Pluck me away from them; for I am yours. Bury me
-with yourself, in some lone forest cabin, in the wilderness,
-whither your footsteps tend; and there my hunter’s
-wife will forget the world, while preparing the cabin for
-his return at eve. And she will not think the hours of
-his absence long, for they will be filled with fervent
-thoughts of him. Oh, that hunter’s lodge in the wild! I
-see it even in my dreams!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And this was not romance; but the passionate fanaticism
-of first, of early love.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Elsie! how you talk!” he exclaimed, gazing on
-her eloquent face with wonder, reverence, and passion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_93'>93</span>She blushed deeply, and bowed her crimson brow upon
-his bosom, murmuring:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do I? I am sorry. I suppose maidens do not talk
-so; do they?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not know how maidens do or should talk, any
-more than you do,” answered Magnus, and then a singular
-expression passed over his countenance. He bent his
-gaze upon her, with a look of profound thought and
-searching inquiry, as though to read the depths of that
-heart she had so freely laid open to his perusal. And he
-said, very seriously: “I do not know how maidens talk,
-for I have spoken with but one maiden before of love.”
-He paused and gazed down deeply into her eyes, as if to
-read her most hidden thought and feeling—possibly he
-expected to see some trace of jealousy there—he saw only
-the calm, profound repose of love, deep joy, and infinite
-trust. He resumed: “I never talked with but one
-maiden of love before; she was my first love.” Again he
-looked down, and saw upon her beautiful face the same
-ineffable peace. He continued: “I loved her passionately.
-I lost her. It nearly maddened me.” For the
-last time he gazed down upon her, as she lay quietly over
-his arm, with her face turned up to his, but her whole
-countenance radiated with a sort of calm, rapt ecstasy,
-as though she were then in the possession of all the bliss
-possible on earth. He gazed for a moment, full of astonishment,
-and then quietly asked: “Is it possible that this
-gives you no uneasiness, my love?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Does what?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The thought of my first love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, dearest. Why should it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘Why should it?’ What a question. Why should
-it not?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I don’t know, I am sure. When I do, I’ll tell you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yet,” said Magnus thoughtfully, “though the idea
-of my having had a first love gives you no pain, you
-felicitated yourself and me very much upon the fact of
-your having had no other lover.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, that was a very different thing. Don’t you feel
-that it was?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_94'>94</span>“Yes; I feel it. But tell me now—think—why is it
-that the thought of my first love does not distress you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Indeed, I do not know at all. I only know by the
-sure inspiration of my soul, and feel in every nerve of
-my body, that you love me; and I am so ineffably
-blessed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My darling Elsie!” he said, joyously kissing the lids
-down upon her two sweet eyes. “My darling Elsie, you
-are not selfish or jealous for yourself at all. I only
-wished to probe your heart a little. You were so jealous
-for me that I thought perhaps you might be so for yourself.
-You are not, my darling Elsie; my light of life!
-You are the only woman I ever loved! Yet, dearest, I
-told you no fiction. You, yourself, were ‘the maiden to
-whom I spoke before of love.’ But it was soon after
-you returned from school. You, yourself, were the
-maiden whom I lost,—for a little while, during our short
-misunderstanding,—and whose loss nearly maddened
-me. Oh, come! enter the heart of hearts, and live there
-forever!” He clasped her closer, and they subsided into
-silence, or conversed only with their eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Long, long they remained in that still trance of joy,
-but at last Elsie withdrew herself, laughing, from his
-arms, sat down beside him, and they began to talk of
-their future home. He told her it would be indeed a
-cabin in the backwoods of Maryland; but not a hunter’s
-cabin, as she fancifully supposed. Oh, no! but a country
-doctor’s dwelling, in a new settlement. And that he
-would not return at eve in the hunter’s picturesque costume,
-with a gun and a nine-antlered deer across his
-shoulders, but upon the back of a stout mule, with a country
-doctor’s saddle-bags behind him. How would she
-like that?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, very well, dearest Magnus! for then you will be
-saving life instead of taking it. Oh, yes, I do like—I do
-love—your profession, Magnus. Since you must have
-one, I like it better than any other you could have chosen.
-I think physicians do more disinterested good than any
-other set of men on earth. I will not even except the
-preachers. Oh, yes! I do love your profession, dear
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_95'>95</span>Magnus, and love you better, if possible, for being a
-poor country doctor. God love and bless you! When
-you shall have come home tired, from your long round—oh,
-you shall have sweet repose, love—indeed you shall!
-God bids me to assure you that you shall. Whatever our
-cabin home may be, I can make it a little haven of repose—a
-little heaven of bliss for you. Oh, indeed I do not
-fear; my whole full soul assures me that we shall be
-happy and victorious over fate. Let me kiss your eyes—you
-kissed mine just now, so sweetly. God bless those
-grand eyes! Oh, Magnus, can a cabin or a garb of
-homespun hide the light, the greatness that is in you?
-Oh, Magnus, I saw a king and several princes of the
-blood when I was presented at court by General Armstrong;
-but their foreheads were low and receding, their
-presence had the strut without the dignity of majesty.
-Oh, Magnus, their kingly crown could not have given
-either that magnificent forehead of yours. Oh, Magnus,
-there is something greater in you than any surrounding
-you can have. Do not any more dread that I shall be
-either pained or revolted at anything in the circumstances
-of our condition. The rough walls of a log cabin will
-not shock or sadden me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, darling, for the rough walls of our log cabin, like
-the rough bark of an oak tree, has something really picturesque
-about it; but”—said he, in a half-sorrowful,
-half-comic way—“the pots and kettles, the mops and
-brooms!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What! the humble little household gods and goddesses
-that set up no pretension to worship, or even to
-honorable mention, and yet confer so much benefit? No,
-indeed. I have a kindly feeling for all such. Mine, if
-they can’t be beautiful, shall be neat and pretty. Oh,
-don’t you remember when we were children, and used to
-run in out of the snow to old Aunt Polly’s kitchen, and
-how she’d press us in to help her every time she could?
-Oh, I know a great deal about cooking, and I always had
-a turn for housekeeping.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He arose, took her hand, and raised her up, and looked
-at her from head to foot, as she stood—that delicate,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_96'>96</span>beautiful girl, in her elegant ball dress of gossamer crape
-over white satin, diamonds sparkling on her arms and
-neck, as he had said, like icicles upon snow. He surveyed
-her, from her white rose-wreathed auburn hair to
-the tip of the white satin slipper. He clasped her hand,
-and looked at it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know,” she said, “what you are thinking of again—‘Elsie
-must doff this dress, and this style of dress, for
-some years to come’; but do not fear, within ten years,
-and by the time that the beauty of your love has matured,
-Elsie will weave a more elegant dress than this,
-when her husband’s talents shall have ‘achieved greatness.’
-And this little hand that you look at so fondly, so
-sadly—‘this pure, fresh, delicate thing, a jewel itself,’ as
-you called it just now—under this soft, white cushion of
-flesh are nerves and sinews of steel. I am very strong,
-dear Magnus, very strong every way. And I can work;
-this hand shall toil and retain its beauty, because you
-prize it, too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He clasped her again to his breast, and drew her white
-arms up around his neck. And then that notion of isolation
-came upon her again like a fond superstition, and she
-whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not want neighbors or friends where we live,
-love. I want only you. I want no one that can take me
-off from you. It is late. Shall I go?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dear love,” she answered, untwining her arms
-from about his neck.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_97'>97</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XX.<br> <span class='large'>ELSIE IN THE ATTIC.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>To-night, when my head aches indeed,</div>
- <div class='line'>And I can either think nor read,</div>
- <div class='line'>And these blue fingers will not hold</div>
- <div class='line'>The pen—(this attic’s freezing cold)—</div>
- <div class='line'>I tell you, I pace up and down</div>
- <div class='line'>This garret, crowned with love’s best crown,</div>
- <div class='line'>And feasted with love’s perfect feast,</div>
- <div class='line'>To think I bear for him at least.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Browning.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>When they re-entered the ballroom the revelry was
-still at its height. Six cotillions were on the floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Judge Jacky was flying about, now here and now there,
-now everywhere at once.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Ambrosia Wylie, in a gold-colored satin, that harmonized
-well with her warm-hued tone of beauty, sat in the
-bay window, the sunny center of a system of satellites.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, who had got through with the political
-business that detained him at Huttontown, had just arrived,
-and was now standing apart, conversing with
-Lionel Hardcastle. He frowned darkly on seeing Elsie
-enter the room leaning on the arm of Magnus, and both
-looking so self-possessed, confident, and happy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He smoothed his brow quickly, however, excused himself
-to Lionel, and advanced toward them. Bowing
-slightly to Magnus, he took the arm of Elsie, and saying
-that he wished to have a conversation with her, drew her
-off for a promenade.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In going off, Elsie turned, smiled on Magnus, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I do not return in half an hour, Dr. Hardcastle,
-you must seek me out,” and, bowing playfully, she went
-on.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Was that done to insult me, Miss Garnet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, dearest father, it was done out of respect to Dr.
-Hardcastle; as you forgot to excuse yourself to him for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_98'>98</span>taking me off so abruptly, it would have been scarcely
-courteous in me to have left him without a word. We
-would not have treated a common acquaintance so,
-father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A common acquaintance! And pray what more is
-Dr. Hardcastle entitled henceforth to be considered?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“As my husband, and as your son-in-law, father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet turned pale, and spoke low, with suppressed
-rage:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your husband, and my son-in-law! I—would—see—him—and—you—in
-the lowest pit of h——l first!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie gave a violent start as this awful word struck
-her like a bullet. It was the more awful, that Elsie had
-never known her father to forget himself so far before.
-Violence shocked her, profanity revolted her; she was
-unaccustomed to either. Her father, even in his tyranny,
-was habitually polite. Her mother was ever gentle.
-Fury, threats, were strange to her; and now came this
-terrible burst of passion, the more terrible for its half
-suppression. She gazed at him in alarm. His face was
-white with anger, but it reminded her of the white ashes
-upon a burning coal. He continued in the same deep,
-stern tone:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How dared you even receive that young man’s attentions,
-after I have withdrawn my countenance of
-him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, because his attentions were my right and his
-right. Who else, in your absence, could have attended
-me with so much propriety?” asked Elsie, trembling in
-her flesh, but firm in her spirit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do not commit the impertinence of answering my
-question by asking another again, Miss Garnet. A question
-which, impertinent as it was, I will answer. ‘Who,’
-you inquire, ‘in my absence, could have attended you
-with so much propriety?’ I reply, Mr. Lionel Hardcastle,
-the gentleman under whose protection I placed you
-for the evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And who wickedly abused his position by addressing
-the words of love to one whom he knew to be Dr. Hardcastle’s
-betrothed wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_99'>99</span>“Death! if you say that again,” exclaimed General
-Garnet, trembling with fury.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And whom,” continued Elsie, frightened, but resolute,
-“I had therefore to dismiss as soon as I found Dr.
-Hardcastle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He grasped her arm with a violence that might have
-crushed it. He set his teeth, and drew his breath hard.
-He could not shake or beat her there—not in that room
-full of company—among those hundreds of people. He
-could not even let them see the rage that was on the
-eve of explosion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He looked around. Seeing Lionel Hardcastle at a
-short distance, he beckoned him to approach, and, without
-relinquishing his vise-like grip, said, in a deep, hurried
-tone:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do me the favor to call my carriage, sir, instantly, if
-you please.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel opened his soft, bright eyes in a look of wide
-surprise, turned on Elsie a gaze of mingled admiration,
-sorrow, and deprecation, and, bowing to General Garnet,
-moved off to comply with his request.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet grasped Elsie’s arm with a suppressed
-fierceness, and pulled her after him into the hall, thence
-out into the portico, and down the steps to the carriage
-door. Pushing her forcibly in, he jumped in after,
-pulled to the door, commanded the coachman to drive
-rapidly for Mount Calm, and was soon whirled away on
-the road to that place. He maintained a stern silence
-toward Elsie during the whole ride.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arrived at Mount Calm, he sprang from the carriage,
-took Elsie out, drew her arm roughly within his own,
-and pulled her up the steps.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Has your mistress retired?” was the first question he
-asked of the servant at the door. The man started at
-the fierce abruptness of his master’s tone and manner,
-and replied hurriedly that she had.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is very well. Go wake up the housekeeper; ask
-her for the keys of the attic-room, and bring them to me
-yourself, with a night-lamp.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man hurried away in dismay. And General Garnet
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_100'>100</span>remained there, still with his violent grasp upon
-Elsie’s arm. When the servant returned with the bunch
-of keys and the light:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Precede me upstairs, and on up into the attic,” said
-General Garnet; and grasping Elsie more tightly, he
-fiercely hurried her on, till they reached the first floor,
-and the wide hall into which the family chambers opened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, this is my chamber door. I wish to retire,”
-said Elsie, pointing to the door on her left. But her
-father hurried her past it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The servant was now going up the attic steps, but
-paused to look down upon the scene.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, what are you about to do?” asked Elsie, holding
-back. Her attire had been very much disordered by
-the violence with which she had been hurried in, her
-cloak and hood had fallen off below stairs; now her beautiful
-dress was tumbled, and her hair in wild disorder.
-“What are you going to do, father?” she asked again,
-drawing back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But he turned upon her sharply, shook her furiously,
-as though he would have shaken the life from out her;
-and then seeing the horrified gaze of the servant standing
-on the stairs, he exclaimed, “Up into the attic, and
-wait for me there, instantly, sirrah. And consider yourself
-already sold to a trader, for your insolence in watching
-me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The appalled servant vanished up the steps, and the
-unmasked tyrant turned to Elsie, and tightening the
-grasp that he had never relinquished, dragged her to the
-foot of the attic stairs. Here the girl sank with all her
-weight upon him, upheld only by his hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Up, up the stairs with you!” he exclaimed fiercely.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie had too much physical strength to swoon, and
-too much presence of mind to scream. She would not
-have terrified her poor mother to no good purpose. Yet
-her agitation was so great, with augmented astonishment
-and terror, that she could not move.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He seized her violently, drew her up the stairs until
-they had reached the narrow attic passage, and commanding
-the negro to unlock the door that stood before
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_101'>101</span>them, forced her into the room; dismissed the servant,
-locked the door on the inside, and turned upon her.
-Elsie had dropped into an old flag-bottomed armchair,
-where she sat shivering with cold and fear. He turned
-upon the delicate and trembling girl fiercely, scornfully,
-triumphantly, tauntingly, as if she had been some rough
-male adversary in his power. He placed the key in his
-pocket, buttoned up his overcoat, and stood looking at
-her with a bitter, sarcastic laugh, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have insulted and provoked me sufficiently this
-evening, Miss Garnet! You were very happy and confident
-an hour ago. What do you think of your prospects
-now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie shuddered and was silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you escape from this room? Will you jump
-from one of those windows and fall a hundred feet?
-Will your lover find a ladder long enough to reach you?
-I think not. Can you break that lock? I think not.
-Will you bribe your jailer? I think not; for I shall be
-your jailer myself. No one else shall enter this room.
-And now listen to me,” and taking a chair, he sat down
-before her, and said in a hard, harsh voice, “I do not care
-one jot for all the miserable, contemptible love sentiment
-in the world; I never did! I do not believe in it.
-I never did! But that which I want, and that which I
-will have, is the union of these two joining estates,
-Mount Calm and Hemlock Hollow. That project is as
-dear to old Mr. Hardcastle as it is to me. It was for
-that reason, and not upon account of any trifling, mutual
-predilection of yours, that we were about to negotiate a
-marriage between my daughter and his nephew, when
-fortunately Lionel came home in time to arrest the execution
-of the plan; of course it was perfectly easy to see
-what then became the duty of all parties.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fidelity,” said Elsie in a low voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet laughed tauntingly, and continued
-without further notice of her reply:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The young man who was to inherit the estate was to
-have the bride. It mattered nothing to me whether that
-were Magnus or Lionel; but the hand of my heiress was
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_102'>102</span>to be bestowed upon the heir of Hemlock Hollow. That
-was the treaty. So I reminded old Mr. Hardcastle. He
-remembered that it really was so, and fully and entirely
-agreed with me. Young Lionel Hardcastle is also conformable.
-You only are contumacious. But I have
-pledged myself to your consent, and, by Heaven, you
-shall redeem my pledge. Listen, minion! You never
-leave this room until you leave it as the wife of Lionel
-Hardcastle. Curious place for a marriage ceremony!
-but, come, it does not matter; we can have the wedding
-afterward. You were to be the wife of Dr. Hardcastle,
-as you very respectfully call him, on Thursday week.
-Ha! ha! ha! Come, what do you think of your prospects
-of marrying him now?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, as far as my marriage with Dr. Hardcastle
-on Thursday week is concerned, my fate has gone out
-of my hands and into God’s! I have no more to say
-about that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! ha! I should think not. Not quite so confident
-as you were an hour ago, hey?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, father, forgive me for reminding you that as
-far as marriage with any other person is concerned, that
-is entirely in my hands for refusal. Church and State
-very properly make the bride’s consent an indispensable
-preliminary to marriage, and even a vital part of the
-marriage ceremony. And my consent can never be
-gained to marry Lionel.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! my pretty piece of stubbornness, we shall see.
-Pray, do you know—have you ever felt the power of
-solitary imprisonment, cold, and hunger, in bringing a
-contumacious girl to docility?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie’s face flushed, more for him than herself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He continued:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For all those mighty engines can I spring upon you!
-And will I, by Satan and all his hosts!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Father, you may do that, and nature may faint and
-succumb to their power. I am very strong, but those
-things you threaten me with may be stronger still. But,
-father, if ever I am left with strength enough to stand
-before the minister with Lionel Hardcastle by my side,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_103'>103</span>when that minister shall ask me whether I will promise
-to love, honor, and obey him till death, I shall answer,
-‘No, I do not love him, I never did, I never shall. If I
-stand here to be married to him, it is to please my father,
-his father, and not myself! And so I cannot tell a falsehood,
-far less vow one in God’s presence about it. I love
-Dr. Hardcastle, to whom you all know that I have been
-long engaged. I always did love him, and always shall,’
-and then let the minister of God marry us, if he durst.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With a furious oath he sprang upon her—seized her—the
-idea of strangling her upon the instant darted
-through his brain; but he only shook her with frenzied
-violence, and holding her in his terrible grip, said, with
-a husky voice and ashen cheek, and gleaming eye:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you were to do so, girl, as God in heaven hears
-me, I would kill you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And she felt to the very core of her shuddering heart
-that he told the truth. Then he dropped her, and threw
-himself out of the room, leaving her there, half dead
-with cold and fright, in the miserably bleak attic, without
-a spark of fire or light, for the lamp had been blown out
-by the fury with which her father had banged the door.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXI.<br> <span class='large'>CRUELTY—A CHAMBER SCENE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Thou knowest not the meekness of love,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>How it suffers and yet can be still—</div>
- <div class='line'>How the calm on its surface may prove</div>
- <div class='line in2'>What sorrow the bosom may fill.</div>
- <div class='line in28'><i>—Mrs. Ellis.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Early the next morning Mrs. Garnet arose softly,
-without awaking the general, and thrusting her small
-feet in wadded slippers, and drawing on her wadded
-dressing-gown, passed into her daughter’s chamber for
-the purpose of looking silently upon her while she slept,
-to see whether she bore the fatigue of the ball well. She
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_104'>104</span>went in softly, drew the curtains of the bedstead, and to
-her surprise, found that it had not been slept in. Her
-first thought, of course, was that Elsie had remained all
-night at Point Pleasant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She felt disappointed, and returned immediately to her
-own chamber, rang for her maid, and proceeded with her
-morning toilet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her maid, Milly, entered, bearing on her arm the cloak
-and hood that Elsie had worn to Point Pleasant, and
-afterward dropped while being dragged through the
-passage. Mrs. Garnet gazed at her in fixed astonishment,
-saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, where did you get those, Milly? Is it possible
-that your Miss Elsie has returned so early this
-morning? Where is she?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Elsie returned last night, missis, and must have
-dropped these in the passage, for that is where I found
-them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Returned last night! Her bed has not been occupied!
-Where is she?” exclaimed Mrs. Garnet, dropping
-the long mass of golden curls that she had been twisting
-into a knot, and standing aghast with vague terror.
-“Where is she? What is the meaning of this? Why
-do you look so strangely? Oh, my God! what has happened
-to my child? Speak this moment, Milly! What
-do you know of it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I thought you must a’ known, Miss Ally; marster’s
-locked her up in the garret.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All the blood of the Chesters rushed to the brow of
-Alice, and crimsoned it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Locked Elsie up in the attic!” she exclaimed.
-Then: “Give me the keys! Where are they? Bring
-me the keys instantly!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Please, Miss Ally, marster took the garret key off of
-the bunch, and put it in his pocket.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Leave me, Milly. Go! Hasten! Go downstairs!
-I don’t want you this morning,” said Alice, conscious of
-having betrayed too much emotion in the presence of her
-servant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Milly left the room, and Alice hastened, with a flushed
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_105'>105</span>brow, and trembling hand, to the big armchair at the
-head of the bed, over the back of which hung the general’s
-clothing that he had worn the night before. Alice
-searched all the pockets of the overcoat in vain. And
-she took up the dress coat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But while Alice was hunting for the key, the general
-had risen upon his elbow, and, unseen by her, was watching
-her motions with a demoniac leer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice searched all the pockets of the dress coat, and it
-was not there. Then she raised the vest, and in the
-pocket found the key. She seized it eagerly, and was
-about to fly off with it when a heavy blow felled her to
-the floor! The key dropped from her hand. General
-Garnet stooped and repossessed himself of it, and looking
-at her with a laughing devil in his eye, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, was that you? Excuse me, madam! I beg ten
-thousand pardons; but waking up suddenly, and seeing a
-hand in my pocket, I naturally enough supposed it to be
-that of a thief! It’s Heaven’s mercy that I had not shot
-you by mistake, my dear!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But seeing that she did not move, he leaned further
-over the side of the bed, and perceived that in falling the
-back of her head had struck the corner of the dressing
-bureau, and that she was stunned by the concussion—stunned
-or dead, he did not know which. He jumped to
-the floor and raised her. Her head and limbs fell helplessly
-over his arms. He laid her on the bed, ran his
-fingers through the golden tresses of her hair, but found
-no fracture; there might be a concussion of the brain, but
-there was no outward sign.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He started to the bell to ring it, but before he got
-there changed his mind and returned, locked the door,
-went to the bureau, and taking a couple of linen handkerchiefs,
-tore them in strips, and took a lancet from his
-case (all planters kept such things for the exigencies of
-the plantation). He then went to the bedside, ripped up
-the sleeve of Alice’s dress, and baring the arm, opened a
-vein. As the blood began to flow—first very sluggishly,
-then faster—she opened her eyes and looked at him. He
-then bound up her arm, and telling her that he hoped
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_106'>106</span>this sharp lesson would teach her the danger of opposing
-his will again, left her and proceeded to dress himself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice attempted to rise, but her head grew dizzy, her
-eyes dim, and she sank back at the same moment that he
-sternly bade her be still, and not venture to leave her bed
-that day. He dressed, and left the chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At noon General Garnet returned and entered the
-room, and approaching the bedside asked Alice how she
-felt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Only drowsy, inclined to sleep while lying down, but
-sick and dizzy and blind when I attempt to rise.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If that be the case, you must not, upon any account,
-yield to that inclination to sleep. It is dangerous; you
-must rise and sit up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot—I wish I could—I cannot. I turn deadly
-sick as soon as my head is lifted.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice—I—think I must bleed you again,” he said,
-taking out the lancet and baring her arm. Then he hesitated
-a moment; he doubted whether this second bleeding
-would be right, but he resolved to risk it rather than
-risk the exposure of their secret by sending for a physician.
-He opened the vein again, and while the blood was
-trickling, looked so full of solicitude that Alice felt sorry
-for him, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never mind; don’t you know I knew it was an accident—the
-striking of my head against the bureau.” She
-now looked so much better again that he ventured to say,
-as he bound up her arm:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I hope, Alice, that this will be a profitable lesson to
-you, at least. Consider. You—you might have been
-killed.” Then he raised her in a sitting posture,
-propped pillows behind her, took a seat in the big chair,
-and said: “This is really a trifle as it turns out, Alice.
-This dizziness will soon pass away if you sit up. Only,
-I hope, as I said before, that this will be a warning to
-you, for it might have been much more serious, or even
-fatal. It is dangerous, Alice, dangerous to rebel either
-by stratagem or force against just authority. And, now
-listen, for I wish to talk to you of Elsie for two reasons—first,
-to keep you from falling into an injurious
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_107'>107</span>sleep; and, secondly, to let you know my reason for confining
-her, and my plans and purposes toward her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then General Garnet, for the first time, openly
-avowed to his wife his fixed determination to break off
-forever the projected marriage between Magnus and
-Elsie, and to bestow the hand of the latter upon Lionel
-Hardcastle, giving her his reasons in full for doing so,
-and declaring his intention to keep Elsie confined until
-her consent was obtained, and to take her then from her
-room at once to the altar, that no deception might be
-practiced. Alice dreaded lest he should ask her opinion,
-or her co-operation. Fortunately for her, he did not consider
-either of the least importance, and soon rising, left
-the room and went down to dinner.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice pressed both hands to her head and groaned
-forth the prayer:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, God! guide me aright through this labyrinth of
-crossing duties, lest I lose my way!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the afternoon General Garnet went out again.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And soon after he was gone Milly entered her mistress’
-chamber and put in her hand a little slip of paper,
-which she said Elsie had given her as she handed in her
-dinner.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice took it eagerly. It was the flyleaf of her pocket
-prayer-book, and on it was picked with a pin the sentence:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Say something to me, beloved mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice asked for a pencil, and wrote:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To-morrow I will write, dear child.” And then the
-pencil dropped from her hand. “Milly, when you take
-her supper up, give her that,” she said, and closed her
-eyes from exhaustion.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_108'>108</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXII.<br> <span class='large'>MARRIAGE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Take her, and be faithful still,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And may the marriage vow</div>
- <div class='line'>Be sacred kept in after years,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>And fondly breathed as now.</div>
- <div class='line in26'><i>—Old Song.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The next morning, after General Garnet had left the
-house—for the whole day—Alice arose, still dizzy and
-weak, not only from the effects of the blow, but from
-fasting and anxiety. She was scarcely seated in her
-chair when a letter was brought to her that had come in
-the mail-bag from the post office. It was superscribed
-in the handwriting of Dr. Hardcastle. Alice tore it open,
-and read a much longer epistle than I can find space to
-transcribe here, reader, but the sum total of it was this:
-Magnus informed his friend Alice of what she already
-knew—General Garnet’s expressed determination to
-break the engagement existing between himself and
-Elsie, for mere mercenary motives; of his own and
-Elsie’s fixed resolution to abide by their betrothal, and
-his hopes that their decision would meet her—Alice’s—approval.
-He told her of his wish that their marriage
-should take place on Thursday, as had been first proposed;
-and of his intention to depart on the following
-Monday for his home, among the new settlements in the
-backwoods of Maryland. He told her, farther, that he
-had called the day before to see her and Elsie, but that he
-had been refused admittance at the very threshold, the
-servants adducing their master’s commands as their warrant.
-He had heard, he said, that Elsie was immured,
-but hoped and believed that this was not so. He concluded
-by entreating Alice to write and inform him of
-her own and Elsie’s state of health and spirits, and advise
-him how to proceed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice folded the letter, clasped her hands, and closed
-her eyes a moment in intense thought and prayer. Then,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_109'>109</span>bidding Milly wheel her writing table before her, she
-took pen and paper, and wrote the following short but
-important note:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<span class='sc'>Dear Magnus</span>:</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c016'>“As soon as you see this, go to a locksmith and send
-him instantly to me. Then get a carriage, procure your
-license, call at Fig’s to take up the young Methodist minister
-who boards there, and come at once to Mount Calm.
-When you return, Elsie shall accompany you.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Your friend,</div>
- <div class='line in4'>“<span class='sc'>Alice Garnet</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>She sealed this note, dispatched it, and then dropped
-her head into her hands, holding it tightly, as though to
-chain thought to its object. Then once more she drew
-her writing-desk nearer to her, took her pen, and wrote
-these hurried lines to Elsie:</p>
-
-<p class='c016'>“Within a very few hours from this, my own dear
-Elsie, you will be released and married. And now let me
-tell you, my own dear child, my reasons for advising and
-aiding you in this step. It is not only, my Elsie, that
-your heart has long been given to Magnus; that your
-hand has long been pledged to him with the approbation
-of both your parents; that your happiness is concerned
-in being united to him; that your honor is implicated in
-keeping faith with him; it is not, either, that it would be
-a heinous wickedness to forsake your betrothed at the
-very moment that fortune forsakes him, and in the hour
-of his greatest adversity; it is not that this very desertion
-of yours would shake his faith in all that is good and
-true in heaven or on earth, palsy his energy and enterprise,
-and thus do him a serious mortal and social injury.
-And, on the other hand, it is not that you do not
-love Lionel. No, Elsie, it is simply because Magnus is
-entirely the better man of the two,—better, incomparably
-better,—physically, mentally, morally, religiously. Magnus
-is healthful, strong, handsome, energetic, highly intellectual,
-purely moral, profoundly religious; and he
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_110'>110</span>loves you completely. Lionel is broken in constitution,
-evidently by excess; indolent, selfish, voluptuous, yet irritable
-and often violent. His interest in you is a low
-compound of vanity, cupidity, and sense—it would be
-false and profane to call it by the sacred name of love.
-Magnus would make you better and happier, in loving
-you greatly, in elevating your moral and religious nature,
-while Lionel would draw you down to the misery
-and degradation of his own low nature. My child, my
-one lone child, it is for this consideration that I bar you
-from wealth, luxury, ease, adulation, and give you to the
-stern but kindly discipline of poverty, toil, and privation—with
-love by your side, to lighten all your labors and
-God above you to reward them. May God love you, my
-only child! my little Elsie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No tear-drop blotted this paper, though her tears had
-fallen thick, and fast, and blindingly, while she wrote it.
-She had turned her head away; for no sign of sorrow
-should wound and weaken Elsie in the letter written to
-comfort and sustain her. She had turned her head away,
-and the tears had rained upon her lap. Many times she
-had arisen from her writing desk and fallen, overcome
-with grief, upon the bed. But it was done. She had
-succeeded. And there was nothing upon the paper or in
-the letter to betray the anguish of mind in which it was
-written.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Trying to steer as blamelessly as she could through
-her labyrinth of duties, Alice would not call one of the
-servants, all of whom had been expressly forbidden to
-approach the attic, but took the paper herself, went feebly
-up the stairs, and supporting herself by the balustrades,
-she reached the topmost landing, and went to the door of
-Elsie’s room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are there, dear mother. I know your footstep
-so well, though it is weaker than usual. And if I did
-not know your footsteps, I should know your sigh. Dear
-mother, do not grieve for me. I am happy—reverently
-be it spoken—as Peter was in prison.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My darling Elsie, here is something I have written
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_111'>111</span>for you. I will push it under the bottom of the door.
-Take it, darling, read it. Try to compose your mind, and
-be ready for me very soon. I must go now, dear, for
-when you begin to read that you will find I have a great
-deal to prepare. Good-by, for an hour, my dear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice then went down, entered her chamber, and rang
-for Milly; then she went to her drawers and caskets, and
-got together all the jewelry that she possessed, to the
-amount of several thousand dollars, and all Elsie’s, that
-amounted to several thousand more, and placed them in
-one strong casket. Then she searched her purse and
-pocketbook, and took out all the money she had in possession,
-a few hundred dollars, and put it in a strong
-packet. Then she sent Milly into Elsie’s vacant chamber,
-and had all her clothing collected and packed into
-two large, strong traveling trunks. Next, she sent for a
-man-servant to come and lock and strap them down before
-her face. Lastly, she received the keys from him,
-and told him to procure assistance, take the trunks down,
-put them into a cart, carry them over to Huttontown, and
-leave them at Mr. Fig’s, with a request from her that he
-would keep them until they were called for. When
-Alice had done this she was told that a man wished to
-see her in the hall.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She went out, and found the locksmith with his tools.
-She bade him to follow her, and led the way up into the
-attic, and to the door of Elsie’s prison. She stopped
-there, and turning to the locksmith, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pick this lock.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>No sooner said than done. The man put in his instrument
-and unlocked it with as much ease as though
-he had used a key.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There, thank you, sir! you need not open the door.
-Please to retire now. Milly, my girl, will settle with
-you downstairs,” said Alice, who did not by any means
-wish to “reveal the secrets of that prison-house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man bowed, gathered his tools, and went downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice opened the door, and was instantly locked in the
-arms of her daughter. Fearing to lose her courage and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_112'>112</span>presence of mind, perhaps trembling for the strength of
-her purpose, too, Alice did not venture to indulge these
-enervating endearments, but hastened to say:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You read and understood my note, my dear Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You know, then, what is about to take place?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dear mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, then, my child, we must be quick. I expect
-Magnus here with the license and the minister every
-minute. Your trunks are already packed and sent off to
-Huttontown. Where are your diamonds, Elsie? I did
-not see them among your jewelry. They are the greatest
-portion of your dower now, my child. Where are they?
-I wish to put them into a casket that I have packed for
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Here they are, mother, with the ball dress in which
-I came to prison.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, that ball dress, put that on, it will do as well as
-another; or, no, you will perhaps have no time to change
-it afterward. Come down into my room, and put on
-your traveling dress at once. I have left it out with
-your bonnet; come, Elsie.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you please, ma’am, Dr. Hardcastle and Parson
-Wilson are downstairs, inquiring for you,” said a servant
-from the foot of the interdicted stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Invite them into the back parlor, and say that I will
-be with them in a few minutes,” said Alice. “Come,
-Elsie, hasten, dear, and let me dress you.” She drew
-Elsie down.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She felt no weakness or dizziness now. She was upheld
-by a strange excitement. Her cheeks and lips
-seemed burning, and her eyes blazing as with a hectic
-fever.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arrived in her own chamber, she quickly assisted Elsie
-to put on her traveling dress, smoothing her beautiful
-auburn ringlets, pressed her again fondly to her bosom,
-tied on her little beaver bonnet, and led her downstairs
-into the back parlor, where Dr. Hardcastle and the minister
-sat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Both forward, bowed, and shook hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_113'>113</span>“Oh! for God’s sake have it over quickly, Magnus,
-lest my strength fail!” said Alice, trembling violently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The minister drew the prayer-book from his pocket
-and opened it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie suddenly lost every vestige of color, and threw
-herself again into her mother’s arms. Alice pressed her
-passionately to her heart a moment, and then gave her
-up to Magnus, who took her hand, passed his arm around
-her waist to support her, and stood before the minister.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In ten more minutes Magnus Hardcastle had the joy
-of clasping his wife to his bosom.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thank Heaven that it is over! Oh-h-h! Ugh-gh-h!
-I felt my flesh creeping all the time, as if father were
-peeping over my shoulder,” exclaimed Elsie, shuddering,
-and burying her head under the arm of Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, thank Heaven, it is over! It was short. A
-few solemn words of exhortation, a brief prayer, a
-briefer benediction, and now I possess you, without a
-doubt, or dispute—entirely. The laws of God and man
-give you to me alike, and no power under heaven can
-tear you from me, my own Elsie! my own wife!” said
-Magnus fervently, and almost crushing her in his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, thank Heaven it is over! The doubt, the struggle,
-and the fear is over. You are safe, Elsie. Your
-happiness, as far as human foresight can secure it, is insured,”
-said Alice, as she received Elsie once more from
-the arms of Magnus, and folded her in her own.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But you! Oh, my dear mother! you will be left
-without your child!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never regret me, my own darling. You go without
-your mother, but you go with your husband, and you are
-happy. Are you not, my Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes, yes, mamma.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I am left without my daughter, but I remain
-with my husband. Think that I am happy also,” said
-Alice, feeling thankful to Providence from the bottom of
-her heart, that Elsie was “innocent of the knowledge” of
-General Garnet’s tyranny over herself.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yet Elsie half suspected, she knew not what. She
-looked deeply, searchingly, for an instant into her</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_114'>114</span>mother’s dark blue eyes, as if to read the secret of the
-deep sorrow in them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Alice dropped her long lashes, and averted her
-head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Elsie took her hand, and bending round to look
-into her troubled face, said, slowly, earnestly, tearfully:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You love my father dearly, very dearly; don’t you,
-mamma? Say, don’t you, mamma? Oh! don’t you,
-mamma?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Elsie, I love him,” said Alice, in a very low
-voice, turning again to her daughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, mamma, you love him as well as I love Magnus!
-Don’t you, mamma? Don’t you? You love him better
-than you love me, and you will be very happy with him
-even when I am gone? Say, mamma! Oh, tell me before
-I go.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>For an answer Alice stooped and kissed her daughter
-on the forehead.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But oh! tell me before I go! Tell me that you love
-my father better than you love me, and that you will be
-very happy with him when I am gone,” said Elsie, growing
-more anxious for an answer every instant.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice turned very pale.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Magnus, who saw that she was fast losing her
-self-control, came to her relief, by saying, as he approached,
-took her hand, and drew her off:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have a word to say to you, if you please, Mrs.
-Garnet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They went to a window, leaving Elsie near the parson.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mrs. Garnet! Cousin Alice! Dearest friend! I
-have a proposal to make to you that must surprise and
-may shock and offend you. But nevertheless, I make it.
-Listen to me, Alice. I know too well what you have
-risked for us, and what you have incurred at the hands
-of your husband this day! Alice! I fear—I tremble at
-the thought of leaving you here alone, and exposed to his
-terrible wrath. You——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Alice raised her hand and gently arrested his
-speech.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_115'>115</span>“Magnus, forgive me for reminding you that you
-should not talk to me in that way. General Garnet’s
-displeasure, as far as I am implicated, will perhaps be
-just. You and Elsie were right. Your faith was
-pledged with his consent. You were right in redeeming
-your mutual pledge. But I, perhaps, was wrong in assisting
-you in it. I do not clearly know. Oh, Magnus,
-for many years my ideas of right and wrong have been
-very much confused. For many years I have lost sight
-of the exact line that divides good and evil. Oh, Magnus,
-when the eyes are dimmed with tears, the sight is
-not very clear—and when the soul is drowned in grief,
-Magnus, the moral vision may be very much obscured.
-But this I know—that General Garnet’s anger, just or
-unjust, moderate or violent, I must meet, and meet alone.
-By all means alone! The dignity of both is concerned in
-that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice, you must not! Hear me! Listen to me! Do
-not turn away with that air of gentle self-respect, and
-wave me off! Don’t I know that your heart is breaking
-this moment—this moment, that your child is leaving you,
-and you are left desolate and exposed to danger! Desolate,
-wretched, in peril, though you would have her to
-believe otherwise? Oh, Alice, you may deceive the child
-of your bosom, but you will not deceive the boy who sat
-at your feet and loved you, and studied the mystery of
-the sorrow on your brow when you came home a bride,
-and everybody called you happy. I was not deceived
-then; I have not been deceived since. Oh, Alice, my love
-for Elsie, my love for you, my relation toward both, give
-me the right to feel, the right to speak and advise. Hear
-me: You must not remain here to meet the anger of
-your husband. Your life—your life will be endangered.
-Nay! do not lift your hand to stop my speech; hear my
-plan; hear me out—I will be very brief. Listen! You
-love Elsie and me. Go with us when we leave here. Go
-with us to our backwoods home. Our home will be
-humble, but full of peace and love, and the repose you so
-much need. We shall be poor, but you shall not feel it.
-Respectful and loving hands will wait on you all day
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_116'>116</span>long. You will be happy with us. Remain with us till
-the storm blows over. There need be—there would be—no
-exposure, no gossip, no scandal. To the neighbors
-who knew of our betrothal, our marriage and departure
-will seem perfectly natural, only rather unsocial because
-we did not give a wedding. And I can answer for the
-discretion and fidelity of Wilson. Your accompanying
-us, for a visit, will seem nothing unusual. General Garnet,
-if I mistake not, is too much a man of the world
-not to keep his own secret, and too much of a despot not
-to enforce silence upon his people, in regard to this matter.
-General Garnet will be very anxious to get you back
-before your visit is prolonged to a suspicious extent.
-And then, Alice, while you are safe with us, you can
-make your own conditions with him for your return.
-You can secure for yourself——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stop! Magnus, I do not wish to mar the harmony
-of this sad hour by one dissonant word or thought or
-feeling. But let me hear no more of this. Not one
-breath more, dearest Magnus. What! I leave my home!
-leave my husband, and remain away to make conditions
-with him! I, who unconditionally pledged myself to him
-‘for better or worse’—I, who vowed love, honor and obedience
-to him ‘until death’! No Magnus. That marriage
-vow, in all its details, is not to be tampered with.
-It is not a question of happiness, or of peace, or of expedience,
-or of repose, or of affection, but simply of duty.
-No, Magnus. When I hastened to bestow my daughter
-upon you, it was for the reason that I believed you
-to be one toward whom it would be a happiness as well
-as duty to keep sacred, in all its minutiæ, that marriage
-vow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice, dearest Alice, your heart is very mournful, and,
-forgive me for saying it, very morbid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is? Call Elsie, then. Her feelings are all singularly
-healthful. Call her, and in her presence just invite
-me to go with you, simply to go with you—that will be
-the mildest form of your proposal—and see what Elsie
-will say. Come, do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus turned with a smile, and beckoned Elsie to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_117'>117</span>approach. Elsie came, with her bright face beaming
-with interest and inquiry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, my love,” said Magnus, “I have been trying to
-persuade your mother to accompany us to our new home,
-and remain there for a few weeks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And leave father so suddenly, when I am leaving
-him, too! Oh, don’t press her to do any such a thing,
-dear Magnus. Oh, don’t think of leaving father just
-now, dearest mother,” said Elsie earnestly; then throwing
-herself in her mother’s arms, whispered anxiously:
-“Mother, don’t you love father? Oh, mother, tell me,
-before I go, that you love father.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Elsie, I do love him. No, Magnus, I cannot
-leave him. I have helped to bereave him of his child for
-a season—I cannot leave him.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, oh, Alice!” said Magnus, drawing her apart,
-“think again! think what you will meet. How can you
-brave his anger?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I shall not brave it, Magnus. It may be just, coming
-from him. At least I must bear it—patiently, too.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Just then the door was burst open by a servant, who
-exclaimed, in affright:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Madam!—mistress!—doctor!—Miss Elsie! Marster
-is a riding down the road, post-haste, to the house!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my God! there is not a moment to spare. Good-by,
-my beloved child. God bless you!” said Alice,
-straining her daughter to her bosom.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, mother, don’t you love father dearly? Tell me
-once more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, yes, Elsie.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, mother, if you love him so dearly, get my pardon
-from him. Tell him how I grieve to be under the
-necessity of offending him. Get my pardon for me, beloved
-mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do my very best. God bless you, my darling
-child! Good-by! Oh, Magnus, be good to her, be merciful,
-be loving, be tender. Oh, Magnus, I have torn
-the heart from my bosom and given it to you. Be good
-to her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“May God deal by my soul as I deal by her heart!”
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_118'>118</span>said Magnus, folding his mother-in-law in a fervent embrace.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then they hurried out, hastened into the carriage, the
-blinds were let down, the doors closed, the whip cracked,
-and the vehicle rolled away.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIII.<br> <span class='large'>“THE HEART OVERTASKED.”</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh, break, break, heart! poor bankrupt, break at once!</div>
- <div class='line'>To prison, soul! Ne’er hope for liberty!</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Oh! do whate’er thou wilt! I will be silent.</div>
- <div class='line in34'><i>—Joanna Baillie.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Alice heard an advancing step. She looked around.
-Milly stood at her side.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is your master? Did he enter by the back
-gate? Is he at the stables?” she inquired.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Alice, no, ma’am; he didn’t come home at all.
-He didn’t even meet the carriage. He turned off ’fore he
-got to the porter’s lodge, and rode hard as he could down
-the path as leads down the Hollow. I ’spects how he had
-some ’litical business long o’ Mr. Hard’stle.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, thank Heaven!” said Alice, with a long-drawn
-sigh of relief, and rising, she hurried off to her own chamber.
-Not to sit down in faithless despair, but to write
-a letter to General Garnet, softly and meekly breaking to
-him the news of their daughter’s marriage, so that the
-first shock of astonishment and rage should be over before
-he should come home and she should have to meet
-him. She wrote this letter. It contained all that she
-had said in her letter to Elsie, and much more; besides,
-a meek, appealing spirit pervaded it, that few hearts could
-have resisted. She dispatched it by a servant to General
-Garnet at Hemlock Hollow. Then she lay down and
-tried to sleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_119'>119</span>She was disturbed by the entrance of a servant bearing
-a letter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She raised up and took it. It was for General Garnet,
-and bore the post-mark of Huttontown. She regarded it
-attentively for an instant, for it was written in a coarse,
-schoolboy-like hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then she placed it on the dressing-table, and, dismissing
-the servant, lay down and closed her eyes again, with
-an effort to sleep. She could not do so for a long time.
-Emotion was busy in her heart, and thought in her brain.
-One, two, three hours passed; and then she prayed,
-prayed for the promised rest, and, praying, fell asleep.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She did not know how long she had slept, when, waking,
-she perceived General Garnet in the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He was sitting in the large armchair near the bed, and
-his attention riveted upon a letter he was reading. Alice
-glanced at the dressing-table. The letter she had placed
-there was gone. Yes, it was that letter which he was
-reading with such fixed interest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice lay quietly, yet anxiously watching him, until he
-finished reading, folded up the letter, and put it in his
-pocket. His attitude was one of deep, even intense,
-thought. In the crimson twilight of that closely curtained
-chamber she could not see the expression of his
-face. It was evident, she thought, that he had not seen
-her in the shadowy recess where her sofa stood.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After thus watching a moment, breathing a prayer for
-mercy, she slowly arose, crossed the room, and sank
-upon the cushion near his feet, took his hand, and looked
-up pleadingly into his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice was still a very beautiful woman, as I have told
-you, and never was a more beautiful picture than that
-kneeling figure, with the bright, flowing hair, flushed
-cheek, and upturned, pleading gaze with which she
-sought silently to deprecate the anger of her husband.
-She sought to read her fate in his countenance; but that
-high and haughty face was lifted and averted, and its
-features were stern, and calm, and impassible. Then she
-found words to speak, and inquired, softly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You received my letter, General Garnet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_120'>120</span>“Yes, madam, I received your letter,” he answered, in
-a hard, cold tone of voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then you know what else I should tell you here at
-your feet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know that my daughter has eloped, and that my
-wife helped her off,” he replied, in the same dry tone,
-and with his head still averted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice could not see that his lips were bloodless and
-compressed, and his eyes burning with a fearful, lurid
-glare. His very quietude, hard and dry, and constrained
-as it was, deceived her. She took his hand again and
-pressed it to her lips, and held it to her bosom, murmuring
-softly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let us forgive each other! Oh, my husband, let us
-forgive each other! For many wrongs there is positively
-no other remedy in the wide universe but simple forgiveness—simple,
-magnanimous, sublime forgiveness. ‘It is
-impossible but that offenses will come,’ said the most
-merciful of all beings. It is impossible, says the experience
-of life, it is impossible but that disappointments,
-sorrows, pains, and partings will come. They are the
-conditions of our existence. We cannot escape them.
-Let us lessen their bitterness as much as we may. It is
-impossible but that troubles will come, but the vital question
-is whether we shall turn them to good or evil account—whether
-we shall live to any good end or not.
-Oh, my husband, make friends with me! We have only
-each other in the wide world upon whom to depend for
-our life’s comfort and happiness. Make friends with
-me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She paused, covering his hand with fond caresses,
-pressing it to her lips, laying it against her cheek, holding
-it to her throbbing heart. He drew his hand from her
-gentle clasp, and folded his arms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice sank back, sobbing—sobbing, as though her
-heart would burst—then suddenly she clasped his knees,
-exclaiming wildly: “Can we hate each other—you and I
-who have lived so many years together? Can we hate
-each other—you and I, who love our only child, our dear
-Elsie, so much? Make friends with me! Let us understand
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_121'>121</span>each other! Let us be candid with each other!
-Let us forbear each other! I know that you deeply regret
-the failure of your favorite plan to unite these
-estates. I know it; I am sorry for it; sorry that I have
-been constrained to have a hand in it. But, oh, General
-Garnet, I, too, you know, was once—long years ago—bitterly
-disappointed—terribly disappointed! But it is all
-over now; it has all been over many years ago! And
-that is what I have often wanted to tell you, when I saw
-by the cold, dark shadow on your brow that you thought
-yourself unloved. But I never could approach you near
-enough to tell you—to tell you that if you would look
-into my heart you would see it filled with the love of
-God, of my husband, and my child. Oh, Aaron! let us
-forget all that estranged us in the dreary past, and see
-if we cannot live a better and happier life in the future!
-At least we can be kind, candid, forbearing with each
-other. Think how long we may have to travel the rough
-road of mortal life side by side! We are not old—you
-and I, Aaron! You are not forty-five, and I am much
-younger. People healthful as we are usually live to the
-age of eighty and beyond it. Think how many years we
-may have to live together! Shall we, through all these
-years, be unloving, cold, estranged, suspicious, uncharitable
-each to the other? Think how many years of our life
-we have already wasted in coolness, strangeness, misunderstandings!
-Think how many yet remain! Shall we
-not live the rest in mutual forbearance, candor, benevolence?
-Make friends with me. Let us comprehend each
-other. Dear Aaron, I have opened my heart to you;
-give me your confidence!” She ceased, half turned to
-gaze up in his face; his head was quite averted—had he
-relented? She thought so. She suddenly, impulsively
-arose, threw her arms around his neck, and bent her lips
-to kiss him, repeating softly: “Dearest Aaron, make
-friends with me. Give me your confidence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He sprang up, and with one dash of his strong arm
-threw her from him, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Off, traitress! Off, serpent! Viper!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She tottered and fell back among the silken cushions
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_122'>122</span>of an old-fashioned low lounge, exhausted, pale, and
-shuddering.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He gazed at her with flashing eyes and darkening
-brow, and white and writhen lips, and the long restrained
-passion broke out in a torrent of invective. Shaking his
-clenched fist at her, he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How dare you talk to me of confidence, traitress that
-you are? How durst you even approach me, serpent!
-viper! after your black treachery? What do you mean
-by braving me? Are you enamored of a broken head?
-Or do you think your own too hard to be broken? At
-what do you value your life, pray? What hinders me
-now from strangling you? Why didn’t you fly with
-your hopeful daughter? Don’t you expect me to hurl
-you out of doors after her? How durst you cross my
-path after your treachery? Viper, answer me, I say!”
-he vociferated, striding toward the lounge, grasping her
-shoulder, and jerking her to her feet before him. “Answer!
-How dared you face me after your black treachery?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was no treachery,” answered Alice, pale and trembling,
-yet with a certain gentle dignity in her words and
-tone; “it was no treachery; I broke no promise; I betrayed
-no trust; I am incapable of doing either.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Silence, traitress!” he thundered, shaking her furiously;
-“I do not ask you for any impudent falsehood; I
-will not, by Heaven, permit you to tell me one! I ask
-you how you dared to meet me here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh-h-h!” sighed Alice, suddenly sinking at his feet.
-“It was to return to my allegiance; at whatever personal
-risk, to yield myself to you; to abide henceforth by
-my duties. And oh, General Garnet, do not misunderstand
-me! If I have humbled myself before you—vainly,
-perhaps, it is not from so base a motive as fear! Oh, I
-have outlived and outsuffered the fear of pain—the fear
-of death—the fear of anything that might befall me! I
-am at your feet. If I have placed myself unconditionally
-in your hands, it is for the sake of the holiest principles,
-the most sacred duties. General Garnet, you believe
-me—I see that you do! General Garnet, listen to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_123'>123</span>me farther; this is positively the first time in our married
-life of seventeen years that I ever opposed you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The first time that you ever successfully opposed me,
-madam; and, by Heaven, you have made a signal beginning!”
-commented General Garnet, no longer speaking
-in a furious voice, but in the dry, hard, stern tone, and
-fixed, inflexible brow with which he had in the beginning
-of their interview heard and replied to her gentle words.
-The burst of violent passion had passed away and left
-him—the hard, scornful, sarcastic, yet cool, calculating,
-dissembling, most dangerous man that he was before.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice gazed up at his face, seeking to read the changed
-expression there; but it passed her skill, and she murmured
-slowly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perhaps I was wrong; I know that under other circumstances
-it would have been very wrong; yet I dare
-not say that I regret what I did, for under the same circumstances
-I should do it again. Not to obtain your
-forgiveness would I deceive you, though to obtain it
-would make me comparatively happy; but I deeply regret
-that anything I had a hand in should give you pain.
-And I say, do as you please, I shall not complain, I
-cannot. From the one revolt of my whole life I return
-to a full and unconditional allegiance; there is nothing
-farther to disturb it, nothing to draw me aside. My love
-for my child only did it; that cannot move me again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! can it not?” he asked scornfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no, indeed it cannot!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never! How can my love for Elsie ever again draw
-me aside from you? Elsie is married and gone; now I
-have only you; my duty is undivided—and, oh, if you
-would let me, I would try to make you so happy!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Would you?” he asked, doubtfully, scornfully.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I would,” she said, suddenly rising, leaning
-her hand upon his arm, and her head upon his shoulder,
-with the confidence of perfect love and faith. “Oh,
-Aaron, you have not been yourself for a few days past.
-Yet I do not love you the less on that account; indeed,
-I do not. Oh, Aaron, I can excuse your violence more
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_124'>124</span>than you can excuse yourself, I know, for I have been
-used to it in others. My father was violent sometimes.
-And I know that anger is a brief intoxication—’a short
-madness’—in which people do and say what they never
-intended. Come, you are not angry now; you are smiling;
-and I—I can only repeat what I said in the beginning,
-‘Let us forgive each other, and live better and happier
-all our future lives.’ That is right—put your arm
-around me, dear Aaron, for I am very weak.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was scarcely in human nature, or in devil nature,
-to resist the charm of her winning beauty, gentleness,
-and meekness. General Garnet pressed a passionate kiss
-upon her lips, and clasped her to his heart. It was the
-first kiss of many, many years; and Alice, trembling,
-happy, with her blushing face hidden on his bosom, saw
-not the “laughing devil in his eye.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Aaron, this is generous—this is magnanimous.
-Oh, Aaron, if you knew how the simple act of forgiveness
-has power to bind the human heart! I know it by
-the way it draws my heart to yours,” said Alice, with
-enthusiasm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But another and a more passionate kiss sealed her lips
-for a time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My friend, how has it been with you this long, long
-time? I mean how has it been with your heart and soul,
-your inner life? Have you been happy—have you had
-any great life purpose? Oh, Aaron, often when I have
-watched you in your daily life, as you walked, or rode,
-or drove; as you sat at table, or at your writing-desk,
-or settled business with your overseer or agents; or jested
-or told anecdotes among your friends; when you have
-seemed to live lightly on the outside of things, I have
-longed to ask you, ‘How is with you—is this reality,
-and is this all of your life, and are you contented with it—are
-you happy?’ And when I have seen you sit, or
-stand, or walk apart, silent, moody, abstracted, retired
-into yourself, I have longed to knock at your heart’s
-door, to be let in, too—to be let into your confidence,
-and to give you my sympathy, but I dared never to do so.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_125'>125</span>It has taken the grief and passion of this hour to enable
-me to do so now. But this shall never be so again, shall
-it? We shall never be such strangers to each other
-again? Come, tell me now—how it is with you. Are
-you happy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Quite happy, just at this hour, Alice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And do you truly love me—a little? Oh, love me—only
-love me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Love you! That is not so difficult, Alice. You are
-still a very lovely woman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Will you let me deliver Elsie’s last message to
-you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He quickly averted his face to hide the dark cloud
-that overswept it, while he answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will hear it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie’s parting words to me were, ‘Oh, mother, you
-love my father very dearly, do you not?’ I answered,
-‘Yes.’ She replied, ‘Oh, if you love him, mother, win
-my pardon from him!’ Aaron, look on me. Father,
-forgive your child for loving her husband as much as
-her mother loves thee.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice,” he said, drawing her again to his bosom and
-kissing her, “this seals your full pardon; be content; for
-the rest, give me time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, if I could persuade you to forgive poor Elsie—who
-only needs her father’s pardon and blessing to be
-perfectly happy in her humble state.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice, if Elsie were before me, as you are, in all your
-beauty, perhaps I could not choose but be reconciled with
-her as with you, my lovely Alice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice was so unused to praise from him that these
-words and caresses were beginning to embarrass her.
-Blushing like a very girl, she withdrew herself from his
-arms, and sat down. Then, as fearing to have offended,
-she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do not think me ungrateful. Test my sincerity in
-any way you please.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In any way, Alice?” he asked significantly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes. Try me—test me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pause—think—in any way?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_126'>126</span>“In anything and everything will I obey you, that
-does not transgress the laws of God, I mean, of course.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, that to begin with, is one very broad and comprehensive
-exception—especially if you design to give it
-a very liberal and latitudinarian interpretation. And it
-implies, besides, a suspicion and a guard against my giving
-you any command which, to obey, would be to transgress
-the laws of God. Do you really suppose that I am
-capable of doing such a thing, Alice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No—oh, no. Only you pressed me for an exception,
-you know, and I gave you the only one I thought of.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am satisfied with your exception, Alice. But is
-that really the only exception to your vow of compliance?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, indeed, the only one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Reflect—you may find another.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; indeed, no.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No? What is the dearest wish of your heart, now,
-Alice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For peace—for perfect family peace and perfect
-Christian love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thanks, Alice. ‘Almost thou persuadest me to be a
-Christian.’ But is there no secret, darling thought that
-hovers around Magnus and Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice suddenly turned very pale. Her hands flew up
-pleadingly, and involuntarily she cried, in a voice of
-anguish:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, for the loving Saviour’s sake, do not require me
-to renounce Elsie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I did, would you do so, Alice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She was silent, with her head bowed upon her clasped
-hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He looked at her and smiled sardonically, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I knew it—another exception! How many would
-follow this, I wonder? But be easy, Alice. I do not require
-you to renounce your daughter. Far be that from
-me. Hold her as closely to your heart as you wish.
-Nothing but nervousness could have put that thought
-into your head. Have I not said that even I might be
-brought to forgive Elsie? Pshaw, dear Alice, I only
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_127'>127</span>wished to prove to you how really vain were all your
-promises.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, they are not!” exclaimed Alice earnestly,
-energetically. “You have reconciled yourself to me
-when I least hoped and expected it, and I will do anything
-to prove how glad I am—anything except renounce
-Elsie or fail in my higher duty to Heaven. Oh,
-do not close your half-opened heart to me again!
-Try me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good! I will put your sincerity to one more test.
-And woe to both if that third test should prove you
-faithless.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It shall not—it shall not!” said Alice solemnly. “All
-our future confidence and peace depends on it, and it
-shall not fail, so help me Heaven. What is it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You shall soon see, Alice,” replied General Garnet,
-rising and preparing to leave the room. “Where are
-they now?—I mean Dr. Hardcastle and his wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I believe they are at the hotel at Huttontown, where
-they expect to remain for a few days—if you do not
-bring them back here. Oh, General Garnet, if you would
-pardon them—if you would bring them back here to
-live with us—how happy we should all be—oh, how
-happy we should all be the long future years! No more
-partings—no more tears. Our children and grandchildren
-would be with us all through life. Magnus
-could practice his profession, and be of such inestimable
-value besides, in your political plans, and such company
-for you at home. And Elsie would be such a comfort
-to me. We should all be so happy! Come, bring them
-back with you. Ah! do. Let us have them with us,
-all reconciled, around the table to-night—and it will be
-the happiest family gathering that ever was held. Oh, I
-see you smile, and I know you will bring them back—will
-you not?” said Alice, suddenly seizing his hand, and
-gazing eloquently, beseechingly into his face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We shall see, Alice—I will tell you more about that
-when I return,” he said, with one of his charming smiles,
-and shaking her hand cheerfully, opened the door and
-went out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_128'>128</span>“Oh, yes—I do believe he will bring them back with
-him. Ah, no father can harden his heart against his
-child. Yes, yes, I am sure he will bring them back!”
-she repeated, seeking to still the anxiety that was tormenting
-her breast.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIV.<br> <span class='large'>THE WIFE’S TRUST.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>I know not, I ask not, if guilt’s in that heart,</div>
- <div class='line'>But I know that I love thee, whatever thou art.</div>
- <div class='line in42'><i>—Moore.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The sun was going down when a servant entered the
-chamber and announced that Judge Wylie was below
-stairs and begged to see Mrs. Garnet alone upon important
-business.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Telling the man to show Judge Wylie into the library,
-Alice threw a shawl around her, and, full of vague and
-painful misgivings, descended the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>What could be the important business upon which
-Judge Wylie came? What business, trifling or important,
-could he have with her? Had any accident happened
-to Elsie? The thought gripped her heart like a
-vise. Had anything happened to Magnus or General
-Garnet?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Trembling and pale, and almost overwhelmed by the
-trials of the day, she opened the library door and entered
-in.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Judge Wylie was standing there awaiting her. Judge
-Jacky’s usually jubilant face was now overcast and
-troubled as he advanced to meet Alice, took her hand,
-led her to a settee, and seated himself beside her. He
-pressed her hand with paternal kindness and said, gravely
-and gently:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear Mrs. Garnet, you will pardon the liberty
-about to be taken by your oldest friend.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For Heaven’s sake—what has——” happened, she
-was about to ask, but the words died on her pale lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_129'>129</span>“Do not be alarmed, my dear Mrs. Garnet. Nothing
-has occurred since the marriage—you perceive that I
-know all about it. But it is to warn you—to put you
-upon your guard against something about to occur, that
-I come to you this evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For God’s sake—what? what?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Be easy. Nothing that you have not in your full
-power to avert by a little firmness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For Heaven’s sake, explain yourself, Judge Wylie.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You know something, I presume, of the Maryland
-laws of property, of inheritance, and of marriage?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no; I know nothing about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“At least you know that when a girl marries, all the
-personal property she may be possessed of at the time of
-her marriage, or may afterward inherit, becomes the
-property of her husband?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, of course, I know that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but—listen. All the landed property she possesses
-at the time of her marriage, or afterward inherits,
-is hers—hers alone. Her husband can neither alienate it
-during his life, or will it at his death. He cannot mortgage
-it, nor assign it, nor can it be taken for his debts.
-It is hers, and hers alone. She alone has the disposal
-of it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes. Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Therefore, all the personal property you became possessed
-of at the death of your father is the property of
-General Aaron Garnet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Certainly. Who disputes it? Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But. And now listen! All the landed property, consisting
-of six thousand acres of the best land on the
-Western Shore, which you inherited from your father, is
-yours, your own, and at your death it is your daughter’s,
-if she survive you, and unless you choose to will it to
-someone else. General Garnet can make no disposition
-of it either during your life or at your death.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It seems to me, Judge Wylie, that this conversation
-is a very singular one,” said Alice coldly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not so singular or so impertinent—that is what you
-mean—as it appears to be. Bear with me. Hear me
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_130'>130</span>out. I speak for your good, and your child’s good, I
-have before me now the face of your sainted mother.
-I loved her in my youth, Alice; but that is neither here
-nor there. Well, this is what I had to say: Your daughter
-Elsie has, by her marriage, grievously offended her
-father. He may or may not pardon her. He may discard
-her. Do not put it in his power to disinherit her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice turned very pale.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do you say that to me?” she asked falteringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because,” he answered, “it is said that women can
-always be kissed or kicked out of any right of property
-they may happen to possess. Now, don’t you, my little
-Alice, be kissed out of your six thousand acres of finely
-cultivated and heavily timbered, well-watered land, with
-all its land and water privileges. The best plantation
-within the bounds of old Maryland. Don’t you be kissed
-out of it, little Alice, for it makes you independent and
-of great importance. Don’t you be kissed out of it,
-Alice, for you can leave it to your beloved daughter, who
-will need it. Don’t you be kissed out of it, Alice, my
-child; and as for the other alternative, my courteous
-friend, General Garnet, is far too much of a gentleman to
-resort to it, either literally or metaphorically.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Judge Wylie, why do you talk to me in this way?
-You are my oldest friend; you have a certain privilege.
-I beseech you, forbear to abuse it,” said Alice, divided
-between mortification and anxiety. The latter at last prevailed,
-and she asked: “Why did you open up this subject
-just now, Judge Wylie? You came to tell me why,
-I suppose. Tell me now at once.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, only this, Alice. That about an hour ago
-I happened in at Squire Fox’s office, where General Garnet
-was superintending the drawing up of a deed. An
-involuntary—a providential—glance, now I think it was,
-over the clerk’s shoulder revealed to me the fact that he
-was drawing up a deed of assignment, by which you
-were to convey all your right, title, and interest in the
-landed property of Mount Calm to General Aaron Garnet.
-General Garnet then turned to me and requested
-me to meet him here to-night, to witness your signature.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_131'>131</span>I asked, with surprise, if you had consented to give it.
-He looked offended, and expressed astonishment at my
-question. By which I knew that he intended to come
-upon you by a coup de main, and I came off here to put
-you on your guard.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, is that all?” asked Alice, with a sigh of great
-relief. “Well, Judge Wylie, if anyone else in the wide
-world had talked to me as you have been talking for the
-last ten minutes, I should have said that they took a
-most unwarrantable and most offensive liberty in presuming
-to interfere in a matter that concerns only General
-Garnet and myself. Of you, my old friend, I only
-say that your doubts and fears are totally groundless.
-General Garnet, perhaps, wishes to test the strength of
-my confidence in him, or he may have some other and
-still better reason for what he is about to do. At all
-events, when he lays that deed before me for signature,
-most willingly, most cheerfully, will I prove my love and
-respect, and confidence in him, by signing it at once.
-Judge Wylie, I am not well this evening. The events of
-the day have shaken me very much. Judge Wylie, with
-many thanks for your kind intentions, permit me to wish
-you good-evening.” And Alice held out her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Judge Wylie arose, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! I knew it. I might have known it before I
-came. She will not be saved when she might be. She
-is like all her sex: none of them ever will be saved, unless
-it’s those who aint worth saving. Well, good-evening,
-Mrs. Garnet! God be with you! It is said that
-children and—pardon me—fools—enjoy the privilege of
-an especial Providence. May such a protection be yours!
-Good-evening, madam.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And pressing her hand, he took his hat and stick, and
-was about to leave the room, when the front door was
-heard to open, steps to hurry up the hall, and the library
-door was thrown open, and General Garnet entered,
-ushering in a magistrate and a lawyer, who held some
-documents, tied with red tape, in his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, Judge Wylie! I am glad to find you already
-here. Gentlemen, be seated. Alice, my love, I preferred
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_132'>132</span>to bring these gentlemen here, for the purpose of transacting
-a little law business in which you are concerned,
-rather than risk your health by taking you out in this
-severe weather. Judge Wylie, resume your seat. Gentlemen,
-pray be seated. Alice, my love, come hither; I
-had expected to find the library empty, and you in your
-chamber, where I left you. I wish to have a word with
-you apart.” And putting one arm affectionately over
-the shoulder of Alice, he took her hand, and led her
-away to a distant part of the room, where, with his most
-angelic smile, he said: “Alice, I am the nominal master
-of Mount Calm only! but, Alice, I am at this moment
-a poor man. Prove your affection and confidence now,
-as your heart dictates!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know what you mean, Aaron. Come! I am ready
-to do so—at once. But, oh, Aaron! have you seen
-Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will tell you all about that after this little business
-is over, dear Alice! Come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Immediately after?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, instantly, and it will take but a moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, then, let us have it over quickly, that I may
-the sooner hear of Elsie. But, oh! just assure me of this—that
-you have forgiven her! I know by your smile that
-you have—but, oh! I long to hear you say so!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you doubt me, Alice? Come! let us have this
-affair over, and then you shall know all about it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And taking her hand he led her up the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The magistrate was seated behind a table; before him
-lay a copy of the Holy Scriptures, pen, ink, and paper,
-and certain documents, among which was the deed of assignment
-in question. By the side of the table stood
-Judge Jacky and the lawyer, as witnesses.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet led Alice up in front of it, and immediately
-before the magistrate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Squire Fox took up the deed of assignment, and read
-it aloud. Then he administered the oath to Alice, and
-put the usual questions, as to whether she gave that deed
-of her own free will, without compulsion, or undue persuasion
-from her husband?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_133'>133</span>“Without being kissed or kicked out of it?” whispered
-Judge Jacky.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Having received satisfactory answers to all questions
-the magistrate laid the deed open before Alice, for her
-signature. General Garnet dipped a pen in ink and
-handed it to her. Alice received it, smilingly, and in a
-clear, unfaltering hand, wrote her name at the bottom of
-that deed, that conferred upon her husband immense
-wealth and left herself penniless.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lawyer affixed his signature, as witness. Judge
-Wylie, with a deep groan, wrote his name. The squire
-performed his part, and the business was complete.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice looked up into General Garnet’s face, with an
-expression that said—“Now have you proved me sufficiently?
-Now will you confide in me? Will you love
-me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet stooped down and whispered to her:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Retire immediately to your chamber, Alice!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But—Elsie—tell me of her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Retire to your chamber, instantly, Mrs. Garnet!—and
-await me there! I must offer these gentlemen something
-to drink, and dismiss them; immediately after which, I
-will come to you, and tell you all that I have done, and
-all that I intend to do!” said General Garnet, in a tone of
-authority and impatience, that would brook no opposition
-or delay.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Alice, courtesying slightly to the party, withdrew.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXV.<br> <span class='large'>LIFE’S STORM AND SOUL’S SHELTER.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Go, when the hunter’s hand hath wrung</div>
- <div class='line'>From forest cave her shrieking young,</div>
- <div class='line'>And calm the lonely lioness—</div>
- <div class='line'>But chide not—mock not my distress.</div>
- <div class='line in30'><i>—Byron.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Alice retired to her chamber and waited restlessly.
-An hour passed, and still she heard no sound of departing
-guests. It was quite dark and she rang the bell.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_134'>134</span>Milly entered with lights.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tea is ready to go on the table, Miss Ally. Shall we
-put it up?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is your master? What is he doing?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He is in the library, ma’am, with the gentlemen.
-They don’t seem to have any notion of going home.
-General Garnet—he sent for more wine, and ordered
-deviled turkey and scalloped crabs—two other gentlemen
-have come in, and they are all very high upon
-pullyticks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice heard and sighed deeply.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So I thought, Miss Ally, how you’d like your cup
-of tea, anyhow. Shall I set the table as usual? Though
-it will be very lonesome for you to sit at the table all
-alone, now that Miss Elsie is gone, and marster’s engaged.
-Or else shall I bring you a cup of tea up here,
-with anything else you would like? There is some cold
-fowl in the pantry, and some neat’s tongue, too; shall I
-bring it up to you, with a cup of tea?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Milly. Perhaps the general would like supper
-got for his guests. Come with me; I will go down and
-see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God bless your soul, Miss Ally, honey, they’s been a
-stuffing ever since they’s been here.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No matter for that, Milly; you know our gentlemen
-have infinite gastronomic capacities.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My Gor A’mighty, Miss Ally! you don’t say so. Is
-it catching?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That there complaint our gemmen has got.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nonsense, Milly! you misunderstood me; I meant to
-say that they had ‘no bottoms to their stomachs.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My Gor A’mighty! Miss Ally, what a misfortunate
-state to be in. It’s a world’s wonder as it don’t kill ’em
-to death!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pshaw, Milly! There is nothing the matter with
-them except that they never get done eating.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, is that it, Miss Ally? Well, indeed, I don’t believe
-they ever does; especially when they is a talkin’
-pullyticks. ’Case, you see, Miss Ally, I done sent ’em
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_135'>135</span>in four dozen scallop crabs and six dozen raw open Nanticoke
-oysters, each one of ’em as big as the palm of my
-hand, and two deviled turkeys, and bless patience if they
-didn’t put all that away in less than an hour, and sent for
-more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, they will want a hot supper by and by, that is
-certain. So take the candle, Milly, and go before me.
-I am going down to the library door to speak to General
-Garnet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Milly lifted the candlestick, and preceded her mistress
-down the stairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When she reached the library door Alice stepped before
-her and rapped.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet came to the door and opened it. On
-seeing his wife:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, what do you want now? Didn’t I direct you
-to keep your chamber until I came?” he inquired sternly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; and I would have done so, but your visitors are
-staying longer than you or I supposed. Perhaps they
-will need supper; shall I order it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No! Mind your own business. Don’t go beyond
-your orders. Return to your room and wait me there,”
-he said, and shut the door in her face.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice sighed, and turned from the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Milly was indignant. This was the first time she had
-ever positively witnessed any disrespect shown to her
-beloved mistress. And Milly boiled with rage.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“High! Who he? Mus’ think how people ’fraid o’
-him. My Lor’! I only jes’ wish how my ole man, Tom,
-’ould turn a darned etarnal fool in his ole days, and talk
-to me so! that’s all! ‘High!’ I say, ‘Nigger, better hit
-somebody, hadn’t you? Is you done tuk o’ your ole
-woolly head’s senses?’ ’Deed I would. Look here, Miss
-Ally, honey! Don’t you put up o’ that there shortness.
-Now Miss Elsie’s gone, he can’t spite you any way. He
-daren’t hit you. ’Case why? ’case the law protects you.
-Now, Miss Ally, I say, you take my ’vice. You jes’
-pluck up a sperit and turn on him. And put a ’stonishment
-on to him. Jes’ you step it over him in style.
-Make him walk chalk. Ses you, ‘Now, you behave yourself,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_136'>136</span>or I’ll unmask you afore all the world, and let people
-see how pretty you are underneat of your smiles.’ Lor’,
-Miss Ally, if men aint the easiest spil’t and a-made fools
-of, of all the dumb beasts as ever wore shoe leather.
-There’s my old man, Tom. Why, anybody’d think he
-was the bestest old nigger as ever said prayers. But
-Lor’! when we first took up ’long o’ each other, the
-cussed infunnally fool thought he was master; thought
-how he’d got a nigger of his own. Ugh—umph! I soon
-took him out o’ that there. I wa’nt a-goin’ to lay down
-on the ground and let people walk on me. Now he
-’haves himself as a man ought to do. ’Twon’t do, Miss
-Ally, ’deed it won’t, Miss Ally! to spile men folks. Men
-folks ’quire to be made to know their places. ’Deed,
-’fore my Heavenly Marster, they do, honey.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Doubtless Alice would have rebuked this freedom of
-speech, had she heard one word of it; but she did not.
-She only knew that Milly was twaddling some monotonous
-strain of monologue, as she carried the candle before
-her upstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arrived within her chamber Alice dismissed her maid,
-refusing all refreshment, and threw herself, exhausted
-and anxious, upon her bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As the hours passed slowly away, sounds of revelry
-from below stairs began to reach and disturb her. As
-time wore on toward midnight these orgies became
-louder and higher. Vociferous laughter, shouting songs
-and thundering cheers mingled in a strange wild discord,
-and broke startlingly upon the aristocratic repose of that
-mansion and the holy quiet of that night. Alice listened
-in fear and trembling and disgust, for such orgies
-were unprecedented there.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At length, long after midnight, the company broke up
-in great disorder. Alice listened shudderingly to their
-noisy leave-taking, as with jocular songs, coarse jests,
-vociferous cheers and laughter, they departed. Then she
-heard the closing of doors and windows, and the steps
-of General Garnet as he moved about the house. Lastly,
-she heard him coming up the stairs. He entered the
-chamber. Alice rose to meet him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_137'>137</span>“Oh, you are waiting to hear something about Elsie.
-Well, sit down,” said he, putting down the night-lamp,
-closing the door, and turning to her with a sarcastic
-smile.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice had sunk into a chair, faint, sickened by the
-sight of the demon leer that now he did not even turn to
-conceal.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, now, what questions do you want to put to me?
-I am quite ready to answer any,” he said, dropping himself
-into a chair before her, crossing his feet, folding his
-arms, and leaning back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, then? Have you seen her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What, not seen Elsie!” she repeated, with a look of
-deep disappointment. “Not seen Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” he answered again, looking at her with steady,
-imperturbable contempt.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But you—you intend to see her?” asked Alice, with
-a sinking voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never! Never, so help me Heaven! And now listen,
-minion! fool! It was for the purpose of punishing
-her and you—of beggaring her and you, that I obtained
-that deed!” he exclaimed, malice, scorn, taunting triumph
-writhing around his lips, flashing from his eyes,
-and lighting up the whole dark face with a lurid demoniac
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice stared at him for an instant with a marble-like
-immobility of countenance, as if it were impossible for
-her to comprehend such black treachery.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Stretching out his arm, and pointing his finger at her,
-he laughed aloud.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then the spell of amazement that checked the current
-of her blood was broken, and slowly from the pallid lips
-came the words:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my God! I understand it all now!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! ha! ha! do you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All—all,” she continued, without withdrawing her
-steady gaze—“all, all. I have sold my birthright and
-hers, for—a kiss!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! ha! ha! Well, what do you want to complain
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_138'>138</span>of? You got the kiss,” he exclaimed, in the most insulting
-manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have sold her birthright for a kiss! a serpent’s kiss!
-a Judas kiss!” cried Alice, wildly wringing her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Mrs. Garnet, no hard words, if you please.
-Remember how you hung upon me this morning. You
-were so affectionate! I was quite flattered; grew ‘quite
-in favor with myself,’ and almost with you—only it is
-impossible to rekindle ashes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, fiend, fiend! remorseless fiend! I shall go mad!
-Oh, God! where sleep your thunderbolts?” cried Alice,
-rising, and walking distractedly up and down the floor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, madam. No more of this. I am tired of it.
-Resume your seat,” exclaimed General Garnet, leaving
-his scornful, taunting manner, and speaking in the deep,
-stern tones of haughty command.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Alice heard him not, as she walked wildly up and
-down the room, crying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, God! God! where rest your thunderbolts?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you hear me? Sit down, I say! or, by Heaven,
-I will send you in search of the thunderbolts!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But Alice was not to be stopped now. Still wildly
-walking up and down the floor, distractedly wringing
-her hands, she was pouring forth the gathered bitterness
-of many years.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have borne so much, great God. I have borne so
-much. Oh, I have been a woman ‘of sorrows and acquainted
-with grief.’ And who is it that has made my
-life, my harmless life, one long pain? You, General
-Garnet, you. You married me by force, you know you
-did. In my young girlhood—nay, in my innocent childhood,
-when life opened to me with such a bright promise
-of usefulness and happiness with one I loved, with one to
-whom my faith was plighted, you tore me away from
-that one, and made his life a useless, barren waste, and
-married me yourself, for your own selfish purposes, and
-nearly broke my heart and crazed my brain. God knows
-I have no clear recollection now of the months that followed
-my marriage. Well! Well! Well! ‘Time and
-the hour beareth away all things,’ and as time passed, I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_139'>139</span>learned to love you. Because you were my husband,
-and the father of my child, and because it was the great
-necessity of my nature to love, I loved you. God knows,
-I think there was no other reason. Oh, if Heaven gave
-me one idea purer and higher than all the rest, it was
-that of the beauty and holiness of marriage! And
-though mine was a miserable sacrifice, so great was my
-need to live in an atmosphere of love and piety, that I
-tried to make a sort of temple of it. It was a wild ruin.
-Oh, worse! it was a ridiculous failure! This hour has
-proved it. Ha! ha! ha! Hark! did I laugh? No, it was
-not I. I have nothing to laugh at in earnest, and I never
-laugh in scorn. But there are two spirits in me now,
-and one mocks at the other.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sit down, this moment, sit down!” thundered General
-Garnet, stamping furiously.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“But heedless as the dead was she</div>
- <div class='line'>Of all around, above, beneath!”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>Of all but the stormy outpouring of thought and feeling,
-from her own over-burdened heart and brain.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“When you trampled all my rights and my happiness
-beneath your feet, when you seized and married me
-against my will, I excused you, for I said you loved me
-with a strong passion, and strong passions have their
-necessities and their rights. When you required me to
-give up my dearest friends, and lay aside habits of study
-and elegant amusements, that were a second nature to
-me, I said that your position gave you a right to dictate
-to me, and I acquiesced without a murmur. When you
-took my little child away from me, the only comfort I
-had left in the world, and sent her across the ocean, to
-remain at school for many years, I said you were her
-father, and what you did was doubtless intended for her
-good, however mistaken the intention might be, and I
-submitted. Recently, when you have laid violent hands
-upon my person, and endangered my life, I said it was
-violence of temper, not malignity of heart, and I resolved,
-for your sake and mine, to keep our secret, and
-to bear with it. I excused it—nay, I went farther, and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_140'>140</span>vindicated it. No ill-usage, from mere violence of temper,
-could have affected my happiness. I do not know
-but that I thought you had a right to strike me if you
-were angry. Because I was superstitious and fanatical,
-and because I loved you then. They say that ‘perfect
-love casteth out fear.’ My love, imperfect as it was, cast
-out fear. When I conscientiously assisted at Elsie’s
-marriage, and remained home here to meet you, I nerved
-my heart to bear all your fury. I even said it would be
-just, coming from you. And no matter how much I had
-suffered at your hands, no matter if you had left me for
-dead, as you did once before, if I had recovered I could
-have gone on cheerily with my daily duties, as if nothing
-had happened. Because I could have understood
-violence, as I said: I could have understood anything
-that grew out of heat of passion—anything, but this
-clear-headed, cold-blooded treachery—because I loved
-you then. Nay! My God! I believe in my soul, I love
-you yet, and it is that which stings my self-respect to
-madness. It is that which lays my soul open to the entrance
-of the scornful, jibing spirit that mocks at my
-holiest instincts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sit down! Sit down, I say!” vociferated General
-Garnet, striding toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly she fell at his feet, and raised her clasped
-hands, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am mad! I am mad! Two spirits possess me—a
-mad and a sane one. It is the mad spirit that impels me
-to say now—while your serpent-treachery folds its cold,
-damp coils about my heart, and not so much stings as
-chills me to death—to say now, in the face of all reason—while
-the same spirit keeps before me—to say, only
-forgive Elsie! only be reconciled with her, and take all
-the rest; and I will try to forget that I have been deceived
-and scorned. At least I will never, never harbor
-the thought, much less give it expression again. Come,
-forgive your child! You cannot be forever obdurate to
-your child! Be reconciled to her, and I will believe that
-anger and disappointment bereft you of your reason—for
-a little while—and that it was only during a temporary
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_141'>141</span>fit of insanity that you could have done such a thing.
-And I will honor you again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pooh! fudge! You are not so mad as to believe the
-words you are saying,” said General Garnet, jerking her
-up and flinging her upon the sofa. “There, be quiet;
-I hate raving. And now listen to what I have to say in
-regard to Elsie: I will never see her, or speak to her,
-or receive a letter or a message from her, under any circumstances
-whatever, so long as I live. I will never
-permit you to see her, or speak to her, or hold any communication,
-by letter or message, with her, under any
-circumstances that may occur, so long as you live. I
-will never give her an acre of land, or a cent of money,
-or an article of food, or raiment, or fuel, to save her
-from starvation or freezing!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice, exhausted, prostrate, gazed at him in horror, as
-with a darkened and ferocious countenance, and a voice
-of concentrated hatred, so deep as to be nearly inaudible,
-he continued:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If she were to dare to set foot upon this plantation
-I would loosen my bloodhounds upon her!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fiend—you are the only bloodhound that would hurt
-her. Turn them loose on her, then—do it! They would
-crouch at her feet! They would lick her hands—her
-beautiful hands—that have fed and caressed them all.
-Or get strange dogs to hunt her with, and even they
-would grovel before the angel in her eyes. Oh, fool!—you
-are the only brute on God’s creation that would harm
-her,” said Alice, in a low, deep tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet continued, as if he had not heard
-her:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If she were lying, dying, at my gate I would not
-suffer one of my negroes to hand her a drink of water,
-if that drink of water would save her from death!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Demon—there is not a man, woman, or child on this
-plantation that you could hinder, with all your malice
-and power, from rendering Elsie any service she might
-require—unless you imprisoned them, or tied them hand
-and foot!” said Alice, in a dying voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Still he continued, without attending to her indignant
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_142'>142</span>but faint interruptions. And his face became still more
-dark and demoniac.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And now comes the very best part of the argument,
-which, like a good orator, I have saved for the very
-last—I wonder how you will like it! I shall take pleasure
-in watching the play of your pretty features while
-I tell you, and dissecting and analyzing the emotions of
-your heart as you hear! And saying within myself—there
-is so much regret, and there is so much shame,
-and there is so much jealousy, and there is so much rage.
-Listen, then—you have disappointed me in my first plan
-for uniting two great estates. Before I have done I will
-make you regret that. The estates shall be united yet.
-You have taught your daughter to disobey me. Very
-well; you have bereft her of her birthright for a caress,
-to your shame be it remembered—and I have discarded
-and disowned her. But, listen: I have another daughter—the
-child of my love—ha!—are you pale with jealousy?
-Listen, farther yet: all the broad lands of Mount
-Calm that came by you, and should descend to your
-child, and enrich her, will I bestow upon the child of my
-love; and her hand will I bestow upon Lionel Hardcastle,
-who will be glad to accept it, no doubt. Ha!
-Now die of rage!” he exclaimed, with a ferocious laugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But neither regret, shame, nor jealousy, nor rage, disfigured
-that peaceful face, or agitated that composed
-figure. General Garnet, who glanced at her first in triumph,
-now gazed in awe. Her eyes were closed, her
-hands had fallen. Her whole figure expressed perfect repose.
-She looked as if the Angel of Death had laid
-hand upon her head, and said to that storm-tossed life,
-“Peace—be still.” “And there had fallen a Great
-Calm.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_143'>143</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVI.<br> <span class='large'>DAY AFTER THE WEDDING.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in16'>What is the world to them?</div>
- <div class='line'>Its pomp, its pleasure, and its nonsense all?</div>
- <div class='line'>Who in each other clasp whatever fair,</div>
- <div class='line'>High fancy forms and lavish hearts can wish,</div>
- <div class='line'>Or in the mind or mind-illumined face;</div>
- <div class='line'>Truth, goodness, honor, harmony and love,</div>
- <div class='line'>The richest bounty of indulgent Heaven!</div>
- <div class='line in36'><i>—Thompson.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>At break of day a large traveling wagon, strongly
-and compactly built, and neatly roofed with snow-white
-tent-cloth stretched lightly over hoops, and drawn by two
-stout gray mules, stood before the village hotel at Huttontown.
-This wagon was closely packed with a small
-assortment of cabin furniture. All this “household
-stuff” was perfectly new, clean, neat, and bright, and
-snugly stowed away in the back and middle part of the
-wagon. Near the front of the vehicle stood a small, flag-bottomed
-armchair, wedged tightly in between boxes and
-trunks, so that it could not be jostled by the motion of
-the wagon. It is needless to say that this was the “traveling
-carriage” of our bridal pair, or that the little flag-bottomed
-chair was provided for the especial convenience
-and comfort of the bride. Early as the hour was,
-a crowd of village neighbors had collected for the pleasure
-of seeing the “bride and groom” come out, and
-the wagon start “for the Western country.” Among
-the assembled villagers was a fine, handsome boy of ten
-or twelve years of age, who volunteered to hold the reins
-until the travelers should come forth.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The people had not very long to wait. The front door
-of the hotel opened, and Dr. Hardcastle, clad in a large,
-shaggy overcoat and overalls, and fox-skin cap and
-gloves, and looking as great, energetic, and joyous as
-ever, came out, leading Elsie, wrapped in a full, brown
-cloth cloak, with her healthful, happy face blooming and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_144'>144</span>smiling from out the comfortable rolls of a wadded,
-brown silk hood.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus nodded and smiled as he shook hands hastily
-right and left, and hurried Elsie toward the wagon. He
-lifted her in, fixed her comfortably in her chair, wrapped
-the ample folds of her cloak about her, and tucked it
-snugly around her feet, with a solicitous care for her and
-a total indifference to the eyes of the lookers-on that
-provoked their merriment into peals of good-humored
-laughter, accompanied by exclamations of: “That is
-right, doctor. Take good care of her, God bless her!
-That’s right, doctor. That’s the way. Tuck her up
-warm. Indeed, her chin will freeze, if you don’t muffle
-that comforter closer around her throat.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, hurry! let’s escape this!” whispered Elsie, laughing
-and blushing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never mind, dear! Never mind their rough manners.
-You are too generous and large-hearted to feel anger or
-contempt at their unrefined method of expressing their
-sympathy, which is really more sincere and earnest than
-all the congratulations in elegant phrases that ladies and
-gentlemen give and receive upon such occasions. Let us
-have patience with uncultivated Nature, dear Elsie, for
-we are going to live with her a long time. At least, have
-any other feeling for humanity rather than contempt,
-dear Elsie,” replied Magnus, as he finished arranging
-her cloak.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me! me presume to feel contempt for my rough, honest,
-kindly neighbors! Oh, Magnus, never! I will prove
-to you that I do not!” exclaimed Elsie, in a low, hurried
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Magnus sprang into his seat, and took the reins
-from the hands of the lad.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As he gave them up, the boy fixed a long, lingering,
-wistful look at the wagon and its occupants.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You look as if you had half a mind to accompany us,
-my boy,” said Dr. Hardcastle, as he read the expression
-of the lad’s countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, I have, sir! for I feel I could be useful, almost
-necessary to you, and beneficial to myself, if I could go;
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_145'>145</span>but I cannot, for I have a little girl to take care of at
-home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A little girl to take care of? You!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, sir, my little sister, or rather she is just like my
-little sister. We live on Hutton Island.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes! the two Children of the Isle. How come
-you over here so early, my boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I came over to bring some maninosies to the tavern,
-sir, in time for them to be prepared for breakfast. I
-expect you ate some of them yourself, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, and they were very good.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My sister and I gathered them, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes. Well, my boy, you look like a fine, independent,
-enterprising lad. Rely on God and yourself, improve
-your mind, be honest, industrious, and frugal, and
-you will make your own way in the world. What is your
-name?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh Hutton, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, young Hutton of the Isles, one of the ‘Scotch
-lairds,’ as the people used to call them for their pride
-and——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Poverty,” calmly concluded the boy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, child, they go admirably together. Hold to
-your pride as long as you are poor, and cast it away when
-you become rich. Well, Hugh, I will not forget you, or
-lose sight of you. Some day I shall come back, and
-then you may return with me. Good-by,” said Dr.
-Hardcastle, shaking hands with the boy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then he arose in his seat, lifted his cap, and waved
-farewell to the neighbors. Elsie kissed her hand to them
-several times, blushing brightly as they all waved their
-hats and handkerchiefs, and amid the cheers and benedictions
-of the little crowd the wagon started.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must make thirty miles to-day, dear Elsie, and
-reach Deep Dell by nightfall if possible,” said Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, how I wish that fine boy were really with us.
-How useful he could be to you, and what a man you
-could make of him!” said she, looking back to where
-Hugh stood, the last of the crowd, watching the departing
-wagon.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_146'>146</span>“God has made a man of him already, dear Elsie.
-What a fine, independent look he has! Yes, I could have
-wished him to go with us; a very strong sympathy attracts
-me to that boy. I should be very proud of that
-boy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He will be gentle and great like you. He reminds
-me of what you were at his age, when you used to carry
-me about the forest in your arms, as joyous as a boy,
-yet as careful as a woman. I thought of that when he
-talked about his sister. Magnus, I used to feel as if I
-should so love to have a sister or to be a sister. There is
-such a sweet and tender thought in sisterhood—children
-of the same mother. Just now I thought that boy’s
-voice took a tone of modulated sweetness when he spoke
-of his sister. Yet his very gentleness must be the playfulness
-of a lion’s cub—there is such fire in his grand
-eyes, that reminded me of you, too. Oh, Magnus, do
-you know what I have been thinking of? what great
-music has been sounding its majestic harmony through
-my soul this morning as I journey by your side into the
-wilderness? Listen:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Thy spirit, Independence, let me share,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Lord of the lion heart and eagle eye!</div>
- <div class='line'>Thy steps I follow with my bosom bare,</div>
- <div class='line in2'>Nor heed the storm that howls along the sky.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>“And I feel as if you were that very incarnate spirit of
-Independence, and I am sure that that boy was the worshiping
-disciple who was ready to follow you. And as
-for me, Magnus,” she continued, laughing, “there is such
-a superfluous amount of energy in my little body and soul
-this morning, that I feel as if I could not only brave and
-bear hardships and peril by your side, but should be disappointed
-if they did not come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have so much resistance, Elsie! but do not do
-with your wealth of energy as the prodigal son did with
-his wealth of money, spend it all at the outset; and, as
-an illustration of what I mean, put your hands within
-your cloak, and fold it closely around your chest—we
-are about to turn and face a sharp, if not a violent northwester,
-and after the sun is fully up you will see that it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_147'>147</span>will blow harder,” said Magnus, as they turned the end
-of the street and entered the turnpike road.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was a glorious winter day; the sun now arose in
-cloudless splendor, lighting up the snow-clad hills and
-plains and ice-spangled forest trees and bushes into
-flashing, dazzling radiance, while far away behind them
-dashed and sparkled the green waters of the Chesapeake,
-like a sea of molten emeralds.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their road, after leaving the village, lay over the snowy
-hills and plains, and through the forest around the base
-of Mount Calm. In making the circuit they once came
-in full view of the front of the mansion house, and Elsie,
-seizing her husband’s arm, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, tie your pocket-handkerchief at the end of
-your stick, and get up and wave it. I know that our beloved
-mother has been watching at that window for the
-last hour to see us pass. I know it, though it is too
-distant to see her distinctly; yet I think I see somebody
-there. Wave it, Magnus, and then we’ll know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle stood up, lifted the impromptu flag on
-high, and presently the signal was returned by a white
-cloth waved from the window, and instantly withdrawn.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She saw us, she saw us, Magnus! But stay! why
-didn’t she look out?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It would not have been safe on such a sharp morning
-as this for your mother to run her head out of the window
-in that bleak, exposed position,” said Magnus, repressing
-the various vague forebodings of his heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am afraid something has happened to mother, Magnus.
-Oh! indeed, I feel as if something had,” said Elsie
-anxiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nonsense, my love. I saw some of the gentlemen
-who were there last night until twelve, and who slept at
-the hotel, and one of them told me when I inquired,
-that all the family were well. However, Elsie, in driving
-around we will see some of the colored folks, and receive
-fresh assurance. Elsie, dear, it is solely on your mother’s
-account that I do not turn into the grounds and drive up
-to the mansion house now, and make a last effort at
-reconciliation with your father. I know, Elsie, that it
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_148'>148</span>would only subject her to a violent and perhaps fatal
-scene. I know, poor child, that it is a great trial to you
-to pass by your father’s house, bound for a long journey,
-and a new, strange life, without stopping to ask his blessing.
-Oh! I know it, my poor Elsie! but keep your courage;
-this is the sharpest, and it is also the last trial you
-shall have.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my courage is up,” said Elsie, dashing the sparkling
-tears from her eyes, and smiling out like an April
-sun from the clouds. “These, father, are the very last
-tears I am going to shed. No, indeed, won’t I weep, and
-make you sad for me, my dear Magnus! No, indeed,
-won’t I, for anybody’s cruelty and injustice!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush, hush, my darling! ‘The heart grows bitter by
-saying bitter things,’” said Magnus, kissing the dew-drops
-from her rosy cheek.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gee up, Dobbin! Make them gee up, Magnus,” said
-Elsie, poking at the mules with the point of her umbrella.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus put whip to the animals, and they started
-afresh. Soon, in turning around toward the back of
-Mount Calm, they came to a group of negroes just starting
-to their work. Every man of them dropped his hat,
-and stood bowing, smiling, and grimacing at the sight of
-their young mistress. Magnus stopped the wagon.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How are they all at the house, Uncle Bob?” he asked
-of the driver.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All fus’ rate, sir! ’Deed dey is, Miss Elsie, honey.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Are you sure that mother is quite well, Bob?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed, fus’ rate, Miss Elsie! ’Deed is her, honey!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How do you know, Uncle Bob? You never go to the
-house.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed, honey, sister Milly told me; ’deed, honey, you
-needn’t be ’t all oneasy, nor likewise ’stress in your mind
-’bout your ma! De madam is fus’ rate—’deed her is.
-Der wa’n’t nothin’ of no fuss, nuther, honey!—eberyting
-passed off quite quiet. Marse Iron he had some company
-las’ night, and ’joyed himself ’long o’ de gemmen
-very much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It is unnecessary to say that “Iron” was the negro
-corruption of Aaron, and not an unapt translation, either.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_149'>149</span>“And mother is well and cheerful?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“High! what I tell you, Miss Elsie? Think I gwine
-to ax you a lie? De madam is fus’rate!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thank Heaven, then! Here, Bob, here is a keepsake
-for you. It is a little prayer-book that I have carried in
-my pocket ever since I first left home for England. I
-held it in my hand when I was married, and I intended
-to carry it out West with me; but here, you shall have it.
-And, Bob, give my love to mother, and tell her that I am
-very happy—you hear, Bob?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, miss.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And give her this letter also, Bob,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-taking one ready sealed and directed from his
-pocket.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then they took leave of the colored folks, shook hands
-with Uncle Bob, and started. Again Elsie called the
-driver back.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, be sure to tell my dear mother that she must
-not have a thought or a care for me. Tell her I am very
-happy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Miss Elsie; yes, honey; I’ll be sure to tell her—’deed,
-God A’mighty knows will I. Good-by! God bless
-you, Miss Elsie, and you, too, Marse Magnet! I wishes
-you both all the good luck in the worl’—’deed I does,
-children!—’deed, God A’mighty knows does I—I don’t
-care what ole marse say!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Uncle Bob hurried off after his staff of workmen,
-leaving the wagon pursuing its way.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly, with one of his impetuous bursts of emotion,
-Magnus threw his arms around the form of his
-bride, and drew her to his bosom, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Elsie! every now and then I realize, with a sort
-of quick, sharp, almost mortal pang of joy, that you really
-are my wife! Oh, Elsie, my love! my child! there lives
-not a being on earth so happy as I! There lives not a
-creature in heaven so happy as I!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And she sank upon his bosom, pale, faint, with excess
-of joy. The reins were loosed, the mules came to a
-standstill on the decline of the hill, when Elsie, with one
-of her sudden, healthful rebounds from the bathos of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_150'>150</span>sentiment, sprang laughing up, and seizing the reins,
-exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gee up, Dobbin! Magnus, why don’t you make
-them gee up? We shall not make our thirty miles to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus took the reins from her hands, flourished the
-whip, and they set off in earnest, unmindful of a cynical
-old negro by the roadside, who, watching them as he
-bagged his snow-birds from the trap, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The cussed infunnally young fools! I s’pose dey tink
-it always gwine be jes’ so! Gor A’mighty help ’em!
-Aar, Lor’! der troubles is all afore ’em, like young
-bearses!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And they went on, happy, hopeful, confident, and
-justly confident; recalling the past with its childish
-pleasures, planning for the future, pointing out to each
-other familiar places in the forest, and spots associated
-with some childish reminiscence—now it was the very
-tree where Magnus first took her to gather chestnuts;
-now the very dell where he set traps to catch snow-birds
-for her; now the thicket where the wild rose-bushes bore
-so full in spring; now the glade that was red with strawberries
-in May; and so, talking and laughing, hoping
-and believing, billing and cooing, our pair of turtledoves
-pursued their Westerly flight.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVII.<br> <span class='large'>DEEP DELL—COUNTRY TAVERN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Here rustic statesmen talked with looks profound,</div>
- <div class='line'>And news much older than their ale went round.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Goldsmith.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It was far into the night when they reached Deep Dell,
-and put up at the large log tavern that fulfilled the manifold
-duties of country store, post office, smithy, meetinghouse,
-and hotel, and was consequently a place of great
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_151'>151</span>bustle, if not business. Here our emigrant pair, by special
-favor, were accommodated with the landlady’s own
-parlor, and promised a private supper. The tavern was
-full of people, for this was mail day, and the post-boy
-from Huttontown was expected every moment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus went out to put his wagon under cover, and
-to feed and stable his mules.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And Elsie sat to employ his absence in writing a few
-lines to her mother, which she inclosed and directed to
-Mr. Wilson, the young Methodist minister.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She had scarcely concluded when supper, consisting of
-fine coffee and rich cream, buckwheat cakes, fresh butter,
-and venison steaks with currant jelly, was brought in
-and neatly arranged upon the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus came in, and Elsie, with a blush and a smile,
-took her seat at the head of the board. This was the
-first time she had “done the honors of the table,” and
-her half-womanly, half-childly heart was pleased at the
-novelty of her position.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As for Magnus, he was as gravely comfortable as if he
-had been used to his vis-a-vis all his life.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Very early the next morning the mules were fed and
-watered and put to the wagon, and a substantial breakfast
-prepared for our travelers.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But when Magnus went to the bar to pay his bill, the
-barkeeper, with the slow nonchalance of a country postmaster,
-handed him a letter, which he said had been
-brought by the Huttontown post-boy late the night previous.
-Magnus took the letter. It was superscribed in
-the handwriting of Mr. Wilson. He turned it to break
-it open, and found, to his dismay, that the seal was black.
-He tore it open. It was short, even abrupt in its annunciation.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<span class='sc'>Huttontown</span>, December 18, 18—.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<span class='sc'>Dr. Hardcastle.</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c016'>“<span class='sc'>My Dear Friend</span>: I keep the post-boy waiting while
-I write to announce the painful intelligence of the death
-of Mrs. Garnet. She expired suddenly about two o’clock
-this morning—three hours before you left Huttontown,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_152'>152</span>although we did not receive the sad news of her decease
-until seven o’clock. The funeral is fixed for to-morrow
-afternoon at four. Return immediately, if you would be
-present to pay the last respects to the memory of the
-sainted dead. May Heaven grant that this season of
-awful and mutual bereavement may be sanctified to the
-hearts and souls of the father and daughter, of the father-in-law
-and the son-in-law, and that you may be all reconciled—each
-to the other, and all to God—is the prayer of</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Your brother in Christian love,</div>
- <div class='line in20'>“<span class='sc'>Ebenezer Wilson</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, why was not this letter given me last night?”
-exclaimed Dr. Hardcastle, in strong excitement.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because, sir, the mail did not get in until an hour
-after you had gone to bed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have you any description of carriage here, lighter
-than my wagon? We must set off instantly, on our return
-to Huttontown.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I hope there’s no bad news, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes—my wife’s mother died yesterday.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good Heaven, sir; was the poor lady sick when you
-left?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no—it was unexpected—quite suddenly; we left
-her in perfect health. Is there any vehicle I can procure?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, sir—dear me, this is very shocking; I am very
-sorry to hear it. Yes, there’s Mrs. Barber—her old
-carryall.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Have my mules put to it on the instant,” said Magnus;
-and pale with trouble, he went into the little breakfast
-parlor where Elsie sat at the head of the breakfast
-table awaiting. His grave demeanor, his troubled face,
-and the open letter with the broken black seal, alarmed
-her. Starting up in haste, she rushed to his side. He
-threw his arms around her, and placed the letter in her
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie read the first lines. She was too strong and full
-of blood to faint, but the strength and sanguinity that
-kept her from falling under the sudden, tremendous blow
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_153'>153</span>gave greater energy and passion to her grief. Breaking
-from her husband’s arms, with a wild shriek she gave
-herself up to passionate lamentations and bitter self-reproaches.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should not have left her—I should not have left
-her! Oh! I see now, it was thoughtless—it was selfish—it
-was cruel to leave her! If I could scarcely bear my
-father’s tyranny, how could she? How could she—so
-delicate, so sensitive! Died suddenly!—oh, yes, done to
-death—done to death! And to keep it secret for four
-or five hours—oh!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie—dear, darling Elsie—hush! Do not say bitter
-and sinful things, which you will repent.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, don’t put your arms around me, Magnus! It
-would be heinous for me to be loved, or comforted by
-your sympathy, now. I who left my gentle, fragile
-mother alone, to be done to death for me; my dove-like
-mother, in the claws of the vulture. I, who was so much
-stronger, and who, having your protection also, should
-have remained to protect her. I to leave her, defenseless,
-and in peril for my sake, and to come flaunting off,
-so happy and thoughtless, like a very matron. Oh, Magnus,
-I could go to a nunnery, Magnus—I could go to
-a nunnery, Magnus. A hundred serpents are gnawing
-at my heart! Oh, Magnus, I can never be happy—never
-make you happy in this world again. Oh, Magnus, I am
-sorry—so sorry for you, too! You did not deserve a
-sorrow-stricken, remorseful wife. Oh, mother, dear,
-gentle mother, what harm did your innocent life do to
-anyone, that it should have been trampled out?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And then she burst into tears—such copious tears,
-such floods of tears, as only one of her strong and sanguine
-temperament could have shed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Tears and lamentations are the natural vent of a
-healthful sorrow. It is only the sorrow unto death that
-is mute and dry.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And while she was drowned in tears, and wringing
-her hands, and wailing, and talking, Magnus walked up
-and down the floor, waiting as patiently as he would
-have waited for a storm of thunder, lightning, and rain
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_154'>154</span>to subside, except when some unfilial expression of bitter
-indignation against her father would escape her lips,
-when he would go up to her, and gently risk to stop her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Elsie, you must not speak so. Nothing that
-your father can do or say to me, or to others, can affect
-your duty toward him. Elsie, you must speak of your
-father with respect, or not speak of him at all. That is
-what your sainted mother would have advised, and, gentle
-as she was, enforced. There was nothing more admirable
-in Alice Garnet’s blameless character and conduct
-than the delicate reserve with which she concealed
-her own sufferings, and the gentle dignity with which
-she constrained the respect of all her friends for General
-Garnet. I often compared her to the dove, folding her
-wing over her mortal wound, to hide it from all eyes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Blessed mother!—oh, angel mother!” said Elsie,
-bursting into fresh floods.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She respected the husband in General Garnet—will
-you not respect the father?” at last said Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes—yes, I will, indeed! I will never say another
-word about him. If I do, stop me—don’t let me,
-please, Magnus. I don’t wish to do wrong; but, oh,
-Magnus, is it not enough to try one’s faith—to kill one’s
-faith—when one so good as my mother is permitted to
-suffer and to die?” exclaimed Elsie, giving way to another
-extravagant burst of sorrow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus knelt by her side, and took her hands, and
-stroked her hair, and wiped her tears, until the fresh gush
-of grief had spent itself, and then he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Elsie, it is the great strengthener and supporter
-of faith—the sufferings and premature death of the good.
-It makes immortality, heaven, certain, because necessary;
-and necessary, because just. Dear Elsie, what is
-the life and death of Christ intended to teach? What is
-the resurrection and ascension intended to insure?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know—oh, I know she is an angel in heaven; but
-heaven itself needs ‘familiarizing’ to our feelings, before
-it can console us for the lost—much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this moment the barkeeper came in, and said that
-the carryall was ready. Dr. Hardcastle re-arranged the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_155'>155</span>cloak around his almost helpless companion, tied her
-hood, and leading her out, fixed her in the back of the
-carryall.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Three o’clock came, and they had still fifteen miles to
-go. The mules went in a fast trot. Four o’clock came,
-and ten miles lay before them. Five o’clock came; it was
-nearly dark, and they were still several miles from town.
-At length, at a little before six, when it was quite dark
-and piercing cold, they entered Huttontown.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie had long in silence given up the hope of getting
-even to the church in time for the funeral service there;
-and now she whispered, in a low, solemn, sorrow-fraught
-tone:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Drive to the church—to the house of the sexton. We
-must see her again, if only in the vault.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It will be too much for you, oh, my Elsie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no; I entreat, I implore you, take me to the
-vault.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXVIII.<br> <span class='large'>THE VAULT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Death, that hath sucked the honey of thy breath,</div>
- <div class='line'>Hath had no power as yet upon thy beauty;</div>
- <div class='line'>Thou art not conquered! Beauty’s ensign yet</div>
- <div class='line'>Is crimson in thy lips and in thy cheeks,</div>
- <div class='line'>And Death’s pale flag is not advanced there.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>A silent drive of about half an hour’s length brought
-them to the deep and sheltered forest dell in which St.
-John’s Church stood. Surrounding the dell was the
-boundless forest, whose nearer trees stood up, stark and
-black, in strong contrast with the snow. Within the circle
-of these grim trees gleamed a single ray of red light,
-shooting in a line of crimson across the graveyard.
-This came from the window of the old sexton’s log house,
-that stood just within the shelter of the forest. Taking
-this ghostly light as their guide, and picking their way
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_156'>156</span>cautiously and reverently among the tombs, they approached
-the lone dwelling. As they drew near they saw
-the light flitting backward and forward in the house, and
-then perceived an old negro with a saddled mule at the
-gate.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Before Dr. Hardcastle could speak to ask a question
-the door of the house was opened, and the old sexton
-came forth, clad in a shaggy overcoat, fox-cap, and fur
-gloves, and carrying a lantern in his hand. Seeing two
-strangers, he made an exclamation of surly surprise, and
-asked their business. Dr. Hardcastle drew him apart,
-explained to him who they were, and what they wanted.
-The old man then changed his tone, invited them into his
-house, and, lantern in hand, slowly led the way. With
-plain kindness, he took the hand of Elsie, and led her
-to a rude armchair in the chimney corner, telling her
-that, being about to go away for the night, he had put
-out the fire, but that he would soon kindle it up again
-to warm her. Then going to an obscure corner of the
-room, he brought forth a quantity of oily pine knots, and
-lighting one at the candle in the lantern, and placing it
-on the hearth and piling other around it, and heaping
-more upon them, in an instant he had a very hot fire.
-Then he turned to Dr. Hardcastle, begging him to be
-seated, and explained that he had just been summoned
-away to Green Mills to see his brother, who was dangerously
-ill; that he had therefore to depart on the instant,
-lest he should not see his brother alive; that if Dr. Hardcastle
-would dispense with his services, and take the keys
-of the church and let himself in, he would be very much
-obliged; farther, that if Dr. Hardcastle should choose
-not to return to Huttontown in the severe cold, this
-poor cottage was at his service, with all it contained; only
-when the doctor left, would he please to put out the fire,
-and lock up everything, both at the church and at the
-cottage, securely, and put the bunch of keys under the
-stone by the doorstep. Dr. Hardcastle thanked him,
-accepted the keys, promised security to all things intrusted
-to his care, and even hastened to dismiss the old
-man. When the sexton and the negro had departed,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_157'>157</span>Magnus turned to Elsie, who had sat all this time in the
-armchair by the chimney corner, with her face covered
-by the flap of her cloak, and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, my dear, dear girl, pause, think; do not insist
-upon going into the vault!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes! yes, I entreat you; something in my heart
-urges me beyond the possibility of keeping back; haste!
-haste, I implore you. I am sick with impatience while
-you hesitate. I feel as if something momentous, something
-tremendous hung upon this instant of time; haste,
-haste!” she said.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My darling, my poor darling, strong as you are, this
-has been too much for you; you are nervous, excited,
-flighty; but, come along; I can take care of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie arose and took his arm, and solemnly and silently
-they passed out of the old sexton’s house, and took their
-mournful way toward the church. Solemnly and silently
-they entered its portals, and, dimly lighted by the lantern,
-passed up its shadowy aisles—silently, but for the mournful
-echo of their footsteps. The door of the vault was
-situated at the side of the altar. Opening this door with
-reverential care, and still bearing the lantern, Magnus
-Hardcastle descended, followed by Elsie, pale with grief
-and awe, into its shadows. There is a depth of solemnity
-about the last resting-place of the dead which overwhelms
-the wildest sorrow with awe, and subdues it into
-deathlike stillness. Magnus and Elsie entered the vault
-with profound calmness. But here was only the darkness
-and repose of death. The vault, like the church, was
-new. Only two mortals—an aged man and an infant—had
-been placed there to rest, just before Alice Garnet
-fell asleep and was laid by their side. As the two mourning
-pilgrims entered, the light of the lantern partially revealed
-the new, gray stone walls, the white ground floor,
-and the three coffins. That of Alice was, of course, easily
-recognized. Reverently, mournfully, they approached
-and knelt by its side. With reverent hands Magnus
-raised the top of the outer case.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A glass-plate set in the lid of the coffin gave the features
-of the quiet face once more to the view of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_158'>158</span>mourning son and daughter. There was the face, even
-as Elsie had seen it often in its natural sleep; only more
-serene than in slumber, for in her life the very sleep of
-Alice had seemed troubled or too deathlike. Was this
-repose deathlike? Was this death? Beautiful, strangely
-beautiful, was that heavenly face, in its deep repose, in
-its rapt repose, for there was a look of ecstasy in the
-countenance, in the elastic fullness of the muscles, in the
-faint color on the rounded cheeks, and the full and pouting
-lips. Was this death? Someone’s reverence for the
-beautiful had left the amber ringlets straying from the
-close border of the cap, and now so lifelike looked the
-lovely face, and these ringlets seemed to tremble as with
-a trembling breath. Was this death? Was the suddenness
-with which life had left the clay the cause of this
-lifelike look? There are moments when the most rational
-have wild hopes, moments when the most habitually
-self-collected doubt the evidence of their own senses;
-it was thus in amaze that they gazed upon her countenance,
-seemingly instinct with life; with the freshness,
-and fullness, and bloom of life; the color seemed brightening
-upon her cheeks and lips with life; the eyelashes
-and the amber ringlets seemed quivering with life, and
-even as they gazed with amaze the view was obscured by
-a mist on the glass, and the beautiful countenance veiled
-from their eyes. Elsie spoke with a voice full of tears.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Magnus! dear Magnus! wipe off the glass. Our
-breath, as we looked too close, has dulled it. I cannot
-see her angel face any longer for the mist upon the
-glass.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus drew out his silk pocket-handkerchief and
-wiped the glass carefully.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot see her yet, Magnus. I cannot see her yet.
-Oh, I want to see her again, that that divine countenance
-may be indelibly fixed in my memory—oh-h-h!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus wiped the glass again very carefully, looked,
-wiped it a third time most carefully, and, taking up the
-lantern, threw its whole light upon the plate, rubbing it
-assiduously as he did so. Why did Dr. Hardcastle start—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“As if the Archangel’s trump he heard?”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_159'>159</span>The new mist upon the glass was from within the coffin.
-To snatch a hunting-knife from his belt, to wrench open
-the coffin lid with one wrench of his strong hand and
-throw it off, to give her fresh air; to snatch her from the
-coffin to the warmth and shelter of his living arms and
-bosom; to turn to the thunder-stricken Elsie, and exclaim:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, don’t faint! Be strong, I command you! Your
-mother lives! she lives! She has been placed here in apparent
-death only; she must not recover to find herself
-in this dreadful place; to see these grave-clothes; to
-know what horrors have befallen her, lest reason be
-shocked forever from its seat. Give me your cloak, Elsie!
-Quick! quick! My God, don’t faint, I abjure you; I’ll
-never forgive you if you faint now. Your cloak, I say;
-your cloak, quick! to throw around this shroud, which
-she must not see.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie, with pallid lips and dilated eyes, too amazed and
-doubtful of her own senses and sanity to receive the
-joyful truth, with mechanical promptitude threw off her
-cloak and handed it to Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That’s my brave girl; that’s my pioneer wife!” he
-said, receiving the cloak, and folding it hastily yet carefully
-around the form he held in his arms, and pressing
-it closer to his bosom. “There, Elsie! Now, my little
-heroine, shade the lantern; quick, Elsie, lest she open
-her eyes and see the place we bear her from. Quick,
-Elsie! she is moving restlessly in my arms now, and her
-form is getting warm, thank Heaven! as warm almost as
-yours, my Elsie. There, now follow me closer behind,
-Elsie, my little soldier, and you may let the lantern shine
-as soon as we get out of the church.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And so, folding the form of Alice closer in his sustaining
-arms, closer to his sheltering bosom, and followed
-by Elsie, bearing the darkened lantern, he hurried
-up the stairs of the vault, down the aisle of the church,
-out of the great door, and across the graveyard toward
-the cottage of the sexton, never pausing in his speed until
-he reached the door of the cabin, which, without stopping
-to unlatch, he pushed open with a blow of his foot.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_160'>160</span>He bore her in, followed by Elsie with the lantern.
-The fire they had left there was still burning brightly,
-warming and lighting the whole room. In the upper
-end of the apartment stood a poor but neat and cleanly
-bed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Toward this he hastened with the form of Alice. He
-turned down the cover, and, hastily divesting her of the
-heavy cloak, laid her in the bed and covered her warmly
-up. He stooped and looked at her with intense interest,
-then took her arm and felt her pulse. It was moderately
-full and quick. He gazed upon her face. The color was
-still brightening in her cheeks and lips; her eyelids were
-quivering as if about to fly open; her full, fresh lips
-were slightly apart, as if about to speak; she was moving
-gently, breathing softly, murmuring melodiously. He
-bent his ear to catch that low, musical murmur; low and
-musical as the faintest breath of the Æolian harp. The
-words of that strange melody were: “Oh, angels, let me
-go! I—only I of all the earth love him well enough to
-be the instrument of Christ for his redemption—I—only
-I of all the earth have faith in its possibility.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wandering, flighty, delirious,” said Dr. Magnus,
-quietly dropping the wrist he had held, and rising and
-going toward Elsie. “Elsie, I dare not leave your
-mother for an instant now. Pick up your cloak, wrap
-yourself well in it, take the lantern and haste to the gate,
-where we left the carriage; take my medicine chest from
-the box, and bring it hither. Haste, Elsie, haste! Every
-second counts a year of life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mechanically as an automaton Elsie had obeyed his
-every direction. She looked unnatural with her pale face
-and great, dilated eyes. And she performed her part
-with the abstracted air and literal and mathematical precision
-of a sleep-walker. With this strange, absent air
-she went out, and after an absence of about fifteen minutes
-returned with the medicine chest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus heard her coming and left his patient for an
-instant to open the door and relieve her of her burden.
-But here another subject unexpectedly arrested his attention
-and claimed his care. As she gave the chest into
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_161'>161</span>his hands she stared straight at him—straight through
-him and past him with such unconscious eyes that he
-grew alarmed for her. Setting down the medicine chest
-upon a bench, he took her hands and drew her up to the
-fire, and, laying his hand upon her shoulder, and looking
-straight in her eyes, he said cheerfully:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wake up, Elsie! Rouse yourself, my child! This is
-very awful, but not unnatural.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh-h-h!” sighed Elsie, dropping into the armchair.
-“Oh-h-h! I know it is not unnatural, or uncommon,
-either, for loved ones to die, and hearts to be bereaved
-and broken; but, dear Magnus, I am afraid I am going
-crazy; I am afraid to tell you what I wildly imagined just
-now, what an extravagant fancy I took into my head.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What was it, then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, don’t be too much astounded at my folly, dear
-Magnus, for I have been so grievously tried.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What was it, then? Quick! I have no time for idle
-talk.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, I fancied—oh-h-h! such a mad, frenzied
-fancy—that my beloved mother was alive again. Am I
-not going mad? I thought my dear mother was alive
-again!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you know she is!” he exclaimed, dropping his
-hand upon her shoulder, with hearty, kindly roughness;
-“you know she is! Rouse yourself this moment, Elsie;
-I command you; collect your thoughts; remember where
-you are, and what has occurred. What sort of behavior
-is this? Have I been premature and too partial in ascribing
-to you strength of mind; courage, coolness,
-promptitude in emergency? Can I depend upon you in
-extremity? Come out of this amazement this instant,
-Elsie! Wake up, and make yourself useful; weakness
-is meanness. Be strong; strength is grandeur. Be
-heroic; strength is heroism. Make me proud to call you
-wife. Stand up, now; give me both your hands. Look
-me straight in the eyes, and let me see if I cannot infuse
-some sanity and strength into that amazed and fainting
-soul of yours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie placed the back of her hands against her brow,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_162'>162</span>while she slowly arose to her feet, and then, slowly
-throwing off her hands, as if to dispel an illusion, she
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There; the cloud has passed, Magnus; the weakness
-has left me; I will be worthy of you. What is it that I
-can do, Magnus?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There! I know you were not a poltroon; only a
-fatigued hero, Elsie. Come, one kiss, and then to work.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And he caught her to his bosom with an ardent clasp
-and fervent kiss, that inspired from his own rich and
-strong vitality all her life, and warmth, and energy, and
-activity that her weaker nature needed at this trying moment.
-Then he led her to the bedside of her mother,
-whispering as he did so:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now, my own heroic wife, no relapse into weakness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, no, indeed, my strength; I will be worthy of you.
-Oh, Magnus, I think you have life enough to raise me
-from the dead, if I were to die. Oh, Magnus, I begin to
-realize now that she lives, and that I am blessed; blessed
-to the fullness of content,” said Elsie, sinking upon her
-knees and raising her clasped hands and streaming eyes
-to heaven.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Calmly, calmly, my Elsie,” said Magnus, laying his
-hand gently on her head. “There, rise now, and sit
-beside your mother, and watch her, and listen for her
-words, that we may know the nature of her illusion, and
-not rudely shock it. She seems in a happy trance now—and
-her pulse is good, yet her state is so critical that her
-waking must be watched for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush-h-h! her lips move! she speaks!” said Elsie,
-bending over her. “Oh, mother! mother! darling
-mother! warm and living, restored to me! What shall I
-render Heaven in exchange for thee? Hush-h-h! she is
-saying something. Oh, Magnus, that look of quiet
-ecstasy has left her countenance, and the troubled, earthly
-look she used to wear has come again! What is the
-reason of it? oh, what is the reason of it? Oh, see how
-her brow contracts! how her lips quiver! Oh, see her
-hands fly together and clasp like vises! Oh, Magnus!
-Magnus do something! She is going into a spasm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_163'>163</span>“No, no, child; she is not. Natural life is coming
-again. Her mind is taking up the train of thoughts at
-the place where it was lost. Nothing can be done as yet,
-but to listen—yes, listen—she speaks again—hear!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Forgive Elsie—only forgive Elsie, and I will forget
-that I have been betrayed, and scorned, and trampled
-under foot. At least I will never, never speak of it,” murmured
-Alice, in a heart-broken tone; and then her hands
-flew up, her eyes flew open, and she looked around in the
-full possession of all her faculties, which was evident
-from the surprise with which she glanced upon the
-strange scene.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus and Elsie had drawn back, not to shock her
-with their sudden appearance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, catalepsy, epilepsy, apparent death—whatever the
-medical faculty in their wisdom might have pronounced
-the fit to be that had held her life spellbound for two
-days—was over, quite over, and she raised up in the full
-possession of all her senses.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where in the universe am I?” she asked, rising upon
-her elbow and looking around. “Has he turned me out
-of doors, really, and has one of the negroes taken me into
-a quarter during a fainting fit? Let me recollect. What
-happened after he threw me down? I remember nothing
-after that. ‘Now, die of rage’ he said, and spurned me
-from him. Yes, that is the last link in memory’s chain.
-I must have fainted after that; he must have thrust me
-out, and one of the poor negro women must have picked
-me up and brought me to her quarters, and here I have
-recovered. Oh, I wonder how long I have lain in this
-swoon?—not long. It was near daylight when I lost
-recollection. It is not quite daylight yet. Oh, I have
-not lain here long, perhaps not ten minutes. I wish
-someone would come. I want to warn them not to speak
-of this. It must not be talked of on the plantation. It
-must not get out among the neighbors. And never,
-never must Elsie hear of it—guess at it! God! God!
-save Elsie from this knowledge! Let her still respect her
-father. Let her still be happy in thinking of me in my
-home—‘home’—my home. Alas! it is not my home any
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_164'>164</span>longer! I do not own an interest there—not even a
-wife’s interest in the homestead which I should have had,
-even had the estate come by General Garnet, for I have
-signed even that away—‘all right, title, and interest.’
-Yet it is my home, if not my homestead, for it is my husband’s
-place of permanent residence, and therefore my
-home. And I must go back to it. I must beg him to let
-me in. I must, no matter how I may be received. I
-must, even if his other daughter is there to insult me. I
-must, to spare Elsie the knowledge of this. Elsie must
-never know—must never suspect this.” And Alice arose,
-and, sitting up straight in bed, prepared to throw the
-cover off and arise, when Elsie sprang forward and threw
-herself upon the bed, exclaiming, in heart-broken
-tones:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie does know it, darling mother. Elsie knows it
-all. God nor angels would suffer her to be kept in ignorance
-of it—of all the sufferings—of all the sacrifice
-that has made it her duty never to leave you nor forsake
-you again. And may Heaven forsake me, mother, the
-hour that ever I leave you again!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Elsie! good, but rash child, have you ventured
-to come back here? Oh, Elsie!” And Alice threw her
-arms around the neck of her daughter, and clasped her
-to her bosom, and both wept copiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last—“Tell me what has happened, dearest child. I
-have no recollection of anything since my swoon,” said
-Alice, in a faint voice, slipping from the embrace of
-Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mother, darling mother, won’t you please to rest
-now, without asking any questions? You must be so
-weak,” replied Elsie, laying her gently down, and arranging
-the cover over her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I feel weak, yet well, light, renewed; but I won’t ask
-questions that will pain you to answer, dear child. I am
-almost certain of what has occurred. I swooned, and
-was picked up by one of the women and brought to this
-quarter, and she sent for you. Dear Elsie, I am afraid
-she alarmed you. Did Magnus come, too?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dearest Mrs. Garnet, I am here,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_165'>165</span>advancing to the bedside with a cordial in his
-hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie raised her mother once more, and taking the restorative
-draught, placed it to her lips. Alice drank it,
-and then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, Elsie, I am afraid they have told you a
-dreadful tale of what occurred to me after you left the
-house. Dearest, you must not believe all that you may
-have heard, and you must excuse the rest. You know
-negroes, especially negro women, will exaggerate. They
-do not intentionally transcend the truth, but their quick
-fancies and warm sympathies lead them into extravagance.
-General Garnet, in the temporary insanity of
-rage, has done something violent, no doubt; but not so
-violent as has appeared to you, and no doubt he regrets
-his anger now. Elsie, do not think too hardly of your
-father. Give him time. All will come right at last. In
-the meanwhile, darling, I must return to the house. I
-must not seem inclined to make the most of his anger
-by absenting myself. Dearest Elsie, this morning we
-must part again. We will take breakfast together in
-this humble quarter, and then we must part, dear child,
-until better times. You must go with your husband,
-Elsie, and I must return to mine,” said Alice, lifting up
-her arms and embracing her child.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie looked at Magnus in despair. He stooped, and
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Mrs. Garnet, you must sleep now. I am your
-physician as well as your son. You must be silent, close
-your eyes, and lie still.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot, Magnus. I do not feel the least inclined to
-sleep. I feel as though I had had a very long sleep. I
-feel quite fresh and renewed, though a little weak, as
-from want of nourishment. Besides, day is breaking. It
-is time to rise. This is the day you were to depart for
-the backwoods, and you intended to have made an early
-start. I cannot hinder you. I must rise. We must have
-one more social meal together, and then depart to our
-several duties.” Alice spoke in a low, calm tone, but
-covered her face to conceal the quivering features.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_166'>166</span>Magnus seized the chance to draw Elsie aside, to
-whisper hurriedly in her ear:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, she must know all about it. She is strong
-enough to bear the knowledge, and so it is perfectly safe
-to break it to her gently. In fact, to tell her the truth
-is the only safe plan. Her providential recovery from
-apparent death must not be made known to anyone for
-the present, or until General Garnet’s secret disposition
-is ascertained and can be safely trusted. She has nothing
-to hope from him; she shall have nothing to fear.
-She must be perfectly secure from his persecutions and
-annoyances, until he is in a better frame of mind. This
-I think the safety of her life and of her reason demands.
-I consider that she is providentially dead to General
-Garnet and living to us. She must accompany us to the
-West. We must be en route within an hour, lest the
-old sexton returns and discovers all. Listen, I will go
-back to the church and restore everything there to such
-complete order that no suspicion shall be excited. And
-while I am gone, do you assist her to arise, if she wishes
-it. When she gets up and looks about her, she will see
-where she is, and that will greatly prepare her for my
-explanation. If she asks you any questions refer her to
-me alone for explanation. There, love, is the bundle of
-clothing you put up in your haste when about to leave
-Deep Dell. I brought it from the carriage just now, while
-you were talking with your mother. Get your double
-wrapper out, and slip it on her before the window-shutter
-is opened. I would not have her see that garb suddenly.”
-And having given these hasty directions Magnus hurried
-out to the chapel, and having restored everything
-there to primal order, returned to the cottage. He found
-Alice sitting up by the fire with her hands clasped, and
-her head bowed with a look of deep thoughtfulness.
-Elsie had hung the tea-kettle on to make coffee, and had
-set the table, and was now handing out the contents of
-the old man’s cupboard.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Dr. Hardcastle entered, Alice, without raising
-her head, held out her hand to him, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, come here. Where am I?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_167'>167</span>And Dr. Hardcastle went and drew a chair to her
-side, and took her hand, and slowly, and gently, and
-cautiously made known to her the events of the last two
-days. Alice made no comment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The awful solemnity of the facts disclosed—the apparent
-death, the burial, veiled, softened as they were in
-the telling—overwhelmed her soul. She dropped her
-head upon her open hands, and neither moved nor spoke
-for a long time, or until Elsie came to her side, passed one
-arm earnestly over her shoulder, placed a cup of coffee
-at her lips with the other hand, bending her bright, loving
-face smilingly upon her the while. Then Alice lifted
-up her head, took the cup, and kissed the gentle hand
-that gave it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>While Alice drank the coffee Dr. Hardcastle went out
-and attended to his mules. When he returned they
-all gathered around the breakfast table. It was during
-that meal that he proposed to Alice the plan of accompanying
-them, urging upon her the strong necessity of
-her doing so.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice combated all his arguments as well as her instincts
-taught her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle avowed his intention of accompanying
-her back to Mount Calm, and, remaining in the neighborhood,
-in case of her perseverance in her present intention
-of returning. Alice sought to dissuade him from
-that plan.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Finally, after much talk, Alice agreed to accompany
-them on the first stage of their journey as far as Deep
-Dell, and remain there incognito, while he should return
-to Mount Calm, and ascertain the disposition of General
-Garnet, and, if possible and prudent, break gradually
-to him the fact of his wife’s unexpected restoration to
-life.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Having agreed upon this plan Dr. Hardcastle made
-rapid preparations for the recommencement of their
-journey. They—he and Elsie—restored everything
-about the cottage to complete order; put out the fire,
-fastened up the cupboard, and the windows, and then the
-doors, and, tying a little purse of money to the door-key,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_168'>168</span>by way of compensation for all they had used, hid it
-“under the stone by the doorstep,” as requested, entered
-the carriage, and commenced their journey.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXIX.<br> <span class='large'>THE CHILDREN OF THE ISLE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Their earliest steps have wandered from the green and fertile land,</div>
- <div class='line'>Down where the clear blue ocean rolled, to pace the rugged strand,</div>
- <div class='line'>They proudly flung the proffered bribe and gilded toy away,</div>
- <div class='line'>To gather up the salt sea-weed, or dabble in the spray;</div>
- <div class='line'>They shouted to the distant crew, or launched their mimic bark.</div>
- <div class='line'>They met the morning freshness there, and lingered till the dark;</div>
- <div class='line'>And still their souls are as they were, and as they e’er will be,</div>
- <div class='line'>Loving and wild as what they love, the curbless, mighty sea.</div>
- <div class='line in48'><i>—Eliza Cook.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The little sea-girt homeland of Hutton’s Isle had
-never recovered from the fatal devastation of the great
-tempest and flood. The fences had never been reconstructed
-strong and complete as before. The house had
-never been properly repaired. All the little mending
-and rebuilding that had been done had been the joint
-work of Miss Joe and her factotum, Pontius Pilate. And
-these slight repairs were of such a temporary character
-as to require renewal every few months. And every year
-the house sank and fell, and grew more ruinous and dilapidated.
-And every year the isle became more desolate
-and desert. Every season the soil was less productive
-and the crop poorer. The oyster banks had
-failed entirely. The fisheries were becoming precarious.
-Nothing remained in primeval abundance except in the
-flocks of water-fowl that still flew in vast clouds over the
-isle, darkening the very air at certain times, like night
-or storm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>So much for the house and isle. Now for the inmates
-and inhabitants.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_169'>169</span>From having been always poor they were now upon
-the verge of penury—destitution. Miss Josephine Cotter,
-the good fairy of this sea-girt isle, was, to use her
-own expression, growing older and older every day of
-her life. She did not know, she said, which was most
-likely to topple down first, she or her old house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The death of Pontius Pilate in the beginning of the
-winter, and a severe attack of rheumatism in her limbs,
-had seemed to be the climax of the poor old lady’s misfortunes.
-It was immediately after the burial of Pontius
-Pilate that Miss Joe was sitting down in the depth of
-despair, with her apron thrown over her head, and her
-head bowed upon her knees, Hugh and Garnet suddenly
-stood before her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t cry any more, granny. I and Nettie can work
-the farm,” said Hugh, in a cheerful, confident tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You and Nettie work the farm!” replied Miss Joe,
-looking up with pity, anger, and contempt in the expression
-of her countenance and in the tone of her voice.
-To her, a woman past sixty, the boy of twelve and the
-girl of nine seemed yet infants. “You and Nettie work
-the farm!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, granny, and haul the wood, and fish, and
-shoot——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pah, pah! Hush talking, you make my head ache.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Granny, I have sometimes taken the plow from Pont
-and plowed a row for fun. I know a little practice would
-make me perfect at that.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Granny, Hugh can hoe up the hills, and I can drop
-corn. Hugh can cut wood, and I can fetch and carry it.
-And now, as there is no fish near the isle, Hugh can go
-out in the boat, and I can go with him to bait his hooks
-and look after the basket.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And do you guess all the hard and manifold work
-they did?</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was the dead of winter—the earth was frozen hard,
-and two feet deep with snow, crusted with ice. All the
-wood that was burned on the isle had to be cut and
-hauled from the forest behind Huttontown, and brought
-over to the isle in a boat. And the boy, with no implements
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_170'>170</span>but a hatchet, a small wheelbarrow, and a little
-rowboat, performed all that labor alone, until one day,
-when he had made very slow progress, and effected very
-little, he returned home, near frozen, from having been
-so long at work in the snow and among the ice-clad trees.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Nettie threw herself into a violent paroxysm of
-excitement, and vowed that she would go with him the
-next day to help him gather wood in the forest. And
-she went. And while Hugh cut the brush and the
-lighter branches of the dead trees Nettie would break
-them up and pile them in the wheelbarrow, enlivening
-the earnest, thoughtful boy all the time with her wild
-and joyous talk.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was late in the afternoon of a stormy day near the
-end of December, that the two children, Hugh Hutton
-and Garnet Seabright, might have been seen wandering
-on the cold, bare, snow-clad northwest beach of Hutton’s
-Isle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh was at this time a fine, handsome, athletic boy
-of twelve and a half years of age; tall, broad-shouldered,
-deep-chested, strong limbed, with the high Roman features,
-dark complexion, and commanding countenance
-of all his race; a noble boy, undisguised even by the old,
-worn, faded, and patched suit of homespun cloth in
-which he was clad. Bitterly cold as it was, his head and
-feet were bare—bare, because though Miss Joe might
-shear the sheep, and card and spin the wool, and knit
-him socks enough, yet shoes and hats cost a great deal
-more money than Miss Joe or Hugh could often get
-together, and so shoes and hats were luxuries and elegancies,
-only to be indulged in on Sundays and high
-holidays.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet Seabright was now about ten years of age;
-a beautiful, brilliant, sun-burned, or rather sun-gilded
-brunette, whom the sea air and sun rays had made as
-hard, bright, dark, and resplendent as the burning,
-crimson, sea-coast gem whose name she bore. Child of
-Apollo and Amphytrite she was. Her eyes were large,
-dark, and burning bright; her rich and glossy hair
-seemed jet black in the shade, but emitted gleams of red
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_171'>171</span>light wherever the sun shone upon it; her complexion
-was rich and glowing; she wore a dress of scarlet country
-cloth, with coarse shoes and stockings, and a coarse
-straw hat—and, altogether, her bright presence warmed
-and illumined the cold, bleak desolation of the sea-coast,
-like some cheerful fire. She followed close behind Hugh,
-stopping whenever he stopped, and digging with a little
-stick wherever the little round holes in the sand indicated
-the presence of the maninosies, left by the subsiding
-wind and ebbing tide upon the beach. Very necessary
-was it that they should fill their basket, for very little
-else had they at home for supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Their task was finished just as the clear, red winter’s
-sun sank to a level with the horizon, lighting up all the
-bay like a sea of fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The boy and girl started for home with their baskets
-well laden with maninosies, and were gayly laughing
-around the fire, when Miss Joe held up her hand, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush, I thought I heard a man’s step.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A man’s step!” echoed Hugh, with a look of surprise.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A man’s step!” re-echoed Nettie, her eyes wide open
-with astonishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes! A man’s heavy step crunching through the
-snow. There, listen! there it is again. It seems to be
-coming up the hill toward the house—listen!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They all listened.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Crunch, crunch, crunch came the heavy, regular,
-monotonous tramp.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And it is impossible to convey the effect of that regular,
-heavy sound breaking upon the profound stillness
-and solitude of night on that sea-girt isle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the name of Heaven, who can it be?” exclaimed
-Miss Joe, as nearly frightened as ever she was in her
-life.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Crunch, crunch, crunch came the step, nearing the
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am going to see,” exclaimed Hugh, seizing up a
-pine knot, lighting it at the fire, and making for the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe could scarcely repress a scream.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_172'>172</span>Nettie stood like a young panther at bay; clinging to
-Miss Joe in terror, yet looking toward the door with her
-eyes ablaze with defiance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Just as a loud rap started them afresh Hugh swung
-the door open, and a tall, majestic-looking man, wrapped
-in a large cloak, strode into the room.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXX.<br> <span class='large'>THE NIGHT VISIT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>And scenes long past of joy and pain,</div>
- <div class='line'>Come weldering through her childish brain.</div>
- <div class='line in38'><i>—Scott.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>“That’s godfather! As sure as a gun that’s godfather!”
-exclaimed Nettie; making one bound from the
-place where she stood to a chair, and springing thence
-to the bosom of the newcomer, where she clung desperately,
-pressing her arms around his neck; holding his
-head between her hands, while she kissed his eyes and
-cheeks and lips; then rubbing and rooting her head into
-his bosom, and screaming with delight.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And is it possible you recollect me, little Nettie?”
-asked General Garnet (for it was he), in a tone of voice
-almost sad.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Recollect you, godfather; sure I do! Though you
-have been away so long; I haven’t seen you since I was
-a wood-sprite, and that was a long time ago, and now
-I am a water-nymph,” exclaimed Nettie, rubbing her
-head into him, and clinging around him, laughing with
-joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wild as ever, Nettie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wild, yes! You know when I was a wood-sprite I
-could climb trees like a squirrel; well, now, I am a sea-nymph—I
-can swim like a duck and dive like a fish—ask
-granny if I can’t! cried Nettie, reiterating all her exclamations
-of affection and delight, and repeating all her
-impetuous caresses.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_173'>173</span>“It seems to me that you love me a little, Nettie?”
-said he, in the same sad tone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Love you a little, godfather! Oh! just open your
-cloak and take me inside next to you. Oh! just unbutton
-your coat, and button me up inside of that, too. I
-love you well enough to let you swallow me, godfather,”
-exclaimed the imp, nestling close to him with her arms
-about his neck, her head tucked into his bosom, and
-wriggling with delight.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, you do love me—disinterestedly—poor, forsaken
-child! And you are the only thing on earth that
-does love me,” said he, folding both arms closely about
-her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All this took place in a very few minutes, while Miss
-Joe was rising in her corner, setting aside her wheel,
-smoothing down her apron, and coming forward to meet
-her visitor, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie, jump down this moment, and don’t trouble
-the ‘gentleman.’” But Nettie clung tighter, and General
-Garnet held her closer. “General Garnet, sir, it is
-an unexpected honor to see you here. Pray, come to the
-fire and sit down. Hugh, shut that door, and set a
-chair for the general, and throw more brush on the fire.
-General, do sit down, and don’t let that wild child bother
-you so. Come down, Nettie, I say.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I sha’n’t, granny!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never mind, Miss Joe, I like to have her here,” said
-General Garnet, throwing off his cloak, seating himself
-in a large armchair at the fire, and seating Nettie on his
-knee. “Well, my old friend, how does fate use you
-nowadays?” he finally asked of the old lady.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, sir, very well, indeed; fust-rate, I thank you,”
-answered proud Miss Joe.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am very glad to hear it,” commented her visitor,
-with one arm still clasping Nettie, while he glanced sarcastically
-around the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe did not perceive the irony, but she saw his
-suit of deep mourning, and suddenly recollected that she
-might be expected to say something appropriate to the
-occasion. So, composing her countenance to funereal
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_174'>174</span>solemnity, she looked at General Garnet, and said, very
-seriously, the following commonplace:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We have heard of your heavy bereavement in the
-sudden death of your wife, General Garnet, and we are
-very much grieved. But you know, sir, death is the common
-lot of all. It is the only condition we can—can have
-life on. It’s just as nat’ral as being born. And so, sir,
-I hope you’ll be able to bear up under your fate like a
-philosopher. Besides which, it is the will of God. And
-being just so, I trust you will have grace to resign yourself
-to your trials like a Christian.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I trust so, I trust so,” replied General Garnet,
-speaking quickly; then he added: “It augments my sorrow
-very much, however, to remember that it was the
-misconduct of the daughter that precipitated the fate of
-the mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good Heaven! you don’t say so, sir!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes! you may as well know the truth, my good old
-friend. Elsie threw herself entirely away; eloped and
-went off to the West with that worthless beggar, Hardcastle,”
-said he, looking around to see the effect of his
-words.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh’s head sprang up with an expression of indignant
-astonishment, denial, and defiance on his fine countenance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie gazed at him—appalled.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe stared, with mouth and eyes all open with
-wonder, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good gracious, sir, you don’t tell me so. I heard
-something—but I didn’t—I never—well, dear me—Lord
-a-mercy. Was it really that away, arter all?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes: and now my good friend, my excellent friend,
-let us change the subject; it is too painful; much too
-painful; even you can judge a father’s and a husband’s
-feelings must be upon such an occasion. Let us leave
-the agonizing topic, and never revert to it again. Let us
-turn to a more agreeable subject. My dear little goddaughter,
-here,” said he, bending over the child on his
-knee with his soft, bright smile—a smile as charming
-as full, beautifully curved lips, pearly teeth, and a dark
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_175'>175</span>mustache, and the spirit of Belial could make it; “my
-dear little godchild here—she is a very fine little girl,
-and will one day, no doubt, make a very accomplished
-woman. You have taken good care of her; it is easy to
-see that. What rosy cheeks she has!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have taken as good care of her as I could, sir—which
-being an old woman—too old to follow after children—wan’t
-much.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am under great obligations to you, Miss Joe, and
-must find some way in which to repay you for the years
-of trouble and expense you have been put to upon account
-of my little ward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not at all, sir; you owe me nothing,” said the proud
-old lady. “I have always been a-t’iling, striving, saving
-soul; but I never saved anything, as I thought anyone
-near me, ’specially a little child, was a sufferin’ for. No,
-General Garnet, ef I am to be paid at this hour of the
-day I had rather the Lord pay me. I don’t want you
-to take it out’n his hands.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, turning to little Nettie, again took her
-hand, looked at the beautifully-molded but sun-browned
-thing, and said, softly and smilingly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have a very pretty-shaped hand, my dear little
-girl. You ought to take care of it. You ought to wear
-gloves.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Haint got any, godfather.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But you should get them or have them got for you.
-Why don’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Couldn’t dig for maninosies or break brush with
-gloves on, godfather.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, you don’t do these shocking things?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, indeedy! and I’m going coon hunting with
-Hugh next moonshiny night that comes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Next moonlight night that comes you will be in a
-very different looking place from this,” said he, pushing
-the lurid black ringlets back gently behind her ears, and
-noticing for the first time that sure index of “gentle
-blood” in human kind or horses—the small and elegantly
-formed ear.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where shall I be, godfather?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_176'>176</span>“Never mind where! They have not bored your ears,
-Nettie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; I haven’t had my ears bored, but I saw a picture
-of an Indian with his nose bored.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pooh—yet, after all, one is about as barbarous as the
-other, little Nettie. Nettie, my little girl, would you like
-to go home and live with me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go home and live ’long o’ you! Um-m-m-me—no!
-I had rather you’d come and live ’long o’ me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Cause I don’t want to leave granny; she wouldn’t
-have anybody to hug her up and keep her back warm at
-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But if we were to take granny with us, too?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Um-m—me. Could you take Hugh along, too?”
-asked the child, with the astute air of one making a
-shrewd bargain.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No,” very decidedly answered General Garnet; adding,
-in a lower tone, “No more childish friendships
-ripening into mature love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Very well, then, godfather, if you love me, you’ll
-have to come and live ’long of us; for I can’t go home
-’long o’ you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why not, pray?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Cause, godfather, how could Hugh live here by himself?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, little ‘Martha,’ anxious and troubled about
-many things, Hugh need not live here by himself. Suppose
-I was to get a situation for Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A what?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Suppose I were to put Hugh in the way of getting an
-honest living?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“La, godfather, no white men about here except niggers
-ever get an honest living, and I can’t let you black
-Hugh’s face and crisp his hair—that’s black enough already—and
-make a nigger of him!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You silly child, you will let me make a lawyer, or a
-doctor, or a parson of him, won’t you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Before Nettie could answer Hugh Hutton came up,
-cap in hand, and stood facing General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_177'>177</span>“Well, my boy?” said the latter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“General Garnet, if you have any notion of taking
-Nettie away from here, just look out for her and the old
-lady, who has had the care of her so long, and never mind
-me. I can take care of myself. Nettie, darlin’, never
-stop for me; I know what to do with myself. And now,
-general, as long as I am talking to you, I must tell you
-I don’t believe one word about Dr. Hardcastle’s being
-a worthless man, because I know he is a good and great
-man; nor do I believe one word of Miss Elsie’s breaking
-her mother’s heart, because—because I know she is as
-good as she is beautiful. You needn’t be angry. I
-should have hated myself if I hadn’t spoke out!” exclaimed
-the boy, his frank, brave spirit flashing boldly
-from his eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the words had scarcely left the lips of Hugh before
-Nettie had jumped to her feet, and administered a
-sound box on the ear to him, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now! take that! Now, you make godfather out to
-be a story-teller again!” And having given her sharp
-little lesson, Nettie sprung back to her seat, and threw
-her arms again around his neck. General Garnet, without
-seeming to have seen her action, regarded the boy
-with a sort of gentle, dignified surprise and leisurely
-scorn, merely saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, you impertinent young dog!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie sprang down a second time. General Garnet
-gently attempted to restrain her, but she dashed his
-hands away, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Let me alone, godfather. You are wicked and ugly,
-and I hate you. He’s not an impudent young dog at all!
-he is my dear, gentle brother Hugh,” she said, throwing
-herself about the neck of the boy, who folded his arms
-around her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You must please to excuse Nettie, sir; indeed she is
-the wildest, queerest child that ever was born. But then,
-you know, she was wild and queer before ever I took her
-in hand,” said Miss Joe, who was all this time busy with
-a saucepan over the fire; and a pitcher, a bowl, and some
-eggs, sugar, and spices on a chair by her side.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_178'>178</span>“Nettie seems to have very little self-control or any
-other sort of control,” dryly observed the general.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now if you aint mad long o’ granny. Just as if it
-was her fault. And she making you mulled cider, too,
-to keep the cold out of your stomach. And taking the
-top-knot hen’s eggs, too, that she was saving to set, because
-they’re a first-rate breed of hens, that lay eggs all
-the winter, and she wants more of them. And she had
-but six eggs, and now she’s taken three to make you
-mulled cider to keep the cold from striking to your stomach;
-and you to get mad long o’ her, and cut her up
-short for nothing. Never mind him, granny. I’ll speak
-right up for you, and take your part,” said Nettie, with
-her arms still clasped around Hugh’s neck, looking at her
-guardian, who was regarding her with a smile of mingled
-amusement and condescending toleration.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t you mind her, sir. Eggs aint no scarcity in
-this house; no, nor anything else you could want. Would
-you like the leg of a cold turkey, broiled, with a little
-currant jelly, sir? Or a few queen-cakes, with a glass of
-good old sherry?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, granny, I thought you hadn’t——” began
-Nettie, but Hugh put his hand over her lip and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t talk too much, Nettie. Go make friends with
-your guardian.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie turned, saw once more the tolerant, indulgent
-smile that was beaming upon her, and, with her usual
-way of assimilating only the good and the beauty of a
-mixed thing, sprang at once to his arms, to his neck,
-and caressing him vehemently, asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are not mad with me, are you, godfather? I
-love you dearly! dearly! ’Deed I do, godfather!” And
-turning around his bushy face between her little hands,
-she kissed him many times, repeating her question:
-“You are not mad ’long o’ me, are you, godfather?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, darling little Nettie, I am not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I have often thought that the spell of power that child
-held over that man’s hard, stern, reserved nature was
-this: The blending of passionate fondness with perfect
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_179'>179</span>freedom, frankness, and fearlessness in her feelings and
-her manners toward him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet then turned, and, addressing himself
-seriously to the old lady, informed her that he thought
-the time had come for him to discharge the great obligation
-under which he lay to his worthy deceased friend,
-the late gallant Corporal Seabright, and redeem the
-promise made to his widow when dying by taking care
-of the rearing, education, and future fortunes of their
-orphan girl. That it was now expedient that his dear
-little goddaughter and ward should be brought into
-proper restraint and training; that, in order that this
-should be fittingly accomplished, it was necessary that his
-sweet little ward should become an inmate of his house,
-and live under his immediate protection and supervision;
-that, being most unhappily a widower, and having no
-lady at the head of his establishment to look after his
-household, and do the honors, he should be under the
-necessity of engaging the services of some highly respectable
-matron as housekeeper; that he thought no
-more competent person for the duties of the position
-could be found in the world than Miss Josephine Cotter,
-and, under all the circumstances, no one could be found
-to fill the situation with such perfect propriety; that if
-she chose to exchange her lodge on the isle for the housekeeper’s
-rooms at Mount Calm, she might name her own
-salary, and he would come up to it or exceed it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe’s eyes twinkled under her iron-bound spectacles,
-but she hesitated to answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet gave her full time to digest his proposition,
-while he toyed with the child upon his knee—telling
-her of her new home and new prospects, as far as he
-thought she could comprehend them; promising her new
-dresses, books, playthings, a pony, etc. Finally, he raised
-his head and turned to Miss Joe, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, madam, have you reflected upon my proposition,
-and what do you think of it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe hemmed, cleared her throat, blew her nose,
-wiped the tears from her eyes, rubbed her specs and replaced
-them, and then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_180'>180</span>She didn’t know. She was used to staying where she
-was. She had lived there twenty odd years, and did not
-feel like leaving it at her time of life. Besides, she must
-see what could be done for Hugh. She must take time to
-consider. She couldn’t give an answer no way till next
-day.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet acceded to the short delay, and, smiling
-to himself, arose to take leave; tasted and praised Miss
-Joe’s mulled cider; kissed and fondly embraced little
-Nettie; nodded to Hugh Hutton; shook hands with Miss
-Joe, and withdrew.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXI.<br> <span class='large'>NETTIE IN THE MANSION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>She shall dwell in lordly houses, with gardens all about,</div>
- <div class='line'>And servants to attend her when she goes in and out;</div>
- <div class='line'>She’ll have music for the hearing, and pictures for the eye,</div>
- <div class='line'>And exquisite and costly things each sense to gratify.</div>
- <div class='line in48'><i>—Howitt.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Very early on the morning of the 2d of January,
-while yet the level rays of the newly-risen sun were projecting
-golden lines of light aslant the snow-covered
-earth, the traveling carriage of General Garnet passed
-through Huttontown on its way to the beach to take in
-Miss Joe and little Nettie, who were that day to leave
-their island home.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the same hour Miss Joe was bustling over her last
-preparations at the isle. The simple furniture was to be
-safely stowed away and left in the house; the most valuable
-portion of their personal effects was to be transported
-to Mount Calm at more leisure; her own and
-Nettie’s clothing was packed into a chest ready to be
-taken away.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh’s bundle was made up and slung at the end of a
-stick across his shoulder. The boy certainly looked the
-most hopeful and happy of the three.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Hugh, you do just ’mind me of Jack in the fairy
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_181'>181</span>tale, going to seek his fortune,” said Nettie, gazing at
-him with admiration.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie herself was wild with joy and expectation.
-Scarcely had she slept or ate since the noted visit of her
-godfather. How could she? All the fairy tales she had
-ever read in her life were about to be realized in her own
-person; she was Cinderella, going in splendid style to
-the royal palace, to be married to the king’s son; she
-was Beauty, who had just discovered the Beast to be a
-handsome, powerful prince, who was going to make a
-princess of her; or, if not literally so, her dreams were
-equally fanciful and extravagant. But how different was
-the reality, poor Nettie! more fairy-favored as wood-sprite
-in the forest wild, or water-nymph in her sea-girt
-isle than ever as heiress of the millionaire in the cold
-magnificence of Mount Calm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The last thing Miss Joe did was to put out the fire and
-dress Nettie in a little cloak of scarlet country cloth,
-made with a hood to go over her head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At which Nettie, with many extravagant capers, declared
-herself to be Little Red Riding Hood in person.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When all was done and the house locked up, the three
-took their way down the solitary footpath through the
-snow to the water’s edge.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh had already cleaned out the boat, and they all
-got into it. Hugh took the oar. The water was very
-smooth, the current in their favor, and in twenty minutes
-the boy landed his charge safely upon the beach.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The carriage of General Garnet was in waiting.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe and Nettie were handed in by Hugh, and then
-the boy put in his hand to bid them a sorrowful
-good-by.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe burst into tears, sobbed aloud, told Hugh if
-he should not find his place as shop-boy at Mr. Fig’s
-grocery pleasant to let her know and she would go right
-back to Hutton’s Isle, and they two would work together
-and see better times when the warm weather
-should come.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie, for her part, much as she loved Hugh, could
-not cry. She had read too many fairy tales not to know
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_182'>182</span>how her own ought to end; and so Nettie felt perfectly
-assured that by some dénouement at Mount Calm every
-wish of her heart must be accomplished, most especially
-the dearest wish of all, that of having her playmate always
-with her. So they took leave. Hugh struck into a
-by-path, and walked off briskly toward the store of Mr.
-Fig. And the carriage rolled on up through the main
-street of the village and out over the country road that
-led over the snow-covered hills and through the hollow
-to Mount Calm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arrived at Mount Calm they were met by General
-Garnet, who, receiving little Nettie in his arms, pressed
-her fondly and carried her into the house, followed by
-Miss Joe. Here, in the hall, he delivered the little girl
-to the charge of a neatly-dressed “ladylike” mulatto girl
-with a gray Madras turban on her head and a pair of
-heavy gold hoops in her ears, telling her to take Miss
-Seabright to the chamber lately occupied by Miss Garnet,
-and to prepare her for the breakfast table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what’s your name?” asked Nettie, looking up
-with curiosity at the gay mulatto.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie, my darling, she is Hero, your maid,” said
-General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hero took the hand of the child and was about to
-lead her up the great staircase, when Nettie suddenly
-broke from her, and, exclaiming, interrogatively: “This
-way?” sprang up the stairs like a squirrel.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hero tripped after her, overtook her on the landing,
-and gently took her hand, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, young ladies oughtn’t to romp
-through a quiet house, and race upstairs in that manner.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know young ladies oughtn’t to, but I am a little
-gal.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are a little lady, and should act like one. But
-here is your chamber, Miss Seabright,” said Hero, opening
-the door of Elsie’s beautiful room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, how—how grand!” exclaimed Nettie, breaking
-from her maid, springing into the midst of the apartment,
-and standing gazing, speechless with admiration upon
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_183'>183</span>the splendor—for such they were to her—of the furniture.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The French paper on the walls, with its pretty pattern
-of wild rose vines climbing up gilded pillars and forming
-into arches: the carpet on the floor, chosen to match,
-with wild rose vines running over a white ground; the
-pink damask and white muslin curtains of the windows,
-that suffused the whole chamber with a soft, roseate
-light; the rosewood dressing bureau standing between
-these two windows, with its tall mirror and marble top,
-and elegant ornaments of porcelain, pearl and gold; the
-rosewood bedstead, standing in the opposite recess, with
-its white-embossed counterpane, and rich valance, all
-softly shaded by hanging curtains of pink damask, like
-those of the windows; the wardrobe, with its mirror
-doors, occupying the side to the left of the chimney; the
-marble-top table, with its elegant trifles—a work-box of
-mother-of-pearl and gold, a standish of ebony, inlaid with
-ivory, a portfolio, books, etc.; the work-stand of satinwood;
-the luxurious sofa, chair, and ottoman, covered
-with rose-colored cut velvet to suit the draperies; the polished
-steel grate; with its silver mounting, and marble
-mantelpiece, with its ormolu clock, vases, statuettes, medallions,
-etc.; lastly, the paintings, few, but admirable,
-though attractive to Nettie chiefly upon account of the
-massive and richly-gilded frames.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Introducing Nettie into that elegant, luxurious chamber
-was like letting a monkey loose in a fancy-shop.
-For a moment she stood shading her eyes with her hand,
-as she would have done in looking upon a dazzling
-winter landscape, gazing transfixed with surprise; and
-then she ran hither and thither, seized this and that, upset
-an inkstand, seized a porcelain bottle by its stopper,
-letting the other part fall and break; knocked down an
-elegant dressing-case, splitting off its pearl corners, and
-spilling all its contents; jumping up into one of the
-beautiful chairs and standing on it; snatched a statuette
-of Thalia from the mantelpiece, and, calling it a doll-baby,
-declared she would make it a red petticoat and give
-it the name of Dolly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_184'>184</span>All this was the work of a minute, for then Hero went
-and took her hand again, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, Miss Seabright, all these pretty things are
-yours, but you must learn to handle them carefully, so
-as not to break and destroy them. Come, now, I have
-to get you ready for breakfast. You are to eat breakfast
-with the general. Come, let me wash your face
-and comb your hair.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, indeed, you aint a-goin’ to wash my face and
-comb my hair. I’ve washed my own face and combed
-my own hair ever since I can remember, and I aint
-a-goin’ to let anybody else do it now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, you do it; and here is such a pretty blue
-dress of princess cloth, all trimmed with black braid;
-and here is a black silk apron and a nice lace tucker, and
-silk mits, and a tortoise-shell long comb to keep your
-curls back, and here is a pair of black morocco boots,
-see!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, how beautiful!” exclaimed the child admiringly,
-as she hastened with her ablutions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When Nettie was arrayed in her new dress she scarcely
-permitted her maid to tie the last thing, or turn the last
-long ringlet behind the comb, before she sprang from
-under her hands and fled downstairs to “show godfather
-and granny how she looked dressed like a lady.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Nettie sprang into the presence of her guardian he
-arose and walked toward her, took her hand gently, and
-told her that little girls must walk and not jump and
-skip through the rooms of a house. Then he led her
-into the breakfast room, where Miss Joe was already installed
-at the head of the table, attended by a “genteel”
-waiter. General Garnet seated his ward and took his
-own place. Hero now made her appearance and stood
-by her little mistress. But Nettie’s eyes were wandering
-from the elegancies of the breakfast table, with its damask
-tablecloth, fine napkins, Sevres china service, etc.,
-to the superb sideboard, with its splendid array of cut-glass
-and silver plate; and from the rich Turkey carpet
-to the wonderful paper hangings of the walls that showed
-the city of Paris by morning light. And Nettie’s maid
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_185'>185</span>had several times to remind her that little ladies did not
-stare about, but ate their breakfast prettily, before she
-could withdraw her attention from the new glories
-around her and fix it upon her breakfast.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But before the meal was half over Nettie had sprung
-up and bounded out of the room in search of more novelties.
-The hall, the library and the picture-gallery, the
-parlor and the drawing room, the saloon and the conservatory—all
-on the first floor—were in turn invaded
-and overhauled by the eager, impetuous child. Then all
-the chambers on the second floor were visited and ransacked.
-And then the indefatigable little explorer made
-for the attic, and besieged the doors of the locked-up
-rooms there. Through all these runnings and ramblings
-Hero followed her, telling her that little ladies should not
-do this, or that, or the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When night came, a little tired with her incessant running,
-and a little fretted and dispirited with the ceaseless
-accompaniment of her maid’s tuitions and fault-finding,
-Nettie went into the library, where her guardian sat
-luxuriating in his easy-chair at a table covered with
-books and papers before a fine fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie was too tired to notice the elegant and luxurious
-appointments of General Garnet’s favorite retreat; the
-superb book-cases at intervals along the walls; the rare
-and costly statues, busts, and oil-paintings; the tables
-laden with prints and articles of virtu; the easy-chairs,
-sofas, and foot-cushions; the deep, soft carpet, “stealing
-all noises from the feet”; the heavy damask curtains,
-excluding all cold air, and the splendid chandeliers
-pendant from the ceiling and diffusing through their
-stained glass shades a rich, warm, and glowing light
-throughout the apartment. Nettie sauntered straight up
-to General Garnet, climbed upon his knees, and threw
-her head and arms languidly upon his bosom.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Tired, my little Nettie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, very tired, godfather, indeed. Take me in your
-arms and rock me back and forward, as Hugh does.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You must forget Hugh and the isle, and the lodge,
-and all your infantile life, little Nettie. You are going
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_186'>186</span>to be a young lady, and some day you may feel mortified
-if anyone reminded you of these things.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But I think it would be wicked to forget them, godfather,
-and indeed I won’t forget them, either,” said
-Nettie, lifting herself from her resting-place.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet saw his error. If he wished Nettie to
-forget her past life, companions, and occupations, he must
-never remind her of them. If she spoke of them, he
-must not keep her mind fixed upon the subject even by
-opposing it. He must draw her attention to something
-else. Reaching out his hand, drawing a book of colored
-prints up before him, and opening it, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have a great deal of curiosity, little Nettie. Here
-are views taken on the Mediterranean; pictures of
-strange places and old cities, which I will tell you about.
-But as I do not wish to talk to a listless hearer, you must
-first tell me when you see a picture that interests you,
-and question me about anything that excites your curiosity,
-and then I shall know that I am speaking to an attentive
-pupil.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie kissed her guardian rapturously, and, still sitting
-on his knees, bent forward and eagerly turned over
-the leaves of the folio, until a view on the coast of Greece
-arrested her attention, and, pausing upon it, she caressed
-her guardian and claimed the explanation. General
-Garnet was absorbed in the description and history
-of this plate, and Nettie was listening eagerly, when the
-front door-bell was heard to ring. General Garnet
-ceased talking, and raised his head and listened. Nettie
-pressed her lips to his and listened, too. The library
-door opened; a servant entered, and announced:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dr. Hardcastle!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Show Dr. Hardcastle in,” said General Garnet, gathering
-Nettie closely to his bosom with one arm, resting
-the other hand upon the table, and elevating his head
-and Roman nose to the loftiest angle of scorn. A minute
-passed, and then the door opened again, and Magnus
-Hardcastle, still clothed in his rough emigrant suit, entered
-the library, walked down its length, and stood face
-to face with General Garnet.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_187'>187</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXII.<br> <span class='large'>THE INTERVIEW.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Here I disclaim all my paternal care,</div>
- <div class='line'>Propinquity and property of blood,</div>
- <div class='line'>And as a stranger to my hearth and me</div>
- <div class='line'>Hold her from this forever!</div>
- <div class='line in30'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Thus they stood:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet had arisen and put Nettie from his
-bosom, but she stood upon the chair he had just vacated,
-with her arms around his neck, gazing at the newcomer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle stood, cap in hand, immediately before
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They looked at each other. The countenance of General
-Garnet was calm and impassable; he could afford to
-be calm; he had his revenge in his hand—in his arms!
-The countenance of Magnus was frank, open, eager as
-ever, yet tempered with a certain gravity and earnestness
-of expression.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But a single instant they thus regarded each other, and
-then:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, sir?” said General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus held forth his hand, saying seriously:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“General Garnet, I have come a day’s journey back
-from my Western road to offer you my hand in amity,
-to say to you how kindly I feel, and must ever feel, toward
-the father of my beloved wife—to say how much
-I desire your friendship—how much we all desire a
-reconciliation. Will you take my hand?” General Garnet
-drew himself up and remained silent. Nettie, with
-her arms still around his neck, gazed with interest at
-their visitor. Magnus dropped his hand, but continued:
-“Sir, I can understand the resentment of disappointed
-ambition. But I do not, and will not, believe such anger
-to be implacable; not now—not under the afflicting dispensation
-of your recent deplorable bereavement. General
-Garnet, I had proceeded a day and night upon my
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_188'>188</span>westward journey before I received a letter from Mr.
-Wilson announcing the sudden death of Mrs. Garnet.
-My dear wife was overwhelmed with sorrow, a sorrow
-which I also deeply felt. She reproached herself bitterly
-with a thousand fancied sins against her lost mother,
-vowing in her remorse and despair what she would give,
-or do, could the grave but give up its dead. ‘The grave
-is inexorable!’ General Garnet, to some extent I have
-judged your heart by hers. The husband and the daughter
-have a common sorrow. The husband must have
-suffered as much as the daughter. General Garnet, can
-I venture to speak candidly to you? Can I venture to
-say that, little as your Alice may have been loved or valued
-while she was still by your side, in your daily path,
-yet now that she has vanished from your sight you miss
-her in a thousand endearing attentions—in a thousand
-gentle ministrations every moment of your life. You
-miss her in countless comforts, and nameless refinements
-of comfort, of which she, till lost, was the quiet, unsuspecting
-origin. And now you find out the cause by missing
-the effect!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘How blessings brighten as they take their flight!’”
-said General Garnet, in a low, ironical tone, filling up the
-pause made by Magnus. But, without observing the
-sneer, Dr. Hardcastle replied, gravely and sweetly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes! ‘We know not that an angel had been with us
-till we saw the glory of her vanishing wing!’ In your
-deep heart, was it not thus with you, General Garnet? Is
-it not so in a modified way with many of us? Oh, the
-loved and lost! we may have misapprehended, undervalued,
-misused them in life; but let the inexorable hand
-of Death be laid upon them, and how changed are all our
-feelings toward them! How remorsefully we appreciate
-their worth; how despairingly we love them. What
-would we not sacrifice to restore motion, warmth, consciousness
-to that still, cold heart, so we might press it
-beating to our bosom; to restore light to those folded
-eyes, so we might gaze into them all the remorse, all the
-love we feel, but cannot speak; to restore life to the dead,
-that we might see them again at our fireside or table is
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_189'>189</span>the old, familiar dress, with the old, familiar look; that
-we might be a saint or a slave to them thenceforth for
-ever! Take a closer case; take that of your Alice. Could
-now the doors of that vault where you laid her fly open
-and yield up its beautiful dead—or, to leave the supernatural
-and impossible out of the question, could Alice
-be found to have been laid there during a fit of epilepsy,
-as has sometimes been the case with others, and could
-she now be restored to you living, loving, would you
-not rejoice as you never rejoiced before—would you not
-love and value her as you never loved or valued her before—would
-you not do anything on earth to render her
-renewed life happy?” Magnus paused again to see the
-effect of this hint of the truth, thinking, also, that in the
-event of General Garnet remaining obdurate, he had possibly
-verged too nearly upon a disclosure.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the stern, immovable countenance of the latter betrayed
-no emotion, either of suspicion or of relenting.
-It positively gave no clew to his thoughts or feelings.
-Magnus hoped the best, yet withdrew from the precipice
-of a dangerous confidence by saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But to leave improbable things also. Could you
-wake up in the morning and find that you had only
-dreamed her death, and see her by your side—living,
-beautiful, loving—would you not clasp her to your heart
-in joy, exclaiming: ‘Oh, dearest wife, I have had such
-a dreadful dream! It seemed, too, so very real. I
-dreamed that you were dead, Alice. Thank God, it was
-nothing but a dream! Now, ask me what you will,
-Alice, for I am so happy to know I have you yet—to
-know that you have not gone from my side, but are
-here—here!—that I can refuse you nothing.’ Would
-those not be your words and feelings? And what would
-Alice say—what would Alice ask? What was nearest her
-heart when she fell asleep? What would she say could
-she now be restored, and should you ask her what would
-make her happy, but ‘Father, be reconciled to your
-daughter!’ General Garnet, the same letter that announced
-our sudden and mutual bereavement, the letter
-of that Christian minister, expressed a hope that the hand
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_190'>190</span>of Death, which had led our friend away from our midst,
-leaving us all in a common sorrow, might reunite our
-hands in amity. General Garnet, that hope is my prayer.
-I entreat you, take my hand!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet recoiled a step, and answered scornfully:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sir, I know you for an orator of old. But if you hope
-to work upon my feelings through the sorrow of my recent
-and very sudden loss, you deceive yourself. And
-now, hear me! Could—as you have put the question—could
-the doors of my wife’s tomb fly open—and could
-she be restored to me, living, loving, in all the beauty
-and goodness of her being—could such impossibilities
-occur—and should the first boon she craved to bless her
-renewed life be the reconciliation you desire, that boon
-would be refused, though that refusal should send her
-back into the grave! Now I hope you understand me
-thoroughly.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle nodded his head several times, keeping
-time to his thoughts, as he said, in his heart:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And little do you surmise, poor man, that your refusal
-will send her back to the grave—for you! That she will
-be indeed dead—to you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet, taking this nod for one of assent,
-added:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And now, I hope, sir, that no more false hopes may
-be raised upon me. Neither you nor your wife need ever
-expect anything at my hands. By my fireside, and at my
-board, and in my heart, the place of the late Miss Garnet
-is filled. This little girl, sir, is my daughter and heiress.
-I have regularly and legally adopted her. The late Miss
-Garnet had, but for your reminder, passed from my memory.
-Mrs. Hardcastle is an alien and a stranger, and I
-desire that she remain such. I beg you also to remember,
-sir, that, though I have a slight electioneering acquaintance
-with Dr. Hardcastle, such as every prominent
-politician may have with persons not to be recognized
-under any other circumstances, I do not wish even that
-acquaintance to continue. And I beg you to recollect
-that I have never even seen Mrs. Hardcastle, and never
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_191'>191</span>wish to see her. I do not know the person, and never
-wish to know her. Have you anything more to advance,
-Dr. Hardcastle?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, sir!” said Magnus, drawing himself up, and as
-his fine chest expanded, looking at his adversary with a
-brow, a glance that made him quail and drop his eyes.
-“You have dared to misrepresent my purpose in coming
-to you, or else you have naturally mistaken my motives—naturally,
-for it may not be in your nature to understand
-them. Yet, no, it is not so. You do not mistake
-me. And do not dare to affect it again. You know that
-your fortune is nothing—absolutely nothing—to me, and
-never was. So little do rank and fortune weigh with me
-against hearts and souls that, had I been a millionaire
-and had Elsie been the child of a beggar instead of a
-daughter of General Garnet, and the heiress of Mount
-Calm, I would have taken her to my bosom in the face
-of all the world. And, more—further, had Elsie possessed,
-in her own inalienable right, hundreds of millions,
-and I possessed no more than the clothes I wore,
-I would have married her, and not thanked her for the
-millions she brought me, but simply loved her for the
-beauty, the goodness, the love, the dear womanhood she
-gave me. So little do I value money where nature and
-affection are concerned. As it is, we are both poor, both
-will have to work hard. Elsie has chosen her lot in life,
-and shall abide by it. Even you, her father, shall not
-rescue her from it with your wealth. You cannot change
-her destiny. Your fortune could not do it. I am resolved
-to make, to command whatever success may be in life
-for us. Yet”—he added, with a softening brow and tone—“yet,
-father of my dear wife—for her sake, for your
-own, for mine, I would be reconciled with you. Spite
-of all the bitter things written upon your forehead, and
-spoken by your lips, and which I do not think your
-heart indorses, I would be at peace with you; bitter talk
-is but hasty breath. Let us forget it. Let us be friends.
-Now, then, for the last time I offer you my hand. For
-the last time, I beseech you take it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet frowned darkly and averted his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_192'>192</span>But Nettie, who had been gazing kindly and admiringly
-at the speaker, now suddenly thrust out her little
-hand, and, emphatically striking it into the broad, open
-palm of Magnus, exclaimed cordially:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes! Let us be friends! I’ll be friends! I like
-you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was no resisting that sparkling, cordial smile—that
-earnest, confiding manner, and Magnus closed his
-hand upon the child’s hand, pressing it kindly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Godfather, why don’t you ask the good-looking gentleman
-to sit down, and why don’t you ring the bell and
-have wine brought for him like you did for Mr. Judge
-Jacky? Sit down, gentleman, in that armchair, and I
-will go and ring the bell,” she said, jumping down and
-running to the bell-rope, which she pulled vigorously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Will you be seated, sir?” said General Garnet
-ironically.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Will you first take my hand, General Garnet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, sir! To forbear is the utmost limit of my self-control.
-I cannot go further, and forgive. Yet you are
-in my house—standing by my fireside. While you bestow
-upon us your presence, I beg you be seated.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Magnus waved his hand in rejection of this invitation
-and turned to go, but Nettie, returning from her vociferous
-bell-ringing, stopped him by seizing both his hands
-and leaning up against him as she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No! you mustn’t go till you get something—I hear a
-boy coming now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And at this moment, indeed, the door was opened, and
-a waiter appeared in answer to the noisy summons.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Get some good wine and some sort o’ witches—you
-make with bread and butter and ham—sandwitches, and
-bring up here for this gentleman. And make haste, you
-hear, because he is in a hurry,” said Nettie to the waiter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man looked with surprise and perplexity from the
-self-constituted little mistress to the master. And General
-Garnet, in some perversity of mood, exclaimed
-fiercely:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, sir! Why do you pause? Did you hear Miss
-Seabright’s order?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_193'>193</span>“Yes, sir, but——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go and obey it, then. Do you wait for me to tell
-you that her commands here are only second to my
-own?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, why don’t you go along when I tell you that the
-good-looking gentleman is in a great hurry? What
-makes you look so queer?” exclaimed Nettie, stamping
-with impatience, but not with ill-humor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man bowed and withdrew.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again Dr. Hardcastle sought to free himself from his
-loving little captor, but Nettie clung to him like a very
-nettle, or an opossum to a tree, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, sir, you mustn’t go; you shan’t go, till the wine
-comes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And before he could get away the wine and sandwiches
-arrived. As the waiter walked straight up the
-room and set the refreshments upon the table, General
-Garnet turned coldly to Dr. Hardcastle, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My little daughter invites you to take something.
-Will you do so, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle, who had been released by Nettie, declined
-the invitation, and retired, followed into the hall
-by Nettie, who sought to recapture and detain him. He
-raised the child, kissed her, and left the house at
-once.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After he had gone Nettie remained standing in the hall
-so long that General Garnet came out to seek her. Having
-found her, he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why do you linger so, my little Nettie? Come with
-me into the library, and let us go on with the pictures
-and stories.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I don’t want to go back to the library with you, godfather.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What! Don’t want to return with me and see the
-beautiful pictures, and hear the wonderful stories?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; I don’t care for the pictures, nor the stories, nor
-you, either, godfather. I want to go to my own room—and
-I wish you would call my maid.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Whe-ew! How my little princess takes state upon
-herself! But I must say it becomes her—rarely. But
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_194'>194</span>why does she not care for pictures, stories, or godfather,
-either?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because, godfather, you treated the pleasant-spoken
-gentleman so meanly. I’m sure when I and Hugh and
-granny lived in the poor lodge, and had nothing to offer
-but persimmon beer and sour, knobby apples, we never
-treated our visitors so meanly. No, that we didn’t!
-Granny used to say, ‘Hospit—something or other—before
-everything’ which meant that it was a shame to treat
-well-behaved company meanly. And you treated the
-pleasant-spoken gentleman meanly. ’Deed, I thought he
-preached nice as the parson. But you treated him
-meanly—and I don’t want to have anything to do with
-you, and I won’t, either, have anything to do with you,
-godfather. I want my maid. Will you please to send
-her to me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Piqued, amused, attracted by the naïve candor and
-courage of the fond but passionate child, General Garnet
-laughed and held out his arms, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, come to me, my little Nettie. Come and kiss me,
-and give me one of your tight hugs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed, I won’t, godfather!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Won’t! Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Cause I don’t feel like it, one bit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Don’t feel like it! Well, then, now what shall I give
-my little Nettie for a good, hearty hug and kiss—say?
-Shall it be a pony, or a little carriage, or a great wax
-doll, or what? Come! say now. What shall it be?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing, godfather. You will give me all them
-things, anyhow, ’cause you promised them to me if I’d
-come and live ’long o’ you. But I aint sure that I will
-take any of them—and I aint even sure that I shall stay.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet laughed aloud, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Very well! if you won’t come and give me a good,
-hearty hug and kiss, neither for free love nor bribery, I
-can come and give you one.” And he went toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Nettie ran, flew up the stairs, and from the first landing
-looked down to see if she was pursued, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, you mustn’t, indeed, godfather. I had rather
-anyone hit me a hard lick right in the face than kiss me
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_195'>195</span>when I don’t want to be kissed. And I don’t want to
-be kissed by you, godfather. I wouldn’t kiss you hardly
-to save your life.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And having said this, Nettie fled the rest of the way
-upstairs. Hero was already there with a light to take
-charge of her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Strange! How strange it is that I love that wild
-child more and more—need her love more and more
-every hour that I live! Strange, passing strange, that
-with all her willfulness, I love that half-savage, but most
-beautiful thing, better than I ever loved anyone in the
-wide world! Oh, it is not strange, after all! It is because
-she loves me thoroughly—with every fiber of her soul
-and body; because I can trust in her, for she hides nothing
-from me—not even her childish anger.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle returned to Huttontown, and to the
-tavern, where he was to lodge that night. He intended
-to retire early, preparatory to a very early start the next
-morning. But first it was necessary to go to Mr. Fig’s
-for the purpose of making a few purchases of articles
-that had been forgotten in his first packing up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When he entered the grocery he saw, to his surprise,
-Hugh Hutton behind the counter, ready to serve him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, my boy,” said he, extending his hand, “I am
-surprised and happy to see you again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, doctor! have you really turned back? I am so
-very glad!” exclaimed Hugh, his countenance actually
-illuminated with joy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, my boy. We had proceeded but a day’s journey,
-when we heard of Mrs. Garnet’s death, and came
-back.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is Mrs. Hardcastle? Is she at the inn?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, my boy; finding that we came too late for the
-funeral I took Mrs. Hardcastle immediately back to Deep
-Dell, where she now sojourns, waiting for me. I found
-it necessary to come back a second time. I have traveled
-the road between Huttontown and Deep Dell forth
-and back twice within a week, Hugh; and to-morrow
-morning, at five o’clock, I make the third start.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_196'>196</span>“The old folks say that there is great luck in the third
-attempt,” said Hugh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should think there was in my instance, if I could
-take you back with me, my boy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, sir, Dr. Hardcastle, you can if you will,” exclaimed
-Hugh, in a tone of anxious, eager solicitude.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I assuredly will, if I can. And no obstacle exists with
-me. But your little sister, my boy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, sir, my little sister is better provided for than I
-could hope to provide for her for many years to come.
-She is the ward of General Garnet, and he has just this
-morning taken her home to live with him, and to be
-educated.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How? What? Is it possible? The little, fond, wild,
-beautiful creature I saw at Mount Calm to-night?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, sir, that was she—Garnet Seabright.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What kin is she to you, boy—not your sister?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No kin at all, sir; but dear to me as if she were my
-twin sister.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A beautiful child! A sweet, wild, haunting thing!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, yes, sir; and so true and good—so trusting!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A little eerie, spirit-like thing! What a pity!” said
-Dr. Hardcastle, communing with himself; then, raising
-his voice, he said: “Well, you desire to accompany me,
-my boy? But how long have you been with Mr. Fig,
-and what are your obligations to him?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No obligations at all, sir. The truth is, seeing that
-from having been a help to aunty and Nettie in the time
-of their need I had got to be a hindrance in the way of
-their doing better than I could do for them, I went to
-Mr. Fig and told him that I would stand behind the
-counter and help about the store, for no more than my
-mere board—not even asking clothing—on conditions,
-it should be understood, I was to go to the West the
-very first chance that came. Well, Mr. Fig knew me, and
-how much I could do, and agreed to my plan; and so I
-came this morning, and have done a very hard day’s
-work, too—hauling several cartloads of freight from the
-brig up to the store, and unloading them, and storing
-them in, and waiting behind the counter the rest of the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_197'>197</span>time. All that makes me feel well to-night. So, you
-see, sir, I owe Mr. Fig nothing but good friendship; and
-I am ready to set out with you to-morrow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Be it so, then, my boy. And I am rejoiced to know
-that in thus following the bent of your inclinations, you
-abandon no duty. Will you join me to-night, or early
-to-morrow morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Early to-morrow morning, Dr. Hardcastle. You
-may pick me up at the south gate of the falling-field, behind
-Mount Calm—that will be directly in your road. I
-must go up to Mount Calm, to-night, to bid good-by to
-Aunt Joe and Nettie.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Very well, my boy. Be punctual.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And having obtained the articles for which he came
-Dr. Hardcastle left the store.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That night Hugh Hutton went up to Mount Calm.
-He succeeded in obtaining entrance to his Aunt Joe’s
-rooms, but found, to his regret, that Nettie had some
-time before retired to bed, and was now fast asleep. He
-spent the night on a pallet in his aunt’s room, and in the
-morning made up his bundle to start. Miss Joe objected,
-cried, bemoaned her fate and Hugh’s, but finally
-consented to his departure; for Miss Joe believed in
-Hugh and had faith in Dr. Hardcastle, besides it would
-not sound so badly to tell the neighbors, by and by,
-that her nephew, Hugh Hutton, was “studying medicine
-underneath Dr. Hardcastle.” So Miss Joe gave him
-her blessing, and went to wake up Nettie, to bid him
-farewell, prophesying all the while that Nettie would
-“take on dreadful.” But Nettie did not “take on” at
-all; she threw herself joyously around Hugh’s neck,
-gave him a hearty hug and kiss, and declared, that with
-his bundle across his shoulder he was Jack the Giant-Killer,
-going to seek his fortune; and that he must let
-her know about every giant he killed, and every enchanted
-lady he freed, and every magician’s castle he
-took, and ever beautiful princess that loved him. And
-then she pulled the scarlet worsted comforter from her
-neck and wound it around Hugh’s throat, tucking the
-ends into his coat breast, and bid him good-by. Hugh
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_198'>198</span>went to the door, turned to take a last look, impulsively
-darted back, clasped his old aunty, and then Nettie, in a
-last embrace, sprung from the room, and was gone. A
-rapid walk brought him to the spot where he found Dr.
-Hardcastle, just arrived in his carryall, waiting for him,
-and exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Just in time, my boy—and very welcome. Jump in!
-All right!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIII.<br> <span class='large'>ELSIE IN THE LOG CABIN.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>It was a lodge of ample size,</div>
- <div class='line'>But strange of structure and device,</div>
- <div class='line'>Of such materials as around</div>
- <div class='line'>The workman’s hand had readiest found.</div>
- <div class='line in32'><i>—Scott.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The place selected by Magnus Hardcastle as the field
-of his life labor was that grandly picturesque portion of
-Maryland now known as Alleghany County, but then
-called indifferently the Mountains, the Wilderness, or the
-Backwoods. The site chosen for his home was a wildly
-beautiful spot in the midst of a deep, narrow valley lying
-between two ridges of the Alleghany Mountains, and
-watered by a branch of the Potomac River. Although
-Magnus Hardcastle’s first idea of a home in the backwoods
-presented nothing but a log cabin, and although
-his young and lovely bride was quite ready to dare and
-share the unmitigated rudeness and privations of such
-a home and life, yet Providence, who “tempereth the
-wind to the shorn lamb,” mercifully ameliorated the
-hardships of the condition for the delicately nurtured
-girl, who, however willing, was, notwithstanding all her
-health and strength, scarcely able to bear the shock of
-such a sharp and sudden change. The contents of that
-casket—the bridal gift of Alice Garnet to her daughter—amounted
-to nearly five thousand dollars, and though
-the whole of this sum would go but a very little way
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_199'>199</span>toward supplying the superfluities of a fashionable
-bride’s trousseau, yet the half of it went very far toward
-completing and furnishing a comfortable backwoods
-home for our young couple. Their house was a log
-cabin indeed, but one of “ample size” and commodious
-appointments.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was near the close of a fine winter day that Alice
-and Elsie were together in the family rooms of the cabin.
-This apartment was large, and supplied with all needful
-furniture. The walls were lathed and plastered, but not
-whitewashed, and retaining the original stone color, gave
-a sober tone to the air of the room. There was no
-carpet on the floor, but the broad hearth was a notable
-specimen of the fine arts, by Hugh Hutton, who declared,
-in his pride, that it was an interesting, instructive, and
-endless study, to anyone fond of tracing the individuality
-and infinite variety of natural form and color. The
-hearth was, in fact, a fine mosaic of fragments of rocks,
-of divers forms, sizes, and colors, perfectly filled in, leveled
-and chinked with a hard, white composition, that
-formed an irregular boundary line between the pieces.
-Each side the ample fireplace were dressers, constructed
-of strong plank, and at once laden and ornamented with
-crockery ware. From the lowest and broadest shelves
-hung dark calico curtains, reaching to the floor, and
-concealing “the humble little household gods,” as Elsie
-called them. There were chairs and tables, made more
-for strength than beauty, ranged along the walls. The
-windows were curtained with dark calico. There was no
-article of luxury, no superfluity in the room, but everything
-was convenient, orderly, and immaculately clean.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A fine fire blazed in the broad chimney, and though
-the hour was growing dark, it illuminated the room, so
-as to render a lighted candle unnecessary. The tea-kettle
-hung over the blaze, an oven lid sat upon the logs
-by its side, and the oven was turned up against the front
-of the fire to heat for baking.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie stood at a deal-table, making out biscuits—busy,
-healthful, and happy as ever.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A little to the left of the blazing, too-hot fire, sat Alice,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_200'>200</span>in a rocking-chair, and—a reverie. There was but one
-change in Alice since we saw her last. The sunny ringlets
-of her unfaded hair (be it remembered that she was
-but thirty-five), the sunny ringlets of her hair were
-turned around her cheek, and their end twisted around
-with her back braid. A little lace cap which she wore,
-because she said a cap was proper for her at her time of
-life, and in her relations, sat gracefully upon her still
-beautiful head, and gave a softness to the outline of her
-delicate and spiritual face, making her seem even more
-youthful and beautiful than before. She had been embroidering
-an infant’s dress, but the work had dropped
-into her lap, and her hand had fallen upon the little
-snow-white heap of muslin, and the richly-chased gold
-thimble glittered idly in the firelight; but the tiny foot,
-in the delicate slipper, was not idle—it turned upon the
-rockers of a cradle, where, amid downy pillows and soft
-white drapery, reposed a lovely babe of about two months
-of age. Altogether this beautiful and graceful group was
-a little out of keeping with the log cabin, to which it
-nevertheless lent a charm. But then, Elsie had always
-laughingly said that her mother was an ingrain “lady,”
-while she herself, for her own part, was “only a woman.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie having finished making out her biscuits, brought
-the tray to the fire to put them on to bake. While kneeling
-with one knee upon the hearth to arrange her bread
-in the oven, she looked up at her mother’s pensive face,
-and said, sympathetically:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear mother, it seems to me you are not happy,
-though you would have us believe it is so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, no one is perfectly happy; that is a saying as
-old as the plucking of the forbidden fruit that first
-brought suffering into the world, and yet we never believe
-it. We are ever striving for that perfect happiness
-which is impossible.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not believe it to be impossible, dear mother. I
-am a firm believer in perfect earthly happiness; I am so
-near it myself. Why, even now, I should be perfectly
-happy but for the shadow on your brow, mother.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘But,’ there is ever a ‘but.’ It is the order of life,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_201'>201</span>and I am content with it. Be at ease, dear; I, too, should
-be perfectly happy, but——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What, dearest mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am a living falsehood, Elsie.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mother!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Child, I did not mean to speak so strongly. But I
-have a secret to keep that pains me always—a sinful
-secret, inasmuch as I am conscious that the keeping of
-it may cause sin in others.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sin, mother?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Elsie; your father is in the prime of life; he believes
-himself a widower. What if he were to marry
-again?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! I never thought of that. It seems so strange
-to me that people should ever marry again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know it does, my happy Elsie; but, nevertheless,
-they do, you know. Elsie, I have refrained from speaking
-of my thought, because I did not wish to distress
-you or have an argument with your husband; but, my
-love, I feel that I ought to write to General Garnet, and
-after that, as you and yours are doing so very well, and
-as you are all so comfortable and happy, and as I should
-not be missed among you, I think, if General Garnet
-wishes it, I ought to go home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He will not wish it, mother; you know he has a gentlemanly
-horror of a nine days’ wonder. Sweet mother,
-you must remain with us. Not miss you! Whom should
-we have to wait upon and adore if you were gone? And
-as for writing, mother, talk to Magnus about that. Here
-he comes now, and Hugh with him, as usual, and—a
-stranger with him, as unusual. Who can it be?” said
-Elsie, as, setting the lid upon the oven and replacing the
-tray upon the table, she looked out of the window into
-the moonlit yard.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The door opened, and Magnus Hardcastle entered, accompanied
-by a gentleman, and followed by Hugh Hutton.
-The stranger was clothed in a suit of rusty black,
-his tall, slim figure was slightly bowed, and his black
-hair was thickly mixed with gray.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come in, sir; come in, sir. Hugh, my student, there,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_202'>202</span>will care for your horse. Come in, sir. It is needless
-to say that you are most gladly welcome. A guest is a
-God-send to us. Come to the fire, sir,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-leading the way.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mrs. Garnet, let me present to you the Rev. Mr. Sinclair,
-missionary to the Winnebagoes, who will do us the
-honor of resting in our cabin for a few days, on his
-western route. Mr. Sinclair, Mrs. Garnet of Mount
-Calm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Is it possible! Alice!” ejaculated the stranger, dropping
-hat, gloves, and whip, and reeling on his feet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A slight paleness overspread the face of the lady, but
-rising with perfect ease, she offered her hand, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Sinclair, it is many years since we last met. I
-am very glad to see you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He drew back, then took the hand she offered, and
-looked wonderingly, searchingly, into her face, as if to
-read her soul. Her face was impassible to him. Turning
-to Dr. Hardcastle, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear Magnus, this is a very old acquaintance
-you have brought me, an acquaintance of my girlhood.
-Elsie, my love!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie came forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Sinclair,” she continued, still retaining his hand,
-“let me introduce you to my daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle.
-Elsie, my love, Mr. Sinclair is a very old friend of mine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am very glad to see you, sir. I should be glad even
-if you were a perfect stranger, but I am very glad to
-see an old friend of my mother’s. Do take this chair between
-mother and the chimney corner, sir; it is not the
-post of honor, perhaps, but it is the most comfortable
-and convenient seat, as you can rest and toast your feet
-and talk over old times with mother at the same time—old
-times, I said. She does not look like she had seen
-any very old times, does she, sir?” said Elsie, gayly talking
-on, while she shook the hand of the guest and installed
-him in his seat.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mamma,—‘Mrs. Garnet of Mount Calm,’—pray take
-the entertainment of Mr. Sinclair upon yourself, while I
-attend to that for which I have the most talent. I mean
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_203'>203</span>the creature comforts. Don’t tell him, mamma, that if
-ever I lose my soul through either of the three great
-enemies of souls, ‘the world, the flesh, and the devil,’ it
-will be by the flesh, for that I have very little of worldliness,
-not a whit of diabolism, but a grand passion for
-creature comforts,” said Elsie, laughing, as she raised
-the lid off the oven. “These biscuits are going to be very
-nice,” she remarked, as the steam of the fresh warm
-bread greeted their nostrils. She then replaced the lid,
-perceived and picked up the fallen hat, gloves, and whip
-of the minister, looked at him as the most careless and
-slovenly man she ever saw in her life, brushed and put
-away the things, and hurried on with her preparations
-for supper.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And is this the residence of the wealthy and distinguished
-General Garnet’s widow and daughter?” said
-Sinclair, in a deep, stern tone, looking around upon the
-rough walls.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is the home of General Garnet’s daughter, certainly,
-and the temporary home of his wife.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! I beg your pardon, earnestly—yet—the mistake
-was very natural,” said the minister.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh, attend to that gentleman’s animal in the very
-best manner. Dear Magnus, please to get me some more
-wood. Hugh, take the bucket, and, as you come back,
-bring me a bucket of water. Dear Magnus, we must
-not forget to request the minister to christen our baby.
-It may be a long time before we have another opportunity,
-and anyhow, I prefer Mr. Sinclair to officiate; it
-will be so interesting, he being mother’s old friend,” said
-Elsie, as she hurried about, speaking to first one and
-then another, attending to everything and forgetting
-nothing. Supper was speedily placed upon the table—tea,
-fresh butter and eggs, venison, and the nice biscuits.
-The minister asked a blessing, but ate little. And soon
-after they arose from the table, Mr. Sinclair pleaded fatigue,
-and requested to be shown to his room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle attended him to his chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When Magnus returned to the family room he found
-the tea things had been already washed up and put away,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_204'>204</span>the hearth swept, the fire replenished, and the two ladies
-with their needlework, and Hugh with his books, all
-gathered around the table that was lighted by but one
-tallow candle. He drew a chair up with the rest, and,
-putting his hand in his pocket, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have got a letter from Huttontown.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A letter from Huttontown!” exclaimed all three,
-looking eagerly up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, from Mr. Wilson.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What’s the news? How is father?” asked Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Does he speak of the general? How is he?” inquired
-Alice anxiously.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“How are all the folks? How is Aunt Joe and Nettie?”
-asked Hugh Hutton. All were speaking together,
-and all eagerly awaiting an answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Peste! ladies and young gentleman, I cannot answer
-all at once,” said Magnus, smiling, yet with something
-constrained in his manner. “I will read the letter; it is
-very short; a mere note—a mere matter of business.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well?” said Alice, seeing him pause.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A mere announcement, in truth—a—but I will read
-it. Hugh, you’re discreet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, my dear, I have been anxious to submit this
-letter to your mother and yourself all the evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, well, Magnus. My mother is on thorns, and I
-am scarcely more at ease. Has anything happened?
-You look ‘perplexed, yet not in despair’—not like the
-recipient of very ill news.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, no, not of ill news, yet strange news. You
-know before I came away from Huttontown the last
-time I requested the Rev. Mr. Wilson to inform me immediately
-by letter of anything important that might occur
-at Mount Calm, and concern us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, yes. Well?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He has done so. Here is his letter—listen.”</p>
-
-<div class='c017'>“<span class='sc'>Huttontown</span>, January, 18—.</div>
-
-<p class='c016'>“<span class='sc'>Dear Dr. Hardcastle</span>: At our last interview you
-desired me, in the event of General Garnet’s contemplating
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_205'>205</span>any second matrimonial engagement, to inform you,
-by letter, without delay, saying that it vitally concerned
-the welfare of all parties that this should instantly
-be done. Without having the most remote idea of the
-cause of your very emphatic instructions, I hasten to
-obey them, by advising you that General Garnet and
-Miss Wylie of Point Pleasant are to be married on Tuesday
-next. Nothing is talked of but the match and the
-great preparations making for the wedding at Point
-Pleasant, and for the reception of the bride at Mount
-Calm. The family of the lady seem very well pleased
-with the match. Ulysses Roebuck, the jilted lover, has
-gone—sailed for Europe, with the purpose of making the
-grand tour.</p>
-
-<p class='c016'>“There, you have the facts that most interest you.
-There is nothing else stirring; all the same dull, dead
-level; a birth, death, or marriage would be an historical
-event in this village.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“With respects to your lady, I remain,</div>
- <div class='line in20'>“Your sincere friend,</div>
- <div class='line in32'>“<span class='sc'>E. Wilson</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good Heaven! There, what did I tell you, Elsie!”
-exclaimed Alice, clasping her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear mother! my darling mother! never mind.
-There is one love on earth that shall never fail you. I
-can have no second mother,” said Elsie, rising and throwing
-her arms around the lady’s neck.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, you see that I must go. I must write to-night,
-to prepare him for my arrival, and to-morrow I
-must set out myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, no, mother; don’t go! It will be worse than ever
-now in your old home. Oh, mamma, don’t go! Write—only
-write. Or if it be indispensable that someone go,
-Magnus will. Will you not, Magnus?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will do whatever your mother wishes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then, dearest Magnus, mail my letter to-night, even
-late as it is, and prepare to set out with me to-morrow.
-Yet, no: you must not leave Elsie. Prepare me a way
-to go alone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_206'>206</span>“Dear Mrs. Garnet, dear friend, I implore you not to
-think of going. I will go myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, dear, you know that upon some points I
-can be stubborn. I must go straight to Mount Calm,”
-said Alice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And despite all arguments and entreaties, she persisted
-in her resolution.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then, since you will go, I shall attend you to the end
-of your journey, and—bring you back—perhaps.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, Elsie; you cannot leave her alone and unprotected
-at home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“She will not be alone; Hugh will be with her; and for
-protection, my brave wife can protect herself, if necessary.
-Pooh! my dear madam, I would leave Elsie here
-in the heart of the wilderness six months, if needful,
-without fear or hesitation. She is one in a million, our
-Elsie. What say you, dear Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I say—go with mother if you love me, Magnus. See
-her safe to her journey’s end, and, if it be possible, bring
-her safe back to me again.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>That same night Alice’s letter was written and mailed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next morning, at an early hour Alice Garnet set
-out, under the protection of Dr. Hardcastle, for the East.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An hour later, when the Rev. Mr. Sinclair arose and
-came down to breakfast, Mrs. Hardcastle tendered him
-the compliments and excuses of his host, informing him
-that a domestic affair of vital moment called Mrs. Garnet
-suddenly to Mount Calm, whither Dr. Hardcastle was instantly
-obliged to attend her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After breakfast the minister, leaving his respects and
-adieus for the absentees, took leave and proceeded on
-his journey.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_207'>207</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIV.<br> <span class='large'>WHAT CAME NEXT.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Uncomfortable time! why camest thou now</div>
- <div class='line'>To murder—murder our solemnity?</div>
- <div class='line in28'><i>—Shakspere.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It was two days before the appointed wedding day, and
-General Garnet sat in his library, over his wine, in deep
-consultation with his lawyer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And, you say, sir, that my will might be successfully
-contested?” he asked, setting down his empty glass, and
-looking anxiously, half angrily, at the attorney.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I give it, sir, as my best digested legal opinion, that
-in the event of your death, should the will by which you
-bequeath all this vast property to your adopted daughter
-be contested, it would probably be set aside in favor of
-Alice Chester Hardcastle, the only living representative
-of the old Chester family, who have held the land from
-the first settlement of the country to the present time—upward
-of two hundred years. You know, sir, that the
-decision of the case would rest finally with the jury, and
-such are the prejudices in favor of wealth, rank, hereditary
-descent, and——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well! speak out—justice, you would add, I suppose,”
-said General Garnet, filling his glass and passing the
-bottle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The lawyer bowed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, sir! what of these prejudices? Finish your
-sentence.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That scarce a jury could be found to give a verdict
-against your legal daughter—a Chester—and in favor of
-your—I beg your pardon—adopted daughter—a stranger
-and an alien.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sir, you know nothing of the law. I shall seek better
-legal advice,” exclaimed General Garnet, bringing down
-his glass upon the table with a force that shivered it, and
-rising in an excited manner.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You may seek other, and find more palatable advice,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_208'>208</span>sir. Our consultation ends here. I wish you good-evening,
-sir,” said the lawyer, rising and going to the
-door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stay!” said General Garnet, going after him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the attorney bowed deeply and retired.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet continued to pace up and down the
-floor, with a strange, excited manner, totally at variance
-with his usual serene self-possession. Frequently, also,
-he stopped—poured out and quaffed a glass of wine. At
-last, pausing, he struck his forehead, emphatically
-exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have it, now! a deed! To-morrow morning, the
-first thing I do will be to have drawn up, sign, seal, and
-record a deed of conveyance, giving the whole of this
-estate to Garnet Seabright, and retaining only a life interest
-in it myself. Yes! a deed! There will be no contesting
-or setting aside that, I fancy. And whether I die
-next year, or a hundred years hence, Nettie, if she lives,
-becomes possessed of all this property. Yes! yes! I must
-revenge myself upon Hardcastle. I must punish that ungrateful
-daughter—true scion of the stubborn Chesters.
-And by all means, by any means—I must—will!—elevate
-and aggrandize Nettie—my child, my darling, my darling,
-the only thing on earth that loves me. Yes! elevate
-and aggrandize her until I force the world to recognize
-her. Nettie, my heart’s core! whose thought has power
-to banish even the image of my young bride from my
-mind!—to banish it, because fair and lovely and loving as
-she is—her fantastical and selfish passion, flattering as it
-is—is a more selfish thing than your sweet affection, my
-darling child. Yet she is beautiful, this fervid Ambrosia!
-And once this business settled—this deed that
-secures wealth and rank to my Nettie, executed and recorded,
-I shall be free to yield up soul and senses to this
-dream of passion. How my thoughts wander! I am
-giddy. I am not well. When ever did I talk to myself
-before? I must stop this. I will consult a physician to-morrow,”
-said General Garnet, sitting down, and drinking
-great draughts of wine.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next day, true to his purpose, he rode to Huttontown,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_209'>209</span>and had the deed of conveyance, giving all the
-great Mount Calm property to Garnet Seabright, and reserving
-only a life interest in it himself, drawn up, signed,
-and witnessed with all legal formulæ. Then he rode with
-it himself to the county town, and had it recorded. In the
-course of the day the slight indications of approaching
-illness that had visited him the night before returned,
-and now, with more marked emphasis. Sudden vertigo,
-with failure of sight and confusion of thought, would
-seize him an instant, pass away—return again, and again
-pass. He drew up his horse at last before a doctor’s office,
-entered, sat down, and apologizing for troubling the
-physician with such a trifling indisposition by saying,
-jestingly, that he wished to be in perfect health upon his
-wedding day—he related his symptoms.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is nothing, sir,” said the physician, after he had
-felt his pulse, etc. “It is nothing. Do not be alarmed, I
-beseech you! Keep a calm mind; it is of vital importance
-that you keep a calm mind. I would advise you to defer
-your marriage for a few weeks.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think, sir, that I am threatened with——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, sir! Oh, no, there is not the least occasion for
-alarm; these symptoms must yield to a very little judicious
-treatment. Abstain from the use of wine and
-stimulating food, and, above all things, avoid all agitation
-and excitement; keep from all places and persons
-that have the least effect upon your nerves. A day or so
-will set you up again. Stay, I will write you a little prescription.
-Here, sir, take this—it is simply a cooling
-draught; follow directions, and all will be right.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet took the scrap of paper, bowed, and
-withdrew, with a contemptuous smile upon his lips, muttering
-to himself:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fool that I am, to seek medical advice of a fellow
-whose interest it is to make and keep me ill for a month
-or so! Shall I take this prescription, now? No, I feel
-better already. The fresh air has revived me. I will go
-to Point Pleasant and spend the evening with Ambrosia;
-her sweet smile and gentle touch will charm this fitful
-illness.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_210'>210</span>And turning his horse’s head, General Garnet took the
-road to Judge Wylie’s. The sky was clouding up, but,
-heedless of the threatened rain, he rode on rapidly to
-Point Pleasant. He spent a long, delightful evening
-with Miss Wylie, and left, at a late hour, more intoxicated
-than ever with the alluring beauty of his promised bride,
-and repeating, in an impassioned tone, many times, the
-words of his parting: “To-morrow! oh, to-morrow, Ambrosia.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He faced a cold and driving rain all the way home, and
-arrived at his own gate, dripping wet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Throwing the reins of his horse to an attendant, he
-hastened into the house. The voice of Nettie greeted
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Here, godfather! come in here to the library; here is
-a good fire, and your dressing-gown and slippers all
-warm, and hot coffee and oysters and wine. I made them
-for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Divesting himself of his wet overcoat, cap, leggings,
-and gloves, he walked into the library, where he found
-Nettie presiding over the comforts she had prepared for
-him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear little brownie! Why are you up so late?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The rain waked me up, godfather, and then I couldn’t
-sleep any more for thinking you were out in it. So I got
-up and dressed myself, and came down here to make
-things comfortable for you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My own Nettie! I have been making things comfortable
-for you, also! But where is your granny?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gone to bed these two hours.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And now you must go, my dear little one. Come
-and kiss me close, and then, good-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The elf sprang to his neck, squeezing him tightly, and
-rooting herself into his bosom, as though she would
-grow there, and then suddenly springing off, bounded
-from the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The little supper standing before him did not tempt
-his appetite. With another retrospective glance of contempt
-at the physician’s advice, he turned to the table
-and poured out and swallowed glass after glass of wine.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_211'>211</span>Then, without heeding the mail-bag that hung upon the
-chair, or ringing for a servant to clear off the things, or
-even closing up the house, as was his invariable custom,
-he arose and retired to his chamber.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>At this same hour, on the turnpike road, about six
-miles distant from Mount Calm, plunged on through
-darkness, mire, and driving rain, a one-horse chaise, occupied
-by two travelers—Dr. Hardcastle and Mrs. Garnet.
-They traveled on in perfect silence for two hours
-before reaching the grounds of Mount Calm. But, upon
-passing the outer gate and entering upon the premises,
-Alice became nervous and uneasy, and at length she
-asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, do you feel positively assured that he has
-received my letter, that he is prepared and expecting to
-see me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Without a doubt, dear Mrs. Garnet, he got your letter
-to-day at noon; assuredly, late as it is, he must be now
-expecting us.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wonder if he really does. I wonder if he has spread
-the news among the people of the plantation! It is really
-necessary to know, dear Magnus. Else my sudden and
-unexpected apparition among them will cause a general
-alarm and rouse the neighborhood.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Very true, and at the first quarter I come to I will
-alight and find out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They rode on in silence until they came to a solitary
-quarter on the outskirts of the plantation. Then Dr.
-Hardcastle, alighting, gave the reins to Mrs. Garnet, and
-trudged through the deep mud and pelting rain to the
-cabin from whence a faint light issued, and the low, sweet
-sound of a violin was heard. He rapped smartly with the
-handle of his riding whip. The music ceased, and a voice,
-which he recognized as belonging to Bob, the driver,
-called out from within:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hoo dar, rappin’ at my door dis onseasonable hour
-o’ de night?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me, Bob! your old friend, Dr. Hardcastle; open the
-door and show yourself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_212'>212</span>“Oh, my Gor A’mighty, Marse Magnate, is it you,
-sure ’nough, come from forrin parts?” ejaculated the old
-negro, fumbling at the wooden latch and wrenching open
-the door. “Come in, come in—come in, Marse Magnate,
-come in. Oh, blessed Lor’! I’m so joyed to see
-you. How is Miss Elsie! she long o’ you? Come in!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Bob, I cannot come in. I am going straight on
-to the house. Elsie is not with me; she is at home, and—well,
-I can’t come in. I only called by to see you, my
-old friend, and to ask you if all were well at the house,
-and if anything new had happened.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All well dar, honey, ’deed dey is, fus’ rate. Nuffin
-new, honey, ’cept ’tis Marse I’on g’wne be marry to Miss
-Ambush Wylie to-morrow night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! Well, I wrote to General Garnet to say that I
-was coming to-night; is he expecting me, do you
-know?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed he got de letter, honey, caze I fotch it from de
-pos’ office myself dis mornin’, an’ de pos’ marser said how
-it war from out yonder where you gone to. But I never
-hear General I’on say nuffin ’bout ’spectin’ no one to de
-weddin’, ’deed I didn’t, honey. Let me run along to de
-house an’ rouse ’em all up and tell ole marse how you’ve
-come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, by no means, Bob. Thank you, good-night,”
-said Dr. Hardcastle, jumping into the carriage.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“All right, he has received your letter, madam; but has
-not imparted its contents to anyone. He is doubtless
-expecting you momentarily; but as no one else is, your
-sudden appearance would strike a panic to the household,
-suddenly roused up out of their sleep, or perhaps
-send them all shrieking from the plantation.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But would not your presence by my side—they know
-you’re alive—reassure them?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear Mrs. Garnet, they assisted at your funeral,
-twelve months ago, and seeing us enter at midnight together
-will sooner believe me to be a second ghost than
-you to be a living woman. No, my dear friend, you
-must veil yourself closely, and after I have got you into
-the house, pass quietly up to General Garnet’s chamber
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_213'>213</span>and reveal yourself to him. Here we are at last,” said
-Dr. Hardcastle, pulling up before the front door of the
-mansion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All was dark except a fitful light that gleamed and
-sunk, and gleamed and sunk, from the upper windows of
-General Garnet’s chamber—as if a candle was expiring
-there in the socket.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It must be near two o’clock—yet he is still sitting up
-for me—see there,” whispered Alice, pointing to the
-flashing and darkening light.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He must be alone, and have dropped asleep by that
-expiring light,” murmured Magnus, as he led her up the
-stairs to the front door. “Now, courage, my dear
-friend. Remember that in me you have a protector near
-you,” whispered Dr. Hardcastle, as he fumbled about in
-the dark for the knocker. In doing so the door swung
-silently open—it had evidently been left ajar. They entered
-noiselessly. The hall was perfectly dark and silent;
-no sound was heard but the moan of the wind and the
-heavy fall of the rain without. “Now, dearest Alice, he
-has evidently left the door ajar that you might enter without
-rousing the servants, and make your way at once to
-his chamber, where he awaits you. Go on—yet! stay! I
-do not like the looks of this thing, either. No one
-knows of your existence—no one knows that you were
-expected here; he awaits you alone in the solitude, silence,
-and darkness of deep night. No, Alice! I cannot
-let you go alone to his baleful presence—I must attend
-you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not for the world, Magnus. What monstrous
-thought is in your mind? Does midnight storm and
-solitude raise such phantoms of fear in your strong
-mind?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alice! bethink you! he is a man of fearful passions,
-yet of profound subtlety and secretiveness. He believed
-you dead and was about to be married. He finds that
-he has been deceived in your death, and that his own
-marriage is about to be ridiculously broken off. He has
-imaginary injuries to revenge, and endangered joys to
-secure—both ends to be reached by one means. And,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_214'>214</span>more than all, he has the fearful temptation of fancied
-impunity. Alice, take care! This open door—this silent
-house—this lonely watcher in the solitary chamber—this
-deep night hour—and the expected lonely visitor. Alice,
-take care!” whispered Magnus.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Horrible! most horrible. You make my blood
-curdle. Not with fear, but with horror, at the monster
-in your imagination. You must not enter with me. I
-will go in alone. Follow, if you please to do so, at a
-short distance. I have no such dreadful fear or doubt.
-I tremble, it is true; but I should also tremble if, in broad
-daylight, a score of people witnessed our meeting.
-Come on, and remain upon the landing while I go in.”</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>On entering his chamber General Garnet suddenly bethought
-himself of something—he could not exactly
-think what—forgotten. A strange absence of mind, temporary
-loss of memory, transient confusion of thought,
-had fitfully afflicted him all day long. He put his hand
-to his forehead, and walked up and down in doubt and
-perplexity, then suddenly recollecting what he wanted, he
-rang the bell, and when a servant, half-dressed, appeared,
-demanded, impatiently:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Anything from the post office to-day, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, marser. Bob, he went to de post office an’
-fotch de bag.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then where is it, you scoundrel? and why was it not
-brought to me?” stamped the master.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“De-ur-ur——” stammered the negro, in fear and perplexity,
-scratching his head for an answer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sir!” thundered General Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the reply bolted from the lips of the negro as if
-thumped out by a blow between his shoulders:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ugh! Yes, sir! You wan’t comed home when it
-’riv, marser, an’ I hanged it on a chair by de liberry
-table, where you could see it when you comed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And if I had forgotten all about it, as I did, you
-scoundrel! Go and bring it to me. Vanish!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man precipitately retreated, and soon reappeared
-with the mail-bag, which he placed in the hands of his
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_215'>215</span>master, who immediately opened and turned out its contents.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Only one letter! And that—— D——!” exclaimed
-General Garnet, recognizing the handwriting of Magnus
-Hardcastle in the superscription of Alice’s letter.
-“Here, you sir! Come here!” added he, hastily blotting
-out the superscription and re-directing it. “Come here!
-take this letter! By the earliest dawn to-morrow take it
-back to the post office, that it may be in time for the
-mail, and tell the postmaster to send it back where it
-came from.” He tossed the letter toward the feet of the
-negro, who tremblingly approached, picked it up, and
-retired from the chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Left alone he paced up and down the floor in troubled
-thought, for about the space of an hour. All about the
-house was profoundly still; no sound was heard but the
-mournful murmur of the wind, and the dreary beating
-of the rain. The clock struck twelve, and the strokes fell
-through the awful stillness of the night with preternatural
-solemnity.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“So late! and I not yet calm enough to sleep—fearing
-to sleep, almost, lest I should never wake again. What
-is this? Why now does the solitude and silence of my
-chamber so affect, so appall, me? The truth is, I am
-ill! must be, or I should not be so weak. I did not kill
-her. No, I did not kill her. I did not take any means
-to recover her for hours? Well! what if I did not? That
-was not murder! I let her die in her fit for want of
-assistance? She might have died anyhow. Why does
-her image haunt my bed, driving sleep thence? Oh,
-miserable weakness! Oh, cowardice! Would my bitterest
-enemy believe it of me? that I dread to look around
-me, lest I see her face? It is this that is my illness. Oh,
-doctor! can your drugs banish her thoughts? Pshaw!
-They say nothing evil can come into the neighborhood
-of innocence. Nettie! my Nettie is near me! in the next
-room. Surely my reason wanders. What evil could
-come nigh me? She was not ‘evil’ on earth. She is
-not ‘evil’ in heaven. She would not avenge herself, if
-she could. Oh, wretched driveling! What am I talking
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_216'>216</span>of? I am ill—I must be. It is illness that raises these
-phantoms of dread. And solitude and uncommunicated
-thoughts and sorrows have caused this illness. Courage!
-This is my last lonely night. To-morrow, and ever after
-to-morrow, the cheerful face of that fair girl shall banish
-all such sickly fancies. To-morrow, and ever after to-morrow.
-But to-night I cannot rest at all. I—I will go
-and look at Nettie, sleeping; the innocence of slumbering
-childhood shall disperse the cloud of devils lowering
-over me. Nettie! ‘The sins of the father shall be visited
-upon the children——’ I dare not. No! I dare not
-now. No! I dare not.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He dropped upon a chair—struck both hands to his
-forehead, whence the cold sweat oozed. He sat there,
-heedless, while the wind moaned around the house, and
-the rain beat drearily against the windows. He sat there,
-motionless, until the clock struck one, and the stroke fell
-like a knell. He started then, but relapsed, immediately,
-into statue-like stillness. The hour passed on, while the
-rain still beat, and the wind still moaned. The candle
-burned low in its socket, but he did not heed it. It
-flashed, filling the room with a strange brilliancy, and
-sunk, leaving it in darkness—but he did not heed it. It
-flashed and darkened—and flashed and darkened ever—but
-he did not heed it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The door swung open—but he did not know it. Alice,
-his lost wife, stood within, motionless—pale—but he did
-not see her. She gazed at him—growing paler every
-instant—she glided toward him—she stood over him—where
-he sat, with his face buried in his hands—but he
-gave no sign of consciousness. Trembling, pale, and
-cold with fear, she laid her icy hands upon him, saying,
-in a voice faint and hollow with exhausted emotion:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Aaron, I have come.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He sprang up as if shot; his face ashy pale, his countenance
-aghast, hair bristling, eyes starting with horror,
-as he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then such things are! You have taken form at last!
-or else—yes—it must be so—I am mad—mad!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dashing his hands against his forehead, as though to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_217'>217</span>shut out a horrible vision, he sunk back again into his
-chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Astonished, terrified, shuddering, Alice approached
-again, kneeled by his side, spoke gently, soothingly,
-deprecatingly to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But ere she ceased speaking his hands dropped from
-his forehead, his head sank upon his bosom, his form
-swayed to and fro an instant, and then he fell forward,
-prostrate, at the feet of his wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A succession of violent screams from Alice brought
-Dr. Hardcastle rushing in at one door, and Nettie, in
-her nightgown, flying in at the other.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They gathered around the fallen man. They raised
-him, set him in his chair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>General Garnet was dead.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'>After that the wild shrieks of a distracted child, refusing
-to be comforted, filled the house of death.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXV.<br> <span class='large'>THE FLIGHT OF TIME.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>And years flew by, and the tale at last</div>
- <div class='line'>Was told as a sorrowful one, long past.</div>
- <div class='line in30'><i>—Mistletoe Bough.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It was the morning of Garnet Seabright’s majority,
-when she was to come into possession of the vast estate
-given her by her adopted father, and she was expecting
-a visit from her trustee to give an account of his stewardship
-and yield up his office.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Lionel Hardcastle, foreordained by General Garnet as
-the husband of his inheritrix, had been appointed trustee
-of the estate and guardian of the heiress, and of—his
-own interests at the same time.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And well had he fulfilled his trust; no Eastern despot
-had even established a stricter guard over a young
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_218'>218</span>Georgian maid than did this guardian over the heiress.
-At the early age of twelve he had placed her at a strict
-convent school, where she avowed that she had to eat,
-drink, and sleep; pray, sing, and learn lessons; sit, stand,
-and walk by exact rule. We may fancy the effect of such
-a discipline upon our wild child. The fleet deer of the
-mountain penned, the free bird of the air caged, was
-nothing to this wild child of sea and land confined! At
-first she was anxious to go; for all children like change;
-but at the first visit of her guardian, whom with her confiding
-nature she already loved, she sprang upon his lap,
-threw her arms around his neck, entreated, prayed, wept
-to be taken away; and when she found her vehement
-solicitations vain, she passionately dashed her hand into
-his face, called him an evil spirit, sprang from his arms,
-and threw herself face downward flat upon the floor;
-called the good sisterhood a pack of witches, with Hecate
-at their head, and threatened to starve herself to death,
-as the partridge did she tried to tame once; and so, by
-this conduct, got herself into disgrace for a week. There
-is great adaptativeness in childhood, and in time our
-little girl became reconciled to her convent, especially as
-the gentle nuns took an affectionate interest in civilizing
-the little barbarian, who, notwithstanding her faults,
-drew all hearts to herself. The effect of this conventual
-education was altogether good. It cultivated and directed
-the powers of her intellect and moral sense, and
-taught her to control the almost savage strength and
-daring of her passionate and energetic nature. But she
-left the convent distinguished by the same inflexibility
-of will with which she had entered its walls. By the will
-of her adopted father she was not to marry until she
-had attained the age of twenty-one, and though then
-her choice was not absolutely controlled, it was directed
-to her guardian. It was upon this account, and to seclude
-her from society and the chance of forming another
-attachment, that, despite the conscientious expostulations
-of the Mother Superior, he left her boarding
-at the convent until she had nearly reached her twentieth
-birthday. About that time Miss Seabright became
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_219'>219</span>inspired with a desire to see the world—not society, but
-the earth and all thereon; so, without asking any favors,
-she expressed her will to leave the convent and travel for
-a year. This proposition well suited the views of her
-guardian, as it obviated the awkward necessity of leaving
-her in the convent, or the impolitic alternative of introducing
-her into society, and gave him an admirable opportunity
-of pressing his suit, and even imposing upon
-her the inevitable propriety of accepting him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They made the tour of Europe together, journeying
-over the kindred soil of Old England, the “sunny land”
-of France, the old chivalric mountains of Spain, the
-classic plains of Italy and Greece, the Alpine precipices
-of Switzerland; along the forest, rock, and castle-shadowed
-rivers of Germany; over the snow-clad plains of
-Russia, and thence down amid the mosques and seraglios
-of Turkey. By Mr. Hardcastle’s position and connection
-in America, and his letters of presentation to our
-ministers abroad, he might have obtained introduction
-for himself and ward into the best society of every capital
-in Europe, but it did not suit his policy to do so. And
-even when her love of travel was somewhat sated, and
-Miss Seabright expressed a desire to enter the world of
-society, he put her off from time to time with various
-excuses. As her wish to mingle with the world was not
-very strong, she did not insist. And thus at the end of
-thirteen months’ travel in Europe Miss Seabright set out
-on her return home as “innocent of the knowledge” of
-the world as when she had left her convent walls. She
-had had the opportunity of studying deeply but one
-specimen of human nature, and him she had well learned—her
-guardian and traveling companion, Lionel Hardcastle.
-Repeatedly had he pressed his suit, and eloquently
-had he pleaded the passion with which his recent
-intimate association with the unique and beautiful
-girl had inspired him. And repeatedly, amid protestations
-of gratitude and friendship, had she lamented her
-utter inability to meet his love. He bided his time!</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was in this relative position that the guardian and
-ward returned to Mount Calm early in the spring of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_220'>220</span>18—. Miss Seabright had indulged her love of luxury
-with the purchase of elegant furniture in France. These
-had been transported to Mount Calm, where the mansion
-house had been superbly fitted up for the reception
-of its young mistress.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was then a fine day in the month of March that Miss
-Seabright sat in her library, awaiting the arrival of her
-guardian.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Lionel Hardcastle!” announced a servant,
-throwing open the door. Miss Seabright seated herself
-before the library table, and Mr. Lionel Hardcastle entered
-the library, accompanied by old Mr. Hardcastle, his
-father, and a lawyer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A half hour was occupied in the reading and transferring
-of certain documents, of which the lawyer finally
-took charge.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then the gentlemen got up to take leave. Miss Seabright
-also arose, to dismiss them; but when she saw
-that Lionel Hardcastle was about to bow the others out
-with the purpose of remaining himself, she courteously
-advanced, and invited them all to remain and dine. A
-quick telegraphic look from Lionel Hardcastle to his
-father arrested the old gentleman’s intention of accepting,
-so that, excusing himself, he took leave and withdrew,
-followed by the lawyer. Miss Seabright also followed,
-with the intention of leaving the library, but
-Lionel Hardcastle intercepted her purpose by bowing
-the gentlemen out, and closing the door after them.
-Miss Seabright retreated to the library table, where she
-stood erect, with one hand resting upon the table, and
-with her fiery eyes concentrating all their rays into a
-burning focus in the gaze she fixed upon his face. Yet
-he winced not; but advancing calmly toward her, said:
-“That attitude and gaze, Miss Seabright, would remind
-me that my authority as your guardian ceases from this
-hour.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Without referring to that circumstance, Mr. Hardcastle,
-I would only plead excessive weariness of this
-room, and to be excused for the remainder of the day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You do not look in the least fatigued; and just now
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_221'>221</span>you even invited my father and your lawyer to remain
-and dine with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And extended the same invitation to yourself; which
-I now repeat. Will you now accept it, and excuse me
-for an hour’s repose until dinner time?” she asked
-calmly—calmly, yet he could see by those dark eyes,
-which blazed and darkened under their heavy lids like
-a flashing and expiring flame, that under that quiet exterior,
-volcanic passion stirred, threatening every instant
-to break out in destroying fury, and only restrained by
-the force of her own will and the power of her own moral
-sense.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He folded his arms, and gazed on her; his look was
-resolved, his face was ashen pale, all the strength and
-fire of his nature seemed concentrated and burning in
-his eyes, and in the gaze he fixed upon her face. He
-answered, slowly, “No, Miss Seabright; there is no repose
-for me, shall be none for you, until you hear me.
-I will not leave this room, nor suffer you to leave it, until
-you hear me. Hitherto you have disregarded your
-benefactor’s expressed will and wishes, contemned my
-claims, despised my love.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your ‘love’? Is yours the language or the deportment
-of love?” she asked, in the deep, stern tone of suppressed
-indignation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>His manner suddenly changed; and from insolent and
-threatening, became submissive and deprecating. He
-dashed his hands suddenly against his forehead, then
-threw himself at her feet, seized her hands and dropping
-his head upon them, almost wept, exclaiming: “No, no,
-Garnet! mine were not the words or acts of love, but of
-‘love to frenzy driven.’ I forswear them. Pardon me,
-pardon me. Garnet, I love you! I adore you! I worship
-you! Not that you have beauty, grace, genius—all
-these I have seen in other women, with an undisturbed
-heart—but there is a unique power in your look that
-draws me to you; there is a fire in your soul and in your
-eyes that draws me to you as the sun attracts the earth.
-Daughter of the sun you are indeed, with all his reddish
-rays concentrated in your being, as in the burning gem,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_222'>222</span>your family namesake. Garnet, oh, Garnet, I rave still,
-and more insanely than before. Garnet, restore peace,
-calmness, self-possession, and reason to my soul! Give
-your peerless self to me! Be my salvation! Speak to
-me! Answer me! Say something, oh, dear Garnet!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her lightning anger, quick to subside as to flash forth,
-had died away. As he held her hands, kissing them and
-almost weeping over them, she answered, in a low voice:
-“Alas! Mr. Hardcastle, what shall I say? What can I
-say, that I have not said with pain before this? I feel
-honored by your esteem; I feel grateful for your love;
-I feel humbled that I cannot return it. It is no disparagement
-to you—it is a misfortune, perhaps, to me—that
-I cannot do so. One cannot always admire what
-may be admirable, or esteem what may be estimable, still
-less can they always love what is lovable. Yet I am disposed
-to entertain a profound friendship for you. My
-dear guardian, cease then to torment yourself and me
-farther with this question. I cannot marry,” she said,
-gently but firmly, as she sank into the chair behind her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Cannot marry!” he repeated, rising and throwing
-himself upon a sofa near her. “Cannot marry! Have
-you then made a vow of celibacy? Has your convent
-education imbued you with that notion?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; Heaven forbid! I have formed no resolution of
-leading a single life. I should not be happy in such a
-destiny, should not even if I were already blessed with
-father and mother, sisters and brothers, cousins and
-friends—how could I possibly expect to be, standing perfectly
-alone as I do? I have a sisterly affection for you—not
-love! There be many affections; but only one love!
-only one—marriage.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He had restrained himself as long as it was possible to
-do so. He now started from the sofa where he had reclined,
-watching her with pale cheeks and burning gaze,
-and, starting toward her with clenched fist, he exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, haughty girl, you speak truth; there is but one
-marriage—for you! You are compelled to marry me!
-The world expects it of you. Is not the will of your
-benefactor known? Are we not generally supposed to be
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_223'>223</span>betrothed? Did we not make the tour of Europe alone
-together? The world expects you to marry me. And
-you will forever lose the respect of the world by failing
-to do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her brow crimsoned, her eyes blazed. She arose to
-her feet and answered slowly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I would rather lose the respect of the world by
-rejecting you than deserve to lose it by accepting you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fool! Have you no regard for your reputation?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; but think it wrong to secure good reputation at
-the expense of good character.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What paradox, what nonsense is that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! they are not synonymous terms, character and
-reputation; on earth they never have been, on earth they
-never will be. Often they are antagonistic words.
-Many of the heroes and martyrs of history, the demigods
-of our adoration, were men of the best characters, with—while
-they lived—the worst reputations.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then you have no respect for the good opinion of
-the world?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes! my aspiring heart! too much, I fear, for my
-soul’s good; and I know, I know by all the glorious
-gifts of Heaven to me, I know by all my mighty power
-for good or ill, by all my absolute unswerving will to
-good, I know that I have a right and title, Heaven-patented,
-not to the passive good opinion, but to the
-honor, the co-operation of the world.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I tell you, haughty woman, as you stand here
-a very goddess of pride, I tell you as you stand here beneath
-these halls, where you should never have stood,
-invested with all this power, that you should never have
-possessed, armed with the might of vast wealth and of
-high talent, arrayed in the magic charms of young
-womanhood and perfect beauty—I tell you, that you are
-now—naught that you will be, unless you marry me—a
-suspected, proscribed, banned, outcast woman!” He
-expected this to overwhelm her. But she turned her
-large, dark, solemn eyes, solemn now with prophetic inspiration,
-upon him, and inquired calmly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_224'>224</span>“Listen, girl. You are ambitious, arrogant, scornful.
-Yet a few words from me will subdue all that, by showing
-you that you are obliged to marry me. Attend! we
-made the tour of Europe alone together, putting up at
-the same hotels, having a common parlor, a common
-table, a common carriage——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, sir! That is easily understood in guardian and
-ward.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not when the guardian is a man of thirty-seven and
-the ward a girl of twenty; not when</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“‘Both are young and one is beautiful,’”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>he added sneeringly. “Often, you know it, we were
-mistaken for a married pair——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And for brother and sister,” she added, the blood
-mounting to her brow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Which we were not. Now attend! All that familiarity
-may be understood in a guardian and ward,
-who are, besides, known to be betrothed to each other,
-and who keep their tacit promise to society by marriage.
-Now, listen! if you should not consent to marry me——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I do not! I will not. There is no if.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then all your beauty, wealth, and talent, with all the
-power they give you, avail you nothing. You are an
-outcast!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She dropped into her chair again, she paled even to
-her lips, the fire died out of her eyes, and even from
-every lurid ring of her dark, bright hair. He gazed at
-her ironically, saying slowly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! you do not care for the opinion of the world.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do I not?” she exclaimed, with sudden and impassioned
-energy, “do I not aspire to the honor of all the
-world? Do I not know and feel by all that I am and
-have, and by all that I purpose to do and to be, that I
-have a God-given patent to such honor? Has not my
-soul prophesied it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I repeat to you, haughty woman, that unless
-you marry me, you will not have it. Your powers are
-all paralyzed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_225'>225</span>She dropped her hands upon her lap, her head upon
-her bosom, in the collapse of despair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! trapped, palsied, helpless!” he exclaimed exultingly.
-“Where is now your vaunted independence?
-your pride? your scorn? Gone! quite gone! Why, so
-much the better. You will make the better wife for the
-loss of that. Come, Garnet, I love you; could worship
-your beauty, sometimes, only that it seems to spoil you;
-come, I love you. Let us cease this absurd quarrel and
-be friends. Come, do not look so despairingly. Harsh
-and stern as I may be when threatened with your loss, I
-shall not make such a bad husband. And for the rest—bless
-me, girl, you know my family and my standing—shall
-I be such a very ill match for General Garnet’s——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He paused, and she raised her deathlike brow, and,
-wiping the cold drops of sweat from its pallid surface,
-said slowly, and with profound sadness:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh-h-h! You miserably misconceive my grief. It
-is this that overwhelms me; it is the thought of
-your——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Villainy! Speak out, I will relieve you!” he said
-sarcastically.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I did not mean to use the word.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Policy, then! for it was no more nor less; only
-finish.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is this, then, that crushes me with sorrow—the
-knowledge that you, my only protector, who should have
-warned my inexperience against the least social mistake,
-and shielded my good name from the slightest chance of
-injury; that you, my guardian, having perfect authority
-over me, and indisputable control of all my actions; that
-you, my friend, having my perfect confidence and affection,
-that you should have abused that authority, betrayed
-that confidence, and wounded that affection by
-leading me into a course of conduct pre-calculated, pre-contrived,
-to fetter my choice in woman’s dearest privilege,
-or to blast my fair fame and palsy my powers of
-usefulness forever!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Rave on! be abusive, scornful, insulting as you please.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_226'>226</span>But I tell you, arrogant woman, that he whom you
-abuse, insult, and scorn will be your husband yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And I tell you, insolent man!” she exclaimed, starting
-to her feet with all the fire of her nature burning in
-her cheeks, and blazing in her eyes, “I tell you that,
-wronged, suspected, proscribed, outcast as I may be; and
-add to that, poor, friendless, ill, persecuted, desolate as I
-may be, I could not fall so low as to become the wife of
-the wretch you are. I repel your pretensions with scorn
-and loathing. Begone!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He gazed at her in speechless amazement. Was this
-incarnate storm, his ward? the dignified, self-restraining,
-self-governing Miss Seabright? Yes, the violent passions
-of her nature, restrained for many years, had now burst
-the bonds of moral power. The volcanic tide of fire that
-had ebbed and flowed, and been repressed through all
-this scene, had now broken forth in appalling power.
-Her form was erect—her nostrils dilated—her brow
-was crimson, her eyes blazed and darkened, and blazed
-and darkened with terrific rapidity.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Begone!” she thundered; “out of my sight, or by the
-Heaven that made me, I will summon my slaves and
-have you thrust forth with contumely from my gates!”
-Her hand was on the bell, her insane purpose was indubitable.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With a gesture of desperation he rushed from the
-room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She gazed after him until he had closed the door.
-She stood motionless a long, long time, while the tide of
-fire ebbed; then, sinking with the reaction of the exhaustion
-and self-reproach, she covered her face with
-her hands, murmuring in heart-broken tones, “God pity
-me! God forgive me! What a nature is mine! With
-a heart and bosom torn, tortured, convulsed by storms
-of ferocious anger, scorn, and pride, yet with a spirit
-brooding highly, calmly over all—as above the clouds,
-and thunder, and lightning of the earth shine the holy
-stars of heaven.”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <span class='pageno' id='Page_227'>227</span>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVI.<br> <span class='large'>LIGHT ON THE ISLAND.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Her wretched brain gave way,</div>
- <div class='line'>And she became a wreck at random driven,</div>
- <div class='line'>Without one glimpse of reason or of Heaven.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>Long remained Miss Seabright with her head bowed
-upon her hand in bitter thought. Twice a servant came
-and announced dinner without her seeing or hearing
-him. The third time, when he approached and spoke
-close to her ear, she raised her head languidly and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ask Miss Joe to dine without me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And when Miss Joe herself came in with anxious inquiries
-about her health, and affectionate offers of tea
-and toast and jellies, she answered, with a bitter smile:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, be easy, dear friend; a little fasting will not hurt
-my flesh and blood!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Day waned, and still she maintained her silent and
-thoughtful posture. Night came, and a servant entered
-with candles. The glare of light aroused her, and, looking
-up, she saw the dark face of the man turned ashen
-gray with fear. “What is the matter, Cæsar?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Light on de island, miss; you kin see it plain as star
-a-shinin’!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Light on the island? Well, I will go and see myself.
-Where can this light be seen from?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“From the garret window, miss, sure as you’re born.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Go on before me,” she said, rising from her recumbent
-posture, and following the man up the several
-flight of stairs to the attic.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Arrived there, in the very front room where Elsie had
-been a prisoner on the last night of her stay at Mount
-Calm, they paused.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright advanced to the window, threw it up,
-and looked out at the clear, brilliant, starlight night.
-There was not a breath of wind stirring. The air was
-still and cold. The rolling hills and plains white with
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_228'>228</span>snow, and intersected only by the belt of forest around
-the foot of Mount Calm, reached silently on to the dark
-boundary of the sea.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, I see no light at sea; none anywhere except
-the myriad lights of stars in heaven!” said Miss Seabright,
-letting down the window.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Bress your soul, miss, no more you can’t; leastwise
-you puts out de candle and looks t’rough the spyglass!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, here’s a fellow who, not having causes of trouble
-enough near him, must put out the light and take a
-telescope to find out distant ones! Well, set the candle
-outside the door, and give me the glass.” And taking
-the telescope she went again to the window and hoisted
-it. “Yes,” she said, after taking sight, “yes, there is
-a light shining still and clear, and apparently fixed near
-the ruins of the old lodge!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, it can be seen plain as possible from the village,”
-said Miss Joe, who now entered, followed by other members
-of the household.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright closed the window, and, turning to the
-assembled group, said, with her singular smile:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, now, this is really a very small affair for conjecture,
-and could interest none but a country family in
-the depth of winter. Let us go downstairs. It is probably
-some poor, lone soul, who, having no shelter, has
-put together the ruins of the old lodge and lives there
-and supports himself by fishing and shooting.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Miss Joe, “that might be well enough,
-and nobody thinks nothing of it, only you see, honey, the
-folks from the village have been over on the island in
-the broad daytime searching, and they can’t find the
-leastest signs of human habitations; the poor, dear old
-lodge is more tumble-downder than ever, as in course
-it must naturally be every winter, with no one to keep the
-dear, old crippled thing on its legs. Lord, child, the
-neighbors from Huttontown found all so desolute that
-the very stars of heaven were shining down into the water
-collected in the cellar. No roof, no chimneys, no floors
-even; nothing but the lonesome, desolute walls and the
-stagnant cellar. They didn’t find anybody, nor any sign
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_229'>229</span>of anybody, though they searched all over the island—but,
-mind, that was at sunset, and that night about dark
-the light blazed up there as bright as ever!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why did not the neighbors go and search then?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“They did. They got into the boats and rowed
-straight back, watching the ghostly light all the time,
-and just afore they landed it was out.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Did they carry a light in their boats?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Certain.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then the great problem is solved. It was some fugitive
-slave, a refugee on the island, who, seeing the approach
-of the boats by the lights they carried, extinguished
-his light and concealed himself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“As if he could. Lor’, child, where could he hide
-away on that island? All plain and bare, and bleak as it
-is; no bit o’ woods, no hollow; nothing but the outside
-walls o’ the old lodge, with its cellar full o’ water, and
-the lonesome, bare trees standin’ far apart like ghosts.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“True, very true; there is not a hiding place possible
-on the island. But I cling to the thought of the fugitive
-refugee, who, seeing the invaders, probably extinguished
-his light and took boat for the open sea.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, honey, that w’a’nt it. Bless you, they thought of
-that at once, and lit more pine knots, and separated, and
-run all around the coast of the little islet, and flashed
-their lights about, and couldn’t see sign of a boat on the
-waters.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then I am at the end of conjecture. Come, let us
-go down. It is cold up here. Take up the candle,
-Cæsar,” said Miss Seabright, turning to go from the
-room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, let’s go down; it is so cold up here. And supper’s
-ready in the little red parlor. That’s what I come
-to tell you, when these niggers all followed me. I told
-Milly, long as you hadn’t eat any dinner, and felt sort o’
-low spirited, to get supper airly, and br’il a pair of
-pa’tridges. A cup o’ good, strong Young Hyson tea,
-with light biscuits and br’iled pa’tridges, is very good for
-lowness o’ spirits. I knows it, ’cause I’ve tried it myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_230'>230</span>They hurried through the bleak passages, and downstairs.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright, preceded by the servant bearing the
-candle, and followed by the old lady, entered the parlor.
-The comfortable little parlor, with its thick carpet, heavy
-curtains, soft sofa, bright fire, and elegant tea-table,
-was certainly a specific for mere low spirits. The old
-lady bustled past Garnet, and set the urn upon the table,
-burning her fingers slightly, and rubbing them, while
-she exclaimed cheerily:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There now, sit down. As there’s no one here but
-you and me, you know, you can draw the end of the
-sofy to the table and loll on that, while I pour out your
-tea and butter you a biscuit. Cæsar, you cut up that
-pa’tridge for your young mist’ess—not that one, you
-stupid creetur! t’other one, it’s the plumpest. Now you
-see, honey, the maids have got through their day’s work,
-for a wonder, and I have got time to stay in the parlor
-and enjoy myself ’long o’ you. And so we’ll have a
-jolly good evening; you can loll on the sofa and enjoy
-yourself with your low spirits and cologne bottle—only
-don’t waste it—and I can sit here and patch my old
-gown, and talk about old times.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet looked at the good-natured face of the old
-lady, and felt compunction for the answer she was about
-to make.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I am sorry to spoil the plan of your evening’s entertainment,
-Miss Joe, but I am going to explore Hutton’s
-Island to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Going to explore Hutton’s Island to-night!” exclaimed
-Miss Joe, dropping knife and fork, and staring
-at her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The Lord have mercy upon her! I’ve been havin’
-of my misgivin’s all this time, but now I know she’s a
-little deranged!” said Miss Joe to herself. Then speaking
-aloud, in something of the tone one would take in
-addressing a sick and delirious child, “No, no, honey,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_231'>231</span>don’t think of it! You’re sick, you know, and it is cold
-and dark and dangerous. Then, it isn’t proper for a
-young lady to do such a thing, anyhow!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright smiled a queer smile, as she replied:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For the first objections, my good old friend, cowardice
-is not one of my weaknesses; for the last”—she
-paused and her smile deepened in meaning—“I made a
-start in life by quite innocently perpetrating a heinous,
-a fatal—crime? no, impropriety! I broke no law of God
-or man; yet I am told that for all that I shall be banished
-from society unless I do commit a sin, in open
-day, in the face of society; who will then forgive
-me!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mad! mad!” said Miss Joe to herself, gazing at the
-ironical girl.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well!</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“‘What’s <i>banished</i> but yet free?’</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>I will do whatever I please—conventional or unconventional!
-I will break no law of God’s or man’s, and
-after that is said, all is said for me. For the rest, I will
-do whatever my spirit impels me to do, whether the
-world likes it or not!” said Garnet, speaking more to
-herself than to another, and rising and ringing the bell.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mad! mad! mad! and getting worse every minute,”
-said Miss Joe, hurrying out, and hastening into the front
-hall, where Cæsar was lighting the lamp.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Cæsar, come here to me, quick—close. Hush! don’t
-say anything. Go as hard as you can to Hemlock Hollow,
-and tell Mr. Lionel Hardcastle how he must come
-as fast as possible here; how he’s wanted badly, very
-badly. Hurry—mount a fast horse, and go as quick as
-ever you can!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The man, with his eyes staring wide, ran to obey. Miss
-Joe then returned to the parlor, where she found Garnet
-giving directions to a servant to have two horses saddled,
-and prepare himself to attend her down to the
-shore. Miss Seabright was giving her orders with so
-much calmness and precision that the old lady thought
-she had a lucid interval in her madness, and that this
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_232'>232</span>afforded her an excellent opportunity for argument; so,
-as soon as the man retired, she said coaxingly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear child, think of it!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do, Miss Joe; and the more I think of it the more
-I want to go. I am determined to vary the tedious
-monotony of my days with a little adventure!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear child, you have heard of the fate of Agnes!
-How she was either murdered or carried off from that
-island by unknown ruffians!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I heard long ago of her mysterious disappearance,
-Miss Joe, and I always thought, and think now, that in
-her deep despair for the sudden loss of her husband she
-drowned herself. I think so the more that never before
-or since that strange occurrence, has any outrage been
-attempted on the island. Think of the years we lived
-there alone with nothing to disturb our quiet. Why,
-often in the fond superstition of my childhood, when
-I have waked up in the night, have I risen and gone out
-into the starlight, and rambled all over the isle in the
-hope of surprising the fairies at their midnight revels!
-Well, if I never found them, I never found anything
-worse. No, Miss Joe, there is no danger. If there were,
-I do not know the fear of it. That solitary light on the
-isle belongs to some solitary wretch, poorer and more
-friendless even than we were; one whose misfortunes or
-crimes make him dread and shun the approach of his
-fellow-men; one whom I do not fear to seek; one whom,
-if I find, I shall try to relieve. And I will tell you, if
-that will ease your kind anxiety upon my account, I will
-direct Pompey to take a pair of pistols.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As she finished speaking a servant appeared at the
-door, and announced that the horses were ready.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She left the parlor, and soon returned prepared for
-her ride, and immediately set out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe fidgeted up and down the hall in great disturbance
-of mind. In about ten minutes after Miss Seabright
-had left the house the quick trampling of horses
-announced the arrival of Lionel Hardcastle. He hurried
-into the house, booted and spurred as he was, and
-asked rapidly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_233'>233</span>“Where is Miss Seabright? Has she sent for me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, sir; no. It was me that sent for you. Come
-here—here in the parlor, sir. I have got something
-terrible to tell you. Shut the door.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He followed her into the parlor, closing the door as
-requested, and stared with astonishment at the old lady’s
-excited countenance, while with rapid enunciation she
-related all that had happened just before and since his
-visit in the forenoon. Miss Seabright’s excited manner,
-her mad resolution of going that night to Hutton’s Island
-to find out about the light, and above all her “real
-crazy” talking about committing a sin before the world
-in order “to keep in long o’ the world.” Mr. Hardcastle
-listened with a sarcastic smile until he heard of
-her night expedition; then his sinister face lighted up
-with demoniac joy, to conceal which he quickly averted
-his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha! with only one attendant, say you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“With no one, sir, but Pomp—sure as you’re born.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I must instantly go after her then.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, do, sir! do hurry!” said Miss Joe, and in five
-minutes more Lionel Hardcastle, with the dark and
-lowering brow of a fiend hidden by the night, was galloping
-swiftly toward the coast, muttering in his heart:
-“Now, scornful girl, shall my love and vengeance both
-be sated!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the meantime Garnet had reached the shore at
-which the Mount Calm fleet of boats were chained—boats
-of all sizes, from the long skiff to the twelve-oared
-canoe and the sail-boat. She entered the smallest of the
-skiffs, followed by Pompey, who immediately unlocked
-the chain, took the single oar, and pushed off from the
-sandy beach. The bay was perfectly smooth, and reflected
-the dark, resplendent sky, with its myriads beyond
-myriads of shining lights so distinctly that the
-little skiff seemed to glide among the stars as it sped
-over the waters. Soon before then lay Hutton’s Island,
-like a darker line upon the sea. And there, like a single
-star, shone the solitary light! Yet so much deeper was
-Garnet’s love of nature than of adventure, that she delivered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_234'>234</span>herself up to intense enjoyment of the starlight
-night on the waters, forgetful of her errand, until the
-slight shock of the skiff, touching upon the strand of
-the island, aroused her from her trance. Then, when
-she looked up, the light on the isle was gone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“That is very provoking! Now who would have
-thought that darkly and silently as we came we should
-have been perceived? However, light your pine knot,
-Pompey, and come along.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Pompey had been selected as her attendant in this expedition
-by Miss Seabright, as being the least superstitious
-and cowardly of all her men, yet now the namesake
-of “The Invincible” shrank back in dread, muttering:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Indeed, indeed, miss, you’d better not!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Pompey! whoever the dweller on this isle is, it is
-some poor wretch, more worthy of our pity than of our
-fear; weak and timid, since it watches and hides from
-even such harmless visitors as we. Come along!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“’Deed—’deed, miss, that aint good reasonin’! ’Deed,
-’fore my Heavenly Marster, aint, miss. ’Deed—’deed—’deed—’deed——”
-muttered Pompey, his teeth chattering,
-until he lost his voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Give me the torch then, Pompey; I will go before.
-You may follow me as distantly as you please, and run
-at the first alarm!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think that would be the mos’ safes’, miss; caze dey
-wouldn’t be so apt to shoot a young lady, miss, as they
-would to shoot a colored gemman ob my siteration in
-deciety.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Without hearing Pompey’s compromise with his cowardice
-and his conscience, Miss Seabright, torch in hand,
-walked up the gradually ascending rise of ground to the
-ruins of the old lodge. From being so long out in the
-night her eyes had become accustomed to it, so that now,
-under the brilliant starlight, the scene was distinctly,
-though darkly, before her—the ruin, the isle, and the sea.
-No sign of fence or outhouse could be seen as she approached
-the ruined lodge, whose skeleton walls stood
-up square around what seemed a deep, stagnant pond,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_235'>235</span>whose stillness was drearily broken by the plunge of some
-toad, snake, or other loathsome reptile. Blinded or
-scared by the glare of the torch, bats flitted to and fro
-about the ruined walls, water rats ran in and out among
-the broken stones, and plunged into the stagnant waters,
-and lastly, a huge screech-owl took flight from the
-blasted tree by the fallen chimney, “making night hideous”
-with his yells. Profoundly saddened by seeing the
-beloved home of her wild childhood so desolate, Garnet
-turned silently away, and passing mournfully over the
-bleak ground, reached the strand. Then passing slowly
-all around the beach, she looked out upon the waters in
-search of any stray boat that might contain the supposed
-fugitive of the isle. As far as the eye could reach
-no sign of a boat could be seen. She then turned inland—if
-the tiny isle could be said to have an inland—and
-searched carefully about, walking around every specterlike
-tree standing far apart on the bare, bleak island, and
-quite incapable after all of concealing the smallest possible
-fugitive in the human shape. But she looked around
-and up into them, as I have seen men look under candlesticks
-and into tiny drawers for their missing hats, umbrellas,
-and boot-jacks! After her thorough search was
-quite over she turned to her attendant, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I am disappointed. There is positively no one
-here, and the mystery of the island light is still unsolved.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her attendant did not answer. Thinking that he was
-still under the influence of fear, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, Pompey, we are as safe and as quiet here as I
-was when I lived here with Aunt Joe and Hugh.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Still her follower did not speak, but rather lingered
-behind her, and she herself relapsed into silence, and fell
-into a reverie, until she arrived at the farthest extremity
-of the isle, opposite to that on which she had landed.
-This was the northwestern point of the island, and the
-same beach upon which she and the sole companion of
-her childhood, Hugh, used to pick maninosies. Here,
-as she walked about watching the starlit waves break
-gently on the beach, noting the numerous perforations,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_236'>236</span>where the maninosies had buried themselves in the sand,
-the tide of memory rolled back, overwhelming the apprehension
-of the present. She saw herself, a tiny,
-sprite-like child, stealing out on starlight nights, and
-sitting on the pile of rocks, on this very spot, watching
-in fond faith for the swimming of the nereids, and mistaking
-the reflection of some purple cloud, high up in the
-heavens, for the royal robe of Amphytrite in the “deep,
-deep sea.” She saw herself again in the daytime, when
-the setting sun, like Macbeth’s blood-crimsoned hand,
-would</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“The multitudinous seas incarnadine,</div>
- <div class='line'>Making the green one red!”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>she saw herself well shod and warmly clothed, and Hugh,
-the manly boy, barefooted, bareheaded, and coarsely
-clad, yet grandly handsome “as Hercules ere his first
-labor!” Hugh, with his noble look and noble nature;
-and she smiled to think of the high faith, and hope, and
-love that irradiated his fine countenance, as he confidently
-promised to make a fortune for her, his sister; to
-get wealth, rank, honor for her! And the tears rolled
-down Garnet’s cheeks, as she thought of the glorious
-boy, and thought how many, many years it had been
-since she had even inquired his residence or his destiny.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“He thought,” she said, speaking to herself in a low self-communing
-voice, “he thought to have made a fortune
-before me—to have conferred wealth, rank, honor
-upon me! The case might be reversed—it might! oh!
-I wish it could! There is only one way in which it
-could, and that is not impossible, though remote. This
-dream that I have enshrined within my heart—this ideal
-of goodness and greatness with which only I will unite—this
-I owe to Hugh. And oh! if he has fulfilled in his
-manhood the glorious promise of his boyhood, whatever
-his external fate may be, if he has fulfilled in himself the
-promise of matured goodness and greatness—then——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What then?” said a deep voice at her elbow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She started slightly, and exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My guardian!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_237'>237</span>“Yes, Miss Seabright, your guardian; who never
-found you more in need of his guardianship than at
-present.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sir! why have you followed me here?—where is my
-servant?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Having come upon him, cowering, several yards behind
-you, I took the liberty of sending him back to the
-mainland, by the boat in which you came!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet’s eyes began to blaze and darken with fearful
-rapidity. Yet repressing the mounting fire of anger, she
-strove to ask calmly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And why did you ‘take the liberty’ of sending my
-servant away, sir? And why have you further presumed
-to break upon my privacy?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“One question at a time, if you please, Miss Seabright.
-I sent your servant away that I might have the pleasure
-of a private interview. I break upon your solitude for
-the furtherance of the same purpose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And your object, sir?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To come to a full and final reckoning with you!”
-he said, his manner suddenly becoming threatening.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet pressed both hands upon her bosom, to restrain
-its violent throbbings, and answered slowly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I thought, sir, that our last interview, of only this
-morning, had finally settled all between us? Upon that
-occasion I told you some harsh truths—and with some
-violence, which I regret; feeling sorry that the honest
-verdict of my head and heart should not have been delivered
-with more temperance.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And which you shall more deeply regret before we
-part, scornful girl.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her eyes blazed wide and full, like sudden meteors,
-and then fell into darkness, as she replied, with constrained
-calmness:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I pray you, sir, do not provoke me. I am subject
-to anger, as other people are to ague and fever.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha, ha, ha! Is that meant for an appeal or for a
-threat? If for an appeal, I am not subject to magnanimity,
-as other people are to insanity!—if for a threat,
-how ridiculous! Be angry—furious—violent! What
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_238'>238</span>can you do now? Why, thou foolish girl, thou art completely
-in my power.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In your power! Not so, insolent creature, ‘whom it
-were base flattery to call a man’; there are no circumstances
-whatever that could put me in your power.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, you absurd woman! look around you. Deep
-and silent night hangs over the world. You stand alone
-with me upon a barren, uninhabited, sea-girt isle. How
-far off do you suppose the nearest human being is from
-us? How loud a shriek from this lone spot could raise
-the distant sleepers of the mainland from their beds?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet raised her proud head to give some indignant
-answer, but meeting the gaze of her companion, the
-burning, scathing anger of her reply froze in horror ere
-it passed her lips—for never did night lower over a countenance
-darker, more dreadful with demoniacal malignity
-of purpose. Garnet turned her eyes from the baleful
-glare of Hardcastle to throw them over the lone and
-desert isle on which they stood, and for the first time
-a sense of the appalling danger of her situation swam
-in upon her brain, and for a moment nearly overwhelmed
-her. His countenance lighted up with a fiendish
-triumph. He continued:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, Miss Seabright. Yes, Garnet. You have read
-my look and purpose aright. This night must you and
-I come to a reckoning. This hour, haughty girl, shall
-your pride be humbled. To-day you rejected my hand
-with scorn. To-morrow shall you sue for it as for life.
-Ha! already my triumph begins. You grow pale,
-lady.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No!—pale? If my cheek did so belie my soul as to
-grow pale before a wretch like you, by my soul, I would
-paint it black for the rest of my life, and sell myself to
-base servitude as being too low for any other sphere.
-Oh, sir! the sudden revelation of your enormous wickedness
-shocked me for a single instant, as if I had unexpectedly
-been confronted with the foul fiend—that was
-all! And now I tell you that even on this lone sea isle
-I do not feel myself to be in your power. I am not the
-least afraid of you! Afraid of you? I am afraid of nothing.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_239'>239</span>I do not know the word. I never did know it; and
-it is not likely that you can teach it to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“By Heaven, she defies me even here!” exclaimed
-Hardcastle, pale with rage, and striding toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes,” said Garnet, recoiling a step or two, and standing
-upon the fragment of rock where she had so often
-sat in childhood; “yes,” she said, reverently raising her
-eyes and hand, “by Heaven, I do defy you! Under the
-protection of Heaven, in the name of Heaven, I do defy
-you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Thou fool! Why, what shall
-hinder me now from refuting you and taking my revenge?”
-he said, again striding toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Off! A parley, I say! Listen to me a moment.
-God! myself! yourself shall hinder you. Mr. Hardcastle,
-I have this hour conquered a greater and stronger adversary
-than yourself—even mine own spirit! I have
-overcome my anger; I have the lion of my temper
-chained beneath my feet. And now, to put you down
-will be a much lighter task—much easier victory. And I
-tell you now, in coolness, what I told you before in heat,
-that I am not afraid of you. Nor shall you falsely take
-the tone toward me of one who has the advantage. I
-know you, Mr. Hardcastle. And I know your present
-evil scheme by your former revealed treachery. Heaven
-purify my soul from the sin of the knowledge! I know
-that you now think you have me at your mercy, and intend
-to terrify me into making conditions with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the fiend’s name, young woman, what do you
-mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This, to be explicit: You think to fright me, Garnet
-Seabright, into the promise to become your wife, and
-endow you with the broad lands of Mount Calm, upon
-condition of your sparing me, showing mercy to me, and
-taking me safely home to Mount Calm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“By all the demons, girl! I wonder that you should
-dare to give breath to that fear!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not fear!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To that suspicion, then. I am amazed that you
-should venture to place these conditions before me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_240'>240</span>“That I should detect and pluck the villainous scheme
-from your heart, and hold it up before you. Well, I will
-go further in my defiance of you, Mr. Hardcastle, and
-tell you that, threaten what you may, I will never, under
-any circumstances, promise to be your wife. Now, you
-see that I know I am not at your mercy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“By Satan, Miss Seabright, I am thunderstruck at
-your audacity! Girl, you would be but a sparrow in my
-grasp! Who could rescue you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I thank you for the word you used in illustration
-of my weakness. It recalls in good time the words of
-a favorite old volume of mine—a book, perchance, with
-which you have not chanced to meet. Listen! ‘Are not
-two sparrows sold for a farthing? Verily, I say unto you,
-not one of these shall fall to the ground without your
-Father. Are ye not of more value than many sparrows?’
-Heaven pardon me! I should not have quoted Scripture
-here, Mr. Hardcastle. Nevertheless, it helps to make me
-fearless now. Sir, I will tell you once for all why I do
-not fear you. First, because I trust in God. Next, because
-I trust in myself. Finally, because I can somewhat
-trust in you! Cut off as we now are from all communion
-with our fellow-creatures—alone, defenseless, unprotected,
-and at your mercy as I seem—you dare not harm
-me, and I know and feel it! You are not mad or intoxicated;
-therefore, you will not. You are not of a passionate,
-impetuous nature, therefore you will not. You are
-a cold-blooded, clear-headed, calculating, forecasting
-schemer—therefore you will not dare to do me an
-injury that will end in ruin to yourself. You are a gentleman
-by birth, education, and position. You are a gentleman—however
-undeserving of the name—and you will
-not exchange the title for that of—felon! I am under
-the protection of God and of the laws! Lay but your
-hand in insult on me, and by the Heaven that watches
-over us, as soon as I reach the mainland, cost what it may
-to my woman’s heart, for the sake of sacred right will
-I denounce you! Murder me—sink my body in the sea!—the
-crime would still be traced to yourself. We were
-known to have been left here alone.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_241'>241</span>“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! We were
-known to be left here alone together! Ha, ha, ha, ha,
-ha! By none but the negro, and a negro’s evidence is
-not received in any court of law! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha!”
-he laughed, in fiendish triumph. “I have allowed you
-to spring from my hands, and I have listened to your
-talking, only to make game of you. Only as a cat lets
-a mouse run before finally seizing it. But this has lasted
-long enough!” he exclaimed, ferociously springing toward
-her, seizing and hurling her from the rock.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Summoning all her great strength the intrepid girl,
-with a mighty effort, threw him from her, and before
-he could spring upon his prey again the fragment of
-rock near them rolled down the slope to the beach—a
-sudden light glared upon the scene, and a tall woman,
-wildly clad, and waving a torch above her head,
-emerged, and stood before them. The sudden irruption
-of this human being from the bosom of the earth did not
-astonish Garnet as did the look of Lionel Hardcastle.
-Struck pale as death, and statue-still, but for the universal
-tremor that shook his frame, he stood and gazed with
-stony eyes and chattering teeth upon the apparition. At
-last:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Agnes!” he gasped, shaking as with an ague fit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, pirate!—Agnes!” said the woman, approaching
-him slowly, holding the torch above her head; then
-stooping, fixing her eyes intently upon him, and thus
-creeping toward him, as a lioness preparing for a couch
-and spring. She paused before him, and still glaring on
-his face, said very slowly: “So, pirate! we meet again,
-at last! We meet upon the spot of that outrage which
-first separated me from home and country, friends and
-kindred, holiness and heaven! We meet upon this spot
-that you would again desecrate with crime! We meet
-in an hour of retribution! For this have I lived! For
-now that at last I see my mortal foe, never will I lose
-sight of you again until I have put you in the hands of
-justice! Never will I cease to pursue you, until I hunt
-you to the scaffold! Never can I die, until I see you
-dead before me by the death of a felon!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_242'>242</span>While she spoke with such slow tones of settled hatred
-and determined vengeance he held his hand in his bosom.
-As she ceased speaking:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“False prophetess! You die now!” he thundered,
-leveling the pistol he held at her head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She sprang forward, seized his arm, turning the
-weapon aside. They struggled violently for a moment,
-and then the pistol was discharged, and Lionel Hardcastle
-fell, shot through the chest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Frozen with horror Garnet Seabright drew near, and
-stooped over the fallen man. Agnes also bent over her
-prostrate foe for a moment, then turning to Garnet, and
-throwing her wild hair back, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I did not kill him, madam, though if I had ’twould
-have been but just.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The eyes of the dying man flared open once, and fixed
-upon the face of Garnet. Raising himself upon his elbow,
-he said, in low and broken tones:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Forgive me, Garnet—and—believe this!—whatever
-were the hidden sins of my youth—neither piracy nor
-bloodshed were among them! I was a—prisoner among
-them! Ship—wreck—plank—waves—picked up—oh,
-God, forgive me!” His head fell back—he rolled over
-in a mortal struggle, and then grew still in death.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVII.<br> <span class='large'>THE BEEHIVE.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>A cottage where domestic love</div>
- <div class='line'>And truth breathe simple kindness to the heart,</div>
- <div class='line'>Where white-armed children twine the neck of age,</div>
- <div class='line'>Where hospitable cares light up the hearth,</div>
- <div class='line'>Cheering the lonely traveler on his way.</div>
- <div class='line in40'><i>—Gilman.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>“The Beehive” was the name that had been given by
-Elsie to her first backwoods home, and afterward transferred
-by her to the substantial home of hewn rock that
-had replaced the log cabin.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_243'>243</span>It is late in the afternoon of a blustering March day
-that I shall again introduce you into the household of
-Dr. Hardcastle. And it is a large and interesting family
-for which the doctor is now responsible.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>First, there is himself, as glorious a type of manhood
-as ever stood in the exposed outer circle of existence, interposing
-his own body between the storms and cares of
-life and the cowering forms of women and children.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then, there was his pupil, Hugh Hutton—</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c013'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“As tall, as sinewy, and as strong</div>
- <div class='line in2'>As earth’s first kings—the Argo’s gallant sailors;</div>
- <div class='line'>Heroes in history, and gods in song,”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c014'>and bearing, in that genial dignity of form, countenance,
-and manner which was the natural expression of great
-conscious power and goodness, a general resemblance to
-his master.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was Mrs. Garnet, in her simple widow’s dress
-of black silk, with surplice bosom, inside handkerchief,
-and little lace cap—somewhat jaded, yet with her graceful
-form, fair complexion, delicate features, and pensive
-thoughtfulness of expression, presenting a pleasing image
-of the “intellectual system of beauty.” In charming
-contrast to her was her daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle, in
-the full bloom of perfectly developed vital beauty, revealing
-that marriage and maternity had been to her
-healthful, sanguine, and joyous organization, what they
-should be to all women, a continuous accession of new
-life, health, and happiness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She had made no mistake in the calculation of her future.
-Active, bustling, often very laborious her lot had
-been indeed, but suited to her strong and cheerful nature.
-Her life had been guided, besides, by almost
-unerring intelligence, sustained by undying love, and
-cheered by unfailing hope. Anxieties had come, indeed,
-but these had not been suffered to grow into corroding
-cares. Sorrow had visited them, too, but this had not
-been permitted to crush them with despair, or even bow
-them long in despondency. In the second year of their
-married life the Angel of Death had entered their dwelling
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_244'>244</span>and lifted their only child from its mother’s bosom.
-Yes, the firstling of their little flock—the first-born of
-their youthful love, the strong and beautiful child, so
-full of glorious promise, whose health and life seemed
-so secure, who was, besides, so watched and tended—that
-idolized child was borne away from their arms, and
-the hearts of the parents long writhed in the anguish
-of bereavement before they could understand and receive
-the divine message in the infant’s little life and
-death. They had been so independent, so confiding, so
-happy in their earthly lot, so absorbed in their worldly
-plans, that they might never even have lifted their eyes
-to Heaven but for gazing after the soaring wing of their
-cherub; might never have lifted their hearts to Heaven,
-but for yearning after the ascended and glorified child;
-for “where the treasure is, there will the heart be also.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now been married eleven years, and six
-other children claimed their love and care; six children—boys
-and girls—with their ages ranging from one year
-old to nine. They were not rich. They owned the
-homestead, farm, and improvements upon the latter, but
-beyond this they did not possess a thousand dollars. Dr.
-Hardcastle’s practice was very extensive, and very
-profitable to—his patients; not very enriching to himself.
-With a large and growing family, with a strong and
-sympathetic nature, generous heart, and open hand and
-purse, how could Magnus Hardcastle grow rich? Indeed
-he must have been much poorer than he was but
-for the efficient aid of his “woman-kind.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet had gradually assumed to herself the responsibility
-of the needlework of the family.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie did all the housework.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh Hutton constituted himself hewer of wood and
-drawer of water, stock-driver and feeder, gardener, assistant
-nurse and tutor, doctor’s boy, big brother, and
-helper-in-general to the establishment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And he found time, besides, for the systematic and assiduous
-study of medicine, so that within the last year
-he had been dubbed by the neighbors the young doctor
-of the professional firm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_245'>245</span>For the last two years Hugh had spent the winters
-in an Eastern city, attending lectures at the Medical College.
-Upon these occasions he usually left home upon
-the 1st of December and returned upon the 1st of March.
-This was the last winter of his purposed migrations East,
-and his friends at home were expecting his return with
-unusual impatience. The 1st of March had come, however,
-and he had not yet arrived. A letter from him had
-informed his friends that he remained in the city for the
-purpose of presenting himself before the medical board
-of examination as a candidate for a diploma.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The family were now in daily expectation either of his
-arrival or of another letter. It was upon the evening of
-the 7th of March, then, that the commodious family room
-of the house was occupied by Mrs. Garnet and six children
-of Elsie’s. This room was well warmed and lighted
-by a large fire of pine logs in the chimney, and a couple
-of lighted candles upon the mantelpiece. The supper-table
-was set, and supper was ready to be served as soon
-as the doctor should get in from his rounds. It had not
-long to wait; for soon Dr. Hardcastle was seen to ride
-into the yard, dismount, and take off his saddle-bags and
-booted spurs, and, great coated as he was, came into
-the house. As soon as he set foot within the room the
-children swarmed upon him like bees upon a sunflower
-stalk, or the Lilliputians upon Gulliver; and he lifted and
-kissed them one by one, but looking around impatiently
-the while for one he loved even more than all these little
-ones—to wit, the mother. At last:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Where is Elsie, Mrs. Garnet?” he asked.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Gone again; I do wish, Magnus, you would prevent
-her. She makes herself a slave to these poor neighbors
-of hers. I do really think that she has family cares and
-toils enough; and that when she has performed her
-household duties as well as she always does, she might
-consider herself discharged from other social obligations.
-I do wish you would talk to her very seriously about it.
-Now to-day she has had a very fatiguing time indeed; she
-was ironing all the forenoon, and this afternoon baking.
-And yet this evening, as soon as she had got supper and
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_246'>246</span>set the table, she placed the children all in my care, and
-against my advice, high as the wind is, and deep as the
-snow is drifted, she took a basket and filled it with provisions,
-and started to carry it to those poor Millers on
-the mountain. Indeed, I wish, Magnus, you would tell
-her not to do it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me tell Elsie to do or not to do! Whew! Do you
-know, my dear lady-mother, what is the highest, the
-very highest boon of God to man? Free will—the
-blessed liberty of going even to the old Nick if they
-please. There are those so fond of ‘freedom,’ that they
-would prefer going to perdition by the exercise of their
-free will to being arbitrarily predestined to heaven!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Perhaps so; but Elsie is not one of those, Dr. Hardcastle.
-If you were but to hint to your wife that you
-disapprove and dislike her thus exposing herself, she
-would stop it at once; she would think it her duty to
-do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know it; and therefore I have to be more chary in
-meddling with her docile spirit than if she had the self-will
-and temper of Xantippe. But, ah! do you think it
-does not make my heart ache to see her expose herself
-to wind and snow, and to think that I have not yet provided
-a carriage for her, and to see her work from early
-morning till night, doing all the housework of the family,
-and think that I have not yet got a servant for her?
-And now having brought her to all this, shall I fetter
-her will? No, by my soul!” said Dr. Hardcastle, with
-strong emotion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet arose and went to his side, and stood
-there, and drew his arm over her shoulder caressingly,
-as she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Magnus, you have made Elsie completely, divinely
-happy; I mean, as a mortal woman can be! No man
-can do more for his wife, very few can do so much. As
-for her privations and toils, it is I, only I, whose weakness
-caused all that! It was I who disinherited her! I!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hush! hush! a truce to self-criminations! Elsie is
-the only consistent, rational, equable one in the family,
-now Hugh is gone. And here she comes, the darling!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_247'>247</span>and without her cloak, as I live. Come, Mrs. Garnet,
-we will both scold her for that. Let’s open upon her as
-soon as she gets in.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He kissed Alice’s hand and hastened to meet his wife.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here she came, cold as the weather was, actually without
-her cloak.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He opened the door quickly, and received her in his
-arms, pressing her cold hands under his chin, to his
-bosom, to warm them, and drawing her on toward the
-fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Now where have you been, facing the wind, and
-plunging through the snowdrifts?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have been on the mountain,” said Elsie, untying
-her bonnet, and giving it to one child, and throwing
-her shawl upon the arms of another. “I have been on
-the mountain to see those poor Millers. Their little girl,
-almost barefooted, came over here this afternoon for me
-to go to her mother, who is confined. I knew they were
-suffering, and so I filled the basket and went home with
-the little one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But your cloak, dear! What in the world have you
-done with your cloak?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! I laid it over Susan Miller and her babe, until
-I could come home, and send them a blanket. Oh, now
-don’t look so shocked! I am warmly clothed without
-the cloak; besides, the distance was short, and I ran
-along fast. Nonsense, now! How is it that children are
-half their time out running and romping in the cold,
-without being wrapped up, and only grow more robust
-by the exposure?” said Elsie, laughing, as she arose,
-pushed her curls back from her blooming face, and went
-and lifted her crowing babe from the cradle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then she sat down and nursed it, while Mrs. Garnet,
-assisted by the eldest child, a little girl of nine years old,
-began to arrange the supper upon the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Elsie sat and nursed the child, her blooming, joyous
-face softened into sadness, tears gathered in her eyes,
-and she sighed deeply, bowing her head over the babe.
-Magnus was watching her. He was accustomed to her
-occasional moods of sorrowful tenderness, which, he said,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_248'>248</span>compared with her usual bright, cheerful temper as a
-general, steaming thaw contrasts with a fine, clear, frosty
-morning. He stooped over the back of her chair, and,
-bending his head close to hers, asked:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Of what are you thinking so sadly, Elsie?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A slight flush warmed her cheek, and she replied,
-meekly, without raising her head:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“An unworthy thought, dearest; at least, ungrateful
-and presumptuous. I was thinking of that poor family,
-of the little good that I was able to do them, and the great
-pleasure it gave me to do even that. I will confess to
-you all the egotism of my thought—then I thought how
-generous I really was by nature, and how I should delight
-in doing a great deal of good, if I had the means;
-and then an emotion of discontent, and a disposition to
-murmur, came upon me, and I thought what a pity it was
-that I, so really liberal by nature, should be compelled
-to repress so many generous impulses—that I should not
-have a fortune to spend—and I sighed from self-pity. I
-am ashamed that such ungrateful emotions should have
-disturbed my heart, and I speak of them now with shame,
-for now I feel how presumptuous they really were; for
-why, indeed, should I have a fortune, or anything else
-that we have not gained by our own toil? I, who am
-already so happy in the wealth of family affections,
-Magnus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Elsie, if the material and temporal good of
-mankind were first to be thought of, doubtless then it
-were better that wealth should be in the hands of the
-benevolent and philanthropic. But such is not the case.
-It is the spiritual and eternal welfare both of the individual
-and of the race that is provided for; and hence each
-individual is placed in circumstances, not where he can
-do the most seeming good, but where he can best develop
-his moral and spiritual nature. Thus, you have
-benevolence. You do not need to have that virtue cultivated
-by the contrast of your own wealth with another’s
-want, and by the exercise of almsgiving; hence, you are
-not schooled in prosperity and the duty of beneficence.
-But, Elsie, as you are not perfect, perhaps there are
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_249'>249</span>other virtues you lack, and which can be developed only
-in poverty. But I did not mean to preach you a little
-sermon, darling. And now, in requital of prosing, I will
-tell you two pieces of good news—first, that as this is
-the last year in which we shall be put to any expense
-for Hugh’s college course of lectures, we shall have a
-hundred or so dollars over our annual expenditures;
-half of this sum you shall disburse in judicious alms.
-That is my first piece of glad tidings, and my second is
-like unto it—Hugh himself will be home to-night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh home to-night? Oh, you don’t say so!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; this afternoon, in post office, I got a letter that
-arrived yesterday. And this letter announces the arrival
-of Hugh this very evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh coming home this evening? Oh, I am so glad!
-Children, children, did you hear? Brother Hugh is coming
-home this evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Brother Hugh is come!” said a pleasant voice, as the
-door opened, and Hugh Hutton stood among them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All arose, and Magnus and Elsie hastened to meet him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear friends,” he said, shaking hands right and left,
-“I could not resist the desire I felt to go to the window
-and look in upon you while you were all at your quiet
-evening occupations. I have been watching you for the
-last two minutes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You rogue! But come to the fire, come to the fire.
-Supper is just ready,” said Dr. Hardcastle, while Hugh
-threw off his great-coat, and laid it aside with his hat.
-“Oh, Hugh, we are so glad to see you! Had you a
-pleasant journey? What time did you get to the village?
-You have traveled day and night, I am afraid? And
-then you have walked from the village here?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; I couldn’t have got a horse for two or three
-hours; and I really couldn’t wait, I was so eager to get
-home.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Hugh, you must be so tired and hungry!
-Here, sit down in this chair near the fire,” said Elsie,
-pushing a chair forward with one hand, while she held
-the child with the other arm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh threw himself into the chair, and mechanically
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_250'>250</span>stretched out his arms and took the crowing, laughing
-infant from its mother, and set it upon his knee, playing
-with it all the time he talked to others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, have you got your diploma, Hugh? Let’s see
-the document with our own eyes,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-coming forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; here it is,” said Hugh, rooting in his pocket
-with one hand, while he hugged the baby up with the
-other. “Here it is. I took it out of my trunk to bring
-along as a sort of credential that your years of kindness
-have not been thrown away upon me, my best friend;”
-and Hugh produced the parchment, and laid it on the
-table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Good! good! Here it is, Elsie! Come, look! Here
-is Dr. Hutton’s warrant to kill and cure, secundum
-artem. Here is the diploma. Here is the prize for which
-he has toiled so hard—the good of his race.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; not the good, but the great starting place. Is it
-not so, Hugh?” said Elsie, coming forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, true, the starting point. She is worthier than
-I. The starting point, my boy. And now for a brilliant
-career. Aim high, Hugh. He who aims at the sun may
-not bring it down, but his arrow will fly highest. You
-must be more successful than I have been, Hugh. I am
-a useful—if you please—an extensively useful member
-of my profession, and of society. You must be a distinguished
-honor to the faculty and the world. Oh! I
-have a grand ambition for you, Hugh, my son!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear friend! my best friend! all that I am and
-have I owe to you, to your patient, disinterested teaching
-of many years. Oh, yes! and all that I may become
-or may possess I shall still owe to you! Ah, Dr. Hardcastle!
-I speak of a debt! I shall never be able to pay
-the debt I owe to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, Hugh!” replied Dr. Hardcastle, throwing his
-arm affectionately over the shoulder of his young friend,
-and speaking in a voice as harmonious and gentle as a
-woman’s. “Why, Hugh! never let me hear another word
-of owing anything but brotherly love to me. You who
-have been my second self in all my labors and professional
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_251'>251</span>cares; a son to me, except that you have given
-me no anxiety, but much ease. My brother, companion,
-confidant! Why, whatever could I have done without
-you, Hugh? What could any of us have done without
-you? Mrs. Garnet! how could you have got along without
-your son, Hugh? Elsie! how could you have managed
-to conduct your domestic and business affairs without
-Hugh? Children! little ones, I say! what would you
-take for ‘big brother’?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The last-named little shareholders in the Hugh Hutton
-property swarmed around him, some with gentle, some
-with vociferous demonstrations of affection. And their
-mother laid her hands affectionately on his shoulders,
-and, looking up in his face, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Hugh! No! no one could possibly have supplied
-your place to us, since we have known you. You
-have been, indeed, like a younger brother, or an elder
-son of the family, only that, as the doctor says, instead
-of giving us trouble, you have relieved us of it. Oh,
-Hugh! our dear boy! only be half as eminent as we hope
-you will be, and we shall be so proud and happy in your
-success!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come, come, Elsie, a truce to sentiment! Supper
-waits, and a man who has staged night and day for a
-week, and walked three miles to-night, must have a good
-appetite for his supper, and a strong disposition to his
-bed. Come; give the babe to his sister, there, and draw
-your chair up. The children have been suffered to sit
-up in honor of your arrival, Hugh. They are usually in
-bed at this hour. Come,” said Dr. Hardcastle, seating
-himself at the table, when all the others were seated,
-“let’s see! What have we here to tempt a traveler’s appetite?
-Mocha coffee—some of that which you sent us
-by the wagon, Hugh—and cream and butter, such as
-Elsie only can make. Here are some buckwheat cakes;
-just try one. Our buckwheat has surpassed itself this
-year. There, I don’t think you ever met with buckwheat
-cake like that in the city. Indeed, I don’t think people
-east of the mountains know what good buckwheat really
-is. Take honey with your cake. There’s honey for you.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_252'>252</span>The comb clear and clean like amber and frost. Our
-bees have distinguished themselves this season. There
-are venison steaks before you. Use the currant jelly
-with them, Hugh, it is better than the grape. That is
-the finest venison that I have seen this winter. Ah,
-Hugh, you should have been with me when I brought
-that stag down—shot him on the Bushy Ridge. Great
-fellow!—eight antlers—five inches of fat in the brisket!—weighing—how
-much did he weigh, Elsie? No matter.
-You are laughing, Hugh. What at, sir, pray?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“At you, and myself, and stag-hunting, and deerstalking,
-and story-tellings. The truth is, I never hear
-of stags and antlers, but I think of a fine, bragging tale
-I was cut short in while telling to my fellow-students at
-a little farewell supper given by them to me when I was
-coming away. I was trying to persuade some of them
-to come out here, and boasting of the country. I was
-launched into the midst of a grandiloquent eulogium.
-‘Glorious country, sir!’ said I, ‘glorious country! sublime
-mountains, piercing the clouds! mag-nif-i-cent forests
-stretching five hundred miles westward! splendid
-trees, sir, standing but two feet apart, their trunks measuring
-three yards in circumference! their luxurious
-branches inextricably intertwined! and game, sir! superb
-deer, with antlers six feet apart, bounding through those
-forests——’ ‘Where the trees grow but two feet apart,
-and their branches are inextricably entwined, how the
-very deuce do they manage to get through them, Hutton?’
-asked my friend, bringing my magniloquence to a
-sudden stand. I never was so disconcerted in my life. I
-knew I had been telling the truth, yet had made it sound
-like a fiction. At last I answered, ‘By Dian, sir, that is
-their business, not mine, nor yours!’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha, ha, ha! Yes, pretty good! Yet, Hugh, you are
-not romancing. There are parts of the forest where the
-great trees grow in such thickets as you have described;
-but they are as impassable to the deer as to us, of course;
-and then there is superb game in the forest, which may
-never approach within miles of such thickets. Take another
-cup of coffee?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_253'>253</span>“No, no, not any more,” said Hugh, pushing up his
-plate and cup.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Hardcastle gave the signal, and they arose from
-the table. The children had also finished their milk and
-bread, and their mother took them upstairs to be put to
-bed, while Mrs. Garnet washed up the tea things and
-Dr. Hardcastle replenished the fire.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When the table was cleared away, and Elsie had returned,
-and they were all gathered around the evening
-fireside, deeply engaged in telling and in hearing all that
-had happened to each during the winter’s separation,
-Hugh suddenly clapped his hand to his pocket, with a
-“Lord bless my soul!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What’s the matter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, was ever such absence of mind!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never in the world, of course. Only what’s it
-about?” laughed Dr. Hardcastle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, a letter—a letter that came in the same stage
-with myself—a letter from Huttontown, for you. I took
-it out of the office, and—indeed, I hope I have not lost
-it,” continued Hugh, fumbling first in one pocket and
-then in another. “Oh, here it is,” he exclaimed, producing
-the letter, and handing it to the doctor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The superscription is in a strange hand, to begin
-with—a lady’s hand. Whom can it be from?” said Dr.
-Hardcastle, breaking the seal. “Dated ‘Mount Calm.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mount Calm!” exclaimed all three of his hearers, in
-a breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dated ‘Mount Calm,’ and signed ‘Garnet Seabright.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet Seabright?” exclaimed Mrs. Garnet, in a tone
-of surprise and displeasure.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My little sister Nettie,” said Hugh, bending forward
-with interest.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can you read it aloud, doctor?” inquired Elsie, in a
-low voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, dear,” replied Dr. Hardcastle, stooping to pick
-up a second letter, that had fallen out of the first, and
-retaining the one in his hand while he read the other,
-as follows:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'><span class='pageno' id='Page_254'>254</span>“<span class='sc'>Mount Calm</span>, March 1, 18—.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-l c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<span class='sc'>Dr. Hardcastle.</span></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c016'>“<span class='sc'>Dear Sir</span>: Will you do me the favor of transmitting
-the inclosed letter to Dr. Hugh Hutton, of whose address
-I am entirely ignorant? Pray, pardon me for urging
-your prompt attention to my request, as its subject
-is of the utmost importance to Dr. Hutton, and requires
-his instant action.</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Very respectfully,</div>
- <div class='line in12'>“<span class='sc'>Garnet Seabright</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Here, Hugh, after all, the matter concerned only
-you. Here is your letter,” said Dr. Hardcastle, handing
-over the inclosed epistle to Hugh, who took it with a
-look of amazed interest, tore it open, and read it in silence.
-Suddenly he sprung up, overturning the chair,
-and dropping the letter, as he exclaimed vehemently:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your horse! Your horse, doctor! Can I have your
-horse to-night?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘A horse! A horse! my kingdom for a horse!’
-Why, what the deuce is the matter now? Who’s killed?
-Who’s wounded?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, doctor, no jesting. This is serious—this is terrible.
-Only—quick!—can I have your horse?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Certainly, certainly, Hugh. But tell me, in one
-word, what’s the matter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My mother, my long-lost mother, is found, and at
-Mount Calm, but ill and dying, I fear. There! read
-Nettie’s letter, while I saddle the horse. I must ride at
-once to the village—the mail stage starts from there at
-ten o’clock. I must go in it,” said Hugh, hastening
-out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet and Elsie gathered around Dr. Hardcastle,
-while he read the following letter:</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“<span class='sc'>Mount Calm</span>, March 1, 18—.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c016'>“<span class='sc'>Dearest Hugh</span>: Wherever you are, and whatever
-may be your engagements, drop them at once, and hasten
-to Mount Calm. Your long-lost mother is found—she is
-here with me, but very, very ill of brain fever. Hasten.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_255'>255</span>There are other things, too, dear Hugh, of which I cannot
-write now, but of which you will hear when you
-come. I write in haste and agitation, but, indeed, I am,
-as much as ever,</p>
-
-<div class='lg-container-r c015'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>“Your affectionate sister,</div>
- <div class='line in20'>“<span class='sc'>Nettie</span>.”</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Strange! most strange!” said Mrs. Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And most unsatisfactory,” observed Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We shall know no more, however, until Hugh writes
-us from Mount Calm. Here he comes! How quick he
-has been!” said the doctor, going to meet Hugh as he
-entered.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You know, Hugh, how much I feel with you about
-this. Let me know now if in any way I can be of service
-to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, my friend, I know all your goodness. But do
-you know how much my secret heart has ever been filled
-with the desire of finding my mother? I could never
-hope to find her, but still, from my boyhood, the thought
-of seeing her has haunted me like the dream of an impossible
-good; and now she is found, but——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh’s voice broke down, and he covered his face with
-his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hope for the best, Hugh. You used to be hopeful.
-And, oh, Hugh, be sure that we feel your trouble as if it
-were our own. It is our own,” said Elsie, laying her
-hand gently upon him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My horse is ready. I only run in to say good-by;
-good-by, dear friends. Good-by, Mrs. Garnet—pray that
-I may not be too late! Good-by, Mrs. Hardcastle—give
-my love to the dear children when they ask for me to-morrow.
-Good-by, Dr. Hardcastle, my best friend. I
-will write to you from Mount Calm,” said Hugh, shaking
-and squeezing hands right and left, and then preparing
-to hasten out.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Aint you going to take your great-coat?” asked the
-doctor, holding it up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, yes; I had forgotten it. I haven’t time to put it
-on. I can throw it upon the horse,” exclaimed Hugh,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_256'>256</span>hurriedly throwing the garment over his arm. “Once
-more, good-by to all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I had a second horse, or had time to borrow one,
-I would go with you, Hugh,” said Dr. Hardcastle, attending
-him from the house.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXVIII.<br> <span class='large'>HUGH AND GARNET.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>When friends do meet in sorrow’s hour</div>
- <div class='line'>’Tis like a sun-glimpse through a shower,</div>
- <div class='line'>A watery ray, an instant seen,</div>
- <div class='line'>The darkly closing clouds between.</div>
- <div class='line in34'><i>—Scott.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The full moon was shining broadly and brightly over
-the snow-clad hills and plains around Mount Calm, when
-Hugh Hutton rode up to the front entrance of the mansion
-in a full gallop. He threw himself from his horse,
-flung the reins to a servant in attendance, ran up the
-marble stairs, and, without stopping to ring, pushed at
-once into the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A large hanging-lamp lighted up the hall, and its rays
-fell upon the form of a majestic and beautiful girl, whose
-presence immediately arrested the impetuous hurry of
-the visitor. Pausing, he bowed with deference, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He had always thought of her as Nettie; until he saw
-her he purposed to have called her Nettie; but this was
-not to be thought of now, in the presence of this imperial-looking
-girl, with whom he would no more have
-ventured upon familiarity than he would have dared to
-make free with an empress. She, too, had thought of
-her childhood’s companion as plain Hugh, had addressed
-him as dear Hugh in her letter; but now, when she saw
-before her this stately and reserved man, she blushed to
-think of it. And when, with deferential suavity, he repeated
-his question:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I presume—Miss Seabright?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_257'>257</span>She answered: “Yes, Dr. Hutton;” and added, with
-mournful gentleness, “Under happier circumstances I
-should say that I am very glad to see you, sir; but now
-I can only tell you truly that you are very, very welcome
-to Mount Calm.” And she offered him her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My mother? Miss Seabright! How is my mother?”
-he inquired, alarmed at the sorrowful manner of his
-young hostess.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come into the parlor, Dr. Hutton; there is a fire
-there, and you are chilled,” said Garnet, sadly evading
-the question, and leading the way.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My mother?” again inquired the guest, when she had
-conducted him into the drawing room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Sit down, pray, sit down; you look so weary—here,
-near the fire,” said his hostess, drawing a chair to the
-hearth. He dropped into the seat—his prophetic heart
-already prepared for the words she was about to utter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your mother, Dr. Hutton, is above all pain and grief
-now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dead! dead!” exclaimed Hugh, dropping his head
-upon his open hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet bent over the side of his chair, and laid her
-hand gently on his shoulder, and bowed her head until
-tears fell upon his hands, but said nothing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last: “How long since?” he asked, raising his head.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She seated herself by his side, and with her hand gently
-laid upon his, she replied:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your mother was ill but three days, Dr. Hutton.
-Upon the first day I wrote to you—upon the third she
-passed away. It is four days since, so that, you see, you
-could not have reached here, even by the utmost speed;
-and so you have nothing to blame yourself for.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dead! really dead! dead four days!” he exclaimed,
-burying his face in his hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, not dead—living in heaven! You know that—try
-to feel it also,” she said tenderly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He did not reply, nor did he speak again for some
-time, nor did she break upon the sacred silence of his
-grief by any ill-judged attempt at consolation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last he broke forth in bitter lamentation.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_258'>258</span>“Oh, that she had but lived! Oh, that my poor
-mother had but lived! That her son might have atoned
-in the last half of her life for the sorrows of her youth!
-Oh, that my mother had but lived!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! do not mourn so; believe me, it is far better as
-it is. There are some lives so wronged, so broken, that
-nothing but death can set them right. Such a life was
-hers. There are some sorrows so deep that nothing but
-heaven can cure them. Such sorrows were hers. Oh!
-believe me, by all the loving-kindness of the Father, it is
-better as it is,” said Garnet, kindly pressing the hand
-she held.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If I could have seen her but once! Oh, Miss Seabright!
-I thought but little about her in my boyhood,
-but as I grew to man’s estate the one secret, cherished
-hope of my heart was to find my mother—to devote my
-life to her. Oh, that I could have found her; oh, that I
-could have reached here in time to have seen her living
-face but once, so as to have known and remembered it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Again I say it is better as it is. The tender mercy of
-God spared you the trial. Would you have carried away
-in your heart the picture of a countenance transiently
-distorted by delirium, as the only impression of your
-mother’s face? Oh, no! Think of her only as she has
-been described to you in her youthful beauty, or think
-of her as she is now, in her immortal beauty. She has
-always been shrined in your heart as a beautiful and
-sacred memory and hope. Let it be so still, and let the
-hope be immortal.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She ceased speaking, and both relapsed into silence,
-that lasted until the door opened and a servant entered,
-bringing coffee and other refreshments upon a waiter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Wheel the table forward here, and set the waiter
-upon it, and then you may go, Pompey,” said Miss Seabright,
-in a low voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When they were alone together again Miss Seabright
-poured out a cup of coffee, and offered it to her guest.
-He thanked her, but declined it, and dropped his head
-again upon his hands, and fell into silence and despondency.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_259'>259</span>Miss Seabright put the cup of coffee down and came
-and sat by his side, and laid her hand upon him again,
-and said softly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I feel how you suffer, Dr. Hutton; and I can imagine
-that when we have lost a dear friend or dear relative,
-especially a parent, we should think it almost a sin to take
-comfort in any way, and selfishness even to refresh the
-wasted, wearied frame with needful food and sleep. It is
-so natural to feel so. Fasting and vigil are first compelled
-by anxiety and grief, and afterward, when all is
-over, and when nature has reasserted her claims, and
-made us feel the need of food and rest—still often the
-heart’s fond superstition will not yield, and fasting and
-vigil are offered as a tribute to the memory of the lost.
-It is so natural—but so wrong, Dr. Hutton—the rent
-garments, and the torn hair, and the ashes sprinkled on
-the head, and the inordinate worship of grief, belong to
-pagan bereavement, which is ‘without hope, and without
-God’—not to Christian sorrow, which should be calmed
-by resignation and cheered by faith. My friend, you
-are very weary and depressed—you need refreshment.
-Come, Hugh, lift up your head; take this coffee from my
-hand—Nettie’s hand.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As she stooped over him, offering the cup, the ends of
-her soft ringlets touched his brow, and her breath fanned
-his cheek. He raised his head, received the refreshment,
-and gratefully pressed the gentle hand that gave it.
-When he had drained the cup and set it down, he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, how much I thank you for your sympathy
-and kindness none can know but God. Dear and
-gentle comforter, tell me, now, the facts of this sad discovery.
-When did my mother return, and under what
-circumstances?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Had you not better defer hearing the story for the
-present, Dr. Hutton? You look so tired. Retire early,
-and sleep well to-night, and to-morrow morning I will
-tell you everything you desire to know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, I have not slept since I received your
-letter telling me of my mother’s advent and illness. I
-shall never be able to sleep until I have heard all you
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_260'>260</span>have to tell me of that mother’s history and sorrows.
-But, Miss Seabright, I beg your pardon—you are so
-good, that your very goodness has made me selfish, and
-forgetful of the trouble I may give you. You are doubtless
-fatigued, and should not be longer harassed by the
-presence of an exacting egotist like me. If so, let me
-bid you good-night,” said Dr. Hutton, rising.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, no; sit down; besides, I cannot let you go to-night.
-You are to remain with us, certainly, to-night—and
-as many more days and nights as your convenience
-will permit. Sit down; I am not the least wearied, and
-if, indeed, you think you will rest better after having
-heard the story I have to tell you, why, of course, I will
-willingly tell it. Yes, and upon second thought, I feel
-that it is better you should hear it to-night. To-night
-let the grave close in faith over the sad past. To-morrow
-you will arise with new hope for the future.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They both resumed their seats. And Miss Seabright
-related to him the story of the nightly light seen on Hutton’s
-Isle; her visit there, to ascertain the cause; her
-guardian’s unexpected arrival; the sudden apparition of
-Agnes; the encounter and the death of Lionel Hardcastle
-by the accidental discharge of the pistol. Having
-reached this point of her story, she went on to say:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“At the first appearance of your mother I saw by
-her wild look and frenzied manner that reason had fled.
-But instantly after the fall of Lionel Hardcastle the sudden
-change, the quiet manner with which she exculpated
-herself from the suspicion of blood-guiltiness deceived
-me so that I mistook for sanity that mood which was
-only the reaction of frenzy—or, at best, a lucid interval
-of madness. As soon as I had ascertained the victim to
-be quite dead, and had collected my thoughts for action,
-I determined to return to the mainland and rouse the
-magistrate, Judge Wylie. The unhappy woman was sitting
-upon the ground, with her head bowed upon her
-hands, and her wild hair streaming all around her, like
-a veil. I spoke to her, and told her my purpose, and
-asked her to accompany me. She gave me no reply. I
-spent a long time in trying to persuade her to get up
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_261'>261</span>and go with me—but I could not get a word or gesture
-from her. I made no more impression on her than if she
-had been a statue. Finally I was obliged to leave her
-for the purpose of procuring assistance. I went down to
-the beach, got into the skiff, took the paddle, and rowed
-swiftly to the landing at Point Pleasant. I found all the
-family there still up, owing to the decease of old Mrs.
-Wylie, who had just expired. Judge Wylie, with his
-usual promptitude, gave me all the help that was needful.
-I returned with the party to Hutton Isle, where we
-found the unfortunate woman in the same posture in
-which we had left her. I spoke to her again, and with
-no more success than before. Finding it impossible to
-make any impression upon her, I requested Mr. Ulysses
-Roebuck, who had command of the party, to lift her up
-gently and convey her to the boat. He attempted to do
-so, but on being raised she broke into sudden frenzy.
-Dr. Hutton, spare me and yourself the details of this illness—it
-is over now. It is sufficient to say that she was
-brought hither, that she had the best medical attendance
-and the best nursing that could be procured. She recovered
-her reason about an hour before her death, and
-asked to see a clergyman. Mr. Wilson, the Methodist
-preacher, attended her. Of the circumstances of her
-forcible abduction, and the misfortunes that ensued to
-her, she refused to make any revelations, saying that the
-dying should not drop a fire-brand into the circle they
-were leaving. When told that she had a son, she blessed
-you, and left this message for you, that ‘Forgiveness is
-the only remedy for some wrongs’; and of herself she
-said that ‘Death was the only rectifier of some lives.’
-She died at set of sun—calmly and hopefully. At some
-future day I will show you where they have laid her. As
-for the unhappy man who met his death so suddenly—the
-coroner’s jury sat upon his case before his remains
-were permitted to be removed from the Isle. The body
-was then conveyed to Hemlock Hollow for burial. Old
-Mr. Hardcastle has not been able to leave his bed since
-the shock of his son’s sudden death threw him upon it.
-It is supposed that he cannot recover.” This Miss Seabright
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_262'>262</span>added with the purpose of partially diverting the
-mind of her guest from dwelling too intently upon the
-circumstances of his mother’s death.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At the close of her recital Dr. Hutton remained silent
-for a few minutes, and then, taking and pressing her
-hand, he thanked her, with much emotion, for the care
-she had bestowed upon his mother.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright rang for night-lamps, and when they
-were brought directed the servant to attend Dr. Hutton’s
-leisure, and when he felt inclined to retire to show
-him to his chamber. Then bidding her guest good-night,
-she left the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The next morning Dr. Hutton came down very early
-and found Miss Seabright already in the drawing room.
-She advanced to meet him, holding out her hand. After
-the usual courteous inquiries about health, etc., Dr. Hutton
-said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, I scarcely know how to pardon myself
-for my forgetfulness of an aged and worthy relative
-last evening; but pray tell me now, how is my old aunt?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Joe! oh, very well, indeed. The only mark of
-infirmity I can perceive in her is her wish to go to bed
-earlier now than heretofore. She had retired before you
-arrived last night, and I would not have her disturbed.
-She is in the breakfast room superintending breakfast.
-She knows that you are here, but does not know that you
-have risen. Shall I send for her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you please, Miss Seabright. I have not seen my
-aunt for two years. I have generally made it a point to
-come and see her every year or two since I first left her,
-and should have visited her this spring even, had not
-your letter summoned me now. Ah! here she comes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Joe came in smiling and weeping, and drying
-her eyes, and wiping her spectacles with her check
-apron, and as soon as she saw her nephew she ran to
-him and fell in his arms, laughing and crying and talking
-all at once, and not regaining self-possession until she
-became alarmed for the propriety of her cap and kerchief,
-when she extricated herself, smoothing down her
-apron and exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_263'>263</span>“There, Hugh! There, Neffy! You’re not a baby
-now; don’t tumble my cap and my handkerchief—there’s
-no sense in it;” though, dear old soul, the fault lay all the
-while in her own fondling—not Hugh’s. “There, come
-to breakfast now. It is all on the table waiting, and will
-get cold.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hutton offered his arm to Miss Seabright, and
-they went in to breakfast.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>After the meal was over Dr. Hutton made a motion
-to depart, but Miss Joe vigorously opposed his purpose,
-supplicating him to remain at Mount Calm for only a few
-days, if not longer. Miss Seabright joined her invitation
-to the old lady’s entreaties, and Dr. Hutton finally consented
-to stay, and retired to his room to write letters to
-his friends in the West.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The few days of Dr. Hutton’s projected stay at Mount
-Calm grew into a week, and the week was stretching into
-a month, and still Hugh Hutton found it daily more difficult
-to tear himself away from Garnet Seabright, for
-every time he would make an attempt to go she would
-say:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not yet, Dr. Hutton. Not just yet! Stay till to-morrow;”
-and she would think, “Why does he not
-speak? He loves me! He stays here at my bidding. He
-must know that I love him, too! Why does he not
-speak? Will he go away without an explanation? Can
-it be that my fortune and his own lack of wealth hinders
-him? There are some men so proud that they will not
-marry an heiress, lest it be said of them that they owe
-all they have to their wives. But such a thought would
-never enter the head of my noble Hugh! He would not
-elevate money on one side or the other into importance
-enough to divide two hearts that love. Yet there is
-some reason, and some good reason, why, when his eyes
-and tones and gestures tell me every hour that he loves
-and esteems me, his words never do.” And then sometimes
-when alone she would break forth impatiently,
-thus: “Indeed, I won’t bear this much longer! No,
-that I won’t! I shan’t have Hugh’s heart and my own
-tormented in this way to no good purpose! I will make
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_264'>264</span>him tell me what it all means! Feeling very sure he
-loves me he shall tell me what all this hesitation
-means.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Such would be her impatient resolve, but Garnet never
-could bring herself to lead her lover on to any explanation,
-until one night when Hugh for the dozenth time
-made known that he should leave Mount Calm the next
-morning. It was after supper when Miss Joe retired,
-and they were playing a game of backgammon together.
-Miss Seabright looked up from her dice and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, Dr. Hutton, since you are going to-morrow,
-and I feel that we cannot justly keep you from your business
-any longer, I wish, before you depart, to ask your
-advice—I——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, Miss Seabright?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I—you know that my social position is a very singular
-one.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is, indeed, Miss Seabright.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Responsible as I am for the faithful stewardship of
-a very large fortune——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is indeed, in your case especially, a very heavy
-responsibility.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; and I have neither father nor brother to aid and
-counsel me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My poor counsel is at your command always, Miss
-Seabright.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Thank you! It is in relation to the stewardship of
-Heaven’s goods intrusted to me that I wish your advice.
-One should not live for themselves alone, you know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Assuredly not,” said Dr. Hutton, giving her his close
-attention.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright then related at length certain very judicious
-and extensive schemes of benevolence, and desired
-his opinion upon them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your plans of usefulness and beneficence would be
-both wise and good, reflecting honor on your head and
-heart, but that they lack the proper foundation of all
-schemes of action.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is that?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Justice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_265'>265</span>“Justice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Justice!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not understand you in the least!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, have you ever learned how it was
-that you came into possession of all this estate?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear godfather gave it to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you know why he conveyed it to you in his life
-rather than bequeath it to you at his death?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Because, had he merely bequeathed it to you, his will
-would have been set aside by our courts of justice in
-favor of his wife and child.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, he did convey it to me! It is mine, at all
-events!” said Garnet, with a flushed cheek and brow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And yet he had a wife and daughter whom he beggared
-to enrich you. Was this right?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Right! Yes, it was right! He cut off a fugitive wife
-and a rebellious daughter! Right! Yes, it was right!
-He did it, and he could have done no wrong! Therefore
-it was right! Right! Yes, it was right! Who dares to
-gainsay it?” she exclaimed, with her bosom heaving and
-her color rising.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah! Miss Seabright, it is an ungracious task indeed
-to unveil before you the true character and hidden motives
-of your benefactor, of one whom you have always
-looked upon with affection and respect——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stop!” exclaimed Garnet breathlessly, and pressing
-both hands upon her bosom, as was her custom when
-trying to repress an eruption of anger. “Stop! If you
-are about to breathe a syllable reflecting upon the memory
-of my godfather—hold! I will not hear a breath,
-believe me! A word that should wound his good name
-would transfix my own heart.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“For your dear sake, Miss Seabright, I will respect
-the name of General Garnet; but for the dearer sake
-of justice I will plead the cause of his widow and
-daughter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Of his widow and daughter! I am not—the Lord
-knows it!—ungrateful, ungenerous, or cruel. I will
-largely dower them both.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_266'>266</span>“You will do no such thing, Miss Seabright! I trust
-there is too much latent nobility in your character to
-permit you to add such ‘insult’ to their ‘injury.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Then what is it that you wish me to do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What your conscience shall, after you understand the
-matter, dictate to be done. He who gave you the Mount
-Calm estate had no just right to do so. The whole of the
-estate came by his wife, and should descend to her
-daughter. It was held by her family, the Chesters, for
-two hundred years.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, I think two centuries quite long enough for
-any one family to hold any one landed estate. I think it
-quite time the property had passed into other hands,”
-said Miss Seabright firmly. Then she added: “Besides,
-my godfather must have had a legal right to the property,
-else he could not have conveyed it to me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, if you will permit me, for justice’s
-sake, I will tell you the whole history of the transaction
-by which General Garnet became legally possessed of the
-Mount Calm estate. It is right—it is necessary that you
-should know it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Say on, sir.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hutton began, and, softening as much as possible,
-for her sake, the conduct of General Garnet, related the
-atrocious history of his life and actions—first, how, aided
-by her father, he sundered the engagement existing
-between Alice Chester and Milton Sinclair and forcibly
-married the heart-broken child; their wedded life of
-tyranny on his side and suffrance on hers; the separation
-of the mother and daughter; in after years his betrothal
-of Elsie and Magnus; his subsequent attempt to break
-their engagement from mercenary motives; his furious
-anger at their marriage; the arts by which he gained from
-his wife a deed of the Mount Calm estate; his revenge
-in disinheriting his daughter; the taunts and cruelties by
-which he had nearly caused the death of his wife, and had
-finally driven her from him; and lastly, the legal acumen
-with which, for the sake of more surely impoverishing
-his wife and child, he had conveyed the estate, instead of
-bequeathing it, knowing that the will, upon account of
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_267'>267</span>its crying injustice, would have been set aside by the
-courts in favor of the widow and daughter.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There, Miss Seabright, that is the way in which your
-godfather first, and you after him, came into possession
-of the Mount Calm property.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet Seabright had not listened patiently to this recital.
-Many times her large, heavily-fringed eyes blazed
-and darkened; her cheeks crimsoned and faded; and,
-though she pressed both hands to her chest, her bosom
-heaved and fell like the waves of the sea. Many times
-she interrupted him, and nothing, perhaps, but the felt
-law of justice enabled Dr. Hutton to persevere to the
-close of his ungracious and unwelcome narrative.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When he had closed by revealing the hypocrisy,
-treachery, and revenge of General Garnet, all the color
-was suddenly struck out from her face, as though she
-had been blasted by a stroke of lightning, so white, so
-still, and aghast was her aspect. Dr. Hutton hastened
-to her side and took her hand. At the touch she rose in
-trepidation, and, scarcely heeding what she said, exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not now! Not one single word now! I must be
-alone, or die! To-morrow!—to-morrow I will hear
-you!” and hurried, or rather reeled, from the room.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XXXIX.<br> <span class='large'>THE STRUGGLE OF LOVE AND AMBITION.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line in16'>Her passion-tortured soul,</div>
- <div class='line'>Like a ship dashed by fierce encountering tides,</div>
- <div class='line'>And of her pilot spoiled, drives round and round,</div>
- <div class='line'>The sport of wind and wave.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>The next morning she appeared at the breakfast table
-with a face so pale and stern as almost to awe the good
-Miss Joe from making an inquiry as to her health. And
-when at last the old lady asked her if she were not well,
-she replied curtly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_268'>268</span>“An ill night’s rest!” and the questioning ceased.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When she had retired to the drawing room Dr. Hutton
-followed her thither. He found her standing on the rug
-and resting her forehead against the mantelpiece. Her
-long ringlets, hanging low, concealed her face from his
-view, until she turned around and said, in a very low
-voice:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dr. Hutton, you are not going away this morning,
-are you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Miss Seabright!—no, Garnet. I did not rouse
-a war in your soul to leave you until peace should be
-restored.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not know why you should say there is a war,”
-said Garnet, in a deep voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I can see it. That fiery blood that has left your brow
-and cheeks and very lips of a gray paleness has mustered
-somewhere. Besides, I know you, Garnet. You were
-always very transparent to me. I know that in your soul
-the powers of good and evil are drawn out in battle array
-against each other.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With an adjuring gesture she left her position, and,
-crossing the room, threw herself into a chair. He
-watched her some few minutes where she sat, with her
-pale brow resting on one hand and the other hanging
-listlessly down, and then he slowly crossed the room, and,
-dropping upon one knee by her side, raised her hand to
-his bosom, and said, in a voice deep with passion:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright!—Nettie, my dear sister!—my wife,
-if you will bless me so!—I wish—I do wish I had a kingdom
-to offer you to replace this Mount Calm. As it is,
-I have only myself, and an affection, an affection, Nettie,
-that—oh, I cannot tell you in a few words, a few seconds,
-that love which it will take all the years we live together
-to express, to live out!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Hugh!” she said, in broken accents, “if you
-knew where this rack screws and strains my heart-strings
-most. To think that one whom I always loved and honored
-with a passionate enthusiasm as the very first in human
-excellence—but no more of that! Not my lips shall
-breathe one word of blame, though all earth and heaven
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_269'>269</span>cry shame on his memory!” said Garnet, as her dark eyes
-smoldered and flashed and sank again, as she breathed,
-in heart-broken tones: “No more of that! Oh, God, that
-I could say to my thoughts, as to my tongue, ‘No more
-of that’!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And, scarcely heeding her lover, she arose, threw back
-her falling hair, pressed both hands upon her bosom, and
-passed out of the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>It was late in the evening before he saw her again.
-He went into the library after the lamps were lighted
-and found her sitting at one of the reading tables, with
-her head bowed down upon her folded hands. He went
-and sat by her, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet, dearest, do not keep your thoughts and
-troubles all to yourself; let me share them. Come,
-come,” he continued, caressing her, “this is unkind! I
-have had a very solitary day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“A solitary day! I wish you joy of it! Mine has been
-‘peopled with the furies.’ Oh, Hugh, even in my wild
-infancy I was such an ambitious child! Though, Heaven
-knows, there was nothing around me to foster ambition,
-unless it were the want of everything, and the study of
-fairy tales! Oh, Hugh! if the little wild water-witch of
-the isle was ambitious——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘The woman, gifted with beauty, talent, wealth, and
-largest liberty, is a hundred times more so,’ you would
-say,” said Hugh. “But, Garnet, do you know there is
-an ambition more noble than all others—that of moral
-greatness! Garnet, you have the opportunity granted
-to few—the opportunity of moral heroism!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Hugh, before I saw you I had great schemes!
-great schemes!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know it, dear Garnet; but they did not demand the
-great moral force required of you to-day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But since you came, Hugh——” Here her voice
-broke down and she dropped her head upon the table for
-a few minutes. Then, lifting it up again, she held her
-veil of ringlets back, and said: “But since you came,
-Hugh, all schemes have given place to one. I had been
-living in such a golden dream, dear Hugh! Oh, listen!
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_270'>270</span>You know when we were two poor children, obliged to
-pick our frugal meal of maninosies from the beach, and
-I, inspired by the ‘Arabian Nights’ Entertainments,’
-would be talking my wild, childish talk about sudden
-riches and fairy grandmothers, you said you had a fairy
-in your head who could convert the sand and clay into
-gold-dust and precious gems.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I remember. It was when I dreamed of being
-an agriculturist.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And you promised you would make a fortune for me;
-confer rank, and wealth, and honor upon me?” she
-asked, smiling very sadly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes—yes, Nettie!” he answered solemnly. “Yes,
-and I hold myself bound to redeem that boyish pledge.
-Doubly bound now, Nettie, for I must repay you for all
-you lose.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, stop! Hear me out. Well—heigho! I thought
-if Hugh could give Garnet a fortune he might also take
-one from her—take one with her. Oh, Hugh! I knew
-I could not confer upon you rank or honor; you must
-make them for both of us; but I dreamed that I could
-give you wealth to aid in doing it. Hugh, listen! I
-heard you say that you would like to travel, and spend
-some time in London, Paris, and at some of the German
-cities, for the sake of perfecting your medical knowledge.
-I then heard you regret that necessity which urged your
-immediate settlement in some Western neighborhood, to
-commence practice. Well, Hugh, I dreamed that necessity
-would be obviated. I dreamed, Hugh, that we would
-make a bridal tour to Europe, and sojourn in all these
-capitals, while you pursued your studies at your ease.
-Now my dream is over—over!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God bless you for saying that, Garnet! God bless
-you for saying that! The dream is over!—the dream is
-over!—the battle is over, and your moral sense has nobly
-conquered; you will yield up this property?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Over!—the battle? The doubt over! No! no! no!
-no! I did not say that, either!” exclaimed Miss Seabright,
-her whole aspect changing. Suddenly rising,
-with flashing eyes and burning cheeks, and pacing the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_271'>271</span>room with rapid steps: “Over! No! man! man! Is it a
-flower, a ring, an orange you ask me for, that I should
-give it up without a struggle—as a matter of course?
-Give up this estate! Why, I should be insane, frantic,
-frenzied! Nothing short of ranting mad! Why, Hugh,
-is there a man, woman, or child now living on this earth
-who would voluntarily yield up an estate which they
-might keep—an estate of two millions of dollars—for—what?—a
-point of conscience! Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha,
-ha! Come, answer me!” she exclaimed, throwing herself
-into a chair with a strange, unnatural air of audacity.
-“Say! is there a man, woman, or child living who would
-do this?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes. Any child would do it. There is one man I
-know who would do it. There is one woman who will
-do it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Why, Dr. Hutton, anyone,
-if they were wealthy, might give up a thousand—ten
-thousand dollars, for conscience’ sake; but two millions!
-Ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha, ha! Why, Dr. Hutton!
-I am a human being, subject to like passions and foibles
-with other people. I rather like wealth, handsome
-houses and furniture, and dress and jewels, and servants
-and equipages, and traveling, sight-seeing, and change
-of scene. And if there were nothing to be given up but
-these, how great would be the sacrifice. But then, I have
-magnificent plans of extensive philanthropy; glorious
-prospects of social distinction. And to renounce these!
-How tremendous the renunciation!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, Nettie! with your usual perfect openness you
-have revealed the very death-throes of your expiring
-selfishness. For your selfishness—will die! Conscience
-will conquer it. The cup of earthly prosperity is brimful,
-and at your lips, but you will put it, untasted, away. I
-know you will! I have perfect faith in you!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh, you kill me! You madden me! Have you no
-pity? I believe you think you will make me do it!” she
-exclaimed, starting up and pacing the floor rapidly. “I
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_272'>272</span>do believe you fancy that you will make me give up this
-estate by asserting confidently that I will do it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I think your true nobility of soul will constrain you
-to it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Suddenly she stopped, threw both hands to her breast,
-and turned so ghastly pale that Dr. Hutton sprang to
-her side, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet, you are ill! Is it possible that this struggle
-produces such an effect upon you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She dropped her hands from her bosom, her color returned,
-and, smiling strangely, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, Hugh, do you fancy that I am such a spoiled
-child as to grow ill because I want to have my own way
-in all things? No! But as I hurried up and down the
-room in such a heat I was arrested suddenly by a quick,
-sharp pang; a deathly pang, that caught away my breath.
-It seemed to me as if another movement would have
-been fatal; it seemed as if in the very flow of my high
-tide of life and audacity the skeleton fingers of death
-had closed around my heart and squeezed it. It is gone
-now. Nay, now, nonsense, Hugh! Do not look at me
-with such a death-warrant in your eyes. If you look at
-your patients that way you will frighten them to death!”
-she said, laughing.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet, sit down. There—give me your wrist. Did
-you ever experience this symptom before?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Symptom! Bless you, Dr. Hutton, it is not a symptom.
-Dr. Hutton, if you are out of practice and wish to
-get your hand in again, I refer you to all the hypochondriacal
-old men and women on the plantation, who will
-delight your professional heart with ‘symptoms’ for any
-length of time.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet, you have been too much agitated to-day, for
-one of your excitable temperament. Go to rest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I will. I feel, for the first time in my life, a little
-exhausted,” she replied, rising and extending her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He drew her unresisting to his bosom, pressed a kiss
-upon her brow, and led her to the door.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He did not see her again until the next day at dinner,
-when she appeared in full dress, and looking grandly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_273'>273</span>beautiful, joyous, and decided. He congratulated her.
-She smiled exultingly, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I feel well, very well, because I have come to a
-decision.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When dinner was over she challenged him for a walk
-on the terrace around the roof of the house. When they
-had reached this elevated site she advanced to the front
-of the balustrade, and, stretching one hand out toward
-the magnificent prospect, she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Look, Hugh! Saw you ever a fairer scene?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is indeed a sublime and beautiful prospect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And has it no more interest than that? Listen,
-Hugh! All these waving forests and rolling hills and
-plains; all these fields and barns and granaries; all these
-orchards, vineyards, and gardens; these terraces, with
-their statues, fountains, and conservatories; this mansion
-house, with its stately chambers, halls, and saloons—is
-ours—is our beautiful, our superb home, if you will
-take it—when you take me,” she said, turning to him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie, when Satan wished to tempt Christ he took
-Him up into a very high mountain, and showed Him the
-kingdoms of the earth and the glory thereof, and said:
-‘All these will I give Thee, if Thou wilt fall down and
-worship me.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Upon my soul, I thank you for the parallel you have
-chosen to run between me and Satan!” exclaimed Miss
-Seabright, with a burning cheek.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You misconstrue me, dearest Garnet. You do not
-tempt me. I am not tempted. It is the Christ in you—the
-angel in you—the good in you that is tempted by
-Ambition.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh! Hugh! It is not for myself now so much as
-for you that I am ambitious. With the power this fortune
-would give, when joined to your talents, you could
-become so distinguished.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Again, Garnet: When Satan tempted Christ it was
-not through any puerile idea, but through the grandest
-passion of the human soul—the passion by which the
-great archangel fell—Ambition. But, I tell you, Garnet,
-that if ambition be the most glorious of human passions,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_274'>274</span>remorse is the most terrible. And, too often one follows
-the other as surely as night follows day.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She did not reply, and both remained silent for a few
-minutes, when, taking her hand, he said impressively:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do not think me ungrateful, dearest Garnet. Very
-deeply do I feel the blessing of your sweet love; very
-highly do I estimate the honor of your ambition for me.
-But listen, dearest. In erecting your edifice of earthly
-happiness, it would be well to lay the basement sure.
-You might possess and inhabit a princely palace, luxuriously
-furnished, yet you would not glory in its splendor,
-or even enjoy a moment’s repose under its roof, if
-you knew its foundation to be insecure; that at any instant
-in the midst of enjoyment it might suddenly fall
-and crush you under its magnificent ruins. Garnet, such
-an insecure dwelling-place, such a transient phantasmagoria,
-is any plan of earthly happiness not based upon
-the principles of justice. Such, Garnet, is your edifice of
-enjoyment; for you will feel that death, which hangs
-over us all at all times, may at any moment summon you
-from its possession to place you at the bar of Eternal
-Justice, to answer for the sin of your soul. And your
-ill-gotten splendors here will be your condemnation hereafter.
-Oh, believe me, dear Garnet, to say nothing of
-the sublime beauty of faith displayed in the sacrifice of
-earthly interests to heavenly prospects—of temporal
-pleasures to eternal joys—there is great good sense in
-seeking ‘first the Kingdom of God and His righteousness’;
-for, look you; I may gain wealth and renown, but
-if my fortune is ill-gotten I cannot fully enjoy it, for
-knowing that at any time my soul may be snatched
-from its possessions to the bar of God, and, stained with
-falsehood and injustice as it is, be hurled thence to perdition.
-But, on the other hand, if my fortune is founded
-upon righteousness, and built up with the blessing of
-God, then I may be as rich and as great as I please, and
-yet enjoy this world with a surer joy for knowing that it
-leads to a better and an eternal one. Life, dear Garnet,
-is a journey to the Judgment Seat. In all your plans,
-therefore, of life’s journey, look to its end. If you set
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_275'>275</span>out upon a road that you knew was leading you to misery—no
-matter how fine the carriage in which you traveled,
-how soft the cushions on which you sat, how beautiful
-the country through which you passed—you could
-not enjoy it; for every mile that should draw you nearer
-to its close would increase your uneasiness, for you would
-know its end to be misery. Such a journey, dear Garnet,
-will be your life if you set out upon it with ill-gotten
-riches. Now, look on the other side of the question. If
-you should start upon a journey that you know will bring
-you finally to a haven of rest and honor—no matter how
-common your vehicle, how rough your road, how ordinary
-the landscape, how full of unpleasant accidents—you
-will endure it, and at every stage with more cheerfulness,
-for knowing that it brings you nearer to its end,
-and that its end is repose and happiness. And, if your
-journey should be pleasant, its very pleasures will be enhanced
-by the knowledge that its goal is rest, honor, and
-joy. Such a journey will our lives be, dearest love. You
-will resign this estate. We will marry, and, feeling the
-smile and blessing of God upon us, we will go forth
-strongly and hopefully and labor for our living. We
-shall have some early struggles, but God will be with
-us. He will bless our sacrifice, and we shall finally prosper.
-And while weeks are slipping into months, and
-months gliding into years, we shall really enjoy the very
-making of a fortune, taste prosperity piecemeal, and get
-the good of every morsel. Every little comfort that we
-may be able to add to our daily domestic life will be
-relished the more that we have felt the want of it, and
-blessed the more that it has come to us from God. And
-for our future years I hope highly, but may not prophesy.
-They are in the hands of God,” he said, raising his hat
-with profound reverence. Then, his tone changing to
-one of deep tenderness, he stretched forth his arms, and
-said: “Come, Nettie! Come, my darling wife. You will
-give up all this ill-starred wealth, and trust in God to
-restore you a hundredfold.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Pale and drooping with excess of feeling she sank
-upon his bosom, murmuring:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_276'>276</span>“Oh, God bless you, Hugh! Large and full heart,
-God bless you! Where could I find my life but in you?
-But, oh, dear Hugh, do not be a martyr at this rational
-age of the world! Take my fortune with me.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never, Nettie! Never, so strengthen me Heaven!
-When I take you I will take no sin with you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She started, burst from his embrace, and broke forth
-with passionate vehemence:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Silence! I will not hear you. I will never give up
-my privileges. I will not be a fanatic to please you. Oh!
-look at me, Hugh; and do not think I speak from vanity,
-but from a war of conflicting passions, that rends my
-soul in twain. Do I look like one to be condemned to
-poverty, and privation, and domestic toil, and drudgery?
-I will speak out, though in your eyes I convict myself
-of vanity and presumption. You never called me beautiful
-in words, but you have said so with your eyes a
-thousand times. Oh, Hugh, I valued my beauty as I
-did my wealth, for your sake. But should I be beautiful
-in poverty? You know that I know what poverty is!
-Look at my hair, Hugh. Yesterday you took the whole
-mass up in your hand and looked at it as at a treasure,
-so proudly; then you singled out a ringlet and examined
-it as a strange beauty, so curiously. Now look at the
-ringlets again. Do you think it requires no care to keep
-them so soft and glossy, and in such full curl? Why, a
-rose-bush will not bloom in full glory unless it is cared
-for and tended; neither will my beauty. Hugh, I do not
-know why I may not venture to speak before you what
-I dare to think before God. I know that my soul’s habitation
-is beautiful; and it seems to me fit that it should
-be so, and that its beauty should be enhanced by rich
-drapery, and preserved from all uses. How could that
-be done in bitter poverty?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet,” he answered solemnly, “the soul is greater
-than its temple. Would you preserve the temple sacred
-from all uses, yet degrade the greater deity within it?
-Would you preserve the delicacy of your beauty, and
-clothe your form in gorgeous apparel by an action that
-would stain your soul with foul dishonesty?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_277'>277</span>“Don’t talk to me any more. You will drive me
-frantic. Dishonesty! That is the low vice of ignorant
-and debased natures, for which they are sometimes sent
-to the State’s prison.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And yet which is more excusable ‘in ignorant and
-debased natures’ than in intelligent and exalted ones,”
-said he sternly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dishonesty! What have I to do with that? This
-estate is legally mine. To keep it is not even injustice.
-Why do you talk to me so?” she exclaimed, tearing at
-her bosom, as she wildly walked up and down the terrace,
-as if to pluck away the burning pain there. “Why do
-you torture—exasperate—madden me so?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is not I, Garnet. No mere words that I could
-speak could disturb your bosom’s peace. It is the awful
-conscience there that refuses to be silent,” said Hugh
-solemnly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She paused before him, trembling all over; clenching
-her chest with her spread hands, as though to clutch the
-passion there; her eyes burning in their intense lurid fire,
-in fearful contrast with the ghastly paleness of her brow
-and cheeks, and gasped between her white lips:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You are an incendiary, sent here to convulse my soul
-with war, until Reason herself is hurled from her throne!
-Man! man! You know what civil war in a nation is.
-Do you know—can you guess what the internal conflict
-of a divided soul is? No, you do not. Your well-balanced
-mind, like a well-governed State, is always
-quiet. But mine! Oh, you have raised an insurrection
-in my soul that can never, never be suppressed! Oh,
-man! man! it is a grievous wrong that you have done
-me. I was so highly happy in my glorious hopes and
-prospects until you came. You have killed all my joy.
-But do not think,” she exclaimed, with another violent
-outburst of passion; “do not think that you have succeeded!
-Do not! Never suppose that to please your
-fanaticism I will give up my estate—never! never!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, Garnet. Not to please my fanaticism, as you call
-it, will you do so, but in obedience to your awakened
-and aroused conscience will you do so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_278'>278</span>“What! Never! What! resign all my great plans of
-usefulness, of benevolence, of wide philanthropy? Renounce
-all my glorious prospects of world honor—perhaps
-renown? Man! do you know what you ask of me?
-They are worth my soul’s price. Give up my fortune!
-Do you know its amount? Why, my income is almost
-a queen’s revenue. Do you know, as I do, with what
-power it clothes me?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know the vast amount and great power of your
-wealth, Garnet. And I know the great good that you,
-with your wonderful beauty, talent, and enterprise could
-do with it; the great distinction you could gain by it. I
-know your pride, your ambition, your burning aspiration
-after worldly glory, and I feel the stupendous force
-of the temptation that is upon you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I tell you, my power, my plans and prospects are
-worth almost my soul’s price!” she exclaimed vehemently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘Almost’ not quite. There is a surplus value and
-weight about the soul that will weigh down the scale, and
-toss the fortune up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never, I tell you. Never!” she repeated passionately.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hutton regarded her fixedly for some moments,
-then he asked coldly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And this, then, is your final decision, Miss Seabright?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; please Heaven, it is.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But it will not please Heaven, Miss Seabright. I
-only waited for your decision. I have it, and I shall
-leave here to-morrow. Had your conclusion been otherwise—but
-no more of that. And now,” said he sternly,
-“listen to me! You will go forth into the world. Your
-wondrous beauty, genius, and your riches will draw
-around you the mighty in intellect, wealth, and position.
-Yet, queen of that court as you will be, you will take no
-joy on your throne; you will know you have usurped the
-seat of another. Your graces of mind and of person will
-be the theme of every tongue, yet you will know that
-they clothe a soul spotted with dishonesty. Your extensive
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_279'>279</span>philanthropy will be the admiration of sages and
-statesmen, yet their praises will reproach you with the
-thought that your munificence is at the expense of another.
-Your benevolence will be the sustaining hope and
-comfort of all the poor and wretched around you, yet
-their very blessings will curse you with the thought that
-you have relieved them with means falsely taken and
-falsely kept from a widow. You will dwell in lordly
-mansions, yet their magnificence will oppress you with
-the consciousness that they belong in justice to another.
-You will be arrayed in costly garments, yet you will be
-scarcely able to bear the glare of their splendor, for you
-will know they cover a woman degraded from her pristine
-nobility by base ambition, and stained with foul injustice.
-You will be adorned with priceless gems, yet
-the diamond tiara on your brow will burn and sear your
-brain like a diadem of flame; the diamond necklace on
-your bosom will scorch and eat into your heart like a
-circlet of fire.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh! Hugh! spare me! I tell you you will drive
-me mad!” she cried, clasping her temples.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“At last you will cap the climax of your hopes by
-marrying some grand magnate of the land, yet you will
-bear within your bosom all the while a false, a widowed,
-and a lonely heart, for you will know that your husband
-is not your true mate; for you will know—you do know,
-oh, Garnet!—you feel by all the instincts of your nature
-that it was to this—this bosom that God wedded you
-from the first!” he said, dropping his voice to a gentle
-tone, and drawing her toward him.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She dropped her face upon his shoulder, and wept and
-sobbed as if her heart would break. Such convulsions of
-sobs; such a deluge of tears! Gasping all the while:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, I do! I know it, Hugh. Then, why will you
-cast me from you because I happen to be burdened with
-a fortune? Is not that a strange, new reason for leaving
-the girl that you love?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet! darling Nettie!” said Hugh tenderly; “if
-you were suddenly bereft of your enchanting beauty,
-my love would be strong enough to bear the change; for
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_280'>280</span>the heart and soul that I loved most would live for me
-unaltered. But smirch not the fairness of your soul, Garnet,
-for I will not wed moral deformity.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“This is weakness! This is miserable driveling!” exclaimed
-Miss Seabright, starting from her resting-place
-upon his bosom, and dashing the tears from her flashing
-eyes. “I am no mendicant for your love, sir! No! nor
-will I purchase it at too high a price, either!” she added
-bitterly, throwing off his deprecating hand, and hurrying
-from him into the house.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh looked after her in deep thought; then said to
-himself:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The flow and ebb of ocean’s tide is nothing to the
-waving forth and back of her mind in its present phase.
-How strong—how terrible is the death-agony of her ambition!
-If the contest were simply between ambition and
-love, ambition would triumph in a high, proud nature
-like hers; but justice sides with love, and together they
-are invincible. I would the battle were over, though.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He did not see her again during the day. She did not
-appear even at the supper-table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>I have no time to tell you how Garnet Seabright spent
-that night, how the battle in her soul was fought and
-won. I have only time left for results.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>In the gray of the morning Hugh Hutton came downstairs,
-booted, great-coated, and laden with his saddle-bags,
-preparatory to mounting his horse to set forth on
-his journey. He found Garnet Seabright in the great
-hall, apparently waiting for him. She stood at the foot
-of the stairs and leaned for support against the balustrades.
-She was looking very haggard, as from loss of
-rest and anxiety; yet, through all the physical weariness
-there radiated the light of a calm joy. He lifted his hat
-and bowed, intending to pass her, when she raised her
-hand, and by an adjuring gesture, stayed him, murmuring
-very low:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dr. Hutton, was it really your intention to leave me
-this morning?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was, Miss Seabright,” he replied, in a deep, constrained
-voice.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_281'>281</span>“‘It was,’ and is it?” she added, in a low tone, gently
-moving from her position.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It was, and is, Miss Seabright, unless you give me
-the only good reason for staying.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She advanced toward him, slowly, slowly, with averted
-face and deeply blushing cheek, laid both her hands in
-both of his, and murmured almost timidly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stay, then, Dr. Hutton; I give up the estate.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh Hutton dropped his saddle-bags, drew her to
-his bosom and pressed her there, but spoke no word as
-yet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, take me, Dr. Hutton! I am not worth much,
-bereft of all my glory, shorn,” she smiled faintly; “quite
-shorn of all my beams; but such as I am, you may have
-me, Dr. Hutton,” she murmured, dropping her head on
-his shoulder. Then, as he strained her to his bosom, the
-passion-fraught heart of the man found expression for its
-fullness of emotion in one “great heart-word”:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My wife!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, your wife,” she whispered, very softly, hiding
-her glowing face on his bosom. “Your wife! no more
-nor less than simply that cheerful toiler by your side. I
-thought to have conferred wealth on you! It was a
-proud, presuming thought—it is past now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My wife! my wife! you have! you do——” ejaculated
-Hugh Hutton, with his full heart gushing in every tone,
-until it choked his utterance, and he stopped.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Through all their painful struggle he had not broken
-down until now; and now—but she was talking again,
-murmuring in her sweet, deep tones again, and he bent
-to listen, to hear her whisper:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Hugh! such a night as I have passed; such resistance
-of the demon, before he would flee from me.
-But the war is over now—quite over! The estate, the
-projects are all resigned, and not regretted—for, oh,
-Hugh! where could I find such richness and fullness of
-life and joy as——” Her low voice died away with her
-breath along his cheek and chestnut hair. But it was
-Garnet’s nature or her present mood to pour forth the
-fullness of her heart in words. She spoke again: “Oh,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_282'>282</span>Hugh, I am so glad, so comforted and strengthened, so
-proud of you, that you did not yield one jot or tittle of the
-right, even for my love. Oh, Hugh! oh, Hugh! my
-guide and guard! be always good, and great, and strong,
-that I may have full life and joy in loving you. And
-when you have drawn your Nettie up to your own high
-moral level, soar you higher still, that, though rising
-herself, she may see you ever above her, and honor you
-as now! as now!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, God, have I deserved this!” exclaimed Hugh
-Hutton, raising his eyes in grateful adoration an instant,
-and then bending them with unutterable love on Garnet,
-as he ejaculated in earnest, fervent, broken language:
-“Nettie! Nettie! not Heaven, not Heaven could give me
-a higher incentive to high resolve than He has given me
-in your faith—in your faith!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He pressed his lips to hers, and from that first burning
-kiss the tide of eloquence found way. He snatched her
-up in his arms, hurried into the parlor, set her in a chair,
-sank down by her side, and, folding his arms adoringly
-around her form, poured forth, in words of fire, the long-pent,
-great passion of his heart.</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XL.<br> <span class='large'>ELSIE’S FORTUNES.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>You shall be blessed as once you were with friends, and home, and all</div>
- <div class='line'>That in the exulting joy of love your own you fondly call;</div>
- <div class='line'>Beloved and loving faces that you’ve known so long as well;</div>
- <div class='line'>The dear familiar places where your childish footsteps fell.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>It was Saturday night, and Dr. Hardcastle had not
-yet returned home to supper. The family, except Elsie,
-had all retired to bed. Elsie had had a very fatiguing
-day, as most industrious housekeepers must have in
-bringing the week’s work to a conclusion. Elsie’s work,
-however, was not yet fully completed, though the family
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_283'>283</span>clock was on the stroke of nine, for having gotten
-through with all the heavy household labor, cleared up
-the supper-table, put the children to bed, and persuaded
-her mother to retire to rest, she set the coffee pot and
-a covered plate and dish to keep hot for Magnus, replenished
-the fire, drew a little table up before it, and sat
-down with a large basket of stockings to darn—a couple
-of dozen of little hose and half a dozen pair of large ones—all
-to be looked over, and half to be mended. And
-Elsie, with her usually happy alchemy of turning everything
-into a subject of congratulation, said to herself
-that it was very fortunate she had so many stockings to
-darn, as it made the time pass so much quicker while
-waiting for Magnus. Yet Elsie was very weary; very
-well prepared to appreciate the blessings of the Sabbath
-that makes cessation from work a positive duty. Yes,
-she was very weary, though the only signs of fatigue she
-showed were in the deeper flush of her cheek, the brighter
-light of her eyes, and the clammy moisture of her fair
-forehead that half uncurled the golden ringlets. The
-last little stocking was drawn upon her hand, and the
-bright needle swiftly gliding in and out among the
-meshes of the last rent, when the quick gallop of a horse
-into the yard apprised her that her husband had come,
-and in an instant more the door was thrown open and
-Dr. Hardcastle entered. Elsie was about to rise and receive
-him, when something strange and novel in his air
-and manner arrested her attention, as he said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, do not stir! Sit still, dear Elsie! I want to look
-at you just as you are a moment.” He threw off his
-great-coat, drew a chair to her side, seated himself by
-her, and gazed at her for the space of half a minute.
-Then he took her hand into his palm, pressed it, and,
-opening his hand, watched the rosy tide ebb and flow
-through her still beautiful fingers. “Elsie,” said he,
-“how long have we been married, dear wife?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Eleven years and more,” replied she, looking up inquiringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you remember, dear, Judge Wylie’s ball given in
-honor of your return from school? Do you remember
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_284'>284</span>that we had just heard of my changed prospects, and
-that we knew if we should marry we would have to go
-forth to a life of toil and self-denial—and do you remember
-that I took this hand into mine with fear and
-trembling for its destiny as it lay in my broad, brown
-palm, a tiny snow-white thing, sparkling with diamonds
-like icicles on snow, a fairy hand—an ideal hand?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I remember you talked a great deal of poetry
-about my hand, dear Magnus—and I remember that seeing
-you loved its beauty so much, I made a rash promise
-to keep it always beautiful for your sake. I could not do
-it, dear Magnus. It is not so fair and elegant now as it
-was then,” said Elsie, smiling, and holding it up.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But, oh! how much dearer! how much more beloved!
-Then it was an ideal hand—now it is a human hand, a
-mother’s hand,” he said, taking it again and pressing it
-to his lips and bosom, and gazing fondly on her. Then,
-after a little, he spoke again, saying: “Elsie, dearest,
-there was another promise which you made, but in my
-name, and which I tacitly indorsed, yet have failed to
-perform.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, dear Magnus?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you remember the dress you wore upon the memorable
-occasion of that ball? I do perfectly. I do not
-know the material of which it was made, but it floated
-around you as you moved—a soft and radiant mist. And
-when I spoke of it, bemoaning the fate that would
-change it for a plain garb such as befitted a poor young
-doctor’s wife—you smiled hopefully, and promised that
-in ten years, when I should have ‘achieved greatness,’
-you would wear a much richer dress, which should still
-befit my station—and I indorsed the promise; yet ten
-years have passed, and I have failed to redeem it. My
-Elsie still wears coarse clothing, and works from morning
-till night.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Your Elsie is happy, dearest Magnus. And the
-Princess Charlotte herself, the idol lady of all England,
-could not say any more. Young people, especially where
-youth is brightened by such sanguine blood as mine, have
-too many extravagant hopes—make too many rash
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_285'>285</span>promises; I say again, your Elsie is happy, dear Magnus,
-and if she had the world she could not say more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>He gazed on her in fond admiration for a little while,
-and then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, dearest, there is one thing at least in which we
-did not promise or expect too much—in which we have
-not failed to keep our promise—to love each other more
-and more every year we should live.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She raised her eyes to his, and he read her answer in
-their loving glance.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, Elsie,” he said, at last, “you are happy; yet it
-is not now the hope of better days to come that makes
-you happy—for more than ten years have passed, and I
-have not laid by a thousand dollars. So you can scarcely
-expect now that I shall ever make a fortune by my
-profession.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, we make a comfortable living, and shall continue
-to do so; and as for our dear children, we must
-educate them to work, as we have done. Let me give
-you your supper now, Magnus.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No—not just yet,” he said, smiling on her hand and
-pressing it.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, then, let go my hand a minute, till I finish
-darning little Elsie’s stocking.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No! no more work to-night, Elsie,” he said firmly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! just let me finish this last stocking; it completes
-the whole job.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No! no more work to-night! No more work ever
-more for you. The long, long trial you have borne so
-patiently, so nobly, is over. Elsie! dearest Elsie! fortune
-has come to us at last.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie stared at her husband with a look so blank that
-you could not have told whether she had heard good or
-bad news—an instant, and then a sudden joy broke over
-her countenance, and she exclaimed, in a voice of wonder
-and gladness:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Fortune! You tell me so, Magnus, and it must be
-true.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, fortune—yet it has come to us through such
-solemn, not to say tragic, circumstances that our prosperity
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_286'>286</span>must be received with a chastened spirit. Listen,
-dearest Elsie—this evening, as I returned home, I called
-at the post office and found a letter from Reynolds, who
-used to do all my Uncle Hardcastle’s law business. By
-his letter I learned that about five weeks since my unhappy
-cousin, Lionel, who had just returned from making
-the tour of Europe with his ward, was instantly killed
-on Hutton’s Island by the accidental discharge of a pistol.
-My uncle never recovered from the shock of his death,
-and he sank gradually until about five days since, when
-he died, leaving me sole heir to all his property and
-executor of his will.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Alas! Magnus, is it not a sad and grave thought, that
-no property which we do not make by our own toil ever
-comes to us except through the death or the misfortunes
-of others! Alas! Magnus, our prosperity should indeed
-be received with a very chastened spirit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, sudden riches should be always received with
-fear and trembling; and when they come by sudden death—with
-awe!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie looked down thoughtfully upon her clasped
-hands and then, after a little while, inquired:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, Magnus! what will be your first movement under
-these new circumstances?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I shall proceed at once to Hemlock Hollow to settle
-up affairs, and prepare the old hall for the reception of
-you and the children. And by the time those arrangements
-are completed the weather will be sufficiently
-settled to remove them. The only point of difficulty is in
-the temporary disposition of my professional business.
-I scarcely know what to do with my patients. I wish
-Hugh would return and take charge of the practice for
-a few weeks during my absence, or until the people could
-get another physician to settle among them.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is quite time that we had heard from Hugh. But,
-dear Magnus, has this sudden news quite deprived you
-of your appetite?” said Elsie, rising and putting away
-her basket of work.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No—oh, no, dearest! Give me my supper.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie’s nimble hands quickly laid the cloth, and spread
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_287'>287</span>the little supper. Magnus drew up his chair, and Elsie
-had just poured out his coffee when the quick gallop of
-a horse up to the house, followed by a loud knocking at
-the door, arrested their attention. Magnus went to answer
-the summons, and in another instant Hugh Hutton
-entered. “Why, Hugh!” exclaimed Dr. Hardcastle and
-his wife in one breath.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Come in! Come in! We are so glad to see you!
-But where on earth did you come from? How did you
-come? You did not come by the stage this afternoon,
-for I was at the stage office myself when it came in,” said
-Dr. Hardcastle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; I missed the coach at the last station, and had
-to hire a horse to bring me hither. But how do you all
-do?” said Hugh, shaking hands with both.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, very well! But you, Hugh, how is it with
-you?” asked Dr. Hardcastle, glancing at his black suit.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I may reply in your own words—‘Well, very well!’
-You got my letter?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, friends, it was a bitter blow to me, but I believe
-now it was dealt in mercy to her. You have heard
-from Hemlock Hollow.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes—but only this evening.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And what do you intend to do?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To go on there immediately and prepare for the removal
-of my family as soon as the weather permits. But,
-come, Hugh—come, here is supper. See, Elsie has already
-set your plate and knife and fork and poured out
-your coffee.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What! have you really not supped yet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have not! Draw up.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The conversation at supper turned upon the affairs
-of Hemlock Hollow, Point Pleasant, Huttontown, and its
-neighborhood. Yet there was a studious avoidance of
-the subject of Mount Calm and Garnet Seabright, until
-the cloth was removed, and Dr. Hardcastle arose with
-the evident intention of showing his guest to his
-chamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then Hugh made a sign to his host to take his seat,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_288'>288</span>and resumed his own, saying: “Well, my dear friends,
-you have inquired after everybody in our old neighborhood
-except my fair young hostess, Miss Seabright of
-Mount Calm; and yet one would think that she would
-interest you more than all.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh paused for a reply, and looked at them both.
-Elsie’s brow crimsoned, and she turned away. Dr.
-Hardcastle looked very grave, and remained silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“If you knew Miss Seabright personally you would
-admire her very much. She is the most superbly beautiful
-woman I ever saw—of the brunette order, I mean,”
-he added, bowing and smiling toward Mrs. Hardcastle,
-who averted her face with a heightened color. “Yes,
-she is certainly the most splendidly beautiful brunette I
-ever saw—and with a soul, too, more beautiful than its
-shrine.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Still Elsie averted her head, and Dr. Hardcastle continued
-gravely silent.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You do not answer me,” said Hugh perseveringly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh, my dear boy, Elsie and myself love and admire
-you sufficiently. Do not insist upon our loving and
-admiring your friend, Miss Seabright. Under all the circumstances
-it is quite too great a task for human
-nature.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yet,” said Hugh—and his voice faltered, and the
-tears swam in his eyes—“yet last week I was the instrument
-in the hands of Providence in setting a far greater
-task than that to human nature, sir! And not to nature,
-well-disciplined human nature like yours, but to young,
-ardent, impetuous human nature—and I saw, through
-tears and groans, and writhings of the spirit, that task
-accomplished. What should you think of a young girl
-endowed with great wealth, peerless beauty, graces and
-accomplishments—fitted in every way to adorn the highest
-circles of society—a girl, besides, of high self-appreciation—of
-great ambition—of adventurous enterprise—whose
-head and heart were busy with a hundred grand
-and glorious plans of life—what, I ask you, should you
-think of such a girl, in such circumstances, giving up
-her wealth, her rank, her splendid plans and prospects,
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_289'>289</span>her soul’s most cherished expectations and desires for the
-sake of simple, abstract justice?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I should think that such a noble girl was worthy of
-a king’s worship, or rather of a hero’s love. But it is
-impossible! No girl would ever do this,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-turning and gazing at Hugh with wonder.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Will you please to look over these documents,” said
-Hugh, drawing a packet of papers from his great-coat
-pocket and laying them on the table.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The title deeds of Mount Calm, and legally conveyed
-to Alice Chester Garnet by Garnet Seabright!” exclaimed
-Dr. Hardcastle, examining them. Then he laid
-the documents down, squared himself round, placed his
-hands upon his knees, and, staring full into the face of
-Hugh, said: “Hugh! what the d——, I never swore in
-my life! Don’t make me begin now! But what the
-deuce does all this mean?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You see what it means. Miss Seabright, having
-come of age, and feeling that she has no just right to
-the Mount Calm estate, conveys it to its original owner,
-Mrs. Garnet!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie suddenly clasped her hands, and bent forward
-with flushed cheeks and open lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle continued his fixed, broad stare, until
-Hugh exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“God bless all our souls, Magnus Hardcastle, you are
-not the only noble specimen of God’s workmanship on
-earth. There are others capable of magnanimity besides
-Magnus—even the young girl, Garnet Seabright!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet! She is a diamond of the first water. Is it
-possible that this should be so? I can scarcely credit
-the testimony of my eyes and ears! That Miss Seabright,
-as soon as she reached her majority, should have
-given up her estate. Oh! it must have been a mere impulse
-of youthful enthusiasm. She could not have known
-the value of money and property—and, besides, you must
-have used great powers of persuasion with her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No—you are wrong in every point. It was not enthusiasm.
-All her enthusiasm was enlisted on the other
-side, in favor of social distinction, for which she considered
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_290'>290</span>wealth indispensable. Nor was she ignorant of the
-value of money. No, enlightened by experiences in the
-extremes of, first poverty and afterward wealth, this girl
-of twenty-one had as accurate a knowledge of the value
-of money and property as any miser, beggar, or banker
-of forty-two. Nor was it without a struggle she resigned
-the estate. Most terrible indeed was the battle in her
-soul before Justice subdued Ambition. Nor was it
-through my persuasion that she made this glorious sacrifice
-to right. No; no mere words of mine could have
-subdued that towering pride, governed that aspiring
-ambition. No; I simply set the truth before her, and then
-let it work its way. No; I set the truth before her, and
-then I might have gone to Patagonia or Bering Strait,
-and the result would have been the same. She would
-never have known an hour’s peace until she had restored
-the property, at whatever sacrifice to her pride
-and ambition.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here Elsie broke forth, exclaiming:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! what a noble girl! Oh! I love and admire her
-so much. I do think if I were in mother’s place now I
-should be Quixotic enough to convey the whole estate
-back again to her. At least, I know I would make her
-take back half of it. My heart burns toward that noble
-girl, and I feel half ashamed that we should benefit by
-her magnanimity. I feel as if by her giving and our
-receiving so much that she is more noble than we are.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, yes! She is indeed a noble, a wonderful girl!”
-exclaimed Dr. Hardcastle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And this noble, this wonderful girl,” said Hugh, with
-his cheeks and eyes kindling with pride and joy—“this
-glorious girl is going to be my wife! Congratulate me,
-dear friends!” he suddenly exclaimed, impulsively thrusting
-out a hand to each.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Going to be your wife? I am so glad,” exclaimed
-Elsie, pressing his left hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Going to be your wife? Why, then, dear Hugh, this
-great sacrifice is fully as much yours as hers—since what
-was hers would have been yours,” said Dr. Hardcastle,
-shaking his right hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_291'>291</span>“Never mind that; only wish me joy.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We do! We do! with all our hearts,” said Elsie,
-clasping his hand again. “But when are you going to be
-married, Hugh?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Next Thursday four weeks. Having deprived Nettie
-of all her wealth I must take her as soon as possible
-under my legal protection, unsettled as I am, and trust
-God with the result. Yes, next Thursday four weeks;
-that will give you time to prepare to come to Mount
-Calm, which, having been just handsomely fitted up for
-the reception of Miss Seabright, on her return from
-Europe, is in a proper condition to receive your family.
-Miss Seabright will remain at Mount Calm until our
-marriage, which will take place there. We wish you to
-arrive at or before our wedding day, that when we leave
-the mansion house we may leave you in possession.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh, we are not, of course, authorized to promise
-anything in the name of Mrs. Garnet, who is at this moment
-ignorant of Miss Seabright’s magnanimity; but—I
-would she were here to answer for herself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here the clock struck twelve, and Dr. Hardcastle,
-lighting another candle, said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Friends, it is Sunday morning. Let us waive the
-discussion of worldly matters for to-day. Hugh, you
-know your chamber. Good-night!”</p>
-
-<div class='chapter'>
- <h2 class='c004'>CHAPTER XLI.<br> <span class='large'>THE SECRET REVEALED.</span></h2>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b c008'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>And in her lineaments they trace</div>
- <div class='line'>Some features of her father’s face.</div>
- <div class='line in30'><i>—Byron.</i></div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<p class='c009'>In the meantime Miss Seabright was preparing to resign
-her state. Few can estimate the terrible trial it
-was to this just but ambitious girl to abdicate her elevated
-social position and step down upon the common
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_292'>292</span>level to labor with the common herd. You have already
-seen how, in the fearful struggle which had ensued—in
-that dread bosom tempest—all the latent selfishness
-which marred that noble nature was thrown up and
-exposed upon the crest of the tossing waves of passion.
-But if, in this soul-storm, her hidden evil was cast up to
-view, it was also cast off. And then, when the waves of
-her heart subsided, and the clouds on her brain dispersed,
-and the sun of right shone out clear and bright,
-illuminating her soul, and revealing her to herself—then
-she saw that there was something in her own nature
-greater than all her adventitious surroundings. Now she
-would not have said to Hugh what she had said before,
-“I am not much, shorn of my beams.” No, indeed, there
-was consolidating in her heart a noble, steadfast self-appreciation
-that would no more falsify itself by factitious
-humility than degrade itself by unjust action. And
-having once made the sacrifice, and turned her back
-upon the splendors of her past fortune, there was no regret,
-no looking back, like Lot’s wife; her face was set to
-her forward path—her strong, impetuous soul already
-rushing on to realize her future of loving and hopeful
-toil with Hugh for her companion and guide. With
-Hugh! How, the recurring of his very name, the tide
-of emotion, like the rushing of a mighty river, would roll
-over her, overwhelming and confusing her soul with a
-sort of lost, delirious joy! Within this month of sacrifice,
-how much stronger and more concentrated had become
-her love for Hugh! And if the Judge of all hearts
-had demanded a reason for the mighty love that was in
-her, she would have been constrained to answer, “It is
-his moral integrity that has mastered my heart. It is
-his moral integrity that would not waver, for love or for
-ambition—those two mightiest passions of the human
-soul. I loved him before, I loved him well enough to
-have given him myself and all my wealth, but when I
-found in him a moral rectitude that would not bend for
-love of me, or hope of grandeur, I was drawn up to adore
-him. Yes, that is why I would rather follow him barefoot
-over all the earth, if necessary, and serve him as the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_293'>293</span>Indian woman serves her lord, than be myself the object
-of worship to all the world.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Yes, there was a man to love through life and unto
-death; there was a man to repose upon in all weakness,
-to confide in in all emergencies; whom the combined
-power of love and ambition, beauty, wealth, and the
-usages of society that would have justified him, could
-never move from his uprightness. There was a pillar of
-strength to cling to in a storm. It was with as much
-high-born pride and joy as love that Garnet thought of
-her betrothed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The month and her preparations drew near their close.
-She was daily expecting to hear of the arrival of the
-family of Dr. Hardcastle at Hemlock Hollow. Dr. Hutton,
-who had not yet returned, was to come with them.
-She was looking for them by every stage, and hourly
-she added some new attraction to the preparations she
-was making to receive them. The ancients were accustomed
-to adorn a sacrifice before offering it up, and the
-same instinct impelled Miss Seabright daily to walk
-through her halls and chambers, designing, with her artistic
-taste, new improvements and embellishments for
-the palace home she was about to resign.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The wedding day arrived. It was a bright and beautiful
-day in May. Upon the evening previous Dr. Hardcastle,
-with his family, had arrived at Hemlock Hollow.
-Therefore, there had been no time or opportunity for a
-meeting between them and Miss Seabright previous to
-the marriage day. Dr. Hutton was a guest at the Hollow,
-and a note from him to Miss Seabright informed her
-that they would all be at Mount Calm at an early hour of
-the morning. Owing to the rather recent deaths in the
-family, and the peculiarity of the circumstances, it had
-been arranged that the marriage ceremony should be performed
-quietly at eight o’clock in the morning in the
-saloon of Mount Calm, in the presence of few witnesses,
-and that immediately after the ceremony and breakfast
-the young couple should depart to seek their Western
-home, leaving Mrs. Garnet in possession of the mansion
-house and the estate. The only guests invited were the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_294'>294</span>Hardcastles, with Mrs. Garnet, Judge Wylie and Miss
-Wylie, and their old friend, the Rev. Mr. Wilson, with
-his wife and young sister. The marriage ceremony was
-to be performed after the Episcopal ritual by the recently
-installed pastor of the New Church.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At seven o’clock in the morning, therefore, the few
-privileged friends, with the exception of the Hardcastles,
-who had not yet arrived, were assembled in the saloon
-of Mount Calm, awaiting the entree of the bridal party.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At last the carriage containing the family from Hemlock
-Hollow drove up and paused before the main entrance
-of the mansion, and Dr. Hardcastle alighted, followed
-by Dr. Hutton, who then handed out Mrs. Garnet
-and Mrs. Hardcastle. They passed up the marble stairs
-and into the hall, where they paused until Mrs. Garnet
-had sent up a servant to the bride, to request the favor
-of being received by her before she should come down
-into the saloon, and obtained an answer that Miss Seabright
-would be pleased to see Mrs. Garnet and Mrs.
-Hardcastle in her own apartment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The servant who brought back the message bowed
-and offered to show the ladies up. Mrs. Garnet and her
-daughter followed him up the broad staircase into the
-upper hall, and through a door into an elegant front
-dressing room, which Alice recognized with a smile as
-having been her own bedchamber.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The room, when they entered, was vacant of other
-occupants, but they had scarcely seated themselves at the
-front windows when the opposite folding doors opened
-and Miss Seabright appeared before them.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A novice, when she is about to renounce forever the
-pomps and vanities of the world and take the black veil
-of the nun, arrays herself for the last time in costly
-apparel. So Miss Seabright, when about to resign forever
-all pretensions to splendor, arrayed her glorious
-form with almost regal magnificence. Her bridal costume
-was a rich Mechlin lace over white and silver brocaded
-satin, and festooned with bouquets of pearls and
-diamonds, a fine and ample lace veil confined above her
-and ringlets by a wreath of the same priceless gems.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_295'>295</span>Mrs. Garnet raised her eyes to look upon the bride.
-She had never seen Miss Seabright before, and now, at
-the first sight of her magnificently beautiful form and
-face, Alice started violently: all the blood suddenly left
-her cheeks for an instant, and then rushed back again,
-crimsoning her face to the very edges of her hair—so
-startling, so strong, so painful was the resemblance of
-Miss Seabright to the late General Garnet. Yes, there
-was the same majesty and sweetness of mien, the same
-regal turn of head and neck, the same fiery, dark hair,
-the same smoldering and flashing eyes, the same beautiful
-lips, the same bewildering smile. The only difference
-was that in place of the latent diabolism under General
-Garnet’s countenance all heaven shone from Miss Seabright’s.
-Alice felt that she looked upon her late husband’s
-face, only with its beauty idealized, elevated, made
-divine. The vague, half-formed suspicions concerning
-the paternity of Garnet Seabright that had occasionally
-floated through her mind now became painfully confirmed.
-As she gazed chills and heats alternately shook
-her frame, and then a strong, yearning compassion
-mingled with the high admiration she had hitherto felt
-for the noble-souled girl, and she said to herself: “I
-wonder if she knows it?” Then, looking at her more
-attentively, she exclaimed inwardly: “No, no! she does
-not know or suspect it! My soul upon it, she does not
-know or suspect it! No; there is a high self-appreciation,
-a grandeur in her mien and air, a majesty seated
-on that pure and lofty brow, unconscious of shame—unconscious
-of the very possibility of shame! God shield
-her from the knowledge! for, oh! as I look upon her
-noble presence now, I feel too surely that the knowledge
-of her shame would kill her with a stroke swift, sharp,
-and sure! God shield her from the knowledge! It were
-sacrilege to discrown that imperial brow of its diadem
-of unsullied honor, and brand it with shame instead.
-God shield the innocent from the knowledge of guilt
-which is infamy! God shield her! Oh, I can now forgive
-my dead husband for having cheated me out of this
-beautiful daughter, when I think he had the grace to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_296'>296</span>keep her innocent of the knowledge of her parentage and
-his guilt. Yet how he must have loved her! Oh, doubtless
-many times when his brow was overcast with gloom
-and sullenness, it was with the thought of this child.
-He never confided his sins or his troubles to me. Would
-he had! I could have been as much of a friend as a wife
-to him. Would he had had faith enough in me, when
-the poor little one was orphaned, to have laid her on my
-bosom instead of exiling her to that bleak isle! I would
-have brought her up as my own. Did he dream that I
-would have been otherwise than good to a little child?
-But he would not trust me. He could tyrannize over
-me in a thousand useless ways, yet never could venture
-to bring the motherless child to my arms. No; he could
-never tell me until that night, when drunken both with
-brandy and bad passions—he taunted me with the fact.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All these thoughts of Garnet’s parentage passed with
-the rapidity of lightning through the mind of Mrs. Garnet,
-while Miss Seabright, with outstretched hands and
-radiant countenance, was advancing toward her.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No; she must never know it! That pure, bright
-brow must never be smirched and darkened by the burning,
-blackening smite of shame! Yet shall she be another
-daughter to me,” concluded Alice, as she arose to
-meet the bride. As Miss Seabright, being the taller of
-the two, bent to welcome Mrs. Garnet, Alice threw one
-arm caressingly over her shoulder, and saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“We must not meet as strangers, my love,” kissed her
-cheek.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Miss Seabright looked down with proud gravity upon
-the gentle lady for an instant, and then said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have great pleasure in welcoming you back to your
-native halls, Mrs. Garnet. Long may you live in the enjoyment
-of them!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The enjoyment of which I owe to you, noble girl.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nay, madam; the long deprivation of which you
-owed to me, unfortunately. The repossession of which
-now you owe to nobody—nothing. It is simple justice.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But it is not justice, thou noble girl, that thou, who
-wast brought up in affluence——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_297'>297</span>“Nay, madam—I have known penury, too!” interrupted
-Miss Seabright, with a sort of proud humility, if
-the phrase be admissible.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Without noticing the interruption Mrs. Garnet resumed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is not justice that one educated in luxury, and in
-the prospect of nearly boundless wealth, should be suddenly
-bereft of everything and reduced to a position for
-which she is totally unfit.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, madam! pardon me. Had I not an example before
-me? Did not your own admirable daughter resign
-wealth and station and go forth to a life of toil and
-privation to preserve intact the integrity of her heart?”
-said Garnet Seabright, with gentle dignity, waving her
-hand toward Mrs. Hardcastle, who had withdrawn to
-a distant window during this colloquy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, to preserve the dignity of her heart, and the
-love of her heart—which latter gave her strength to do
-as she did. Yes, and that was scarcely a trial to Elsie,
-who possessed a cheerful, loving, and active temperament,
-and was, besides, without your aspiring ambition.
-No, Miss Seabright—nature, even more than education,
-has quite unfitted you for the life of active household
-toil and privation, voluntarily assumed for long years
-by Mrs. Hardcastle. No, Miss Seabright—justice, as
-well as your own magnanimous conduct, has imposed
-this duty on me.” Miss Garnet paused and, drawing
-from her pocket a roll of parchment, placed it in the
-hands of the bride.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is this?” asked Miss Seabright.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is a deed of conveyance of property to the amount
-of one-tenth the Mount Calm estate. Receive it, with
-my love, as a marriage portion.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I cannot, madam,” said Miss Seabright, returning the
-deed.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nay, take it—take it then as a mark of the high esteem—the
-honor I bear you!” persisted Mrs. Garnet,
-tendering the packet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, I cannot take it, madam.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Receive it, then, as your right, proud girl! Education
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_298'>298</span>and expectation have given you a right to this
-Take it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Indeed, believe me, I cannot, madam; though from
-my soul I thank you,” said Miss Seabright, with emotion.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet looked discouraged for an instant, and
-then, as her glance fell upon the bright and joyous form
-of Elsie, as she stood looking out from the front window
-upon the spring scene, her eyes lighted up, and she called
-to her:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Elsie, my love, come here. You have a gift of persuasion
-that I, with all my good-will, never possessed.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie came smiling forward.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, this is my daughter, Mrs. Hardcastle.”
-(Ah, Heaven! if they knew they were sisters!)</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As Miss Seabright bowed Mrs. Hardcastle threw her
-arm around her neck, and kissed her heartily, exclaiming
-simply:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, I wished to meet you so much! I shall be so
-glad to know you well!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I called you here, my love, to aid me in persuading
-Miss Seabright to suffer me to do her justice. You
-know——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, I know!” said Elsie, interposing her cheerful
-voice. “I know all about it. See here, Miss Seabright!
-I never was crowned with magnanimity, sublimity, enthusiasm,
-or the rest of the Godlike virtues and frenzies!
-But I am gifted with some sound, good sense, which is
-ever at the service of my friends, and I offer you a sample
-of it now. Magnanimity is Godlike, until it is distorted
-into fanaticism, when it is fool-like! It was magnanimous
-in you to give up the whole of this estate. It
-would be fanatical to refuse to take the tenth of it when
-it is offered to you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The aptness of this argument seemed to strike Miss
-Seabright, for, smiling, she replied:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I refer you to Dr. Hutton. I underwent such a
-course of lessons from him upon the love of lucre, as opposed
-to the love of justice, that I shall not forget it
-soon. Ha! I am not sure that, should I go to the altar
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_299'>299</span>with a deed of any portion of this estate in my pocket,
-he would not think I had backslidden in principles, and
-reject me even there!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here Miss Joe, who, unperceived, had entered the
-room and came up to them, interposed her voice, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wish he wouldn’t—I just do! I shouldn’t like to
-see Hugh make such a fool of himself as that!” Then,
-patting Miss Seabright affectionately upon the shoulder,
-she whispered, in a knowing, confidential tone: “You
-take it yourself, honey. Who has got a better right to
-some o’ General Garnet’s property than you? Sure,
-you’re his own flesh and blood! and the image of him,
-too! You’re his own flesh and blood, honey. I know
-all about it. It’s all in the little yellow hair trunk among
-the letters. You take it, honey. You’re his own flesh
-and blood!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! Miss Joe, your rash words have destroyed—have
-blasted her!” exclaimed Alice, in a voice of agony,
-as the old lady, having fired this magazine, hurried out
-of the room quite heedless, because quite unsuspicious
-of the impending ruin.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And ruined indeed looked Miss Seabright, with every
-vestige of color blasted from her marble-like face. Still
-as a statue of despair, she stood with her dilated eyes
-immovably fixed upon the receding figure of the old
-woman, until it had disappeared from the room.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Then tossing back her bridal veil and springing forward
-she grasped the hand of Mrs. Garnet, and, darting
-her wild gaze piercingly into the lady’s gentle eyes, she
-asked hurriedly:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Did I—did I hear aright? What did she say?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing; do not mind her, Miss Seabright,” replied
-the lady, with a flushed brow.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What did she say?” repeated Garnet.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing! Nothing worth telling, my dear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! I implore you, tell me what did she say?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dearest girl! nothing that it is well you should
-hear.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nay, then! I adjure you to tell me! By your soul’s
-truth, I adjure you to tell me!” she persisted wildly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_300'>300</span>“She told you, dearest Garnet, that you were the
-daughter of my late husband; but——”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Stay! am I so?” interrupted Garnet, in a voice of indescribable
-anguish.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes—I believe so,” replied Alice gently.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She dropped the hand she had grasped with such
-strength, and stood as if suddenly turned to stone, for
-an instant—and then springing forward with the wild
-energy of desperation, she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Unsay those words—or see me die before you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Alice suddenly threw her arms around the form of the
-stricken girl, and, catching her wild eyes, gazed into
-them deeply and tenderly as though she would have
-transfused all her own sweet love and resignation into
-that rampant soul, and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dearest child! She told you only what we knew, and
-still loved you. Dearest child! you are my husband’s
-daughter, and Elsie’s younger sister—and we love you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The child of your husband and not your child! The
-younger sister of your daughter, and you living!” exclaimed
-the wretched girl, sinking, withering, shriveling
-as it were before the fell blast of this burning and consuming
-revelation. At last she groaned forth in tones of
-unutterable sorrow: “Oh! oh! was it right, Heaven! was
-it well, Heaven! just as I had made a great sacrifice to
-duty, and achieved a great moral victory; was it well to
-strike me in my pride of place, and bring me down so
-low! so low!” Then with another spasmodic outbreak
-of energy, she exclaimed: “Unsay those words! Unsay
-them, or see me die before you! Take all I have—wealth,
-rank, prospects, hopes! all, all! but, for the love of God,
-unsay those words! Take all, all! but leave me my honorable
-name! Take all, all! but let me go an honored,
-if an humble bride, to my husband’s home! Oh, for the
-pity of God!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again Mrs. Garnet threw her arms around the cowering
-form of the wretched girl, as though she would envelop,
-sustain, save her in this trying moment, by the
-might of love; and saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dearest Garnet! my love! my love! you shall go
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_301'>301</span>an honorable and an honored bride to your husband’s
-home. One whom I will take to my bosom thus—is
-a worthy match for any man. You should have been my
-own daughter, Garnet, but that I was cheated out of you;
-but I claim you now. You are my husband’s child, and
-the express image of his person; therefore you should
-have been my child; therefore I claim you now to be my
-child of right! I loved your father, Garnet! I love you!
-Believe me! Do not cover your face, and turn it from
-me. Let me kiss you. Do not grieve so.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Grieve!” exclaimed the sinking girl, in a voice of
-anguish; “I do not grieve, lady! I die! Grieve! Oh,
-look you, madam! If I had suffered the loss of friends
-by death, or what is worse, by treachery; if I were
-miserably poor, ill, and abandoned; if I were dying of
-disease, want, and neglect; if I were misjudged, slandered,
-and persecuted; if I were unjustly charged, falsely
-imprisoned, and innocently doomed to death; if I were
-suffering any other anguish of mind, or agony of body,
-then I might grieve—but now! now! that I know myself
-a living, breathing monument of guilt!” A terrible
-shudder shook her frame and arrested her speech—her
-form collapsed and sank more than before—and it was
-in a dying voice she resumed: “Now that I know myself
-infected by worse than leprosy”—she paused and
-looked at herself from head to foot; she stretched forth
-her beautiful brown arm, frosted with pearls and diamonds,
-and surveyed it; she gathered up the lurid ringlets
-of her dark hair and gazed on them; then, dropping
-her arms wearily, she continued—“I was not so vain
-as grateful for my beauty. But now! oh, God! to think
-that every atom of flesh, and every drop of blood, and
-every nerve and vein to my heart’s core is pervaded, permeated
-with sin and reproach! sin and reproach! Oh,
-God! oh, God, quickly take back the soul Thou didst
-send into this shape of sin!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Once more her form cowered, crushed beneath the
-overwhelming weight of ignominy. She tottered and
-must have fallen to the floor, but that Elsie sprang and
-aided her mother in supporting her to a sofa near.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_302'>302</span>“I declare,” exclaimed Elsie, in her positive manner,
-“there should have been no concealment; she should
-have grown up with the knowledge of her parentage!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh-h-h! doubtless,” murmured the nearly dying girl,
-“oh, doubtless they should have told me of my birth!
-And then my soul would have grown up familiarized
-with infamy, until it became as base as its proscribed
-dwelling-place!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But,” said Elsie, in her calm way, “is it possible you
-never suspected this? Is it possible that, when you came
-home from school, with all your faculties alive and keen,
-you could have looked upon my father’s portrait, and
-looked upon your own reflection in the glass, and not be
-struck by the resemblance, the identity of the two faces?
-Is it possible that you did not suspect?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Suspect this! suspect my birth! suspect my shame!
-Oh, woman, woman! you found me proud and joyous!
-how could I have suspected this? You found me living!
-how could I have suspected this and lived?” she exclaimed,
-in a voice of indescribable grief and reproach,
-and then her form subsided, as it were, prostrate, among
-the cushions. And so it was throughout the scene; frequent
-convulsive outbreaks of anguish would be instantly
-followed by the prostration of all strength. And
-then she lay with her hands pressed upon her face a long
-time perfectly still, but for an occasional start and shudder.
-She lay there, with Elsie sitting by her side, until
-the clock struck eight—the marriage hour. Mrs. Garnet
-then approached, and, kneeling by her, embraced and
-kissed her, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear girl, my daughter, rouse yourself. The bitter
-trial of this needless revelation has shocked you
-nearly to death. But it will pass away, as all trials must,
-my love. Garnet, I, too, have had trials in my time,
-heart-crushing disappointments and sorrows, from which
-I thought I never could recover. But I have recovered,
-you see. My sorrows are gone, long ago; gone down
-the stream of the past, and I have been happy for years.
-So it will be with you. We all think our first sorrow
-is to kill us, but it does not. We live and recover.
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_303'>303</span>So you will find it. This sudden revelation has overwhelmed
-you, but you will get over it. We will make
-you forget it. You will be an honorable and honored
-wife. You will be loved and happy. Come, rouse yourself!
-Your marriage hour has struck. Your husband
-waits you even now; come! Give me your hand!
-Garnet!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My marriage hour has struck! My husband waits
-me now! Oh, madam, do you then believe me base in
-soul as in birth?” exclaimed the miserable girl, with
-bitterness.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the name of Heaven, what mean you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Do you think that I, stripped of all other possessions,
-will carry my dower of shame to my husband’s home?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“In the name of mercy, what do you mean?” asked
-Alice, in alarm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, merely this, that this marriage must not and shall
-not proceed! Oh, no! Dr. Hutton must never blush
-for his wife’s parentage!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet glanced at Elsie in despair. Elsie here
-interposed her blooming face and hopeful voice, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Miss Seabright, as I told you before, I have no
-grand sentiments, but I have some good sense, and it
-seems to me, as it takes two to make an engagement, it
-takes two to break it, honestly; I think, as you have
-plighted your troth to Hugh Hutton, you might consult
-him before breaking faith with him, for such a cause, at
-the very last moment.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Consult him!” said the poor girl, as the blood crimsoned
-her ashen brow. “How can I consult him? And
-if I could, I know his self-immolating generosity. I
-know, besides, that he loves me so, he would hold me
-to my word; he loves me so, he would take the shame
-with me. Consult him! No, no! for many reasons. But
-without consulting him, I will break with him; since in
-breaking faith I shall wrong him less than in keeping
-it!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Ah, Miss Seabright, that is sophistry! And sophistry
-is ingenious, but it deceives no one. Duty is very simple,
-and it never can be mistaken. But I hear the bridegroom
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_304'>304</span>and his friends approaching the door. Come, rise! let
-me re-arrange your hair and wreath.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet opened the door, and admitted Dr. Hardcastle
-and Hugh Hutton. Dr. Hardcastle went up to his
-wife, who drew him off to a distant window, while Hugh
-Hutton, seeing his bride reclining, pale and disordered,
-upon the sofa, hastened to her, stooped over, took her
-hand, and gazed anxiously upon her, inquiring:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dearest Garnet, what is the matter? Are you ill
-again?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>She turned her face, whitened and sharpened with anguish,
-upon him, gazed intently in his countenance, but
-said nothing for a full minute—then, as by a new and
-sudden impulse, she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh! I know my birth. Do you?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hutton dropped her hand, frowned, and compressed
-his lips.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Garnet’s features convulsed with a spasm of anguish,
-and she covered her face with her hands.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>When Hugh Hutton saw that he dropped upon his
-knees at her side, removed her hands, and kissed her
-pallid brow, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I know that God created you a beautiful and high-souled
-woman. I know that by no act of your life have
-you ever marred His creation. I seek to know”—he
-broke forth with sudden energy—“I consent to know no
-more.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh,” she said, looking at him piteously, “an evil
-covered up is not an evil cured. Hugh, this marriage
-must not go on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie, you are insane!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, never more soberly, sadly sane than now.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What! would you break your engagement to me—and
-at the last moment?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; for a sufficient reason.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But I will not consent to it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I do not ask your consent. I break it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh! stoop down here! nearer—there. Hugh!”
-she said tenderly, running her pale fingers through the
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_305'>305</span>dark waves of hair each side his massive forehead, and
-holding his head between her hands as she gazed fondly
-in his face—“Hugh! I know you love me. I have never
-doubted it one single moment. And I do love you. So
-much—so much, Hugh, I love you so much that, to save
-my own immortal soul I would not marry you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You dare not refuse me. I claim your plighted
-faith. I claim you for my wife,” exclaimed Hugh Hutton
-passionately.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To save you I dare refuse you. To save you I dare
-break my plighted faith, and take the sin upon my own
-soul. Hugh! dear Hugh! in one great contest I yielded
-to you, because high principle was on your side. But
-this is a different matter; I am as inexorable as Death.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nettie! Nettie! I am strong; but your loss would
-paralyze me. But oh! it cannot be. I will never, never
-leave you nor forsake you. If I do, may God abandon
-my own soul!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Her features were convulsed again, and for a moment
-she concealed them with her hands; then laying her
-hands tenderly upon the head of her kneeling companion,
-she said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It does not matter much for me, for I think that death
-is upon me—but for you, Hugh—oh, it is hard, it is
-hard for you. It is hard for you, so good and true, so
-noble as you are, to be so grievously wronged by disappointment.
-Oh! it shakes one’s faith in goodness, in
-Heaven. But I love you so—I love you so that I will
-pray God, living or dying, I will pray God to give you
-another love, another wife, who shall be worthy of you.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“By Heaven! I will have no other wife but you. And
-you will I have!” exclaimed Hugh Hutton, forgetting
-the presence of others, and speaking so loud as to startle
-Mrs. Garnet, who came forward and said:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh, Hugh! my dear friend, is not this a trouble?
-What shall we do to persuade her?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear friend, leave me alone with her for a little
-while. God has deputed to me some power over His
-self-willed child—this noble but stubborn girl. Leave
-me with her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_306'>306</span>Mrs. Garnet turned to go, but was met near the door
-by Miss Joe, who bustled in, and, nudging the lady’s
-elbow, whispered to her, saying:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I say! aint it time for them all to walk down? The
-parson—Parson Sinclair—has been come for half an
-hour, and the company downstairs is getting out o’ patience.
-Besides, if the ceremony don’t make haste and
-get performed, the breakfast will get spoiled—the coffee
-will boil all its strength away, and the batter for the rice
-waffles will rise so much it will turn sour. What are they
-all waiting for?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Nothing. And I do not know that there will be any
-marriage,” replied Mrs. Garnet sternly and bitterly.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Hugh, what is the matter?” exclaimed Miss Joe,
-looking around in surprise. Then, perceiving the recumbent
-form of Miss Seabright, with Dr. Hutton still
-kneeling by her, she inquired: “Dear me! What ails
-Garnet?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“You have ruined her peace forever,” indignantly exclaimed
-Mrs. Garnet, unable to forbear reproaches.
-“You have killed her with your uncalled-for revelations.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me! ruined what? killed which?” exclaimed the innocent
-old lady, in perplexity.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Garnet Seabright. I say you have killed her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Killed her! why I haint even tetched her. I haint
-done a thing to her; I haint harmed a hair of her head.
-I haint been a-nigh her. She was well enough when I
-come through here with the napkins.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Words kill! You told her the secret of her birth.
-You told her she was General Garnet’s child, and the
-shock and the shame have overwhelmed, have killed her.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The old lady listened with her eyes starting out of her
-head, and her mouth wide open with unmeasured astonishment,
-and then exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Me! Me tell her she was General Garnet’s child!
-Why, I didn’t do no such thing! Who says I did?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I! I heard you with my own ears.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Why, you didn’t hear any such a thing! High! how
-could I tell such a lie as that, when it wa’n’t the truth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Mrs. Garnet, in her turn, stared with such unbounded
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_307'>307</span>astonishment and incredulity, that the old lady took high
-offense, and exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well! upon my word! Next time it lightens, I
-shouldn’t wonder if you accused me of setting the clouds
-afire. Come! if you don’t b’lieve me, there’s the young
-gal herself. Go ask her now. She aint dying neither,
-no more ’an I am. She looks gashly as a corpse, to be
-sure, but Lord! I’ve seen her look that way afore, when
-she’d get into her tantrums long o’ her guardian or
-Hugh. Come! I’ll go;” and the old lady waddled precipitately
-across the room to the sofa, exclaiming wrathfully,
-“Miss Seabright! Garnet Seabright, I say! Now,
-did ever I tell you such a falsity as that you were General
-Garnet’s child?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hutton started up from his kneeling posture, and
-stood staring at the excited old lady. Garnet sprang up
-from the cushions, and gazed at her face with all her
-soul in her eyes.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My goodness, child; don’t stare at me so wild!
-You’ll give me the fever ‘n’ ague. Answer my question.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Here Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle were attracted to the
-scene of action.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Can’t you speak? Did ever I say you were General
-Garnet’s child?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Did—you—not—say—so?” asked Miss Seabright,
-with life and death struggling in her bosom.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No! I did not say so. How could I tell such a lie,
-when it wasn’t the truth?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And—he—was—not—my—father?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I wish people wouldn’t be slandering of your poor,
-dear mother! poor, little, wild thing. She was distantly
-connected with myself.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But,” said Elsie, interposing, “no one raised a doubt
-but yourself, Miss Joe, and we would like to hear you
-explain your words, that gave rise to all this trouble.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Words! what words?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The words you whispered to Miss Seabright when
-you passed through the room an hour ago.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Oh! yes. Why, I telled her she might well have a
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_308'>308</span>share o’ the property, seein’ how she was General Garnet’s
-granddaughter.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“General Garnet’s granddaughter!” exclaimed everyone.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes. Don’t all talk to me at the same time, you
-’fuse my head. I declare, if my heart aint as big as a
-batch of light dough, and my head goes round like a
-coffee-mill! That ’minds me of the breakfast—’deed it
-will get spoiled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But you did not tell her that she was General Garnet’s
-granddaughter. It was something else you told
-her,” said Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I—don’t ’fuse my mind. I don’t ’member what the
-words were, but that’s what the meaning was.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I remember what the words were exactly,” said Elsie;
-“she said she was ‘his own flesh and blood.’”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“To be sure I did; that’s just what I did say. It’s all
-in the little yellow hair trunk—her mother’s little yellow
-hair trunk. I never knowed anything about it until I
-come here to live, because I never had no chance to fool
-my time away ransacking of old papers afore. If you’ll
-all stop talking to me, I’ll tell you all about it, and you
-can read the rest. You see, General Garnet, when he was
-a boy about seventeen or eighteen years old, he falls in
-love long of a poor gal, and marries her secretly. In
-about a year arter this, the poor gal she died, leaving of
-a young infant son. Then General Garnet—he was Mr.
-Garnet then—he being a wild young man, and not wanting
-to be bothered with children, he puts this child out to
-nurse, and goes off and forgets all about it. But the
-boy, as he grew up, he knew, somehow, who his father
-was, and sort o’ always had a hankering arter finding
-him. Well, he didn’t meet his father till he listed in the
-wars, when he was no more than fourteen years of age;
-and he served under him the whole length of the war;
-and though General Garnet—he was Captain Garnet
-then—being a handsome, dashing, gay young officer,
-would not acknowledge or even notice this son, yet the
-boy seemed to worship the very earth his father walked
-on. He seemed to live but for one thing in the world—to
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_309'>309</span>love and serve his handsome but unnatural father.
-He watched over the safety of his life and his honor.
-Twice he saved his father’s honor at the loss of his own
-reputation; and that was the reason why he never got
-to be anything better ’an a corporal all the time he
-sarved in the war. I’ll tell you all about it some time,
-or else you can read it all in the old letters in the little
-yellow hair trunk. Well, and at last he saved his
-father’s life, at the expense of a dreadful wound, that,
-arter years of illness, caused his death. Well, this boy—though
-his father didn’t set any store to him, and his
-comrades didn’t vally him as they ought to ’a done—was
-thought a heap on by my wild little cousin. And so,
-when he come from the wars, wounded, and feeble, and
-broken-hearted, she stole away to him, and they were
-married. She said she could work for both, and she did
-work for both till he died. Well, arter the poor misfortunate
-young man was dead and gone, I suppose General
-Garnet’s conscience, as had been stone dead long
-before, had a resurrection, or else the ghost of his murdered
-conscience haunted him, for he paid a visit to the
-young widow, and found her grieving herself to death.
-Well, he made a whole parcel o’ splendid promises as he
-never fulfilled. And when the poor young thing died,
-leaving her little darter in his care, he jest passed her
-over to me as a great favor, and that was the very last
-I ever saw or heard of him or his promises till he quarreled
-long o’ his own darter, and then he comed over and
-’dopted Nettie. You see, God never could prevail with
-him to do anything, but the devil could make him do as
-he pleased.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“There, there, Miss Joe, that will do,” interrupted Mrs.
-Garnet, to whom these severe reflections were deeply
-painful. “Never, Miss Joe, cast unnecessary reproach
-upon the memory of the dumb, defenseless dead.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I won’t. I am sure if the Lord pardons him, we can.
-I won’t say any more. Only if you want to know all
-the particulars, you see, you can read the letters in the
-little yellow hair trunk. And that’s the end of the story;
-and now I know the coffee is spoiled.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_310'>310</span>“Garnet, you have a right to blush for your parentage—but
-let it be a blush of enthusiasm, for never
-have I heard of two such disinterested souls,” said Dr.
-Hardcastle, shaking her hand with cordial sympathy.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Hugh Hutton said nothing as yet, but stood by her,
-pouring all his earnest, loving soul through the gaze he
-fixed upon her face. And she—down her cheeks the
-tears had poured like rain. But now that copious and
-refreshing shower was over and the sun of gladness
-shone out again, Garnet smiled brightly, while yet the
-tears sparkled like rain-drops on her ringlets. Mrs.
-Hardcastle, with her cheerful blooming expression, was
-standing behind her quietly rearranging the disordered
-wreath and veil. Mrs. Garnet went to the door of the
-adjoining room, and beckoned the two young ladies who
-were to act as bridesmaids. Dr. Hardcastle opened the
-hall door and admitted the groomsmen, who entered and
-gave their arms to the young bridesmaids. Hugh Hutton
-took the hand of Garnet, and, when she arose, Elsie
-arranged the folds of her robe, and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Never mind if you are very pale and agitated, dear;
-it is not so unbefitting a bride—besides, your veil is
-down, you know.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The bridal party moved onward downstairs. As Dr.
-Hardcastle followed with his wife, he turned to her with
-an arch look, and whispered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“My dear Elsie, there is an old acquaintance of yours
-below stairs.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Many of them, I suspect.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes, but this one is an uninvited, unexpected, but
-most welcome guest.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Whom?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“The Honorable Ulysses Roebuck!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“‘The Honorable Ulysses Roebuck!’ I remember
-‘Marse Useless,’ as the negroes used to call him; but
-how on earth became he ‘Honorable’?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Hardcastle shrugged his shoulders, elevated his
-eyebrows with a queer smile, and answered:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I really suppose just as more of our Honorables become
-so. He failed at everything useful, went to a distant
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_311'>311</span>part of the State, took to politics, made stump-speeches
-‘full of sound and fury, signifying nothing’ and
-got himself sent to Congress. After an absence of ten
-years he has just now revisited his native neighborhood.
-He reached Point Pleasant by the early boat this morning,
-and, finding that the family were all here, he followed
-them, and is here also.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“And his old ladylove, who jilted him to marry my
-father, and lost both, and who must be now near twenty-eight
-years of age—how did she receive him? I should
-like to have seen that meeting!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I saw it. When he first entered the saloon he was
-caught in the arms of Judge Jacky, who ran to him and
-rapturously embraced him, overwhelming him with welcomes.
-Then, when released from the old gentleman’s
-arms, he shook hands with all his friends and acquaintances,
-looking uneasily around the room all the while, as
-if in search of someone else. At last his flying glances
-alighted on the distant form of Ambrosia, standing near
-the fireplace. He made her a formal bow, which she
-acknowledged by a cold courtesy!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“After a lover’s quarrel and a separation of ten years!
-That is a first-rate sign, Magnus; I should not wonder if
-he had cherished her image in his heart through all those
-years.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Well, they had not even spoken when I came away.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Better and better! I shall not be surprised if he
-propose for her before the day is over.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>They had now reached the saloon where the bridal
-party were already ranging themselves before the clergyman,
-who was no other than our oldest friend, the Rev.
-Milton Sinclair.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“See!” whispered Dr. Hardcastle, pointing to where
-Miss Wylie sat gloomily at one end of the room, and
-Mr. Roebuck morosely at the other; “see! I do not believe
-they have spoken yet.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I believe they’ll be married in a week!” laughed
-Elsie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>But the clergyman had opened his book, the ceremony
-was about to commence, and all became silent and profoundly
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_312'>312</span>attentive while it progressed. It was over, and
-friends crowded around to offer their congratulations to
-the newly-married pair. In the crowd Ulysses Roebuck,
-Mrs. Hardcastle, and Ambrosia Wylie got pressed together.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I declare!” exclaimed Elsie, with her cheerful, ringing
-tones, “if here are not two of my old, old playmates!”
-And seizing a hand of each, she shook them
-heartily; then joining those two hands in hers, she said,
-“Let me be the mediator. Be friends, as you long to
-be!” and slipped away, leaving them together.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Shall we be friends? Shall we be more to each
-other, Ambrosia?” said Ulysses, pressing her hand.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Yes; if you can forgive the infidelity caused by ambition,
-and expiated by whole years of suffering!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“I have waited for you ten years, Ambrosia. I should
-think that an answer. Come! let’s go to the bay window
-and talk over old times!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Not now; the company are going in to breakfast,”
-replied Ambrosia, taking his arm; and they followed in
-the wake of the foremost. Mrs. Garnet approached the
-clergyman, who still lingered as if lost in abstraction.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Mr. Sinclair,” she said, “it gives me great happiness
-to see you back here and settled in our parish. I am
-much pleased, also, to welcome you to our house. The
-company have gone in to breakfast; will you come?”
-Mr. Sinclair bowed in grave silence, gave the lady his
-arm, and they followed the others.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Breakfast was over. The traveling carriage of Mount
-Calm was packed and at the door to convey the newly-married
-couple to the stage office at Huttontown, whence
-they were to start for the West. The family party, consisting
-of Mrs. Garnet, Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle, and
-the bride and groom, were grouped for a last leave-taking
-in the passage, when Miss Joe suddenly appeared
-among them, in her poke bonnet and brown shawl, with
-a bandbox in one hand and a basket in the other, and
-followed by a negro man, bending under the weight of a
-great trunk. When the little party stared with surprise,
-she exclaimed:</p>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_313'>313</span>“Well, now, you needn’t look so queer, all of you,
-cause I couldn’t help of it! I’ve been a-struggling and
-a-struggling with my feelings, and I couldn’t help of it!
-I’m gwine long o’ Hugh and Nettie. They’re like my
-own children, ’cause I took care of them when they were
-little! And I’m gwine long o’ them. Besides, long as
-they’re poor, they’ll want somebody to help them work.
-It aint much I can do now, seeing I’m nigh on to seventy
-years old. But, leastways, I can mend their clothes,
-and darn the children’s stockings, and mind the baby,
-and so on.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>There was no time for much argument now; but to all
-that Mrs. Garnet and the Hardcastles could say to prevail
-on her to remain at Mount Calm the old lady turned
-a deaf ear. She was set to go with Hugh and Nettie,
-because they were like her own children, and because
-they were poor.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“But they are not poor,” said Mrs. Garnet; “and, oh!
-that reminds me—I have the deed of gift yet,” continued
-the lady, producing the deed from her pocket, and placing
-it in the hands of Dr. Hutton.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“What is this, madam?” he asked, examining the
-parchment.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is merely a dower with your bride,” said the lady.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“It is a deed of conveyance, Hugh, investing me with
-properties to the amount of one-tenth the great Mount
-Calm estate. Can I take it?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“No, dearest—no, you cannot!” replied Dr. Hutton,
-pressing her hand; then, turning to the lady, he said:
-“Mrs. Garnet, we sincerely thank you. This generosity
-is so like yourself that we are not surprised at it, while
-we must gratefully decline it.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>As no arguments could move Hugh Hutton from his
-resolution, the effort was at last abandoned.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The carriage, into which Miss Joe was packed, drew
-up nearer to the door. Garnet embraced her friends successively.
-Hugh Hutton shook hands with them in turn,
-and handed his bride into the carriage. The steps were
-put up, the door closed, and the carriage rolled away.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<p class='c010'><span class='pageno' id='Page_314'>314</span>Mrs. Garnet continued to reside at Mount Calm, happy
-in her vocation of “Lady Bountiful” to the neighborhood—happy,
-that is to say, as long as the fine weather
-of spring, summer, and autumn last, during which, in her
-missions of usefulness or benevolence, she could walk,
-ride, or drive through the most beautiful country in the
-world; but, when winter came, with its wind and rain,
-and hail and snowstorms, its impassable roads, and its
-long spells of tempestuous or intensely cold weather, and
-its longer seasons of enforced confinement within-doors,
-the lonely lady of Mount Calm found the solitary
-grandeur of her mansion house dreary enough. The
-minister had been her coadjutor, and often her companion,
-in her labors of beneficence, during the preceding
-eight or ten months; and now, in the stormy winter
-weather, he was her willing representative and almoner
-among the sick, the poor, and the suffering. No fury of
-tempest overhead, or depth of snow, or quagmire under
-foot, could interrupt the weekly visits of the pastor to the
-lady. The solitary lady knew this; and so, even in the
-most frightful weather, during the darkest, dreariest, and
-loneliest seasons, there was one day in the week to which
-she could look forward with certainty of enjoyment—namely,
-to Wednesday, when, let the wind and the rain,
-the hail and the snow, do what it might to prevent him,
-the minister was sure to present himself at Mount Calm.
-Each Wednesday evening it became more painful for
-these two friends to part, and the parting was protracted
-to a later hour. One very stormy night in February,
-when he had lingered by her fireside later than ever before,
-and had at last risen to take leave, he detained
-her hand in his a long time in silence, and then faltered:
-“Alice, are we never to be more to each other than
-now?” The lady shook her head in mournful negation,
-and there was a “soul’s tragedy” in the tone wherewith
-she answered simply: “We are old, now!” The timid
-proposition was not renewed then; the shyness of age,
-worse than the shyness of youth, silenced the lips of the
-minister. The proposal probably never would have been
-renewed, but for the intervention of the cordial-hearted
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_315'>315</span>Elsie—that happy, healthful, sworn foe to all morbid
-scruples and needless suffering. She had been made acquainted
-with her mother’s early history, and for years
-past she had watched over the delicate lady with more
-care and tenderness than over any of her own robust and
-blooming babies. Now that she was divided from her,
-she felt increased solicitude for the welfare of the fragile,
-sensitive recluse. It was toward the spring that she was
-awakened to a knowledge of the attachment existing
-between the lady and the pastor; and, after taking observation
-for a few days, she one day said to her mother:
-“Mother, why don’t you marry the minister?”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dear Elsie, what could suggest such an absurd thing
-to your mind? What would the neighbors say? At our
-age, too!”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Dearest mother, they may wonder a little; but, upon
-the whole, they will be well pleased. Besides, shall their
-wonder prevent you being comfortable? You need each
-other’s society—you and the minister. You are both so
-lonely—you in your mansion, he in his lodgings; you
-need each other. Come! accept him, mother. Magnus
-and I will give you our blessing,” laughed Elsie; and
-then, immediately regretting her involuntary levity, she
-said seriously: “Dear mother, think of this. You have
-reached the summit-point of life; before you lies the
-descent into the vale of years; your old friend stands on
-the same ground, with the same road before him. Give
-your hand to your dear old friend, and go ye down the
-vale together.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Elsie was successful in her efforts. Before another
-winter the lady and the minister were married; and
-thenceforward the serene and beautiful life of the pair
-gave a poetic fitness to the name of their homestead,
-“Mount Calm.”</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. and Mrs. Hardcastle made Hemlock Hollow their
-place of permanent residence. They erected an elegant
-mansion, and improved and adorned the grounds with
-such artistic taste that it was considered one of the most
-beautiful seats in old St. Mary’s.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The Honorable Ulysses and Mrs. Roebuck spent their
-<span class='pageno' id='Page_316'>316</span>summers at Point Pleasant, and their winters in the
-metropolis, until the Honorable Ulysses grew weary of
-political life and careless of popularity, and lost his election,
-when they took up their permanent abode at the
-Point, with Judge Jacky Wylie.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>And the families of Hemlock Hollow, Mount Calm,
-and Point Pleasant formed an intimate social circle, and
-kept up their agreeable relations after the St. Mary’s
-fashion of family dinner-parties, social tea-drinkings, fish
-feasts upon the coast, fox-hunts among the gentlemen,
-neighborhood dances, etc.; while the gentle, but powerful
-influence emanating from Mount Calm spread the
-spirit of religion over all.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. and Mrs. Hutton eventually settled in a Southern
-State. Miss Joe Cotter remained with them to the end
-of her long life. Consistent in her economy to the very
-last, she devoted the remaining years of her life to “laying
-up treasures in heaven.” Dr. Hutton became one
-of the most celebrated physicians in the country, and
-amassed a large fortune. Mrs. Hutton became one of
-the brightest stars in the great Southern constellation of
-beauty, genius, and fashion. Their home is a beautiful
-edifice on the banks of a Southern lake, within easy distance
-of the city. For elegance, taste, and luxury it is
-scarcely excelled by the far-famed palaces of the Old
-World. From his present affluent ease Dr. Hutton delights
-to look back upon his early struggles, and he repeats
-now, with more emphasis than before, that, “A
-young American should never permit himself to depend
-upon the accidents of fortune for success in life; for in
-our prosperous country a man of good health and good
-habits need never fail to make an independence for himself
-and family, and to win the blessing of God.”</p>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>Grosset &#38; Dunlap’s Popular</div>
- <div>Series of Standard Books</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c010'>A series of 12mos of distinctive character and appearance,
-comprising judiciously selected titles, indorsed by
-the foremost critics, and approved by generations of readers.
-Beautifully printed on fine book paper, and handsomely
-bound in cloth with strikingly artistic cover designs.</p>
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>AESOP’S FABLES</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>ANDERSEN, HANS CHRISTIAN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Fairy Tales and Stories</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BARRIE, J. M.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Little Minister</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BELL, J. J.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Wee Macgreegor</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BESANT AND RICE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>All Sorts and Conditions of Man</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BRONTE, CHARLOTTE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Jane Eyre</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BULWER-LYTTON</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Last Days of Pompeii</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>BUNYAN, JOHN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Pilgrim’s Progress</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>CAREY, ROSA NOUCHETTE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Aunt Diana</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Averil</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Merle’s Crusade</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Not Like Other Girls</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Only the Governess</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>CARROLL, LEWIS</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Alice in Wonderland and Through the Looking Glass. The two volumes in one</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>CONNOR, RALPH</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Black Rock</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>COOPER, J. FENIMORE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Deerslayer</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Last of the Mohicans</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Pathfinder</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Pioneers</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Prairie</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Spy</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>CUMMINS, MARIA S.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Lamplighter</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>CORELLI, MARIE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Thelma</div>
- <div class='line in4'>A Romance of Two Worlds</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>DEFOE, DANIEL</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Robinson Crusoe</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>DICKENS, CHARLES</div>
- <div class='line in4'>A Tale of Two Cities</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Christmas Stories</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>DODGE, MARY MAPES</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Hans Brinker</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>DOYLE, A. CONAN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Tales of Sherlock Holmes</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>DUMAS, ALEXANDER</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Twenty Years After</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Three Guardsmen</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>ELIOT, GEORGE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Silas Marner</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>ELLIS, EDWARD S.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Life of Kit Carson</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>EMERSON, RALPH WALDO</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Essays (1st and 2nd Series in one volume)</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>EVANS, AUGUSTA J.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Beulah</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Inez</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Macaria</div>
- <div class='line in4'>St. Elmo (Special Ed.)</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>FOTHERGILL, JESSIE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The First Violin</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>GASKELL, MRS.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Cranford</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>GRIMM, THE BROTHERS</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Grimm’s Fairy Tales</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HABBERTON, JOHN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Helen’s Babies</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HARRIS, MIRIAM COLES</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Rutledge</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HAWTHORNE, NATHANIEL</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Marble Faun</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Scarlet Letter</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HOLLAND, J. G.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Bitter Sweet</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HOLLEY, MARIETTA</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Samantha at Saratoga</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HOLMES, OLIVER WENDELL</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Elsie Venner</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>HUGHES, THOMAS</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Tom Brown’s School Days</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Tom Brown at Oxford</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>INGRAHAM, REV. J. H.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Prince of the House of David</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Pillar of Fire</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Throne of David</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>IRVING, WASHINGTON</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Sketch Book</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>LAMB, CHARLES AND MARY</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Tales from Shakespeare</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>LANG, ANDREW</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Blue Fairy Book</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Green Fairy Book</div>
- <div class='line in4'>My Own Fairy Book</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Red Fairy Book</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Yellow Fairy Book</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>LONGFELLOW, HENRY W.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Evangeline</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Hiawatha</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Courtship of Miles Standish</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>MARLITT, EUGENIE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Gold Elsie</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>MEREDITH, OWEN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Lucile</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>MULOCK, MISS</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Little Lame Prince</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Mulock’s Fairy Tales</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>OUIDA</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Under Two Flags</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>PRENTISS, ELIZABETH PAYSON</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Stepping Heavenward</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>READE, CHARLES</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Cloister and the Hearth</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>REID, CAPT. MAYNE</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Rifle Rangers</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>SCOTT, SIR WALTER</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Ivanhoe (with notes)</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Kenilworth (with notes)</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>SEWELL, ANNA</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Black Beauty</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>SHELDON, REV. CHARLES M.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Crucifixion of Philip Strong</div>
- <div class='line in4'>In His Steps</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Robert Hardy’s Seven Days</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>STEVENSON, R. L.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Treasure Island</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>STOWE, HARRIET BEECHER</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Uncle Tom’s Cabin</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>THOMPSON, D. P.</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Green Mountain Boys</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>WAGNER, CHARLES</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Simple Life</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>WARNER, SUSAN</div>
- <div class='line in4'>The Wide, Wide World</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>WOOD, MRS. HENRY</div>
- <div class='line in4'>East Lynne</div>
- </div>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>WYSS, JOHANN RUDOLF</div>
- <div class='line in4'>Swiss Family Robinson</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>The Southworth Series</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c010'>Comprising ten of the most popular works of Mrs.
-E. D. E. N. Southworth. Many mothers can remember
-with what pleasure they pored over the captivating novels
-of Mrs. Southworth when they were girls, and how impatiently
-they waited from week to week for the instalments
-of their favorite stories. They are read with the same
-eagerness by the daughters of to-day, and will be as
-eagerly read by their children’s children. They are
-splendid stories of American life, manners, customs
-and institutions.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Attractively bound in cloth, with colored picture inlay
-on cover. Coated paper wrapper, printed in colors.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>THE CHANGED BRIDES; Or, Winning Her Way.</div>
- <div class='line'>THE BRIDE’S FATE; Sequel to “The Changed Brides.”</div>
- <div class='line'>CRUEL AS THE GRAVE.</div>
- <div class='line'>TRIED FOR HER LIFE; Sequel to “Cruel as the Grave.”</div>
- <div class='line'>THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER; Or, The Children of the Isle.</div>
- <div class='line'>THE HIDDEN HAND; Complete in one volume.</div>
- <div class='line'>ISHMAEL; Or, In the Depths.</div>
- <div class='line'>SELF-RAISED; Or, From the Depths. Sequel to “Ishmael.”</div>
- <div class='line'>THE MISSING BRIDE; Or, Miriam, the Avenger.</div>
- <div class='line'>VIVIA; Or, The Secret of Power.</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>The L. T. Meade Series</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c010'>The popularity of these charming tales for girls
-increases as the years go by, and the present edition we
-believe to be the best ever offered at a moderate price.
-Thirty-nine titles—many of them copyrighted.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>12 mo. Handsomely bound in cloth of bright colors
-with beautiful picture inlay in full color on front cover.
-Coated paper wrapper, printed in colors.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>Bad Little Hannah</div>
- <div class='line'>Bashful Fifteen</div>
- <div class='line'>Betty: A Schoolgirl</div>
- <div class='line'>Betty of the Rectory</div>
- <div class='line'>Bevy of Girls, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Bunch of Cherries, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Children of Wilton Chase</div>
- <div class='line'>Children’s Pilgrimage, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Daddy’s Girl</div>
- <div class='line'>Deb and the Duchess</div>
- <div class='line'>Four On An Island</div>
- <div class='line'>Gay Charmer, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Girl in Ten Thousand, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Girls, New and Old</div>
- <div class='line'>Girls of Mrs. Pritchard’s School</div>
- <div class='line'>Girls of St. Wodes, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Girls of the True Blue</div>
- <div class='line'>Good Luck</div>
- <div class='line'>In Time of Roses</div>
- <div class='line'>Light o’ the Morning</div>
- <div class='line'>Little Mother to the Others, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Madcap, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Manor School, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Merry Girls of England</div>
- <div class='line'>Miss Nonentity</div>
- <div class='line'>Modern Tom Boy, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Out of the Fashion</div>
- <div class='line'>Palace Beautiful, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Polly: A New Fashioned Girl</div>
- <div class='line'>Rebellion of Lil Carrington, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Red Rose and Tiger Lily</div>
- <div class='line'>Ring of Rubies, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Sweet Girl Graduate, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Temptation of Olive Latimer, The</div>
- <div class='line'>Turquoise and Ruby</div>
- <div class='line'>Very Naughty Girl, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Wild Kitty</div>
- <div class='line'>World of Girls, A</div>
- <div class='line'>Young Mutineer, A</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>The Popular Novels of</div>
- <div>MARY J. HOLMES</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c010'>A new edition of the favorite works of this extremely
-popular novelist, printed from new large type plates, on
-fine book paper, and attractively bound in cloth. With
-colored picture inlay on cover. Coated paper wrapper,
-printed in colors.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div>Price, 50 cents per volume, postpaid.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='lg-container-b'>
- <div class='linegroup'>
- <div class='group'>
- <div class='line'>TEMPEST AND SUNSHINE</div>
- <div class='line'>LENA RIVERS</div>
- <div class='line'>THE ENGLISH ORPHANS</div>
- <div class='line'>HOMESTEAD ON THE HILLSIDE</div>
- <div class='line'>MAGGIE MILLER</div>
- <div class='line'>DORA DEANE</div>
- <div class='line'>ROSAMOND</div>
- <div class='line'>COUSIN MAUDE</div>
- <div class='line'>MEADOW BROOK</div>
- <div class='line'>DARKNESS AND DAYLIGHT</div>
- <div class='line'>ETHELYN’S MISTAKE</div>
- <div class='line'>BAD HUGH</div>
- <div class='line'>ROSE MATHER</div>
- <div class='line'>MARIAN GREY</div>
- <div class='line'>MILLBANK</div>
- <div class='line'>EDITH LYLE’S SECRET</div>
- <div class='line'>FAMILY PRIDE</div>
- <div class='line'>AIKENSIDE</div>
- <div class='line'>MILDRED</div>
- <div class='line'>THE LEIGHTON HOMESTEAD</div>
- </div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>A FEW OF</div>
- <div>GROSSET &#38; DUNLAP’S</div>
- <div>Great Books at Little Prices</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c019'>CY WHITTAKER’S PLACE. By Joseph C. Lincoln.
-Illustrated by Wallace Morgan.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A Cape Cod story describing the amusing efforts of an elderly
-bachelor and his two cronies to rear and educate a little
-girl. Full of honest fun—a rural drama.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE FORGE IN THE FOREST. By Charles G. D.
-Roberts. Illustrated by H. Sandham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A story of the conflict in Acadia after its conquest by the
-British. A dramatic picture that lives and shines with the indefinable
-charm of poetic romance.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>A SISTER TO EVANGELINE. By Charles G. D.
-Roberts. Illustrated by E. McConnell.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Being the story of Yvonne de Lamourie, and how she went
-into exile with the villagers of Grand Prè. Swift action,
-fresh atmosphere, wholesome purity, deep passion and searching
-analysis characterize this strong novel.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE OPENED SHUTTERS. By Clara Louise Burnham.
-Frontispiece by Harrison Fisher.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A summer haunt on an island in Casco Bay is the background
-for this romance. A beautiful woman, at discord with
-life, is brought to realize, by her new friends, that she may
-open the shutters of her soul to the blessed sunlight of joy by
-casting aside vanity and self love. A delicately humorous
-work with a lofty motive underlying it all.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE RIGHT PRINCESS. By Clara Louise Burnham.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An amusing story, opening at a fashionable Long Island resort,
-where a stately Englishwoman employs a forcible New
-England housekeeper to serve in her interesting home. How
-types so widely apart react on each others’ lives, all to ultimate
-good, makes a story both humorous and rich in sentiment.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE LEAVEN OF LOVE. By Clara Louise Burnham.
-Frontispiece by Harrison Fisher.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>At a Southern California resort a world-weary woman, young
-and beautiful but disillusioned, meets a girl who has learned
-the art of living—of tasting life in all its richness, opulence and
-joy. The story hinges upon the change wrought in the soul
-of the blasé woman by this glimpse into a cheery life.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>QUINCY ADAMS SAWYER. A Picture of New
-England Home Life. With illustrations by C. W.
-Reed, and Scenes Reproduced from the Play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>One of the best New England stories ever written. It is
-full of homely human interest&#160;*&#160;*&#160;* there is a wealth of New
-England village character, scenes and incidents&#160;*&#160;*&#160;* forcibly,
-vividly and truthfully drawn. Few books have enjoyed a
-greater sale and popularity. Dramatized, it made the greatest
-rural play of recent times.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE FURTHER ADVENTURES OF QUINCY
-ADAMS SAWYER. By Charles Felton Pidgin.
-Illustrated by Henry Roth.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>All who love honest sentiment, quaint and sunny humor,
-and homespun philosophy will find these “Further Adventures”
-a book after their own heart.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>HALF A CHANCE. By Frederic S. Isham. Illustrated
-by Herman Pfeifer.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The thrill of excitement will keep the reader in a state of
-suspense, and he will become personally concerned from the
-start, as to the central character, a very real man who suffers,
-dares—and achieves!</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>VIRGINIA OF THE AIR LANES. By Herbert
-Quick. Illustrated by William R. Leigh.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The author has seized the romantic moment for the airship
-novel, and created the pretty story of “a lover and his lass”
-contending with an elderly relative for the monopoly of the
-skies. An exciting tale of adventure in midair.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE GAME AND THE CANDLE. By Eleanor M.
-Ingram. Illustrated by P. D. Johnson.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The hero is a young American, who, to save his family from
-poverty, deliberately commits a felony. Then follow his capture
-and imprisonment, and his rescue by a Russian Grand
-Duke. A stirring story, rich in sentiment.</p>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>A FEW OF</div>
- <div>GROSSET &#38; DUNLAP’S</div>
- <div>Great Books at Little Prices</div>
- <div>NEW, CLEVER, ENTERTAINING.</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c019'>GRET: The Story of a Pagan. By Beatrice Mantle. Illustrated
-by C. M. Relyea.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The wild free life of an Oregon lumber camp furnishes the setting for this
-strong original story. Gret is the daughter of the camp and is utterly content
-with the wild life—until love comes. A fine book, unmarred by convention.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>OLD CHESTER TALES. By Margaret Deland. Illustrated
-by Howard Pyle.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A vivid yet delicate portrayal of characters in an old New England town.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Dr. Lavendar’s fine, kindly wisdom is brought to bear upon the lives of
-all, permeating the whole volume like the pungent odor of pine, healthful
-and life giving. “Old Chester Tales” will surely be among the books that
-abide.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE MEMOIRS OF A BABY. By Josephine Daskam. Illustrated
-by F. Y. Cory.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The dawning intelligence of the baby was grappled with by its great aunt,
-an elderly maiden, whose book knowledge of babies was something at which
-even the infant himself winked. A delicious bit of humor.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>REBECCA MARY. By Annie Hamilton Donnell. Illustrated
-by Elizabeth Shippen Green.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>The heart tragedies of this little girl with no one near to share them, are
-told with a delicate art, a keen appreciation of the needs of the childish
-heart and a humorous knowledge of the workings of the childish mind.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE FLY ON THE WHEEL. By Katherine Cecil Thurston.
-Frontispiece by Harrison Fisher.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An Irish story of real power, perfect in development and showing a true
-conception of the spirited Hibernian character as displayed in the tragic as
-well as the tender phases of life.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE MAN FROM BRODNEY’S. By George Barr McCutcheon.
-Illustrated by Harrison Fisher.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An island in the South Sea is the setting for this entertaining tale, and
-an all-conquering hero and a beautiful princess figure in a most complicated
-plot. One of Mr. McCutcheon’s best books.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>TOLD BY UNCLE REMUS. By Joel Chandler Harris. Illustrated
-by A. B. Frost, J. M. Conde and Frank Verbeck.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Again Uncle Remus enters the fields of childhood, and leads another
-little boy to that non-locatable land called “Brer Rabbit’s Laughing
-Place,” and again the quaint animals spring into active life and play their
-parts, for the edification of a small but appreciative audience.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE CLIMBER. By E. F. Benson. With frontispiece.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>An unsparing analysis of an ambitious woman’s soul—a woman who
-believed that in social supremacy she would find happiness, and who finds
-instead the utter despair of one who has chosen the things that pass away.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>LYNCH’S DAUGHTER. By Leonard Merrick. Illustrated by
-Geo. Brehm.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A story of to-day, telling how a rich girl acquires ideals of beautiful and
-simple living, and of men and love, quite apart from the teachings of her
-father, “Old Man Lynch” of Wall St. True to life, clever in treatment.</p>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>GROSSET &#38; DUNLAP’S</div>
- <div>DRAMATIZED NOVELS</div>
- <div>A Few that are Making Theatrical History</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-<hr class='c018'>
-
-<p class='c019'>MARY JANE’S PA. By Norman Way. Illustrated with scenes
-from the play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>Delightful, irresponsible “Mary Jane’s Pa” awakes one morning to find
-himself famous, and, genius being ill adapted to domestic joys, he wanders
-from home to work out his own unique destiny. One of the most humorous
-bits of recent fiction.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>CHERUB DEVINE. By Sewell Ford.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>“Cherub,” a good hearted but not over refined young man is brought in
-touch with the aristocracy. Of sprightly wit, he is sometimes a merciless
-analyst, but he proves in the end that manhood counts for more than ancient
-lineage by winning the love of the fairest girl in the flock.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>A WOMAN’S WAY. By Charles Somerville. Illustrated with
-scenes from the play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A story in which a woman’s wit and self-sacrificing love save her husband
-from the toils of an adventuress, and change an apparently tragic situation
-into one of delicious comedy.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE CLIMAX. By George C. Jenks.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>With ambition luring her on, a young choir soprano leaves the little village
-where she was born and the limited audience of St. Jude’s to train for the
-opera in New York. She leaves love behind her and meets love more ardent
-but not more sincere in her new environment. How she works, how she
-studies, how she suffers, are vividly portrayed.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>A FOOL THERE WAS. By Porter Emerson Browne. Illustrated
-by Edmund Magrath and W. W. Fawcett.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A relentless portrayal of the career of a man who comes under the influence
-of a beautiful but evil woman; how she lures him on and on, how he
-struggles, falls and rises, only to fall again into her net, make a story of
-unflinching realism.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE SQUAW MAN. By Julie Opp Faversham and Edwin
-Milton Royle. Illustrated with scenes from the play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A glowing story, rapid in action, bright in dialogue with a fine courageous
-hero and a beautiful English heroine.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>THE GIRL IN WAITING. By Archibald Fyre. Illustrated
-with scenes from the play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A droll little comedy of misunderstandings, told with a light touch, a venturesome
-spirit and an eye for human oddities.</p>
-
-<p class='c019'>The Scarlet Pimpernel. By Baroness Orczy. Illustrated
-with scenes from the play.</p>
-
-<p class='c010'>A realistic story of the days of the French Revolution, abounding in
-dramatic incident, with a young English soldier of fortune, daring, mysterious
-as the hero.</p>
-
-<hr class='c011'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
- <div class='nf-center'>
- <div><span class='sc'>Grosset &#38; Dunlap, 526 West 26th St., New York</span></div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div class='pbb'>
- <hr class='pb c003'>
-</div>
-<div class='tnotes x-ebookmaker'>
-
-<div class='chapter ph2'>
-
-<div class='nf-center-c0'>
-<div class='nf-center c012'>
- <div>TRANSCRIBER’S NOTES</div>
- </div>
-</div>
-
-</div>
-
- <ol class='ol_1 c002'>
- <li>Silently corrected obvious typographical errors and variations in spelling.
-
- </li>
- <li>Retained archaic, non-standard, and uncertain spellings as printed.
- </li>
- </ol>
-
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin-top:4em'>*** END OF THE PROJECT GUTENBERG EBOOK THE DISCARDED DAUGHTER ***</div>
-<div style='text-align:left'>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Updated editions will replace the previous one&#8212;the old editions will
-be renamed.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Creating the works from print editions not protected by U.S. copyright
-law means that no one owns a United States copyright in these works,
-so the Foundation (and you!) can copy and distribute it in the United
-States without permission and without paying copyright
-royalties. Special rules, set forth in the General Terms of Use part
-of this license, apply to copying and distributing Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works to protect the PROJECT GUTENBERG&#8482;
-concept and trademark. Project Gutenberg is a registered trademark,
-and may not be used if you charge for an eBook, except by following
-the terms of the trademark license, including paying royalties for use
-of the Project Gutenberg trademark. If you do not charge anything for
-copies of this eBook, complying with the trademark license is very
-easy. You may use this eBook for nearly any purpose such as creation
-of derivative works, reports, performances and research. Project
-Gutenberg eBooks may be modified and printed and given away&#8212;you may
-do practically ANYTHING in the United States with eBooks not protected
-by U.S. copyright law. Redistribution is subject to the trademark
-license, especially commercial redistribution.
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-top:1em; font-size:1.1em; text-align:center'>START: FULL LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>THE FULL PROJECT GUTENBERG LICENSE</div>
-<div style='text-align:center;font-size:0.9em'>PLEASE READ THIS BEFORE YOU DISTRIBUTE OR USE THIS WORK</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-To protect the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting the free
-distribution of electronic works, by using or distributing this work
-(or any other work associated in any way with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221;), you agree to comply with all the terms of the Full
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; License available with this file or online at
-www.gutenberg.org/license.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 1. General Terms of Use and Redistributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.A. By reading or using any part of this Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic work, you indicate that you have read, understand, agree to
-and accept all the terms of this license and intellectual property
-(trademark/copyright) agreement. If you do not agree to abide by all
-the terms of this agreement, you must cease using and return or
-destroy all copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in your
-possession. If you paid a fee for obtaining a copy of or access to a
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work and you do not agree to be bound
-by the terms of this agreement, you may obtain a refund from the person
-or entity to whom you paid the fee as set forth in paragraph 1.E.8.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.B. &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is a registered trademark. It may only be
-used on or associated in any way with an electronic work by people who
-agree to be bound by the terms of this agreement. There are a few
-things that you can do with most Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-even without complying with the full terms of this agreement. See
-paragraph 1.C below. There are a lot of things you can do with Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works if you follow the terms of this
-agreement and help preserve free future access to Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works. See paragraph 1.E below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.C. The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation (&#8220;the
-Foundation&#8221; or PGLAF), owns a compilation copyright in the collection
-of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works. Nearly all the individual
-works in the collection are in the public domain in the United
-States. If an individual work is unprotected by copyright law in the
-United States and you are located in the United States, we do not
-claim a right to prevent you from copying, distributing, performing,
-displaying or creating derivative works based on the work as long as
-all references to Project Gutenberg are removed. Of course, we hope
-that you will support the Project Gutenberg&#8482; mission of promoting
-free access to electronic works by freely sharing Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-works in compliance with the terms of this agreement for keeping the
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; name associated with the work. You can easily
-comply with the terms of this agreement by keeping this work in the
-same format with its attached full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License when
-you share it without charge with others.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.D. The copyright laws of the place where you are located also govern
-what you can do with this work. Copyright laws in most countries are
-in a constant state of change. If you are outside the United States,
-check the laws of your country in addition to the terms of this
-agreement before downloading, copying, displaying, performing,
-distributing or creating derivative works based on this work or any
-other Project Gutenberg&#8482; work. The Foundation makes no
-representations concerning the copyright status of any work in any
-country other than the United States.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E. Unless you have removed all references to Project Gutenberg:
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.1. The following sentence, with active links to, or other
-immediate access to, the full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License must appear
-prominently whenever any copy of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work (any work
-on which the phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; appears, or with which the
-phrase &#8220;Project Gutenberg&#8221; is associated) is accessed, displayed,
-performed, viewed, copied or distributed:
-</div>
-
-<blockquote>
- <div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
- This eBook is for the use of anyone anywhere in the United States and most
- other parts of the world at no cost and with almost no restrictions
- whatsoever. You may copy it, give it away or re-use it under the terms
- of the Project Gutenberg License included with this eBook or online
- at <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>. If you
- are not located in the United States, you will have to check the laws
- of the country where you are located before using this eBook.
- </div>
-</blockquote>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.2. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is
-derived from texts not protected by U.S. copyright law (does not
-contain a notice indicating that it is posted with permission of the
-copyright holder), the work can be copied and distributed to anyone in
-the United States without paying any fees or charges. If you are
-redistributing or providing access to a work with the phrase &#8220;Project
-Gutenberg&#8221; associated with or appearing on the work, you must comply
-either with the requirements of paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 or
-obtain permission for the use of the work and the Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-trademark as set forth in paragraphs 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.3. If an individual Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work is posted
-with the permission of the copyright holder, your use and distribution
-must comply with both paragraphs 1.E.1 through 1.E.7 and any
-additional terms imposed by the copyright holder. Additional terms
-will be linked to the Project Gutenberg&#8482; License for all works
-posted with the permission of the copyright holder found at the
-beginning of this work.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.4. Do not unlink or detach or remove the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-License terms from this work, or any files containing a part of this
-work or any other work associated with Project Gutenberg&#8482;.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.5. Do not copy, display, perform, distribute or redistribute this
-electronic work, or any part of this electronic work, without
-prominently displaying the sentence set forth in paragraph 1.E.1 with
-active links or immediate access to the full terms of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; License.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.6. You may convert to and distribute this work in any binary,
-compressed, marked up, nonproprietary or proprietary form, including
-any word processing or hypertext form. However, if you provide access
-to or distribute copies of a Project Gutenberg&#8482; work in a format
-other than &#8220;Plain Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other format used in the official
-version posted on the official Project Gutenberg&#8482; website
-(www.gutenberg.org), you must, at no additional cost, fee or expense
-to the user, provide a copy, a means of exporting a copy, or a means
-of obtaining a copy upon request, of the work in its original &#8220;Plain
-Vanilla ASCII&#8221; or other form. Any alternate format must include the
-full Project Gutenberg&#8482; License as specified in paragraph 1.E.1.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.7. Do not charge a fee for access to, viewing, displaying,
-performing, copying or distributing any Project Gutenberg&#8482; works
-unless you comply with paragraph 1.E.8 or 1.E.9.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.8. You may charge a reasonable fee for copies of or providing
-access to or distributing Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-provided that:
-</div>
-
-<div style='margin-left:0.7em;'>
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You pay a royalty fee of 20% of the gross profits you derive from
- the use of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works calculated using the method
- you already use to calculate your applicable taxes. The fee is owed
- to the owner of the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, but he has
- agreed to donate royalties under this paragraph to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation. Royalty payments must be paid
- within 60 days following each date on which you prepare (or are
- legally required to prepare) your periodic tax returns. Royalty
- payments should be clearly marked as such and sent to the Project
- Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation at the address specified in
- Section 4, &#8220;Information about donations to the Project Gutenberg
- Literary Archive Foundation.&#8221;
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide a full refund of any money paid by a user who notifies
- you in writing (or by e-mail) within 30 days of receipt that s/he
- does not agree to the terms of the full Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- License. You must require such a user to return or destroy all
- copies of the works possessed in a physical medium and discontinue
- all use of and all access to other copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
- works.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You provide, in accordance with paragraph 1.F.3, a full refund of
- any money paid for a work or a replacement copy, if a defect in the
- electronic work is discovered and reported to you within 90 days of
- receipt of the work.
- </div>
-
- <div style='text-indent:-0.7em'>
- &#8226; You comply with all other terms of this agreement for free
- distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482; works.
- </div>
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.E.9. If you wish to charge a fee or distribute a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work or group of works on different terms than
-are set forth in this agreement, you must obtain permission in writing
-from the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the manager of
-the Project Gutenberg&#8482; trademark. Contact the Foundation as set
-forth in Section 3 below.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.1. Project Gutenberg volunteers and employees expend considerable
-effort to identify, do copyright research on, transcribe and proofread
-works not protected by U.S. copyright law in creating the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; collection. Despite these efforts, Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, and the medium on which they may be stored, may
-contain &#8220;Defects,&#8221; such as, but not limited to, incomplete, inaccurate
-or corrupt data, transcription errors, a copyright or other
-intellectual property infringement, a defective or damaged disk or
-other medium, a computer virus, or computer codes that damage or
-cannot be read by your equipment.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.2. LIMITED WARRANTY, DISCLAIMER OF DAMAGES - Except for the &#8220;Right
-of Replacement or Refund&#8221; described in paragraph 1.F.3, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation, the owner of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; trademark, and any other party distributing a Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; electronic work under this agreement, disclaim all
-liability to you for damages, costs and expenses, including legal
-fees. YOU AGREE THAT YOU HAVE NO REMEDIES FOR NEGLIGENCE, STRICT
-LIABILITY, BREACH OF WARRANTY OR BREACH OF CONTRACT EXCEPT THOSE
-PROVIDED IN PARAGRAPH 1.F.3. YOU AGREE THAT THE FOUNDATION, THE
-TRADEMARK OWNER, AND ANY DISTRIBUTOR UNDER THIS AGREEMENT WILL NOT BE
-LIABLE TO YOU FOR ACTUAL, DIRECT, INDIRECT, CONSEQUENTIAL, PUNITIVE OR
-INCIDENTAL DAMAGES EVEN IF YOU GIVE NOTICE OF THE POSSIBILITY OF SUCH
-DAMAGE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.3. LIMITED RIGHT OF REPLACEMENT OR REFUND - If you discover a
-defect in this electronic work within 90 days of receiving it, you can
-receive a refund of the money (if any) you paid for it by sending a
-written explanation to the person you received the work from. If you
-received the work on a physical medium, you must return the medium
-with your written explanation. The person or entity that provided you
-with the defective work may elect to provide a replacement copy in
-lieu of a refund. If you received the work electronically, the person
-or entity providing it to you may choose to give you a second
-opportunity to receive the work electronically in lieu of a refund. If
-the second copy is also defective, you may demand a refund in writing
-without further opportunities to fix the problem.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.4. Except for the limited right of replacement or refund set forth
-in paragraph 1.F.3, this work is provided to you &#8216;AS-IS&#8217;, WITH NO
-OTHER WARRANTIES OF ANY KIND, EXPRESS OR IMPLIED, INCLUDING BUT NOT
-LIMITED TO WARRANTIES OF MERCHANTABILITY OR FITNESS FOR ANY PURPOSE.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.5. Some states do not allow disclaimers of certain implied
-warranties or the exclusion or limitation of certain types of
-damages. If any disclaimer or limitation set forth in this agreement
-violates the law of the state applicable to this agreement, the
-agreement shall be interpreted to make the maximum disclaimer or
-limitation permitted by the applicable state law. The invalidity or
-unenforceability of any provision of this agreement shall not void the
-remaining provisions.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-1.F.6. INDEMNITY - You agree to indemnify and hold the Foundation, the
-trademark owner, any agent or employee of the Foundation, anyone
-providing copies of Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works in
-accordance with this agreement, and any volunteers associated with the
-production, promotion and distribution of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-electronic works, harmless from all liability, costs and expenses,
-including legal fees, that arise directly or indirectly from any of
-the following which you do or cause to occur: (a) distribution of this
-or any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, (b) alteration, modification, or
-additions or deletions to any Project Gutenberg&#8482; work, and (c) any
-Defect you cause.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 2. Information about the Mission of Project Gutenberg&#8482;
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; is synonymous with the free distribution of
-electronic works in formats readable by the widest variety of
-computers including obsolete, old, middle-aged and new computers. It
-exists because of the efforts of hundreds of volunteers and donations
-from people in all walks of life.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Volunteers and financial support to provide volunteers with the
-assistance they need are critical to reaching Project Gutenberg&#8482;&#8217;s
-goals and ensuring that the Project Gutenberg&#8482; collection will
-remain freely available for generations to come. In 2001, the Project
-Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation was created to provide a secure
-and permanent future for Project Gutenberg&#8482; and future
-generations. To learn more about the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation and how your efforts and donations can help, see
-Sections 3 and 4 and the Foundation information page at www.gutenberg.org.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 3. Information about the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation is a non-profit
-501(c)(3) educational corporation organized under the laws of the
-state of Mississippi and granted tax exempt status by the Internal
-Revenue Service. The Foundation&#8217;s EIN or federal tax identification
-number is 64-6221541. Contributions to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation are tax deductible to the full extent permitted by
-U.S. federal laws and your state&#8217;s laws.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation&#8217;s business office is located at 809 North 1500 West,
-Salt Lake City, UT 84116, (801) 596-1887. Email contact links and up
-to date contact information can be found at the Foundation&#8217;s website
-and official page at www.gutenberg.org/contact
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 4. Information about Donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary Archive Foundation
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; depends upon and cannot survive without widespread
-public support and donations to carry out its mission of
-increasing the number of public domain and licensed works that can be
-freely distributed in machine-readable form accessible by the widest
-array of equipment including outdated equipment. Many small donations
-($1 to $5,000) are particularly important to maintaining tax exempt
-status with the IRS.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-The Foundation is committed to complying with the laws regulating
-charities and charitable donations in all 50 states of the United
-States. Compliance requirements are not uniform and it takes a
-considerable effort, much paperwork and many fees to meet and keep up
-with these requirements. We do not solicit donations in locations
-where we have not received written confirmation of compliance. To SEND
-DONATIONS or determine the status of compliance for any particular state
-visit <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org/donate/">www.gutenberg.org/donate</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-While we cannot and do not solicit contributions from states where we
-have not met the solicitation requirements, we know of no prohibition
-against accepting unsolicited donations from donors in such states who
-approach us with offers to donate.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-International donations are gratefully accepted, but we cannot make
-any statements concerning tax treatment of donations received from
-outside the United States. U.S. laws alone swamp our small staff.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Please check the Project Gutenberg web pages for current donation
-methods and addresses. Donations are accepted in a number of other
-ways including checks, online payments and credit card donations. To
-donate, please visit: www.gutenberg.org/donate
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; font-size:1.1em; margin:1em 0; font-weight:bold'>
-Section 5. General Information About Project Gutenberg&#8482; electronic works
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Professor Michael S. Hart was the originator of the Project
-Gutenberg&#8482; concept of a library of electronic works that could be
-freely shared with anyone. For forty years, he produced and
-distributed Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks with only a loose network of
-volunteer support.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Project Gutenberg&#8482; eBooks are often created from several printed
-editions, all of which are confirmed as not protected by copyright in
-the U.S. unless a copyright notice is included. Thus, we do not
-necessarily keep eBooks in compliance with any particular paper
-edition.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-Most people start at our website which has the main PG search
-facility: <a href="https://www.gutenberg.org">www.gutenberg.org</a>.
-</div>
-
-<div style='display:block; margin:1em 0'>
-This website includes information about Project Gutenberg&#8482;,
-including how to make donations to the Project Gutenberg Literary
-Archive Foundation, how to help produce our new eBooks, and how to
-subscribe to our email newsletter to hear about new eBooks.
-</div>
-
-</div>
- </body>
- <!-- created with ppgen.py 3.57c_GHS_H5 on 2023-01-05 17:56:55 GMT -->
-</html>
diff --git a/old/69714-h/images/cover.jpg b/old/69714-h/images/cover.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index ad90259..0000000
--- a/old/69714-h/images/cover.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ
diff --git a/old/69714-h/images/i_title.jpg b/old/69714-h/images/i_title.jpg
deleted file mode 100644
index 23e9b82..0000000
--- a/old/69714-h/images/i_title.jpg
+++ /dev/null
Binary files differ